---------
Green
----------Mars
PART
1
------------
---Areoformation
-----------
The point is not to make another Earth. Not another Alaska or Tibet, not a Vermont nor a Venice, not even an Antarctica. The point is to make something new and strange, something Martian.
In a sense our intentions don’t even matter. Even if we try to make another Siberia or Sahara, it won’t work. Evolution won’t allow it, and at its heart this is an evolutionary process, an endeavor driven at a level below intention, as when life made its first miracle leap out of matter, or when it crawled out of sea onto land.
Again we struggle in the matrix of a new world, this time truly alien. Despite the great long glaciers left by the giant floods of 2061, it is a very arid world; despite the beginnings of atmosphere creation, the air is still very thin; despite all the applications of heat, the average temperature is still well below freezing. All these conditions make survival for living things difficult in the extreme. But life is tough and adaptable, it is the green force viriditas, pushing into the universe. In the decade following the catastrophes of 2061, people struggled in the cracked domes and torn tents, patching things up and getting by; and in our hidden refuges, the work of building a new society went on. And out on the cold surface new plants spread over the flanks of the glaciers, and down into the warm low basins, in a slow inexorable surge.
Of
course all the genetic templates for our new biota are Terran; the minds
designing them are Terran; but the terrain is Martian. And terrain is a
powerful genetic engineer, determining what flourishes and what doesn’t,
pushing along progressive differentiation, and thus the evolution of new
species. And as the generations pass, all the members of a biosphere evolve
together, adapting to their terrain in a complex communal response, a creative
self-designing ability. This process, no matter how much we intervene in it, is
essentially out of our control. Genes mutate, creatures evolve: a new biosphere
emerges, and with it a new noosphere. And eventually the designers’ minds,
along with everything else, have been forever changed.
This is the process of areoformation.
One day the sky fell. Plates of ice crashed into the lake, and then started thumping
on the beach. The children scattered like frightened sandpipers. Nirgal ran
over the dunes to the village and burst into the greenhouse, shouting, “The sky
is falling, the sky is falling!” Peter sprinted out the doors and across the
dunes faster than Nirgal could follow.
Back on the beach great panes of ice stabbed the sand, and some
chunks of dry ice fizzed in the water of the lake. When the children were all
clumped around him Peter stood with his head craned back, staring at the dome
so far above. “Back to the village,” he said in his no-nonsense tone. On the
way there he laughed. “The sky is falling!” he squeaked, tousling Nirgal’s
hair. Nirgal blushed and Dao and Jackie laughed, their frosted breath shooting
out in quick white plumes.
Peter was one of those who climbed the side of the dome to repair
it. He and Kasei and Michel spidered over the village in sight of all, over the
beach and then the lake until they were smaller than children, hanging in
slings from ropes attached to icehooks. They sprayed the flaw in the dome with
water until it froze into a new clear layer, coating the white dry ice. When
they came down they talked of the warming world outside. Hiroko had emerged
from her little bamboo stand by the lake to watch, and Nirgal said to her,
“Will we have to leave?”
“We will always have to leave,” Hiroko said. “Nothing on Mars will
last.”
But Nirgal liked it under the dome. In the morning he woke in his
own round bamboo room, high in Creche Crescent, and ran down to the frosty
dunes with Jackie and Rachel and Frantz and the other early risers. He saw
Hiroko on the far shore, walking the beach like a dancer, floating over her own
wet reflection. He wanted to go to her but it was time for school.
They went back to the village and crowded into the schoolhouse
coatroom, hanging up their down jackets and standing with their blue hands
stretched over the heating grate, waiting for the day’s teacher. It could be
Dr. Robot and they would be bored senseless, counting his blinks like the
seconds on the clock. It could be the Good Witch, old and ugly, and then they
would be back outside building all day, exuberant with the joy of tools. Or it
could be the Bad Witch, old and beautiful; and they would be stuck before their
lecterns all morning trying to think in Russian, in danger of a rap on the hand
if they giggled or fell asleep. The Bad Witch had silver hair and a fierce
glare and a hooked nose, like the ospreys that lived in the pines by the lake.
Nirgal was afraid of her.
So like the others he concealed his dismay as the school door
opened and the Bad Witch walked in. But on this day she seemed tired, and let
them out on time even though they had done poorly at arithmetic. Nirgal
followed Jackie and Dao out of the schoolhouse and around the corner, into the
alley between Creche Crescent and the back of the kitchen. Dao peed against the
wall and Jackie pulled down her pants to show she could too, and just then the
Bad Witch came around the comer. She pulled them all out of the alley by the
arm, Nirgal and Jackie clutched together in one of her talons, and right out in
the plaza she spanked Jackie while shouting furiously at the boys. “You two
stay away from her! She’s your sister!” Jackie, crying and twisting to pull up
her pants, saw Nirgal looking at her, and she tried to hit him and Maya with
the same furious swing, and fell over bare-bottomed and howled.
* * *
It wasn’t true that Jackie was their sister. There were twelve
sansei or third-generation children in Zygote, and they knew each other like
brothers and sisters and many of them were, but not all. It was confusing and
seldom discussed. Jackie and Dao were the oldest, Nirgal a season younger, the
rest bunched a season after that: Rachel, Emily, Reull, Steve, Simud, Nanedi,
Tiu, Frantz, and Huo Hsing. Hiroko was mother to everyone in Zygote, but not
really—only to Nirgal and Dao and six other of the sansei, and several of the
nisei grownups as well. Children of the mother goddess.
But Jackie was Esther’s daughter. Esther had moved away after a
fight with Kasei, who was Jackie’s father. Not many of them knew who their
fathers were. Once Nirgal had been crawling over a dune after a crab when
Esther and Kasei had loomed overhead, Esther crying and Kasei shouting, “If
you’re going to leave me then leave!” He had been crying too. He had a pink
stone eyetooth. He too was a child of Hiroko’s; so Jackie was Hiroko’s
granddaughter. That was how it worked. Jackie had long black hair and was the
fastest runner in Zygote, except for Peter. Nirgal could run the longest, and
sometimes ran around the lake three or four times in a row, just to do it, but
Jackie was faster in the sprints. She laughed all the time. If Nirgal ever
argued with her she would say, “All right Uncle Nirgie,” and laugh at him. She
was his niece, although a season older. But not his sister.
The school door crashed open and there was Coyote, teacher for the
day. Coyote traveled all over the world, and spent very little time in Zygote.
It was a big day when he taught them. He led them around the village finding
odd things to do, but all the time he made one of them read aloud, from books
impossible to understand, written by philosophers, who were dead people.
Ba-kunin, Nietzsche, Mao, Bookchin—these people’s comprehensible thoughts lay
like unexpected pebbles on a long beach of gibberish. The stories Coyote had
them read from the Odyssey or the Bible were easier to understand, though
unsettling, as the people in them killed each other a lot and Hiroko said it
was wrong. Coyote laughed at Hiroko and he often howled for no obvious reason
as they read these gruesome tales, and asked them hard questions about what
they had heard, and argued with them as if they knew what they were talking about,
which was disconcerting. “What would you do? Why would you do (hat?” All the
while teaching them how the Rickover’s fuel recycler worked, or making them
check- the plunger hydraulics on the lake’s wave machine, until their hands
went from blue to white, and their teeth chattered so much they couldn’t talk
clearly. “You kids sure get cold easy,” he said. “All but Nirgal.”
Nirgal was good with cold. He knew intimately all its many stages,
and he did not dislike the feel of it. People who disliked cold did not
understand that one could adjust to it, that its bad effects could all be dealt
with by a sufficient push from within. Nirgal was very familiar with heat as
well. If you pushed heat out hard enough, then cold only became a sort of vivid
shocking envelope in which you moved. And so cold’s ultimate effect was as a
stimulant, making you want to run.
“Hey Nirgal, what’s the air temperature?”
“Two seventy-one.”
Coyote’s laugh was scary, an animal cackle that included all the
noises anything could make. Different every time too. “Here, let’s stop the
wave machine and see what the lake looks like flat.”
The water of the lake was always liquid, while the water ice
coating the underside of the dome had to stay frozen. This explained most of
their mesocosmic weather, as Sax put it, giving them their mists and sudden
winds, their rain and fog and occasional snow. On this day the weather machine
was almost silent, the big hemisphere of space under the dome nearly windless.
With the wave machine turned off, the lake soon settled down to a round flat
plate. The surface of the water became the same white color as the dome, but
the lake bottom, covered by green algae, was still visible through the white
sheen. So the lake was simultaneously pure white and dark green. On the far
shore the dunes and scrub pines were reflected upside down in this two-toned
water, as perfectly as in any mirror. Nirgal stared at the sight, entranced,
everything falling away, nothing there but this pulsing green/white vision. He
saw: there were two worlds, not one—two worlds in the same space, both visible,
separate and different but collapsed together, so that they were visible as two
only at certain angles. Push at vision’s envelope, push like one pushed against
the envelope of cold: push.’ Such colors! ...
“Mars to Nirgal, Mars to Nirgal!”
They laughed at him. He was always doing that, they told him.
Going off. His friends were fond of him, he saw that in their faces.
Coyote broke chips of flat ice from the strand, then skipped them
across the lake. All of them did the same, until the intersecting white-green
ripples made the upside-down world shiver and dance. “Look at that!” Coyote
shouted. Between throws he chanted, in his bouncing English that was like a
perpetual song: “You kids are living the best lives in history, most people
just fluid in the great world machine, and here you’re in on the birth of a
world! Unbelievable! But it’s pure luck you know, no credit to you, not until
you do something with it, you could have been bom in a mansion, a jail, a
shantytown in Port of Spain, but here you are in Zygote, the secret heart of
Mars! ‘Course just now you’re down here like moles in a hole, with vultures
above all ready to eat you, but the day is coming when you walk this planet
free of every bond. You remember what I’m telling you, it’s prophecy my
children! And meanwhile look how fine it is, this little ice paradise.”
He threw a chip straight ‘at the dome, and they all chanted Ice
Paradise! Ice Paradise! Ice Paradise! until diey were helpless with laughter.
But that night Coyote spoke to Hiroko, when he thought no one was
listening. “Roko you got to take those kids outside and show them the world.
Even if it’s only under the fog hood. They’re like moles in a hole down here,
for Christ’s sake.” Then he was gone again, who knew where, off on one of his
mysterious journeys into that other world folded over them.
Some days Hiroko came into the village to teach them. These to
Nirgal were the best days of all. She always took them down to the beach; and
going to the beach with Hiroko was like being touched by a god. It was her
world—the green world inside the white—and she knew everything about it, and
when she was there the subtle pearly colors of sand and dome pulsed with both
worlds’ colors at once, pulsed as if trying to break free of what held them.
They sat on the dunes, watching the shore birds skitter and peep as they
charged together up and down the strand. Gulls wheeled overhead and Hiroko
asked them questions, her black eyes twinkling merrily. She lived by the lake
with a small group of her intimates, Iwao, Rya, Gene, Evgenia, all in a little
bamboo stand in the dunes. And she spent a lot of time visiting other hidden
sanctuaries around the South Pole. So she always needed catching up on the village
news. She was a slender woman, tall for one of the issei, as neat as the shore
birds in her dress and her movement. She was old, of course, impossibly ancient
like all the issei, but with something in her manner which made her seem
younger than even Peter or Kasei—just a little bit older than the kids, in
fact, with everything in the world new before her, pushing to break into all
its colors.
“Look at the pattern this seashell makes. The dappled whorl,
curving inward to infinity. That’s the shape of the universe itself. There’s a
constant pressure, pushing toward pattern. A tendency in matter to evolve into
ever more complex forms. It’s a kind of pattern gravity, a holy greening power
we call viriditas, and it is the driving force in the cosmos. Life, you see.
Like these sand fleas and limpets and krill—although these krill in particular
are dead, and helping the fleas. Like all of us,” waving a hand like a dancer.
“And because we are alive, the universe must be said to be alive. We are its
consciousness as well as our own. We rise out of the cosmos and we see its mesh
of patterns, and it strikes us as beautiful. And that feeling is the most
important thing in all the universe—its culmination, like the color of the
flower at first bloom on a wet morning. It’s a holy feeling, and our task in
this world is to do everything we can to foster it. And one way to do that is
to spread life everywhere. To aid it into existence where it was not before, as
here on Mars.”
This to her was the supreme act of love, and when she talked about
it, even if they didn’t fully understand, they felt the love. Another push,
another kind of warmth in the envelope of cold. She touched them as she talked,
and they dug for shells as they listened. “Mud clam! Antarctic limpet. Glass
sponge, watch out, it can cut you.” It made Nirgal happy just to look at her.
And one morning, as they stood from their dig to do more
beachcombing, she returned his gaze, and he recognized her expression—it was
precisely the expression on his face when he looked at her, he could feel it in
his muscles. So he made her happy too! Which was intoxicating.
He held her hand as they walked the beach. “It’s a simple ecology
in some ways,” she said as they knelt to inspect another clam shell. “Not many
species, and the food chains are short. But so rich. So beautiful.” She tested
the temperature of the lake with her hand. “See the mist? The water must be
warm today.”
By this time she and Nirgal were alone, the other kids running
around the dunes or up and down the strand. Nirgal bent down to touch a wave as
it stalled out next to their feet, leaving behind a white lace of foam. “It’s
two seventy-five and a little over.”
“You’re so sure.”
“I can always tell.”
“Here,” she said, “do I have a fever?”
He reached up and held her neck. “No, you’re cool.”
“That’s right. I’m always about half a degree low. Vlad and Ursula
can’t figure out why.”
“It’s because you’re happy.”
Hiroko laughed, looking just like Jackie, suffused with joy. “I
love you, Nirgal.”
Inside he warmed as if a heating grate were in there. Half a
degree at least. “And I love you.”
And they walked down the beach hand in hand, silently following
the sandpipers.
Coyote returned, and Hiroko said to him, “Okay. Let’s take them
outside.” .
And so the next morning when they met for school, Hiroko and
Coyote and Peter led them through the locks and down the long white tunnel that
connected the dome to the outside world. At its far end were located the hangar
and the cliff gallery above it. They had run the gallery with Peter in the
past, looking out the little polarized windows at the icy sand and the pink
sky, trying to see the great wall of dry ice that they stood in—the south polar
cap, the bottom of the world, which they lived in to escape the notice of
people who would put them in jail.
Because of that they had always stayed inside the gallery. But on
this day they went into the hangar locks and put on tight elastic jumpers,
rolling up sleeves and legs; then heavy boots, and tight gloves, and finally
helmets, with bubble windows on their front side. Getting more excited every
moment, until the excitement became something very like fright, especially when
Simud started crying and insisting she didn’t want to go. Hiroko calmed her
with a long touch. “Come on. I’ll be there with you.”
They huddled together speechlessly as the adults herded them into
the lock. There was a hissing noise, and then the outer door opened. Clutching
the adults, they walked cautiously outside, bumping together as they moved.
It was too bright to see. They were in a swirling white mist. The
ground was dotted with intricate ice flowers, all aglint in the bath of light.
Nirgal was holding Hiroko and Coyote by the hand, and they propelled him
forward and let go of his hands. He staggered in the onslaught of white glare.
“This is the fog hood,” Hiroko’s voice said over an intercom in his ear. “It
lasts through the winter. But now it’s Ls 205, springtime, when the green force
pushes hardest through the world, fueled by the sun’s light. See it!”
He could see nothing but it: a white coalescing fireball. Sudden
sunlight pierced this ball, transforming it into a spray of color, turning the
frosty sand to shaved magnesium, the ice flowers to incandescent jewels. The
wind pushed at his side and rent the fog; gaps in it appeared, and the land
gaped off into the distance, making him reel. So big! So big—everything was so
big—he went to one knee on the sand, put his hands on his other leg to keep his
balance. The rocks and ice flowers around his boots glowed as if under a
microscope. The rocks were dotted with round scales of black and green lichen.
Out on the horizon was a low flat-topped hill. A crater. There in
the gravel was a rover track, nearly filled with frost, as if it had been there
a million years. Pattern pulsing in the chaos of light and rock, green lichen
pushing into the white... .
Everyone was talking at once. The other children were beginning to
race around giddily, shrieking with delight as the fog opened up and gave them
a glimpse of the dark pink sky. Coyote was laughing hard. “They’re like winter
calves let out of the bam in spring, look at them tripping, oh you poor dear
things, ah ha ha, Roko this no way to make them live,” cackling as he lifted
kids off the sand and set them on their feet again.
Nirgal stood, bounced experimentally. He felt he might float away,
he was glad the boots were so heavy. There was a long mound, shoulder high,
snaking away from the ice cliff. Jackie was walking its crest and he ran to
join her, staggering at the incline, at the jumbled rock on the ground. He got
onto the ridge and got into his running rhythm, and it felt as if he were
flying, as if he could run forever.
He stood by her side. They looked back at the ice cliff, and
shouted with a fearful joy; it rose up forever into the fog. A shaft of morning
light poured over them like molten water. They turned away, unable to face it.
Blinking away floods of tears, Nirgal saw his shadow cast against the fog
scraping over the rocks below them. The shadow was surrounded by a bright
circular band of rainbow light. He shouted loudly and Coyote raced up to them,
his voice in Nirgal’s ear crying, “What’s wrong! What is it?”
He stopped when he saw the shadow. “Hey, it’s a glory! That’s
called a glory. It’s like the Spectre of the Brocken. Wave your arms up and
down! Look at the colors! Christ almighty, aren’t you the lucky ones.”
On an impulse Nirgal moved to Jackie’s side, and their glories
merged, becoming a single nimbus of glowing rainbow colors, surrounding their
blue double shadow. Jackie laughed with delight and’ went off to try it with
Peter.
About a year
later Nirgal and the
other children began to figure out how to deal with the days when they were
taught by Sax. He would start at the blackboard, sounding like a particularly
characterless Al, and behind his back they would roll their eyes and make faces
as he droned on about partial pressures or infrared rays. Then one of them
would see an opening and begin the game. He was helpless before it. He would
say something like, “In nonshiv-ering thermogenesis the body produces heat
using futile cycles,” and one of them would raise a hand and say, “But why,
Sax?” and everyone would stare hard at their lectern and not look at each
other, while Sax would frown as if this had never happened before, and say,
“Well, it creates heat without using as much energy as shivering does. The
muscle proteins contract, but instead of grabbing they just slide over each
other, and that creates the heat.” Jackie, so sincerely the whole class nearly
lost it: “But how?” He was blinking now, so fast they almost exploded watching
him. “Well, the amino acids in the proteins have broken covalent bonds, and the
breaks release what is called bond dissociation energy.”
“But why?”
Blinking ever harder: “Well, that’s just a matter of physics.” He
diagrammed vigorously on the blackboard: “Covalent bonds are formed when two
atomic orbitals merge to form a single bond orbital, occupied by electrons from
both atoms. Breaking the bond releases thirty to a hundred kcals of stored
energy.”
Several of them asked, in chorus, “But why?”
This got him into subatomic physics, where the chain of whys and
becauses could go on for a half hour without him ever once saying something
they could understand. Finally they would sense they were near the end game.
“But why?”
“Well,” going cross-eyed as he tried to backtrack, “atoms want to
get to their stable number of electrons, and they’ll share electrons when they
have to.”
“But why?”
Now he was looking trapped. “That’s just the way atoms bond. One
of the ways.”
“But WHY?”
A shrug. “That’s how the atomic force works. That’s how things
came out—”
And they all would shout, “in the Big Bang.”
They would howl with glee, and Sax’s forehead would knot up as he
realized that they had done it to him again. He would sigh, and go back to
where he had been when the game began. But every time they started it again, he
never seemed to remember, as long as the initial why was plausible enough. And
even when he did recognize what was happening, he seemed helpless to stop it.
His only defense was to say, with a little frown, “Why what?” That slowed the
game for a while; but then Nirgal and Jackie got clever at guessing what in any
statement most deserved a why, and as long as they could do that, Sax seemed to
feel it was his job to continue answering, right on up the chains of because to
the Big Bang, or, every once in a while, to a muttered “We don’t know.”
“We don’t know!” the class would exclaim in mock dismay. “Why
not?”
“It’s not explained,” he would say, frowning. “Not yet.”
And so the good mornings with Sax would pass; and both he and the
kids seemed to agree that these were better than the bad mornings, when he
would drone on uninterrupted, and protest “This is really a very important matter”
as he turned from the blackboard and saw a crop of heads laid out snoring on
the desktops.
* * *
One morning, thinking about Sax’s frown, Nirgal stayed behind in
the school until he and Sax were the only ones left, and then he said, “Why
don’t you like it when you can’t say why?”
The frown returned. After a long silence Sax said slowly, “I try
to understand. I pay attention to things, you see, very closely. As closely as
I can. Concentrating on the specificity of every moment. And I want to
understand why it happens the way it does. I’m curious. And I think that
everything happens for a reason. Everything. So, we should be able to tease
these reasons out. When we can’t ... well. I don’t like it. It vexes me.
Sometimes I call it”—he glanced at Nirgal shyly, and Nirgal saw that he had
never told this to anyone before—”I call it the Great Unexplainable.”
It was the white world, Nirgal saw suddenly. The white world
inside the green, the opposite of Hiroko’s green world inside the white. And
they had opposite feelings about them. Looking from the green side, when Hiroko
confronted something mysterious, she loved it and it made her happy—it was
viriditas, a holy power. Looking from the white side, when Sax confronted
something mysterious, it was the Great Unexplainable, dangerous and awful. He
was interested in the true, while Hiroko was interested in the real. Or perhaps
it was the other way around—those words were tricky. Better to say she loved
the green world, he the white.
“But yes!” Michel said when Nirgal mentioned this observation to
him. “Very good, Nirgal. Your sight has such insight. In archetypal
terminologies we might call green and white the Mystic and the Scientist. Both
extremely powerful figures, as you see. But what we need, if you ask me, is a
combination of the two, which we call the Alchemist.”
The green and the white.
Afternoons the children were free to do what they wanted, and
sometimes they stayed with the day’s teacher, but more often they ran on the
beach or played in the village, which lay nestled in its cluster of low hills,
halfway between the lake and the tunnel entrance. They climbed the spiraling
staircases of the big bamboo treehouses, and played hide and seek among the
stacked rooms and the daughter shoots and the hanging bridges connecting them.
The bamboo dorms made a crescent which held most of the rest of
the village inside it; each of the big shoots was five or seven segments high,
each segment a room, getting smaller as they got higher. The children each had
a room of their own in the top segments of the shoots—windowed vertical
cylinders that were four or five steps across, like the towers of the castles
in their stories. Below them in the middle segments the adults had their rooms,
mostly alone but sometimes in couples; and the bottom segments were living
rooms. From the windows of their top rooms they looked down on the village
rooftops, clustered in the circle of hills and bamboo and greenhouses like
mussels in the lake shallows.
On the beach they hunted shells or played German dodgeball, or
shot arrows across the dunes into blocks of foam. Usually Jackie and Dao chose
the games, and led the teams if there were teams. Nirgal and the younger ones
followed them, cycling through their various friendships and hierarchies, which
were honed endlessly in the daily play. As little Frantz once crudely explained
it to Nadia, “Dao hits Nirgal; Nirgal hits me; I hit the girls.” Often Nirgal
got tired of that game, which Dao always won, and for better fun he would take
off running around the lake, slowly and steadily, falling into a rhythm which
seemed to encompass everything in the world. He could circle the lake for as
long as the day lasted when he got in that rhythm. It was a joy, an
exhilaration, just to run and run and run and run…
Under the dome it was always cold, but the light was perpetually
changing. In summer the dome glowed bluish white all the time, and pencils of
lit air stood under the skylight shafts. In winter it was dark, and the dome
flared with reflected lamplight, like the inside of a mussel shell. In spring
and fall the light would dim in the afternoon to a gray and ghostly dusk, the
colors only suggested by the many shades of gray, the bamboo leaves and pine
needles all ink strokes against the faint white of the dome. In those hours the
greenhouses were like big fairy lamps on the hills, and the kids would wander
home crisscrossing like gulls, and head for the bathhouse. There in the long
building beside the kitchen they would pull off their clothes and run into the
steamy clangor of the big main bath, sliding around on the bottom tiles feeling
heat buzz back into their hands and feet and faces, as they splashed friskily
around the soaking ancients with their turtle faces and their wrinkled hairy
bodies.
After that warm wet hour they dressed, and trooped into the
kitchen, damp and pink-skinned, queueing up and filling their plates, sitting
at the long tables scattered among the adults. There were, 124 permanent
residents, but usually about 200 people there at any given time. When everyone
was seated they took up the water pitchers and poured each other’s water, and
then they tore into the hot food with gusto, downing potatoes, tortillas,
pasta, tabouli, bread, a hundred kinds of vegetables, occasionally fish or
chicken. After the meal the adults would talk about crops or their Rickover, an
old integral fast reactor they were very fond of, or about Earth—while the kids
cleaned up and then played music for an hour and then games, as everyone began
the slow process of falling asleep.
One day before dinner a group of twenty-two people arrived from
around the polar cap. Their little dome had lost its ecosystem to what Hiroko
called spiraling complex disequilibrium, and their reserves had run out. They
needed sanctuary.
Hiroko put them in three of the newly mature treehouses. They
climbed the staircases spiraling up the outsides of the fat round shoots,
exclaiming at the cylindrical segments with their doors and windows cut into
them. Hiroko put them to work finishing construction on new rooms, and building
a new greenhouse at the edge of the village. It was obvious to all that Zygote
was not growing as much food as they now needed. The kids ate as modestly as
they could, imitating the adults. “Should have called the place Gamete,” Coyote
said to Hiroko on his next time through, laughing harshly.
She only waved him away. But perhaps worry accounted for Hiroko’s
more distant air. She spent all her days in the greenhouses at work, and seldom
taught the children anymore. When she did they only followed her around and
worked for her, harvesting or turning compost or weeding. “She doesn’t care
about us,” Dao said angrily one afternoon as they walked down the beach. He
directed his complaint at Nirgal. “She isn’t really our mother anyway.” He led
them all to the labs by the tunnel hill greenhouse, chivvying them along as he
could so well.
Inside he pointed to a row of fat magnesium tanks, something like
refrigerators. “Those are our mothers. That’s what we were grown inside. Kasei
told me, and I asked Hiroko and it’s true. We’re ectogenes. We weren’t bom, we
were decanted.” He glared triumphantly at his frightened, fascinated little
band; then he struck Nir-gal full on the chest with his fist, knocking Nirgal
clear across the lab, and left with a curse. “We don’t have parents.”
Extra visitors were a burden now, but still when they came there
was a lot of excitement, and many people stayed up most of the first night of a
visit, talking, getting all the news they could of the other sanctuaries. There
was a whole network of these in the south polar region; Nirgal had a map in his
lectern, with red dots to show all thirty-four. And Nadia and Hiroko guessed
that there were more, in other networks to the north, or in complete isolation.
But as they all kept radio silence, there was no way to be sure. So news was at
a premium—it was usually the most precious thing that visitors had, even if
they came laden with gifts, which they usually did, giving out whatever they
had managed to make or obtain that their hosts would find useful.
During these visits Nirgal would listen hard to the nights’ long
animated conversations, sitting on the floor or wandering and re-’ filling
people’s teacups. He felt acutely that he did not understand the rules of the
world; it was inexplicable to him why people acted as they did. Of course he
did understand the basic fact of the situation—that there were two sides,
locked in a contest for control of Mars—that Zygote was the leader for the side
that was right— and that eventually the areophany would triumph. It was a
tremendous feeling to be involved in that struggle, to be a crucial part of the
story, and it often left him sleepless when he dragged off to bed, his mind
dancing through to dawn with visions of all he would contribute to this great
drama, amazing Jackie and everyone else in Zygote.
Sometimes, in his desire to learn more, he even eavesdropped. He
did it by lying on a couch in the comer and staring at a lectern, doodling or
pretending to read. Quite often people elsewhere in the room didn’t realize he
was listening, and sometimes they would even talk about the children of
Zygote—mostly when he was actually skulking out in the hall.
“Have you noticed most of them are left-handed?”
“Hiroko tweaked their genes, I swear.”
“She says not.”
“They’re already almost as tall as I am.”
“That’s just the gravity. I mean look at Peter and the rest of the
nisei. They’re natural-born, and they’re mostly tall. But the left-handedness,
that’s got to be genetic.”
“Once she told me there was a simple transgenic insertion that
would increase the size of the corpus callosum. Maybe she fooled with that and
got the left-handedness as a side effect.”
“I thought left-handedness was caused by brain damage.”
“No one knows. I think even Hiroko is mystified by it.”
“I can’t believe she would mess with the chromosomes for brain
development.”
“Ectogenes, remember—better access.”
“Their bone density is poor, I hear.”
“That’s right. They’d be in trouble on Earth. They’re on
supplements to help.”
“That’s the g again. It’s trouble for all of us, really.”
“Tell me about it. I broke my forearm swinging a tennis racket.”
“Left-handed giant bird-people, that’s what we’re growing down
here. It’s bizarre, if you ask me. You see them running across the dunes and
expect them to just take off and fly.”
That night Nirgal had the usual trouble sleeping. Ectogenes,
transgenic ... it made him feel odd. White and green in their double helix... .
For hours he tossed, wondering what the uneasiness twisting through him meant,
wondering what he should feel.
Finally, exhausted, he fell asleep. And in his sleep he had a
dream. All his dreams before that night had been about Zygote, but now he
dreamed that he flew in the air, over the surface of Mars. Vast red canyons cut
the land, and volcanoes reared nearly to his unimaginable height. But something
was after him, something much bigger and faster than him, with wings that
flapped loudly as the creature dropped out of the sun, with huge talons that
extended toward him. He pointed at this flying creature and bolts of lightning
shot out of his fingertips, causing it to bank away. It was soaring up for
another attack when he struggled awake, his fingers pulsing and his heart
thumping like the wave machine, ka-thunk, ka-thunfe, ka-thunfe.
The very next afternoon the wave machine was waving too well, as
Jackie put it. They were playing on the beach, and thought they had the big
breakers gauged, but then a really big one surged over the ice filigree and
knocked Nirgal to his knees, and pulled him back down the strand with an
irresistible sucking. He struggled, gasping for air as he tumbled in the
shockingly icy water, but he couldn’t escape and was pulled under, then rolled
hard in the rush of the next incoming wave.
Jackie grabbed him by the arm and hair, pulled him back up the
strand with her. Dao helped them to their feet, crying “Are you okay are you
okay?” If they got wet the rule was to run for the village as fast as they
could, so Nirgal and Jackie struggled to their feet and raced over the dunes
and up the village path, the rest of the children trailing far behind. The wind
cut to the bone. They ran straight to the bathhouse and burst through the doors
and stripped off their stiff garments with shaking hands, helped by Nadia and
Sax and Michel and Rya, who had been in there bathing.
As they were being hustled into the shallows of the big communal
bath, Nirgal remembered his dream. He said, “Wait, wait.”
The others stopped, confused. He closed his eyes, held his breath.
He clutched Jackie’s cold upper arm. He saw himself back into the dream, felt
himself swimming through the sky. Heat from the fingertips. The white world in
the green.
He searched for the spot in his middle that was always warm, even
now when he was so cold. As long as he was alive it would be there. He found
it, and with every breath he pushed it outward through his flesh. It was hard
but he could feel it working, the warmth traveling out into his ribs like a
fire, down his arms, down his legs, into his hands and feet. It was his left
hand holding on to Jackie, and he glanced at her bare body with its white
goose-pimpled skin, and concentrated on sending the heat into her. He was
shivering slightly now, but not from the cold.
“You’re warm,” Jackie exclaimed.
“Feel it,” he said to her, and for a few moments she leaned into
his grip. Then with an alarmed look she pulled free, and stepped down into the
bath. Nirgal stood on the edge until his shivering stopped.
“Wow,” Nadia said. “That’s some kind of metabolic burn. I’ve heard
of it, but I’ve never seen it.”
“Do you know how you do it?” Sax asked him. He and Nadia and
Michel and Rya were staring at Nirgal with a curious expression, which he did
not want to meet.
Nirgal shook his head. He sat down on the concrete coping of the
bath, suddenly exhausted. He stuck his feet in the water, which felt like
liquid flame. Fish in water, sloshing free, out in the air, the fire within,
white in the green, alchemy, soaring with eagles ... thunderbolts from his
fingertips!
People looked at him. Even the Zygotes gave him sidelong looks, when he laughed or
said something unusual, when they thought he wouldn’t see. It was easiest just
to pretend he didn’t notice. But that was hard with the occasional visitors,
who were more direct. “Oh, you’re Nirgal,” one short red-haired woman said.
“I’ve heard you’re bright.” Nirgal, who was constantly crashing against the
limits of his understanding, blushed and shook his head while the woman calmly
surveyed him. She made her judgment and smiled and shook his hand. “I’m glad to
meet you.”
One day when they were five Jackie brought an old lectern to
school with her, on a day when Maya was teaching. Ignoring Maya’s glare, she
showed it to the others. “This is my grandfather’s AI. It has a lot of what he
said in it. Kasei gave it to me.” Kasei was leaving Zygote to move to one of
the other sanctuaries. But not the one where Esther lived.
Jackie turned the lectern on. “Pauline, play back something my
grandfather said.”
“Well, here we are,” said a man’s voice.
“No, something different. Play back something he said about the
hidden colony.”
The man’s voice said, “The hidden colony must still have contacts
with surface settlements. There’s too many things they can’t manufacture while
hiding. Nuclear fuel rods for one, I should think. Those are controlled pretty
well, and it could be that records would show where they’ve been disappearing.”
The voice stopped. Maya told Jackie to put the lectern away, and
she started another history lesson, the nineteenth century told in’ Russian
sentences so short and harsh that her voice shook. And then more algebra. Maya
was very insistent that they learn their math well. “You’re getting a horrible
education,” she would say, shaking her head darkly. “But if you learn your math
you can catch up later.” And she would glare at them and demand the next
answer.
Nirgal stared at her, remembering when she had been their Bad
Witch. It would be strange to be her, so fierce sometimes and so cheerful
others. With most of the people in Zygote, he could look at them and feel what
it would be like to be them. He could see it in their faces, just as he could
see the second color inside the first; it was that kind of gift, something like
his hyperacute sense of temperature. But he didn’t understand Maya.
In the winter they made forays onto the surface, to the nearby
crater where Nadia was building a shelter, and the dark ice-spangled dunes
beyond. But when the fog hood lifted they had to stay under the dome, or at
most go out to the window gallery. They weren’t to be seen from above. No one
was sure if the police were still watching from space or not, but it was best
to be safe. Or so the issei said. Peter was often away, and his travels had led
him to believe that the hunt for hidden colonies must be over. And that the
hunt was hopeless in any case. “There are resistance settlements that aren’t
hiding at all. And there’s so much noise now thermally and visually, and even
over the radio,” he said. “They could never check all the signals they’re
getting.”
But Sax only said, “Algorithmic search programs are very
effective,” and Maya insisted on keeping out of sight, and hardening their
electronics, and sending all their excess heat deep into the heart of the polar
cap. Hiroko agreed with Maya on this, and so they all complied. “It’s different
for us,” Maya said to Peter, looking haunted.
There was a mohole, Sax told them one morning at school, about two
hundred kilometers to the northwest. The cloud they sometimes saw in that
direction was its plume—big and still on some days, on others whipping off east
in thin tatters. The next time Coyote came through they asked him at dinner if
he had visited it, and he told them that he had, and that the great shaft of
the mohole penetrated to very near the center of Mars, and that its bottom was
nothing but bubbling molten fiery lava.
“That’s not true,” Maya said dismissively. “They only go down ten
or fifteen kilometers. Their floors are hard rock.”
“But hot rock,” Hiroko said. “And twenty kilometers now, I hear.”
“And so they do our work for us,” Maya complained to Hiroko.
“Don’t you think we are parasites on the surface settlements? Your viriditas
wouldn’t get far without their engineering.”
“It will prove to be a symbiosis,” Hiroko said calmly. She stared
at Maya until Maya got up and walked away. Hiroko was the only one in Zygote
who could stare Maya down.
Hiroko, Nirgal thought as he regarded his mother after this
exchange, was very strange. She talked to him and to everyone else as an equal,
and clearly to her everyone was an equal; but no one was special. He remembered
very keenly when it had been different, when the two of them had been like two
parts of a whole. But now she only took the same interest in him that she took
in everyone else, her concern impersonal and distant. She would be the same no
matter what happened to him, he thought. Nadia, or even Maya, cared for him
more. And yet Hiroko was mother to them all. And Nirgal, like most of the rest
of the regulars in Zygote, still went down to her little stand of bamboo when
he was in need of something he couldn’t find from ordinary people—some solace,
or advice. ...
But as often as not, when he did that he would find her and her
little inner group “being silent,” and if he wanted to stay he would have to
stop talking. Sometimes this lasted for days at a time, until he stopped
dropping by. Then again he might arrive during the areophany, and be swept up
in the ecstatic chanting of the names of Mars, becoming an integral part of
that tight little band, right in the heart of the world, with Hiroko herself at
his side, her arm around him, squeezing hard.
That was love of a sort, and he cherished it; but it was not as it
had been in the old days, when they had walked the beach together.
* * *
One morning he went into the school and came on Jackie and Dao in
the coatroom. They jumped as he entered, and by the time he had gotten his coat
off and gone into the schoolroom he knew they had been kissing.
After school he circled the lake in the blue-white glow of a
summer afternoon, watching the wave machine rise and pulse down, like the
clamping sensations in his chest. Pain curved through him like the swells
moving over the water. He couldn’t help it, even though it was ridiculous and
he knew it. There was a lot of kissing going on among them these days in the
bathhouse, as they splashed and tugged and pushed and tickled. The girls kissed
each other and said it was “practice kissing” that didn’t count, and sometimes
they turned this practice on the boys; Nirgal had been kissed by Rachel many
times, and also by Emily and Tiu and Nanedi, and once the latter two had held
him and kissed his ears in an attempt to embarrass him in the public bath with
an erection; and once Jackie had pulled them away from him and knocked him into
the deep end, and bit his shoulder as they wrestled; and these were just the
most memorable of the hundreds of slippery wet warm naked contacts which were
making the baths such a high point of the day.
But outside the bathhouse, as if to try to contain such volatile
forces, they had become extremely formal with each other, with the boys and
girls bunched in gangs that played separately more often than not. So kissing
in the coatroom represented something new, and serious—and the look Nirgal had
seen on Jackie and Dao’s faces was so superior, as if they knew something he
didn’t— which was true. And it was that which hurt, that exclusion, that
knowledge. Especially since he wasn’t that ignorant; he was sure they were
lying together, making each other come. They were lovers, their look said it.
His laughing beautiful Jackie was no longer his. And in fact never had been.
He slept poorly in the following nights. Jackie’s room was in the
shoot beside his, and Dao’s was two in the opposite direction, and every creak
of the hanging bridges sounded like footsteps; and sometimes her curved window
glowed with flickering orange lamplight. Instead of remaining in his room to be
tortured he began to stay up late every night in the common rooms, reading and
eavesdropping on the adults.
So he was there when they started talking about Simon’s illness.
Simon was Peter’s father, a quiet man who was usually away, on expeditions with
Peter’s mother, Ann. Now it appeared that he had something they called
resistant leukemia. Vlad and Ursula noticed Nirgal listening, and they tried to
reassure him, but Nirgal could see that they weren’t telling him everything. In
fact they were regarding him with a strange speculative look. Later he climbed
to his high room and got in bed and turned on his lectern, and looked up
“Leukemia,” and read the abstract at the start of the entry. A potentially
fatal disease, now usually amenable to treatment. Potentially fatal disease—a
shocking concept. He tossed uneasily that night, plagued by dreams through the
gray bird-chirp dawn. Plants died, animals died, but not people. But they were
animals.
The next night he stayed up with the adults again, feeling
exhausted and strange. Vlad and Ursula sat down on the floor beside him. They
told him that Simon would be helped by a bone marrow transplant, and that he
and Nirgal shared a rare type of blood. Neither Ann nor Peter had it, nor any
of Nirgal’s brothers or sisters or halves. He had gotten it through his father,
but even his father didn’t have it, not exactly. Just him and Simon, in all the
sanctuaries. There were only five thousand people in all of the sanctuaries
together, and Simon and Nirgal’s blood type was one in a million. Would he
donate some of his bone marrow, they asked.
Hiroko was there in the commons, watching him. She rarely spent
evenings in the village, and he didn’t need to look at her to know what she was
thinking. They were made to give, she had always said, and this would be the
ultimate gift. An act of pure viriditas. “Of course,” he said, happy at the
opportunity.
The hospital was next to the bathhouse and the school. It was
smaller than the school, and had five beds. They laid Simon on one, and Nirgal
on another.
The old man smiled at him. He didn’t look sick, only old. Just
like all the rest of the ancients, in fact. He had seldom said much, and now he
said only, “Thanks, Nirgal.”
Nirgal nodded. Then to his surprise Simon went on: “I appreciate
you doing this. The extraction will hurt afterward for a week or two, right
down in the bone. That’s quite a thing to do for someone else.”
“But not if they really need it,” Nirgal said.
“Well, it’s a gift that I’ll try to repay, of course.”
Vlad and Ursula anesthetized Nirgal’s arm with a shot. “It isn’t
really necessary to do both operations now, but it’s a good idea to have you
two together for it. It will help the healing if you are friends.”
So they became friends. After school Nirgal would go by the
hospital, and Simon would step slowly out the door, and they would walk the
path over the dunes to the beach. There they watched the waves ripple across
the white surface and rise and crumple on the strand. Simon was a lot less
talkative than anyone Nirgal had ever spent time with; it was like being silent
with Hiroko’s group, only it never ended. At first it made him uncomfortable.
But after a while he found it left time to really look at things: the gulls
wheeling under the dome, the sandcrab bubbles in the sand, the circles in the
sand surrounding each tuft of dune grass. Peter was back in Zygote a lot now,
and many days he would come with them. Occasionally even Ann would interrupt
her perpetual traveling, and visit Zygote and join them. Peter and Nirgal would
race around playing tag, or hide and seek, while Ann and Simon strolled the beach
arm in arm.
But Simon was still weak, and he got weaker. It was hard not to
see this as some kind of moral failing; Nirgal had never been sick, and he
found the concept disgusting. It could only happen to the old ones. And even
they were supposed to have been saved by their aging treatment, which everyone
got when they were old, and so never died. Only plants and animals died. But
people were animals. But they had invented the treatment. At night, worrying
about these discrepancies, Nirgal read his lectern’s whole entry on leukemia,
even though it was as long as a book. Cancer of the blood. White cells
proliferated out of the bone marrow and flooded the system, attacking healthy
systems. They were giving Simon chemicals and irradiation and pseudoviruses to
kill the white blood cells, and trying to replace the sick marrow in him with
new marrow from Nirgal. They had also given him the aging treatment three times
now. Nirgal read about this too. It was a matter of genomic mismatch scanning,
which found broken chromosomes and repaired them so that cell division error
did not occur. But it was hard to penetrate bone with the array of introduced
auto repair cells, and apparently in Simon’s case little pockets of cancerous
marrow had remained behind every time. Children had a better chance of recovery
than adults, as the leukemia entry made clear. But with the aging treatments
and the marrow transfusions he was sure to get well. It was just a matter of
time and of giving. The treatments cured everything in the end.
“We need a bioreactor,” Ursula said to Vlad. They were working on
converting one of the ectogene tanks into one, packing it with spongy animal
collagen and inoculating it with cells from Nirgal’s marrow, hoping to generate
an array of lymphocytes, macrophages, and granulocytes. But they didn’t have
the circulatory system working right, or perhaps it was the matrix, they
weren’t sure. Nirgal remained their living bioreactor.
Sax was teaching them soil chemistry during the mornings when he
was teacher, and he even took them out of the schoolroom occasionally to work
in the soil labs, introducing biomass to the sand and then wheelbarrowing it to
the greenhouses or the beach. It was fun work, but it tended to pass through
Nirgal as if he were asleep. He would catch sight of Simon outside, stubbornly
taking a walk, and he would forget whatever they were doing.
Despite the treatments Simon’s steps were slow and stiff. He
walked bowlegged, in fact, his legs swinging forward with very little bend to
them. Once Nirgal caught up to him and stood beside him on the last dune before
the beach. Sandpipers were charging up and down the wet strand, chased by white
tapestries of foaming water. Simon pointed at the herd of black sheep, cropping
grass between dunes. His arm rose like a bamboo crossbar. The sheep’s frosted
breath poured onto the grass.
Simon said something that Nirgal didn’t catch; his lips were stiff
now, and some words he was finding hard to pronounce. Perhaps it was this that
was making him quieter than ever. Now he tried again, and then again, but no
matter how hard he tried, Nirgal couldn’t guess what he was saying. Finally
Simon gave up trying and shrugged, and they were left looking at each other,
mute and helpless.
When Nirgal played with the other kids, they both took him in and
kept their distance, so that he moved in a kind of circle. Sax admonished him
mildly for his absentmindedness in class. “Concentrate on the moment,” he would
say, forcing Nirgal to recite the loops of the nitrogen cycle, or to shove his
hands deep into the wet black soil they were working on, instructing him to
knead it, to break up the long strings of diatom blooms, and the fungi and
lichen and algae and all the invisible microbacteria they had grown, to
distribute them through the rusty clods of grit. “Get it distributed as
regularly as possible. Pay attention, that’s it. Nothing but this. Thisness is
a very important quality. Look at the structures on the microscope screen. That
clear one like a rice grain is a chemolith-otroph, Thiobacillus denitrificans.
And there’s a chunk of sulphides. Now what will result when the former eats the
latter?”
“It oxidizes the sulphur.”
“And?”
“And denitrifies.”
“Which is?”
“Nitrates into nitrogen. From the ground into the air.”
“Very good. A very useful microbe, that.”
So Sax forced him to pay attention to the moment, but the price
was high. He found himself exhausted at midday when school was over, it was
hard to do things in the afternoon. Then they asked him to give more marrow for
Simon, who lay in the hospital mute and embarrassed, his eyes apologizing to
Nirgal, who steeled himself to smile, to put his fingers around Simon’s bamboo
forearm. “It’s all right,” he said cheerily, and lay down. Although surely
Simon was doing something wrong, was weak or lazy or somehow wanted to be sick.
There was no other way to explain it. They stuck the needle in Nirgal’s arm and
it went numb. Stuck the IV needle in the back of his hand and after a while it
too went numb. He lay back, part of the fabric of the hospital, trying to go as
numb as he could. Part of him could feel the big marrow needle, pushing against
his upper arm bone. No pain, no feeling in his flesh at all, just a pressure on
the bone. Then it let up, and he knew the needle had penetrated to the soft
inside of his bone.
This time the process did not help at all. Simon was useless, he
stayed in the hospital continually. Nirgal visited him there from time to time,
and they played a weather game on Simon’s screen, tapping buttons for dice
rolls, and exclaiming when the roll of one or twelve cast them abruptly onto
another quadrant of Mars, one with a whole new climate. Simon’s laugh, never
more than a chuckle, had diminished now to just a little smile.
Nirgal’s arm hurt, and he slept poorly, tossing through the nights
and waking hot and sweaty, and frightened for no reason.
Then one night Hiroko woke him from the depths of slumber, and led
him down the winding staircase and over to the hospital. He leaned groggily
against her, unable to wake fully. She was as impassive as ever, but had her
arm around his shoulders, holding him with surprising strength. When they
passed Ann sitting in the hospital’s outer room something in the slope of Ann’s
shoulders caused Nirgal to wonder why Hiroko was here in the village at night,
and he struggled to wake fv.lly, touched by dread.
The hospital’s bedroom was overlit, sharp-edged, pulsing as if
glories were trying to burst out of everything. Simon lay with his head on a
white pillow. His skin was pale and waxy. He looked a thousand years old.
He turned his head and saw Nirgal. His dark eyes searched Nirgal’s
face with a hungry look, as if he were trying to find a way into Nirgal—a way
to jump across into him. Nirgal shivered and held the dark intense gaze,
thinking, Okay, come into me. Do it if you want. Do it.
But there was no way across. They both saw that. They both
relaxed. A little smile passed over Simon’s face, and he reached over with an
effort and held Nirgal’s hand. Now his eyes darted back and forth, searching
Nirgal’s face with a completely different expression, as if he were trying to
find words that would help Nirgal in the years to come, that would pass across
whatever it was that Simon had learned.
But that too was impossible. Again they both saw it. Simon would
have to give Nirgal to his fate, whatever it was. There was no way to help. “Be
good,” he whispered finally, and Hiroko led Nirgal out of the room. She took
him through the dark back up to his room, and he fell into a deep sleep. Simon
died sometime during the night.
It was the first funeral in Zygote, and the first for all the
children. But the adults knew what to do. They met in one of the greenhouses,
among the workbenches, and they sat in a circle around the long box holding
Simon’s body. They passed around a flask of rice liquor, and everyone filled
their neighbor’s cup. They drank the fiery stuff down, and the old ones walked
around the box holding hands, and then they sat in a knot around Ann and Peter.
. Maya and Nadia sat by Ann with their arms around her shoulders. Ann appeared
stunned, Peter disconsolate. Jurgen and Maya told stories about Simon’s
legendary taciturnity. “One time,” Maya said, “we were in a rover and an oxygen
canister blew out and knocked a hole in the cabin roof, and we were all running
around screaming and Simon had been outside and he picked up a rock just the
right size and jumped up and dropped it in the hole, and plugged it. And
afterward we were all talking like crazy people, and working to make a real
plug, and suddenly we realized Simon still hadn’t said anything, and we all
stopped working and looked at him, and he said, That was close.’ “
They laughed. Vlad said, “Or remember the time we gave out mock
awards in Underhill, and Simon got one for best video, and he went up to accept
the award and said, Thank you,’ and started to return to his seat, and then he
stopped and went back up to the podium, as if something had occurred to him to
say, you know, which got our attention naturally, and he cleared his throat and
said, Thank you very much.’ “
Ann almost laughed at that, and stood, and led them out into the
frigid air. The old ones carried the box down to the beach, and everyone else
followed. It was snowing through mist when they took his body out and buried it
deep in the sand, just above the wave’s high-water mark. They slid the board
out of the top of the long box and burned Simon’s name onto it with Nadia’s
soldering iron, and stuck the board in the first dune. Now Simon would be part
of the carbon cycle, food for bacteria and crabs and then sandpipers and gulls,
thus slowly melting into the biomass under the dome. This was how one was
buried. And sure, part of it was comforting; to spread out into one’s world, to
disperse into it. But to end as a self, to go away... .
They all were walking under the dim dome, having buried Simon in
sand, trying to behave as if reality had not suddenly ripped apart and snatched
one of them away. Nirgal couldn’t believe it. They straggled back into the
village blowing on their hands, talking in subdued voices. Nirgal drew near
Vlad and Ursula, longing for reassurance of some kind. Ursula was sad, and Vlad
was trying to cheer her up. “He lived more than a hundred years, we can’t go
around thinking his death was premature, or it makes a mockery of all those
poor people who died at fifty, or twenty, or one.”
“But it was still premature,” Ursula said stubbornly. “With the
treatments, who knows? He might have lived a thousand years.”
“I’m not so sure. It looks to me like the treatments are not in
fact penetrating to every part of our bodies, And with all the radiation we’ve
taken on, we may have more troubles than we thought at first.”
“Maybe. But if we had been at Acheron, with the whole crew, and a
bioreactor, and all our facilities, I bet we would have saved him. And then you
can’t say how many more years he might have had. I call that premature.”
She went off to be by herself.
That night Nirgal could not sleep at all. He kept feeling the
transfusions,, seeing every moment of them and imagining that there had been
some kind of backwash in the system, so that he had been infected with the
disease. Or contaminated by touch a’sne, why not? Or just by that last look in
Simon’s eye! So that he had caught the disease they could not stop, and would
die. Stiffen up, go mute, stop and go away. That was death. His heart pounJed
and a sweat broke through his skin, and he cried with the fear of it. There was
no avoiding it; and it was horrible. Horrible no matter when it happened.
Horrible that the cycle itself should work the way it did—that it should go
around and around and around, while they lived only once and then died forever.
Why live at all? It was too strange, too horrible. And so he shivered through
the long night, his mind gone cyclonic with the fear of death.
After that he found it extremely hard to
concentrate. He felt as if he was always at a remove from things, as if he had
slipped into the white world and could not quite touch the green one.
Hiroko noticed this problem, and suggested he go with Coyote on
one of his trips out. Nirgal was shocked by the idea, having never been more
than a walk away from Zygote. But Hiroko insisted. He was seven years old, she
said, and about to become a man. Time he saw a bit of the surface world.
A few weeks later Coyote dropped by, and when he left again Nirgal
was with him, seated in the copilot’s seat of his boulder car, and goggling out
the low windshield at the purple arch of evening sky. Coyote turned the car
around to give him a view of the great glowing pink wall of the polar cap,
which arced across the horizon like an enormous rising moon.
“It’s hard to believe something that big could ever melt,” Nirgal
said.
“It will take a while.”
They drove north at a sedate pace. The boulder car was stealthed,
covered by a hollowed-out rock shell that was thermally regulated to stay the
same temperature as its surroundings, and it had a no-track device on the front
axle to read the terrain and pass the information to the back axle, where
scraper-shapers plowed their wheel tracks, returning the sand and rock to
whatever shape they had had before their passing. So they could not race along.
For a long time they traveled in silence, though Coyote’s silence
was not the same as Simon’s had been. He hummed, he muttered, he talked in a
low singsong voice to his AI, in a language that sounded like English but was
not comprehensible. Nirgal tried to concentrate on the limited view out the
window, feeling awkward and shy. The region around the south polar cap was a series
of broad flat terraces, and they descended from one to the next by routes that
seemed programmed into the car, down terrace after terrace until it seemed the
polar cap must be sitting on a kind of huge pedestal. Nirgal stared into the
dark, impressed by the size of things, but happy too that it was not absolutely
overwhelming, as his first walk out had been. That had happened a long time
ago, but he could still remember the staggering astonishment of it perfectly.
This was not like that. “It doesn’t seem as big as I thought it
would,” he said. “I guess it’s the curvature of the land, it being such a small
planet and all.” As the lectern said. “The horizon isn’t any farther away than
one side of Zygote to the other!”
“Uh huh,” Coyote said, giving him a look. “You better not let Big
Man hear you say such a thing, he kick your ass for that.” Then—”Who’s your
father, boy?”
“I don’t know. Hiroko is my mother.”
Coyote snorted. “Hiroko takes the matriarchy too far, if you ask
me.”
“Have you told her that?”
“You bet I have, but Hiroko only listens to me when I say things
she wants to hear.” He cackled. “Same as with everyone, right?”
Nirgal nodded, a grin splitting his attempt to be impassive.
“You want to find out who your father is?”
“Sure.” Actually he was not sure. The concept of father meant
little to him; and he was afraid it would turn out to be Simon. Peter was like
an older brother to him, after all.
“They’ve got the equipment in Vishniac. We can try there if you
want.” Coyote shook his head. “Hiroko is so strange. When I met her you would
never have guessed it would come to this. Of course we were young then—almost
as young as you are, though you will find that hard to credit.”
Which was true.
“When I met her she was just a young eco-engineering student, smart
as a whip and sexy as a cat. None of this mother goddess of the world stuff.
But by and by she started to read books that were not her technical manuals,
and it went on and on and by the time she got to Mars she was crazy. Before,
actually. Which is lucky for me as that is why I’m here. But Hiroko, oh my. She
was convinced that all human history had gone wrong at the start. At the dawn
of civilization, she would say to me very seriously, there was Crete and
Sumeria, and Crete had a peaceful trading culture, run by women and filled with
art and beauty—a Utopia in fact, where the men were acrobats who jumped bulls
all day, and women all night, and got the women pregnant and worshipped them,
and everyone was happy. It sounds good except for the bulls. While Sumeria on
the other hand was ruled by men, who invented war and conquered everything in
sight and started all the slave empires that have come since. And no one knew,
Hiroko said, what might have happened if these two civilizations had had a
chance to contest the rule of the world, because a volcano blew Crete to
kingdom come, . and the world passed into Sumeria’s hands and has never left it
to this day. If only that volcano had been in Sumeria, she used to tell me,
everything would be different. And maybe it’s true. Because history could
hardly get any blacker than it has been.”
Nirgal was surprised at this characterization. “But now,” he
ventured, “we’re starting again.”
“That’s right, boy! We are the primitives of an unknown
civilization. Living in our own little techno-Minoan matriarchy. Ha! I like it
fine, myself. Seems to me the power that our women have taken on was never that
interesting to begin with. Power is one half of the yoke, don’t you remember
that from the stuff I made you kids read? Master and slave wear the yoke
together. Anarchy is the only true freedom. So, well, whatever women do it
seems to go against them. If they’re men’s cows, then they work till they drop.
But if they’re our queens and goddesses then they only work the harder, because
they still have to do the cow work and then the paperwork too! No way. Just be
thankful you’re a man, and as free as the sky.”
It was a peculiar way to think of things, Nirgal thought. But
clearly it was one way to deal with the fact of Jackie’s beauty, of her immense
power over his mind. And so Nirgal ducked low in his seat and stared out the
window at the white stars in the black, thinking Free as the sky! Free as the
sky!
It was Ls 4, 2 March the 22nd, M-year 32, and the southern days
were getting shorter. Coyote drove their car hard every night, over intricate
and invisible paths, through terrain that got more and more rugged the farther
they got from the polar cap. They stopped to rest during the daylight, and
drove the rest of the time. Nirgal tried to stay awake, but inevitably slept
through part of every drive, and through part of every day’s stop as well,
until he became thoroughly confused in both time and space.
But when he was awake he was almost always looking out the window,
at the ever-changing surface of Mars. He couldn’t get enough of it. In the
layered terrain there was an infinite array of patterns, the stratified stacks
of sand fluted by the wind until each dune was cut like a bird’s wing. When the
layered terrain finally ran out onto exposed bedrock, the laminate dunes became
individual sand islands, scattered over a jumbled plain of outcroppings and
clusters of rock. It was redrock everywhere he looked, rock sized from gravel
to immense boulders that sat like buildings on the land. The sand islands were
tucked into every dip and hollow in this rockscape, and they also clustered
around the feet of big knots of boulders, and on the lee sides of low scarps,
and in the interiors of craters.
And there were craters everywhere. They first appeared as two
bumps rolling over the skysill, which quickly proved to be the connected outer
points of a low ridge. They passed scores of these flat-topped hills, some
steep and sharp, others low and nearly buried, still others with their rims
broken by smaller later impacts, so that one could see right in to the sand
drifts filling them.
One night just before dawn Coyote stopped the car.
“Something wrong?”
“No. We’ve reached Ray’s Lookout, and I want you to see it. Sun’11
be up in an hour.”
So they sat in the pilots’ seats and watched the dawn.
“How old are you, boy?”
“Seven.”
“What’s that, thirteen Earth years? Fourteen?”
“I guess.”
“Wow. You’re already taller than me.”
“Uh huh.” Nirgal refrained from pointing out that this did not
imply any great height. “How old are you?”
“One hundred and nine. Ah ha ha! You best shut your eyes or
they’ll pop out of your head. Don’t you look at me like that. I was old the day
I was born and I’ll be young the day I die.”
They drowsed as the sky on the eastern skyline turned a deep
purply blue. Coyote hummed a little tune to himself, sounding as if he had
eaten a tab of omegendorph, as he often did in the evenings at Zygote.
Gradually it became clear that the skysill was very far away, and also very
high; Nirgal had never seen land so far away, and it seemed to curve around
them as well, a black curving wall that lay an immense distance off, over a
black rocky plain. “Hey, Coyote!” he exclaimed. “What is this?”
“Ha!” Coyote said, sounding deeply satisfied.
The sky lightened and the sun suddenly cracked the upper edge of
the distant wall, blasting Nirgal’s vision for a while. But as the sun rose the
shadows on the huge semicircular cliff gave way in wedges of light that
revealed sharp ragged embayments, scalloping the larger curve of the wall,
which was so big that Nirgal simply gasped, his nose pressed right against the
windshield—it was almost frightening, it was so big! “Coyote, what is it?”
Coyote let out one of his alarming laughs, the animal cackle
filling the car. “So you see it isn’t such a small world after all, eh, boy?
This is the floor of Promethei Basin. It’s an impact basin, one of the biggest
on Mars, almost as big as Argyre, but it hit down here near the South Pole, so
about half of its rim has since been buried under the polar cap and the layered
terrain. The other half is this curved escarpment here.” He waved a hand
expansively. “Kind of like a super-big caldera, but only half there, so you can
drive right into it. This little rise is the best place I know for seeing it.”
He called up a map of the region, and pointed. “We’re on the apron of this
little crater here, Vt, and looking northwest. The cliff is Promethei Rupes,
there. It’s about a kilometer high. Of course the Echus cliff is three
kilometers high, and the Olympus Mons cliff is six kilometers high, do you hear
that Mister Small Planet? But this baby will have to do for this morning.”
The sun rose higher, illuminating the great curve of the cliff
from above. It was deeply cut by ravines and smaller craters. “Prometheus
Sanctuary is in the side of that big indentation there,”. Coyote said, and
pointed to the left side of the curve. “Crater Wj.”
As they waited through the long day Nirgal looked at the gigantic
cliff almost continuously, and each time it looked different, as the shadows
shortened and shifted, revealing new features and obscuring others. It would
have taken years of looking to see it all, and he found he could not overcome
the feeling that the wall was unnaturally or even impossibly huge. Coyote was
right-—the tight horizons had fooled him—he had not imagined the world could be
so big.
That night they drove into Crater Wj, one of the biggest
embayments in the giant wall. And then they reached the curving cliff of
Promethei Rupes. The cliff towered over them like the vertical side of the
universe itself; the polar cap was nothing compared to this rock mass. Which
meant that the Olympus Mons cliff that Coyote had mentioned would have to be.
... He didn’t know how to think it.
Down at the foot of the cliff, at a spot where unbroken rock
dropped almost vertically into flat sand, there was a recessed lock door.
Inside was the sanctuary called Prometheus, a collection of wide chambers
stacked like the rooms of a bamboo house, with incurving filtered windows
overlooking Crater Wj and the larger basin beyond. The inhabitants of the
sanctuary spoke French, and so did Coyote when talking to them. They were not
as old as Coyote or the other issei, but they were pretty old, and of Terran
height, which meant they mostly looked up to Nirgal, while speaking very
hospitably to him, in fluent but accented English. “So you are Nirgal!
Enchante! We have heard of you, we are happy to meet you!”
A group of them showed him around while Coyote did other things.
Their sanctuary was very unlike Zygote; it was, to put it plainly, nothing but
rooms. There were several large ones stacked by the wall, with smaller ones at
the back of these. Three of the window rooms were greenhouses, and all the
rooms throughout the refuge were kept very warm, and filled with plants and
wall hangings and statuary and fountains; to Nirgal it seemed confining, and
much too hot, and utterly fascinating.
But they only stayed a day, and then they drove Coyote’s car into
a big elevator, and sat in it for an hour. When Coyote drove out the opposite
door they were on top of the rugged plateau that lay behind Promethei Rupes.
And here Nirgal was once again shocked. When they had been down at Ray’s
Lookout, the great cliff had formed a limit to what they could see, and he had
been able to comprehend it. But on top of the cliff, looking back down, the
distances were so great that Nirgal could not grasp what he saw. It was nothing
but a blurry vertiginous mass of blobs and patches of color—white, purple, brown,
tan, rust, white; it made him queasy. “Storm coming in,” Coyote said, and
suddenly Nirgal saw that the colors above them were a fleet of tall solid
clouds, sailing through a violet sky with the sun well to the west—the clouds
whitish above and infinitely lobed, but dark gray on their bottoms. These cloud
bottoms were closer to their heads than the ground of the basin, and they were
level, as if rolling over a transparent floor. The world below was nothing so
even, mottled tan and chocolate—ah, those were the shadows of the clouds,
visibly moving. And that white crescent out in the middle of things was the
polar cap! They could see all the way home! Recognizing the ice gave him the
final bit of perspective needed to make sense of things, and the blobs of color
stabilized into a bumpy uneven ringed landscape, mottled by moving cloud
shadows.
This dizzying act of cognition had only taken Nirgal a few
seconds, but when he finished he saw that Coyote was watching him with a big
grin.
“Just how far can we see, Coyote? How many kilometers?”
Coyote only cackled. “Ask Big Man, boy. Or figure it out for
yourself! What, three hundred k? Something like that. A hop and a jump for the
big one. A thousand empires for the little ones.”
“I want to run it.”
“I’m sure you do. Oh, look, look! There—from the clouds over the
ice cap. Lightning, see it? Those little flickers are lightning.”
And there they were, bright threads of light, appearing and
disappearing soundlessly, one or two every few seconds, connecting black clouds
with white ground. He was seeing lightning at last, with his own eyes. The
white world sparking into the green, jolting it. “There’s nothing like a big
storm,” Coyote was saying. “Nothing like it. Oh to be out in the wind! We made
that storm, boy. Although I think I could make an even bigger one.”
But a bigger one was beyond Nirgal’s ability to imagine; what lay
below them was cosmically vast—electric, shot with color, windy with
spaciousness. He was actually a bit relieved when Coyote turned their car around
and drove off, and the blurry view disappeared, the edge of the cliff becoming
a new skysill behind them.
“Just what is lightning again?”
“Well, lightning ... shit. I must confess that lightning is one of
the phenomena in this world that I cannot hold the explanation for in my head.
People have told me, but it always slips away. Electricity, of course,
something about electrons or ions, positive and negative, charges building up
in thunderheads, discharging to the ground, or both up and down at once, I seem
to recall. Who knows. Ka boom! That’s lightning, eh?”
The white world and the green, rubbing together, snapping with the
friction. Of course.
* * *
There were several sanctuaries on the plateau north of Pro-methei
Rupes, some hidden in escarpment walls and crater rims, like Nadia’s tunneling
project outside Zygote; but others simply sitting in craters under clear tent
domes, there for any sky police to see. The first time Coyote drove up to the
rim of one of these and they looked down through the clear tent dome onto a
village under the stars, Nirgal had been once again amazed, though it was
amazement of a lesser order than that engendered by the landscape. Buildings
like the school, and the bathhouse and the kitchen, trees, greenhouses—it was
all basically familiar, but how could they get away with it, out in the open
like this? It was disconcerting.
And so full of people, of strangers. Nirgal had known in theory
that there were a lot of people in the southern sanctuaries, five thousand as
they said, all defeated rebels of the 2061 war—but it was something else again
to meet so many of them so fast, and see that it was really true. And staying
in the unhidden settlements made him extremely nervous. “How can they do it?”
he asked Coyote. “Why aren’t they arrested and taken away?”
“You got me, boy. It’s possible they could be. But they haven’t
been yet, and so they don’t think it’s worth the trouble to hide. You know it
takes a tremendous effort to hide—you got to do all that thermal disposal
engineering, and electronic hardening, and you got to keep out of sight all the
time—it’s a pain in the ass. And some people down here just don’t want to do
it. They call themselves the demimonde. They have plans for if they’re ever
investigated or invaded—most of them have escape tunnels like ours, and some
even have some weapons stashed away. But they figure that if they’re out on the
surface, there’s no reason to be checked out in the first place. The folks in
Christianopolis just told the UN straight out that they came down here to get
out of the net. But ... I agree with Hiroko on this one. That some of us have
to be a little more careful than that. The UN is out to get the First Hundred,
if you ask me. And its family too, unfortunately for you kids. Anyway, now the
resistance includes the underground and the demimonde, and having the open
towns is a big help to the hidden sanctuaries, so I’m glad they’re here. At
this point we depend on them.”
Coyote was welcomed effusively in this town as he was everywhere,
whether the settlement was hidden or exposed. He settled into a corner of a big
garage on the crater rim, and conducted a continuous brisk exchange of goods,
including seed stocks, software, light bulbs, spare parts, and small machines.
These he gave out after long consultations with their hosts, in bargaining
sessions that Nirgal couldn’t understand. And then, after a brief tour of the
crater floor, where the village looked surprisingly like Zygote under a
brilliant purple dome, they were off again.
On the drives between sanctuaries Coyote did not explain his
bargaining sessions very effectively. “I’m saving these people from their own
ridiculous notion of economics, that’s what I’m doing! A gift economy is all
very well, but it isn’t organized enough for our situation. There are critical
items that everyone has to have, so people have to give, which is a
contradiction, right? So I am trying to work out a rational system. Actually
Vlad and Marina are working it out, and I am trying to implement it, which
means I get all the grief.” ‘
“And this system ...”
“Well, it’s a sort of two-track thing, where they can still give
all they want, but the necessities are given values and distributed properly.
And good God you wouldn’t believe some of the arguments I get in. People can be
such fools. I try to make sure it all adds up to a stable ecology, like one of
Hiroko’s systems, with every sanctuary filling its niche and providing its
specialty, and what do I get for it? Abuse, that’s what I get! Radical abuse. I
try to stop potlatching and they call me a robber baron, I try to stop hoarding
and they call me a fascist. The fools! What are they going to do, when none of
them are self-sufficient, and half of them are crazy paranoid?” He sighed
theatrically. “So, anyway. We’re making progress. Christianopolis makes light
bulbs, and Mauss Hyde grows new kinds of plants, as you saw, and Bogdanov
Vishniac makes everything big and difficult, like reactor rods and stealth
vehicles and most of the big robots, and your Zygote makes scientific
instrumentation, and so on. And I spread them around.”
“Are you the only one doing that?”
“Almost. They’re mostly self-sufficient, actually, except for
these few criticalities. They all got programs and seeds, that’s the basic
necessities. And besides, it’s important that not too many people know where
all the hidden sanctuaries are.”
Nirgal digested the implications of this as they drove through the
night. Coyote went on about the hydrogen peroxide standard and the nitrogen
standard, a new system of Vlad and Marina’s, and Nirgal did his best to follow
but found it hard going, either because the concepts were difficult or else
because Coyote spent most of his explanations fulminating over the difficulties
he encountered in certain sanctuaries. Nirgal decided to ask Sax or Nadia about
it when he got home, and stopped listening.
The land they were crossing now was dominated by crater rings, the
newer ones overlapping and even burying older ones. “This is called saturation
cratering. Very ancient ground.” A lot of the craters had no raised rims at
all, but were simply shallow flat-bottomed round holes in the ground. “What
happened to the rims?”
“Worn away.”
“By what?”
“Ann says ice, and wind. She says as much as a kilometer was
stripped off the southern highlands over time.”
“That would take away everything!”
“But then more came back. This is old land.”
In between craters the land was covered with loose rock, and it
was unbelievably uneven; there were dips, rises, hollows, knolls, trenches,
grabens, uplifts, hills and dales; never even a moment’s flatness, except on
crater rims and occasional low ridges, both of which Coyote used as roads when
he could. But the track he followed over this lumpy landscape was still
tortuous, and Nirgal could not believe it was memorized. He said as much, and
Coyote laughed. “What do you mean memorized? We’re lost!”
But not really, or not for long. A mohole plume appeared over the
horizon, and Coyote drove for it.
“Knew it all along,” he muttered. “This is Vishniac mohole. It’s a
vertical shaft a kilometer across, dug straight down into the bedrock. There
were four moholes started around the seventy-five-degree latitude line, and two
of them are no longer occupied, even by robots. Vishniac is one of the two, and
it’s been taken over by a bunch of Bogdanovists who live down inside it.” He
laughed. “It’s a wonderful idea, because they can dig into the side wall along
the road to the bottom, and down there they can put out as much heat as they
want and no one can tell that it’s not just more mohole outgassing. So they can
build anything they like, even process uranium for reactor fuel rods. It’s an
entire little industrial city now. Also one of my favorite places, very big on
partying.”
He drove them into one of the many small trenches cutting the
land, then braked and tapped at his screen, and a big rock swung out from the
side of the trench, revealing a black tunnel. Coyote drove into the tunnel and
the rock door closed behind them. Nirgal had thought he was beyond surprise at
this point, but he watched round-eyed as they drove down the tunnel, its rough
rock walls just outside the edges of the boulder car. It seemed to go on
forever. “They’ve dug a number of approach tunnels, so that the mohole itself
can look completely unvisited. We have about twenty kilometers to go.”
Eventually Coyote turned off the headlights. Their car rolled out
into the dim eggplant black of night; they were on a steep~road, apparently
spiraling down the wall of the mohole. Their instrument-panel lights were like
tiny lanterns, and looking through his reflected image Nirgal could see that
the road was four or five times as wide as the car. The full extent of the
mohole itself was impossible to see, but by the curve of the road he could tell
that it was immense. “Are you sure we’re turning at the right speed?” he said
anxiously.
“I am trusting the automatic pilot,” Coyote said, irritated. “It’s
bad luck to discuss it.”
The car rolled down the road. After more than an hour’s descent
there was a beep from the instrument panel, and the car turned into the curving
wall of rock to their left. And there was a garage tube, clanking against their
outer lock door.
Inside the garage a group of twenty or so people greeted them, and
took them past a line of tall rooms to a cavernlike chamber. The rooms that the
Bogdanovists had excavated into the side of the mohole were big, much bigger
than those at Prometheus. The back rooms were ten meters high as a rule, and in
some cases two hundred meters deep; and the main cavern rivaled Zygote itself,
with big windows facing out onto the hole. Looking sideways through the window,
Nirgal saw that the glass seen from the outside looked like the rock face; the
filtered coatings must have been clever indeed, because as the morning arrived,
its light poured in very brightly. The windows’ view was limited to the far
wall of the mohole, and a gibbous patch of sky above—but they gave the rooms a
wonderful sense of spaciousness and light, a feeling of being under the sky
that Zygote could not match.
Through that first day Nirgal was taken in hand by a small
dark-skinned man named Hilali, who led him through rooms and interrupted people
at their work to introduce him. People were friendly—”You must be one of
Hiroko’s kids, eh? Oh, you’re Nirgal! Very nice to meet you! Hey John, Coyote’s
here, party tonight!”—and they showed him what they were doing, leading him
back into smaller rooms behind the ones fronting the mohole, where there were
farms under bright light, and manufactories that seemed to extend back into the
rock forever; and all of it very warm, as in a bathhouse, so that Nirgal was
constantly sweating. “Where did you put all the excavated rock?” he asked
Hilali, for one of the convenient things about cutting a dome under the polar
cap, Hiroko had said, was that the excavated dry ice had simply been gassed
off.
“It’s lining the road near the bottom of the mohole,” Hilali told
him, pleased at the question. He seemed pleased with all Nirgal’s questions, as
did everyone else; people in Vishniac seemed happy in general, a rowdy crowd
who always partied to celebrate Coyote’s arrival—one excuse among many, Nirgal
gathered.
Hilali took a call on the wrist from Coyote, and led Nirgal into a
lab, where they took a bit of skin from his finger. Then they made their way
slowly back to the big cavern, and joined the crowd lining up by the kitchen
windows at the back.
After eating a big spicy meal of beans and potatoes, they began to
party in the cavern room. A huge undisciplined steel-drum band with a fluctuating
membership played rhythmic staccato melodies, and people danced to them for
hours, pausing from time to time to drink an atrocious liquor called kavajava,
or join a variety of games on one side of the room. After trying the kavajava,
and swallowing a tab of an omegendorph given to him by Coyote, Nirgal ran in
place while playing a bass drum with the band, then sat on top of a small
grassy mound in the center of the chamber, feeling too drunk to stand. Coyote
had been drinking steadily but had no such problem; he was dancing wildly,
hopping high off his toes and laughing. “You’ll never know the joy of your own
g, boy!” he shouted at Nirgal. “You’ll never know!”
People came by and introduced themselves, sometimes asking Nirgal
to exhibit his warming touch—a group of girls his age put his hands to their
cheeks, which they had chilled with their drinks, and when he warmed them up
they laughed round-eyed, and invited him to warm other parts of them; he got up
and danced with them instead, feeling loose and dizzy, running in little
circles to discharge some of the energy in him. When he returned to the knoll,
buzzing, Coyote came weaving over and sat heavily beside him. “So fine to dance
in this g, I never get over it.” He regarded Nirgal with a cross-eyed glare,
his gray dreadlocks falling all over his head, and Nirgal noticed again that
his face seemed to have cracked somehow, perhaps been broken at the jaw, so
that one side was broader than the other. Something like that. Nirgal gulped at
the sight.
Coyote took him by the shoulder and shook him hard. “It seems that
I am your father, boy!” he exclaimed.
“You’re kidding!” An electric flush ran down Nirgal’s spine and
out his face as the two of them stared at each other, and he marveled at how
the white world could shock the green one so thoroughly, like lightning pulsing
through flesh. They clutched each other.
“I am not kidding!” Coyote said.
They stared at each other. “No wonder you’re so smart,” Coyote
said, and laughed hilariously. “Ah ha ha ha! Ka wow! I hope it’s okay with
you!”
“Sure,” Nirgal said, grinning but uncomfortable. He didn’t know
Coyote well, and the concept of father was even vaguer to him than that of
mother, so he wasn’t really sure what he felt. Genetic inheritance, sure, but
what was that? They all got their genes somewhere, and the genes of ectogenes
were transgenic anyway, or so they said.
But Coyote, though he cursed Hiroko in a hundred different ‘ways,
seemed to be pleased. “That vixen, that tyrant! Matriarchy my ass—she’s crazy!
It amazes me the things she does! Although this has a certain justice to it.
Yes it does, because Hiroko and I were an item back in the dawn of time, when
we were young in England. That’s the reason I’m here on Mars at all. A stowaway
in her closet, my whole fucking life long.” He laughed and clapped Nirgal on
the shoulder again. “Well, boy, you will know better how you like the idea
later on.”
He went back out to dance, leaving Nirgal to think it over.
Watching Coyote’s gyrations, Nirgal could only shake his head; he didn’t know
what to think, and at the moment thinking anything at all was remarkably
difficult. Better to dance, or seek out the baths.
But they had no public baths. He ran around in circles on the
dance floor, making his running a kind of dance, and later he returned to the
same mound, and a group of the locals gathered around him and Coyote. “Like
being the father of the Dalai Lama, eh? Don’t you get a name for that?”
“To hell with you, man! Like I was saying, Ann says they stopped
digging these seventy-five-degree moholes because the lithosphere is thinner
down here.” Coyote nodded portentously. “I want to go to one of the
decommissioned moholes and start up its robots again, and see if they dig down
far enough to start a volcano.”
Everyone laughed. But one woman shook her head. “If you do that
they’ll come down here to check it out. If you’re going to do it, you should go
north and hit one of the sixty-degree moholes. They’re decommissioned too.”
“But the lithosphere up there is thicker, Ann says.”
“Sure, but the moholes are deeper too.”
“Hmm,” Coyote said.
And the conversation moved on to more serious matters, mostly the
inevitable topics of shortages, and developments in the north. But at the end
of that week, when they left Vishniac, by way of a different and longer tunnel,
they headed north, and all Coyote’s previous plans had been thrown out the
window. “That’s the story of my life, boy.”
On the fifth night of driving over the jumbled highlands of the
south, Coyote slowed the rover, and circled the edge of a big old crater,
subdued almost to the level of the surrounding plain. From a defile in the
ancient rim one could see that the sandy crater floor was marred by a giant
round black hole. This, apparently, was what a mohole looked like from the surface.
A plume of thin frost stood in the air a few hundred meters over the hole,
appearing from nothing like a magician’s trick. The edge of the mohole was
beveled so that there was a band of concrete funneling down at about a
forty-five-degree angle; it was hard to say how big this coping band was,
because the mohole made it seem like no more than a strip. There was a high
wire fence at its outer edge. “Hmm,” Coyote said, staring out the windshield.
He backed up in the defile and parked, then slipped into a walker. “Back soon,”
he said, and hopped into the lock.
It was a long, anxious night for Nirgal. He barely slept, and was
in an intensifying agony of worry the next morning when he saw Coyote appear
outside the boulder car lock, just before seven A.M. when the sun was about to
rise. He was ready to complain about the length of this disappearance, but when
Coyote got inside and got his helmet off it was obvious he was in a foul
temper. While they sat out the day he tapped away at his AI in an absorbed conference
, cursing vilely, oblivious to his hungry young charge. Nirgal went ahead and
heated meals for them both, and then napped uneasily, and woke when the rover
jerked forward. “I’m going to try going in through the gate,” Coyote said.
“That’s quite the security they have on that hole. One more night should see it
either way.” He circled the crater and parked on the far rim, and at dusk once
again left on foot.
Again he was gone all night, and again Nirgal found it very
difficult to sleep. He wondered what he was supposed to do if Coyote didn’t
return.
And indeed he was not back by dawn. The day that followed was the
longest of Nirgal’s life without a question, and at the end of it he had no
idea what he was going to do. Try to rescue Coyote; try to drive back to
Zygote, or Vishniac; go down to the mohole, and give himself up to whatever
mysterious security system had eaten up Coyote: all seemed impossible.
But an hour after sunset Coyote tapped the car with his
tik-tik-tik, and then he was inside, his face a furious mask. He drank a liter
of water and then most of another, and blew out his lips in disgust. “Let us
get the fuck out of here,” he said.
After a couple of hours of silent driving Nirgal thought to change
the subject, or at least enlarge it, and he said, “Coyote, how long do you
think we will have to stay hidden?”
“Don’t call me Coyote! I’m not Coyote. Coyote is out there in the
back of the hills, breathing the air already and doing what he wants, the
bastard. Me my name is Desmond, you call me Desmond, understand?”
“Okay,” Nirgal said, afraid.
“As for how long we will have to stay hiding, I think it will be
forever.”
They drove back south to Rayleigh mohole, where Coyote (he didn’t
seem to be a Desmond) had thought to go in the first place. This mohole was
truly abandoned, an unlit hole in the highlands, its thermal plume standing
over it like the ghost of a monument. They could drive right into the empty
sand-covered parking lot and garage at its rim, between a small fleet of robot
vehicles shrouded by tarpaulins and sand drifts. “This is more like it,” Coyote
muttered. “Here, we’ve got to take a look down inside it. Come on, get into
your walker.”
It was strange to be out in the wind, standing on the rim of such
an enormous gap in things. They looked over a chest-high wall and saw the
beveled concrete band that rimmed the hole, dropping at an angle for about two
hundred meters. In order to see down the shaft proper, they had to walk about a
kilometer down a curving road cut into the concrete band. There they could stop
at last, and look over the road’s edge, down into blackness. Coyote stood right
on the edge, which made Nirgal nervous. He got on his hands and knees to look
over. No sign of a bottom; they might as well have been looking into the center
of the planet. “Twenty kilometers,” Coyote said over the intercom. He held a
hand out over the edge, and Nirgal did too. He could.feel the updraft. “Okay,
let’s see if we can get the robots going.” And they hiked back up the road.
Coyote had spent many of their daytime hours studying old programs
on his AI, and now, with the hydrogen peroxide from their trailer pumped into
two of the robot behemoths in the parking lot, he plugged into their control
panels and went at it. When he was done he was satisfied they would perform as
required at the bottom of the mohole, and they watched the two, with wheels
four times as tall as Coyote’s car, roll off down the curving road.
“All right,” Coyote said, cheering up again. “They’ll use their
solar-panel power to process their own peroxide explosives, and their own fuel
as well, and go at it slow and steady until maybe they hit something hot. We
just may have started a volcano!”
“Is that good?”
Coyote laughed wildly. “I don’t know! But no one’s ever done it
before, so it has that at least to recommend it.”
They returned to their scheduled travel, among sanctuaries both
hidden and open, and Coyote went around saying, “We started up Rayleigh mohole
last week, have you seen a volcano yet?”
No one had seen it. Rayleigh seemed to be behaving much as before,
its thermal plume undisturbed. “Well, maybe it didn’t work,” Coyote would say.
“Maybe it will take some time. On the other hand if that mohole was now floored
with molten lava, how would you be able to tell?”
“We could tell,” people said. And some added: “Why would you do
something as stupid as that? You might as well call up the Transitional
Authority and tell them to come down here to look for us.”
So Coyote stopped bringing it up. They rolled on from sanctuary to
sanctuary: Mauss Hyde, Gramsci, Overhangs, Christianopolis. ... At each stop
Nirgal was made welcome, and often people knew of him in advance, by
reputation. Nirgal was very surprised by the variety and number of sanctuaries,
forming together their strange world, half secret and half exposed. And if this
world was only a small part of Martian civilization as a whole, what must the
surface cities of the north be like? It was beyond his grasp—although it did
seem to him that as the marvels of the journey continued, one after the next,
his grasp was getting a bit larger. You couldn’t just explode from amazement,
after all.
“Well,” Coyote would say as they drove (he had taught Nirgal how),
“we may have started a volcano and we may not have. But it was a new idea in any
case. That’s one of the greatest things about this, boy, this whole Martian
project. It’s all new.”
They headed south again, until the ghostly wall of the polar cap
loomed over the horizon. Soon they would be home again.
Nirgal thought of all the sanctuaries they had visited. “Do you
really think we’ll have to hide forever, Desmond?”
“Desmond? Desmond? Who’s this Desmond?” Coyote blew out his lips.
“Oh, boy, I don’t know..No one can know for sure. The people hiding out here
were shoved out at a strange time, when their way of life was threatened, and
I’m not so sure it’s that way anymore in the surface cities they’re building in
the north. The bosses on Earth learned their lesson, maybe, and people up there
are more comfortable. Or maybe it’s just that the elevator hasn’t been replaced
yet.”
“So there might not be another revolution?”
“I don’t know.”
“Or not until there’s another space elevator?”
“I don’t know! But the elevator’s coming, and they’re building
some big new mirrors out there, you can see them shining at night sometimes, or
right around the sun.”So anything might happen, I guess. But revolution is a
rare thing. And a lot of them are reactionary anyway. Peasants have their
tradition, you see, the values and habits that allow them to get by. But they
live so close to the edge that rapid change can push them over it, and in those
times it’s not politics, but survival. I saw that myself when I was your age.
Now the people sent here were not poor, but they did have their own tradition,
and like the poor they were powerless. And when the influx of the 2050s hit,
their tradition was wiped out. So they fought for what they had. And the truth
is, they lost. You can’t fight the powers that be anymore, especially here,
because the weapons are too strong and our shelters are too fragile. We’d have
to arm ourselves pretty good, or something. So, you know. We’re hiding, and
they’re flooding Mars with a new kind of crowd, people who were used to really
tough conditions on Earth, so that things here don’t strike them so bad. They
get the treatment and they’re happy. We’re not seeing so many people trying to
get out into the sanctuaries, like we did in the years before sixty-one.
There’s some, but not many. As long as people have their entertainments, their
own little tradition, you know, they aren’t going to lift a finger.”
“But ...” Nirgal said, and faltered.
Coyote saw the expression on his face and laughed. “Hey, who
knows? Pretty soon now they’ll have another elevator in place up on Pavonis
Mons, and then very likely they’ll start to screw things up all over again,
those greedy bastards. And you young folks, maybe you won’t want Earth calling
the shots here. We’ll see when the time comes. Meanwhile we’re having fun,
right? We’re keeping the flame.”
That night Coyote stopped the car, and told Nirgal to suit up.
They went out and stood on the sand, and Coyote turned him around so that he
was facing north. “Look at the sky.”
Nirgal stood and watched; and saw a new star burst into existence,
there over the northern horizon, growing in a matter of seconds to a long
white-tailed comet, flying west to east. When it was about halfway across the
sky the blazing head of the comet burst apart, and bright framents scattered in
every direction, white into black.
“One of the ice asteroids!” Nirgal exclaimed.
Coyote snorted. “There’s no surprising you, is there boy! Well,
I’ll tell you something you didn’t know; that was ice asteroid 2089 C, and did
you see how it blew up there at the end? That was a first. They did that on
purpose. Blowing them up when they enter the atmosphere allows them to use
bigger asteroids without endangering the surface. And that was my idea! I told
them to do that myself, I put an anonymous suggestion in the AI at Greg’s Place
when I was in there messing with their comm system, and they jumped on it.
They’re going to do them that way all the time now. There’ll be one or two
every season like that, they’re thickening the atmosphere pretty fast. Look at
how the stars are trembling. They used to do that all the nights of Earth. Ah,
boy ... It’ll happen here all the time too, someday. Air you can breathe like a
bird in the sky. Maybe that will help us to change the order of things on this
world. You can never tell about things like that.”
Nirgal closed his eyes, and saw red afterimages of the ice meteor
score his eyelids. Meteors like white fireworks, holes boring straight into the
mantle, volcanoes... . He turned and saw the Coyote hopping over the plain,
small and thin, his helmet strangely large on him as if he were a mutant or a
shaman wearing a sacred animal head, doing a changeling dance over the sand.
This was the Coyote, no doubt about it. His father!
Then they had circumnavigated the world, albeit high in the
southern hemisphere. The polar cap rose over the horizon and grew, until they
were under the overhang of ice, which did not seem as tall as it had at the
start of the journey. They circled the ice to home, and drove into the hangar,
and got out of the little boulder car that had become so well known to Nirgal
in the previous two weeks, and walked stiffly through the locks and back down
the long tunnel into the dome, and suddenly they were among all the familiar
faces, being hugged and cosseted and questioned. Nirgal shrank shyly from the
attention, but there was no need, Coyote told all their stories for him, and he
only had to laugh, and deny responsibility for what they had done. Glancing
past his kin, he saw how small his little world really was; the dome was less
than 5 kilometers across, and 250 meters high out over the lake. A small world.
When the homecoming was over he walked out in the early-morning
glow, feeling the happy nip of the air and looking closely at the buildings and
bamboo stands of the village, in its nest of hills and trees. It all looked so
strange and small. Then he was out on the dunes and walking out to Hiroko’s
place, with the gulls wheeling overhead, and he stopped frequently just to see
things. He breathed in the chill kelp-and-salt scent of the beach; the intense
familiarity of the scent triggered a million memories at once, and he knew he
was home.
But home had changed. Or he had. Between the attempt to save Simon and the trip with
Coyote, he had become a youth apart from the rest; the distinguishing
adventures that he had so longed for had come, and their only result was to
exile him from his friends. Jackie and Dao hung together more tightly than
ever, and acted like a shield between him and all the younger sansei. Quickly
Nirgal realized that he hadn’t really wanted to be different after all. He only
wanted to melt back into the closeness of his little pack, and be one with his
siblings.
But when he came among them they went silent, and Dao would lead
them off, after the most awkward encounters imaginable. And he was left to
return to the adults, who began to keep him with them in the afternoons, as a
matter of course. Perhaps they meant to spare him some of his pack’s hard
treatment, but it only had the effect of marking him even more. There was no
cure for it. One day, walking the beach unhappily in the gray and pewter
twilight of a fall afternoon, it occurred to him that his childhood was gone.
That was what this feeling was; he was something else now, neither adult nor
child, a solitary being, a foreigner in his own country. The melancholy
realization had a peculiar pleasure to it.
One day after lunch Jackie stayed behind with him and Hiroko, who
had come in for the day to teach, and demanded to be included in her afternoon
lesson. “Why should you teach him and not me?”
“No reason,” Hiroko said impassively. “Stay if you want. Get out
your lectern and call up Thermal Engineering, page one oh five oh. We’ll model
Zygote Dome for example. Tell me what is the warmest point under the dome?”
Nirgal and Jackie attacked the problem, competing and yet side by
side. He was so happy she was there that he could hardly remember the problem,
and Jackie raised a finger before he had even organized his thinking about it.
And she laughed at him, a bit scornful but also pleased. Through all these
enormous changes in them both there remained in Jackie that capacity for
infectious joy, that laughter from which it was so painful to be exiled…
“Here is a question for next time,” Hiroko said to them. “All the
names for Mars in the areophany are names given to it by Terrans. About half of
them mean fire star in the languages they come from, but that is still a name
from the outside. The question is, what is Mars’s own name for itself?”
Several weeks later Coyote came through again, which made Nirgal
both happy and nervous. Coyote took a morning teaching the children, but
fortunately he treated Nirgal the same as all the rest. “Earth is in very bad
shape,” he told them as they worked on vacuum pumps from the liquid-sodium
tanks in the Rickover, “and it will only get worse. That makes their control
over Mars all the more dangerous to us. We’ll have to hide until we can cut
ourselves free of them entirely, and then stand safe to the side while they
descend into madness and chaos. You remember my words here, this is a prophecy
as true as truth.”
“That isn’t what John Boone said,” Jackie declared. She spent many
of her evening hours exploring John Boone’s AI, and now she pulled out the box
from her thigh pocket, and with only the briefest search for a passage, the
friendly voice from the box was saying, “Mars will never be truly safe until
Earth is too.”
Coyote laughed raucously. “Yes, well, John Boone was like that,
wasn’t he. But you note he is dead, while I’m still here.”
“Anyone can hide,” Jackie said sharply. “But John Boone got out
there and led. That’s why I’m a Boonean.”
“You’re a Boone and a Boonean!” Coyote exclaimed, teasing her.
“And Boonean algebra never did add up. But look here, girl, you have to
understand your grandfather better than that if you want to call yourself a
Boonean. You can’t make John Boone into any kind of dogma and be true to what
he was. I see other so-called Booneans out there doing just that, and it makes
me laugh when it doesn’t make me foam at the mouth. Why, if John Boone were to
meet you and talk to you for even just an hour, then at the end of that time he
would be a Jackie-ist. And if he met Dao and talked to him, then he would
become a Daoist, maybe even a Maoist. That’s just the way he was. And that was
good, you see, because what it did was put the responsibility for thinking back
onto us. It forced us to make a contribution, because without that Boone
couldn’t operate. His point was not just that everyone can do it, but that
everyone should do it.”
“Including all the people on Earth,” Jackie replied.
“Not another quick one!” Coyote cried. “Oh you girl, why don’t you
leave these boys of yours and marry me now, I got a kiss like this vacuum pump,
here, come on,” and he waved the pump at her and Jackie knocked it aside and
shoved him back and ran, just for the fun of the chase. She was now the fastest
runner in Zygote bar none, even Nirgal with all his endurance could not sprint
the way she did, and the kids laughed at Coyote as he skipped after her; he was
pretty swift himself for an ancient, and he turned and jinked and went after
them all, growling and ending up at the bottom of a pile-on, crying “Oh my leg,
oh I’m going to get you for that, you boys are just jealous of me because I’m
going to steal your girl away, oh! Stop! Oh!”
This kind of teasing made Nirgal uncomfortable, and Hiroko didn’t
like it either. She told Coyote to stop, but he just laughed at her. “You’re
the one that’s gone and made yourself a little incest camp,” he said. “What are
you going to do, neuter them?” He laughed at Hiroko’s dark expression. “You’re
going to have to farm them out soon, that’s what you’re going to have to do.
And I might as well get some of them.”
Hiroko dismissed him, and soon after that he was off on a trip
again. And the next time Hiroko taught, she took all the kids to the bathhouse
and they got in the bath after her and sat on the slick tiles in the shallow
end, soaking in the hot steamy water while Hiroko spoke. Nirgal sat next to
Jackie’s long-limbed naked body which he knew so well, including all its
dramatic changes of the past year, and he found that he was unable to look at
her.
His ancient naked mother said, “You know how genetics works, I’ve
taught you that myself. And you know that many of you are half brothers and
sisters, uncles and nieces and cousins and so forth. I am mother or grandmother
to many of you, and so you should not mate and have children together. It’s as
simple as that, a very simple genetic law.” She held up a palm, as if to say,
This is our shared body.
“But all living things are filled with viriditas,” she went on,
“the green force, patterning outward. And so it is normal that you will love
each other, especially now that your bodies are blooming. There is nothing
wrong with that, no matter what Coyote says. He is only joking in any case. And
in one thing he is right; you will soon be meeting many other people your age,
and they will eventually become mates and partners and coparents with you,
closer to you even than your tribe kin, whom you know too well to ever love as
an other. We here are all pieces of your self; and true love is always for the
other.”
Nirgal kept his eyes on his mother’s, his gaze blank. Still he
knew exactly when Jackie had brought her legs together, he had felt the minute
change in temperature in the water swirling between them. And it seemed to him
that his mother was wrong in some of what she had said. Although he knew
Jackie’s body so well, she was still in most ways as distant as any fiery star,
bright and imperious in the sky. She was the queen of their little band, and
could crush him with a glance if she cared to, and did fairly often even though
he had been studying her moods all his life. That was as much otherness as he
cared to handle. And he loved her, he knew he did. But she didn’t love him
back, not in the same way. Nor did she love Dao in that way, he thought, at
least not anymore; which was a small comfort. It was Peter she watched in the
way that he watched her. But Peter was away most of the time. So she loved no
one in Zygote the way Nirgal loved her. Perhaps for her it was already as
Hiroko had said, and Dao and Nirgal and the rest were simply too well known.
Her brothers and sisters, no matter the genes involved.
* * *
Then one day the sky fell in earnest. The whole highest part of
the water ice sheet cracked away from the CO2, collapsing through the mesh and
into the lake and all over the beach and the surrounding dunes. Luckily it
happened in the early morning when no one was down there, but in the village
the first booms and cracks were explosively loud, and everyone rushed to their
windows and saw most of the fall: the giant white sections of ice dropping like
bombs or spinning down like skipped plates, and then the whole surface of the
lake exploding and spilling out over the dunes. People came charging out of
their rooms, and in the noise and panic Hiroko and Maya herded the kids into
the school, which had a discrete air-system. When a few minutes had passed and
it appeared that the dome itself was going to hold, Peter and Michel and Nadia
ran off through the debris, dodging and jumping over the shattered white
plates, around the lake to the Rickover to make sure it was all right. If it
wasn’t it would be a deadly mission for the three of them, and mortal danger to
everyone else. From the school window Nirgal could see the far shore of the
lake, which was cluttered with icebergs. The air was aswirl with screaming
gulls. The three figures twisted along the narrow high path just under the edge
of the dome, and disappeared into the Rickover. Jackie chewed her knuckles in
fear. Soon they phoned back a report: all was well. The ice over the reactor
was supported by a particularly close-meshed framework, and it had held.
So they were safe, for the moment. But over the next couple of
days, spent in the village in an unhappy state of tension, an investigation
into the cause of the fall revealed that the the whole mass of dry ice over
them had sagged ever so slightly, cracking the layer of water ice and sending it
down through the mesh. Sublimation on the surface of the cap was apparently
speeding up to a remarkable degree, as the atmosphere thickened and the world
warmed.
During the next week the icebergs in the lake slowly melted, but
the plates scattered over the dunes were still there, melting ever so slowly.
The youngsters weren’t allowed on the beach anymore; it wasn’t clear how stable
the remainder of the ice layer was.
The tenth night after the collapse they had a village meeting in
the dining hall, all two hundred of them. Nirgal looked around at them, at his
little tribe; the sansei looked frightened, the nisei defiant, the issei
stunned. The old ones had lived in Zygote for fourteen Martian years, and no
doubt it was hard for them to remember any other life; impossible for the
children, who had never known anything else.
It did not need saying that they would not surrender themselves to
the surface world. And yet the dome was becoming untenable, and they were too
large a group to impose themselves on any of the other hidden sanctuaries.
Splitting up would solve that problem, but it wasn’t a happy solution.
It took an hour’s talk to lay all this out. “We could try
Vishniac,” Michel said. “It’s big, and they’d welcome us.”
But it was the Bogdanovists’ home, not theirs. This was the
message on the faces of the old ones. Suddenly it seemed to Nirgal that they
were the most frightened of all.
He said, “You could move back farther under the ice.”
Everyone stared at him.
“Melt a new dome, you mean,” Hiroko said.
Nirgal shrugged. Having said it, he realized he disliked the idea.
But Nadia said, “The cap is thicker back there. It will be a long
time before it sublimes enough to trouble us. By that time everything will have
changed.”
There was a silence, and then Hiroko said, “It’s a good idea. We
can hold on here while a new dome is being melted, and move things over as
space becomes available. It should only take a few months.”
“Shikata ga nai,” Maya said sardonically. There is no other
choice. Of course there were other choices. But she looked pleased at the
prospect of a big new project, and so did Nadia. And the rest of them looked
relieved that they had an option that kept them together, and hidden. The
issei, Nirgal saw suddenly, were very frightened of exposure. He sat back,
wondering at that, thinking of the open cities he had visited with Coyote.
They used steam hoses powered by the Rickover to melt another
tunnel to the hangar, and then a long tunnel under the cap, until the ice above
was three hundred meters deep. Back there they began subliming a new round
domed cavern, and digging a shallow lakebed for a new lake. Most of the CO2 gas
was captured, refrigerated to the outside temperature, and released; the rest
was broken down into oxygen and carbon, and stored for use.
While the excavation went on they dug up the shallow runner roots
of the big snow bamboos, and cantilevered them out of the ground and hauled
them on their largest truck down the tunnel to the new cave, scraping leaves
all the way. They disassembled the village’s buildings, and relocated them. The
robot bulldozer and trucks ran all hours of the day and night, scooping up the
battered sand of the old dunes and carting it back down into the new cave;
there was too much biomass in it (including Simon) to leave behind. In essence
they were taking everything inside the shell of Zygote dome along with them.
When they were done, the old cave was nothing but an empty bubble at the bottom
of the polar cap, sandy ice above, icy sand below, the air in it nothing but
the ambient Martian atmosphere, 170 millibars of mostly CO2 gas, at 240°
Kelvin. Thin poison.
One day Nirgal went back with Peter to take a look at the old
place. It was shocking to see the only home he had ever had reduced to such a
shell—the ice all cracked above, the sand all torn up, the raw root holes of
the village gaping like horrible wounds, the lakebed scraped clear even of its
algae. It looked small and ramshackle, some desperate animal’s den. Moles in a
hole, Coyote had said. Hiding from vultures. “Let’s get out of here,” Peter
said sadly, and they walked together down the long bare poorly lit tunnel to
the new dome, stepping along the concrete road Nadia had built, now all
ratcheted with treadmarks.
They laid out the new dome in a new pattern, with the village away
from the tunnel lock, near an escape tunnel that ran far under the ice, to an
exit in upper Chasma Australe. The greenhouses were set nearer the perimeter
lights, and the dune crests were higher than before, and the weather equipment
was set right next to the Rickover. There were any number of small improvements
of that sort, which kept it from being a replica of their old home. And every
day they were so busy with the work of constructing it that there was no time
to think much about the change; morning classes in the schoolhouse had been
canceled since the fall, and now the kids were merely a rotating work crew,
assigned to whoever needed help the most on that particular day. Sometimes the
adult overseeing them would try to make their work into a lesson—Hiroko and
Nadia were especially good at this—but they had little time to spare, and only
added an explanatory sentence to instructions that were too simple to need
explanation in any case: tightening wall modules with Alien wrenches, carrying
around planters and algae jars in the greenhouses, and so on. It was just
work—they were part of the workforce, which was too small for the task even so,
despite the versatile robots that looked like rovers stripped of their
exteriors. And running around, doing the work, Nirgal was for the most part
happy.
But once as he left the schoolhouse and saw the dining hall,
rather than the big shoots of Creche Crescent, the sight brought him up short.
His old familiar world was gone, gone forever. That was how time worked. It
sent a pang through him that brought tears to his eyes, and he spent the rest
of that day somewhat stunned and distant, as if always a step or two behind
himself, watching everything that happened drained of emotion, detached as he
had been after Simon’s death, exiled to the white world one step outside the
green. There was nothing to indicate that he would ever come out of such a
melancholy state, and how could he know if he ever would? All those days of his
childhood were gone, along with Zygote itself, and they would never come back,
and this day too would pass and disappear, this dome too slowly sublime away
and crash in on itself. Nothing would last. So what was the point? For hours at
a time this question plagued him, taking the taste and color out of everything,
and when Hiroko noticed how subdued he was, and inquired what was wrong, he
simply asked her outright. There was that advantage to Hiroko; you could ask
her anything, including the fundamental questions. “Why do we do all this,
Hiroko? When it all goes white no matter what?”
She stared at him, birdlike, her head cocked to one side. He
thought he could see her affection for him in that cock of the head, but he
wasn’t sure; as he got older he felt he understood her (along with everyone
else) less and less.
She said, “It is sad the old dome is gone, isn’t it. But we must
focus on what is coming. This too is viriditas. To concentrate not on what we
have created, but what we will create. The dome was like a flower which wilts
and falls, but contains the seed of a new plant, which grows and then there are
new flowers and new seeds. The past is gone. Thinking about it will only make
you melancholy. Why, I was a girl in Japan once, on Hokkaido Island! Yes, as
young as you! And I can’t tell you how far gone that is. But here we are now,
you and me, surrounded by these plants and these people, and if you pay
attention to them, and how you can make them increase and prosper, then the
life comes back into things. You feel the kami inside all things, and that is
all you need. This moment itself is all we ever live in.”
“And the old days?”
She laughed at that. “You’re growing up. Well, you must remember
the old days from time to time. They were good ones, weren’t they? You had a
happy childhood; that is a blessing. But so will these days be good. Take this
moment right here, and ask yourself, What now is lacking? Hmmm? ... Coyote says
that he wants you and Peter to go along with him on another trip. Maybe you
should go and get out under the sky again, what do you say?”
So preparations for another trip with Coyote were made, and they
continued to work on the new Zygote, informally rechristened Gamete. At night
in the relocated dining hall the adults talked for a long time about their situation.
Sax and Vlad and Ursula, among others, wanted back into the surface world. They
couldn’t do their real work properly in the hidden sanctuaries; they wanted
back into the full flood of medical science, terraforming, construction. “We’ll
never be able to disguise ourselves,” Hiroko said. “No one can change their
genomes.”
“It’s not our genomes we should change, but the records,” Sax
said. “That’s what Spencer has done. He’s gotten his physical characteristics
into a new record identity.”
“And we did cosmetic surgery on his face,” Vlad said.
“Yes, but it was minimal because of our age, right? We none of us
look the same. Anyway, if you do something like what he did, we could take on
new identities.”
Maya said, “Did Spencer really get into all the records?”
Sax shrugged. “He was left behind in Cairo, and had the chance to
get into some of the ones being used now for security purposes. That has been
enough. I’d like to try something similar. Let’s see what Coyote says about it.
He’s not in any records at all, so he must know how he did it.”
“He’s been hidden from the beginning,” Hiroko said. “That’s
different.”
“Yes, but he might have some ideas.”
“We could just move into the demimonde,” Nadia pointed out, “and
stay off the records entirely. I think I’d like to try that.”
Night after night they talked these matters over. “Well, a little
change of appearance might be in order. You know Phyllis is back, we have to
remember that.”
“I still can’t believe they survived. She must have nine lives.”
“In any case we were on too many news shows. We have to take
care.”
By day Gamete was slowly completed. But it never seemed right to
Nirgal, no matter how much he tried to focus on the making of it. It wasn’t his
place.
News came from another traveler that Coyote would be by soon.
Nirgal felt his pulse quicken; to get back under the starry sky again,
wandering by night in Coyote’s boulder car, from sanctuary to sanctuary…
Jackie stared at him attentively as he talked about it to her. And
that afternoon, after they were dismissed from the day’s work, she led him down
to the tall new dunes and kissed him. When he recovered his wits he kissed
back, and then they were kissing passionately, hugging each other hard and
steaming all over each other’s faces. They knelt in the trough between two high
dunes, under a pale thin fog, and then lay together in a cocoon made of their
down coats, and kissed and touched each other, peeling down each other’s pants
and creating a little envelope of their own warmth, huffing out steam and crackling
the frost on the sand underneath their coats. All this without a word, merging
in one great hot electric circuit, in defiance of Hiroko and all the world. So
this is what it feels like, Nirgal thought. Under the strands of Jackie’s black
hair grains of sand gleamed like jewels, as if minute ice flowers were
contained within them. Glories inside everything.
When they were done they crawled up to glance over the dune crest,
to make sure no one was coming their way, and then returned to their nest and pulled
their clothes over them, for the warmth. They huddled together, kissing
voluptuously and without haste. And Jackie prodded him in the chest with a
finger and said, “Now we belong to each other.”
Nirgal could only nod happily and kiss the long expanse of her
throat, his face buried in her black hair. “Now you belong to me,” she said.
He sincerely hoped it was true. It was how he had wanted it, for
as long as he could remember.
* * *
But that evening in the bathhouse Jackie sloshed across the pool,
and caught up Dao and gave him a hug, body to body. She pulled back and stared
at Nirgal with a blank expression, her dark eyes like holes in her face. Nirgal
sat frozen in the shallows, feeling his torso stiffen as if preparing for a
blow. His balls were still sore from coming in her; and there she stood draped
against Dao, as she hadn’t been in months, staring at him with a basilisk
stare.
The strangest sensation swept over him—he understood that this was
a moment he would remember all his life, a pivotal moment, right there in the
steamy comfortable bath, under the osprey eye of the statuesque Maya, whom
Jackie hated with a fine hate, who was now watching the three of them closely,
suspecting something. So this was how it was. Jackie and Nirgal might belong to
each other, and he certainly belonged to her—but her idea of belonging was not
his. The shock of this knocked his breath out, it was a kind of collapse of the
roof of his understanding of things. He looked at her, stunned, hurt, becoming
angry—she hugged Dao all the more—and he understood. She had collected both of
them. Yes, it made sense, it was certain; and Reull and Steve and Frantz were
all equally devoted to her—perhaps that was just a holdover from her rule over
the little band, but perhaps not. Perhaps she had collected all of them. And
clearly, now that Nirgal was a kind of foreigner to them, she was more
comfortable with Dao. So he was an exile in his own home, and in his own love’s
heart. If she had a heart!
He didn’t know if any of these impressions were true, didn’t know
how to find out. He wasn’t sure he wanted to find out. He got out of the bath
and retreated into the men’s room, feeling Jackie’s gaze boring into his back,
and Maya’s too.
In the men’s room he caught sight of an unfamiliar face in one of
the mirrors. He stopped short and recognized it as his own face, twisted with
distress.
He approached the mirror slowly, feeling the strange sensation of
momentousness sweep through him again. He stared at the face in the mirror,
stared and stared; it came to him that he was not the center of the universe,
or its only consciousness, but a person like all the rest, seen from the
outside by others, the way he saw others when he looked at them. And this
strange Nirgal-in-the-mirror was an arresting black-haired brown-eyed boy,
intense and compelling, a near twin to Jackie, with thick black eyebrows and a…
a look. He didn’t want to know any of this. But he felt the power burning at
his fingertips, and recalled how people looked at him, and understood that for
Jackie he might represent the same sort of dangerous power that she did .for
him—which would explain her consorting with Dao, as an attempt to hold him off,
to hold a balance, to assert her power. To show they were a matched pair— and a
match. And all of a sudden the tension left his torso, and he shuddered, and
then grinned, lopsidedly. They did indeed belong to each other. But he was
still himself.
So when Coyote showed up and came by to ask Nirgal to join him on
another trip, he agreed instantly, very thankful for the opportunity. The flash
of anger on Jackie’s face when she heard the news was painful to see; but
another part of him exulted at his otherness, at his ability to escape her, or
at least to get some distance. Match or not, he needed it.
A few evenings later he and Coyote and Peter and Michel drove away
from the huge mass of the polar cap, into the broken land, black under its
blanket of stars.
Nirgal looked back at the luminous white cliff with a
tumultuous mix of feelings; but chief among them was relief. Back there they
would burrow ever deeper under the ice, it seemed, until they lived in a dome
under the South Pole—while the red world spun through the cosmos, wild among
the stars. Suddenly he understood that he would never again live under the
dome, never return to it except for short visits; this was not a matter of
choice, but simply the way it was going to happen. His fate, or destiny. He
could feel it like a red rock in his hand. Henceforth he would be homeless,
unless the whole planet someday became his home, every crater and canyon known
to him, every plant, every rock, every person—everything, in the green world
and the white. But that (remembering the storm seen from the edge of Promethei
Rupes) was a task to occupy many lives. He would have to start learning.
PART
2
------------
---The
Ambassador
-----------
Asteroids with
elliptical orbits that cross inside the orbit of Mars are called Amor
asteroids, (if they cross inside the orbit of Earth they are called Trojans.)
In 2088 the Amor asteroid known as 2034 B crossed the path of Mars some
eighteen million kilometers behind the planet, and a clutch of robotic landing
vehicles originating from Luna docked with it shortly thereafter. 2034 B was a
rough ball about five kilometers in diameter, with a mass of about fifteen
billion tons. As the rockets touched down, the asteroid became New Clarke.
Quickly the change became obvious. Some landers sank to the dusty
surface of the asteroid and began drilling, excavating, stamping, sorting,
conveying. A nuclear reactor power plant switched on, and fuel rods moved into
position. Elsewhere ovens fired, and robot stokers prepared to shovel. On other
landers payload bays opened, and robot mechanisms spidered out onto the surface
and anchored themselves to the irregular planes of rock. Tunnelers bored in.
Dust flew off into the space around the asteroid, and fell back down or escaped
forever. Landers extended pipes and tubes into each other. The asteroid’s rock
was carbonaceous chrondrite, with a good percentage of water ice shot through
it in veins and bubbles. Soon the linked collection of factories in the landers
began to produce a variety of carbon-based materials, and some composites.
Heavy water, one part in every 6,000 of the water ice in the
asteroid, was separated out. Deuterium was made from the heavy water. Parts
were made from the carbon composites, and other parts, brought along in another
payload, were brought together with the new ones in factories. New robots
appeared, made mostly of Clarke itself. And so the number of machines grew, as
computers on the landers directed the creation of an entire industrial complex.
After that the process was quite simple, for many years. The
principal factory on New Clarke made a cable of carbon nanotube filaments. The
nanotubes were made of carbon atoms linked in chains so that the bonds holding
them together were as strong as any that humans could manufacture. The
filaments were only a few score meters long, but were bundled in clusters with
their ends overlapping, and then the bundles were bundled, until the cable was
nine meters in diameter. The factories could create the filaments and bundle
them at speeds that allowed them to extrude the cable at a rate of about four hundred
meters an hour, ten kilometers a day, for hour after hour, day after day, year
after year.
While this thin strand of bundled carbon spun out into space,
robots on another facet of the asteroid were constructing a mass driver, an
engine that would use the deuterium from the indigenous water to fire crushed
rock away from the asteroid at speeds of 200 kilometers a second. Around the
asteroid smaller engines and conventional rockets were also being constnicted
and stocked with fuels, waiting/or the time when they would fire, and perform
the work of attitude jets. Other factories constructed long wheeled vehicles
capable of running back and forth on the growing cable, and as the cable
continued to appear out of the planet, small rocket jets and other machinery
were attached to it.
The mass driver fired. The asteroid began to move into a new
orbit.
Years passed. The asteroid’s new orbit intersected the orbit of
Mars such that the asteroid came within ten thousand kilometers of Mars, and
the collection of rockets on the asteroid fired in a way that allowed the
gravity of Mars to capture it, in an orbit at first highly elliptical. The jets
continued to fire off and on, regularizing the orbit. The cable continued to
extrude. More years passed.
A little over a decade after the landers had first touched down,
the cable was approximately thirty thousand kilometers long. The asteroid’s
mass was about eight billion tons, the cable’s mass was about seven billion.
The asteroid was in an elliptical orbit with a periapsis of around fifty
thousand kilometers. But now all the rockets and mass drivers on both New
Clarke and the cable itself began to fire, some continuously but most in
spurts. One of the most powerful computers ever made sat in one of the payload
bays, coordinating the data from sensors and determining what rockets should
fire when. The cable, at this time pointing away from Mars, began to swing
around toward it, as in the pivoting of some delicate part of a timepiece. The
asteroid’s orbit became smaller and more regular.
More rockets landed on New Clarkefor the first time since that
first touchdown, and robots in them began the construction of a spaceport. The
tip of the cable began to descend toward Mars. Here the calculus employed by
the computer soared off into an almost metaphysical complexity, and the
gravitational dance of asteroid and cable with the planet became ever more
precise, moving to a music that was in a permanent ritard, so that as the great
cable grew closer to its proper position, its movements became slower and
slower. If anyone had been able to see the full extent of this spectacle, it
might have seemed like some spectacular physical demonstration of Zeno’s
paradox, in which the racer gets closer to the finish line by halving distances
... But no one ever saw the full spectacle, for no witnesses had the senses
necessary. Proportionally the cable was far thinner than a human hair—if it had
been reduced to a hair’s diameter, it would still have been hundreds of
kilometers long—and so it was only visible for short portions of its entire
length. Perhaps one might say that the computer guiding it in had the fullest
sensation of it. For observers down on the surface of Mars, in the town of
Sheffield, on the volcano Pavonis Mons (Peacock Mountain), the cable made its
first appearance as a very small rocket, descending with a very thin leader
line attached to it; something like a bright lure and a thin fishing line,
being trolled by some gods in the next universe up. From this ocean-bottom
perspective the cable itself followed its leader line down into the massive
concrete bunker east of Sheffield with an aching slowness, until most humans
simply stopped paying attention to the vertical black stroke in the upper
atmosphere.
But the day came when the bottom of the cable, firing jets to hold
its position in the gusty winds, dropped down into the hole in the roof of the
concrete bunker, and settled into its collar. Now the cable below the
areosynchronous point was being pulled down by Mars’s gravity; the part above
the areosynchronous point was trying to follow New Clarke in centrifugal flight
away from the planet; and the carbon filaments of the cable held the tension,
and the whole apparatus rotated at the same speed as the planet, standing above
Pavonis Mons in an oscillating vibration that allowed it to dodge Deimos; all
of it controlled still by the computer on New Clarke, and the long battery of
rockets deployed on the carbon strand.
The elevator was back. Cars were lifted up one side of the cable from Pavonis, and other cars were let down from New Clarke, providing a counterweight so that the energy needed for both operations was greatly lessened. Spaceships made their approach to the New Clarke spaceport, and when they left they were given a slingshot departure. Mars’s gravity well was therefore substantially mitigated, and all its human intercourse with Earth and the rest of the solar system made less expensive. It was as if an umbilical cord had been retied.
He was in the
middle of a perfectly
ordinary life when they drafted him and sent him to Mars.
The summons came in the form of a fax that appeared out of his
phone, in the apartment Art Randolph had rented just the month before, after he
and his wife had decided on a trial separation. The fax was brief: Dear Arthur
Randolph: William Fort invites you’to attend a private seminar. A plane will
leave San Francisco airport at 9 A.M., February 22nd 2101.
Art stared at the paper in amazement. William Fort was the founder
of Praxis, the transnational that had acquired Art’s company some years before.
Fort was very old, and now his position in the transnat was said to be some
kind of semiretired emeritus thing. But he still held private seminars, which
were notorious although there was very little hard information about them. It
was . said that he invited people from all subsidiaries of the transnat; that
they gathered in San Francisco, and were flown away by private jet to someplace
secret. No one knew what went on there. People who attended were usually transferred
afterward, and if not, they kept their mouths shut in a way that gave one
pause. So it was a mystery.
Art was surprised to be invited, apprehensive but basically
pleased. Before its acquisition he had been the cofounder and technical
director of a small company called Dumpmines, which was in the business” of
digging up and processing old landfills, recovering the valuable materials that
had been thrown away in a more wasteful age. It had been a surprise when Praxis
had acquired them, a very pleasant surprise, as everyone in Dumpmines went from
employment in a small firm to apprentice membership in one of the richest
organizations in the world—paid in its shares, voting on its policy, free to
use all its resources. It was like being knighted.
Art certainly had been pleased, and so had his wife, although she
had been elegiac as well. She herself had been hired by Mitsubishi’s synthesis
management, and the big transnationals, she said, were like separate worlds.
With the two of them working for different ones they were inevitably going to
drift apart, even more than they already had. Neither of them needed the other
anymore to obtain longevity treatments, which transnats provided much more
reliably than the government. And so they were like people on different ships,
she said, sailing out of San Francisco Bay in different directions. Like ships,
in fact, passing in the night.
It had seemed to Art that they might have been able to commute
between ships, if his wife had not been so interested in one of the other
passengers on hers, a vice-chairman of Mitsubishi in charge of East Pacific
development. But Art had been quickly caught up in Praxis’s arbitration
program, traveling frequently to take classes or arbitrate in disputes between
various small Praxis subsidiaries involved in resource recovery, and when he
was in San Francisco, Sharon was very seldom at home. Their ships were moving
out of hailing distance, she had said, and he had become too demoralized to
contest the point, and had moved out soon afterward, on her suggestion. Kicked
out, one could have said.
Now he rubbed a swarthy unshaven jaw, rereading the fax for the
fourth time. He was a big man, powerfully built but with a tendency to
slouch—”uncouth,” his wife had called him, although his secretary at Dumpmines
used the term “bearlike,” which he preferred. Indeed he had the somewhat clumsy
and shambling appearance of a bear, also its surprising quickness and power. He
had been a fullback at the University of Washington, a fullback slow of foot but
decisive in direction, and very difficult to bring down> Bear Man, they had
called him. Tackle him at your peril.
He had studied engineering, and afterward worked in the oil fields
of Iran and Georgia, devising a number of innovations for extracting oil from
extremely marginal shale. He had gotten a master’s degree from Tehran
University while doing this work, and then had moved to California and joined a
friend who was forming a company that made deep-sea diving equipment used in
offshore oil drilling, an enterprise that was moving out into ever-deeper water
as more accessible supplies were exhausted. Once again Art had invented a
number of improvements in both diving gear and underwater drills, but a couple
of years spent in compression chambers and on the continental shelf had been
enough for him, and he had sold his shares to his partner and moved on again.
In quick succession he had started a cold-environments habitat construction
company, worked for a solar panel firm, and built rocket gantries. Each job had
been fine, but as time passed he had found that what really interested him, was
not the technical problems but the human, ones. He became more and more
involved with project management, and then got into arbitration; he liked
jumping into arguments and solving them to everyone’s satisfaction. It was
engineering of a different kind, more engrossing and fulfilling than the
mechanical stuff, and more difficult. Several of the companies he worked for in
those years were part of transnationals, and he got embroiled in interface
arbitration not only between his companies and others in the transnats, but
also in more distant disputes requiring some kind of third-party arbitration.
Social engineering, he called it, and found it fascinating.
So when starting Dumpmines he had taken the technical
directorship, and had done some good work on their SuperRathjes, the giant
robot vehicles that did the extraction and sorting at the landfills; but more
than ever before he involved himself in labor disputes and the like. This trend
in his career had accelerated after the acquisition by Praxis. And on the days
when work like that went well, he always went home knowing that he should have
been a judge, or a diplomat. Yes—at heart he was a diplomat.
Which made it embarrassing that he had not been able to negotiate
a successful outcome to his own marriage. And no doubt the breakup was well
known to Fort, or whoever had invited him to this seminar. It was even possible
that they had bugged his old apartment, and heard the unhappy mess of his and
Sharon’s final months together, which wouldn’t have been flattering to either
of them. He cringed at the thought, still rubbing his rough jaw, and drifted
toward the bathroom and turned on the portable water heater. The face in the mirror
looked mildly stunned. Unshaven, fifty, separated, misemployed for most of his
life, just beginning at his true calling—he was not the kind of person he
imagined got faxes from William Fort.
His wife or ex-wife-to-be called, and she was likewise incredulous.
“It must be a mistake,” she said when Art told her about it. She had called
about one of her camera lenses, now missing; she suspected that Art had taken
it when he moved out. “I’ll look for it,” Art said. He went over to the closet
to look in his two suitcases, still packed. He knew the lens was not in them,
but he rooted loudly through them both anyway. Sharon would know if he tried to
fake it. While he searched she continued to talk over the phone, her voice
echoing tinnily through the empty apartment. “It just shows how weird that Fort
is. You’ll go to some Shangri-La and he’ll be using Kleenex boxes for shoes and
talking Japanese, and you’ll be sorting his trash and learning to levitate and
I’ll never see you again. Did you find it?”
“No. It’s not here.” When they had separated they had divided
their joint possessions: Sharon had taken their apartment, the entertainment
center, the desktop array, the lectern, the cameras, the plants, the bed, and
all the rest of the furniture; Art had taken the Teflon frying pan. Not one of
his best arbitrations. But it meant he now had very few places to search for
the lens.
Sharon could make a single sigh into a comprehensive accusation.
“They’ll teach you Japanese, and we’ll never see you again. What could William
Fort want with you?” “Marriage counseling?” Art said.
Many of the rumors about Fort’s seminars turned out to be true,
which Art found amazing. At San Francisco International he got on a big
powerful private jet with six other men and women, and after takeoff the jet’s
windows, apparently double-polarized, went black, and the door to the cockpit
was closed. Two of Art’s fellow passengers played at orienteering, and after
the jet made several gentle banks left and right, they agreed that they were
headed in some direction between southwest and north. The seven of them shared
information: they were all technical managers or arbitrators from the vast
network of Praxis companies. They had flown in to San Francisco from all over
the world. Some seemed excited to be invited to meet the transnational’s
reclusive founder; others were apprehensive.
Their flight lasted six hours, and the orienteers spent the
descent plotting the outermost limit of their location, a circle that
encompassed Juneau, Hawaii, Mexico City, and Detroit, although it could have
been larger, as Art pointed out, if they were in one of the new air-to-space
jets; perhaps half the Earth or more. When the jet landed and stopped, they
were led through a miniature jetway into a big van with blackened windows, and
a windowless barrier between them and the driver’s seat. Their doors were
locked from the outside.
They were driven for half an hour. Then the van stopped and they
were let out by their driver, an elderly man wearing shorts and a T-shirt advertising
Bali.
They blinked in the sunlight. They were not in Bali. They were in
a small asphalt parking lot surrounded by eucalyptus trees, at the bottom of a
narrow coastal valley. An ocean or very big lake lay to the west about a mile,
just a small wedge of it in sight. A creek drained the valley, and ran into a
lagoon behind a beach. The valley’s side walls were covered with dry grass on
the south side, cactus on the north; the ridges above were dry brown rock.
“Baja?” one of the orienteers guessed. “Ecuador? Australia?”
“San Luis Obispo?” Art said.
Their driver led them on foot down a narrow road to a small
compound, composed of seven two-story wooden buildings, nestled among seacoast
pines at the bottom of the valley. Two buildings by the creek were residences,
and after they dropped their bags in assigned rooms in these buildings, the
driver led them to a dining room in another building, where half a dozen
kitchen workers, all quite elderly, fed them a simple meal of salad and stew.
After that they were taken back to the residences, and left on their own.
They gathered in a central chamber around a wood-burning stove. It
was warm outside, and there was no fire in the stove.
“Fort is a hundred and twelve,” the orienteer named Sam said. “And
the treatments haven’t worked on his brain.”
“They never do,” said Max, the other orienteer.
They discussed Fort for a while. All of them had heard things, for
William Fort was one of the great success stories in the history of medicine,
their century’s Pasteur: the man who beat cancer, as the tabloids inaccurately
put it. The man who beat the common cold. He had founded Praxis at age
twenty-four, to market several breakthrough innovations in antivirals, and he
had been a multi-billionaire by the time he was twenty-seven. After that he had
occupied his time by expanding Praxis into one of the world’s biggest
transnational. Eighty continuous years of metastasizing, as Sam put it. While
mutating personally into a kind of ultra-Howard Hughes, or so it was said,
growing more and more powerful, until like a black hole he had disappeared
completely inside the event horizon of his own power. “I just hope it doesn’t
get too weird,” Max said.
The others attendants—Sally, Amy, Elizabeth, and George— were more
optimistic. But all of them were apprehensive at their peculiar welcome, or
lack of one, and when no one came to visit them through the rest of that
evening, they retired to their rooms looking concerned.
Art slept well as always, and at dawn he woke to the low hoot of
an owl. The creek burbled below his window. It was a gray dawn, the air filled
with the fog that nourished the sea pines. A locking sound came from somewhere
in the compound.
He dressed and went out. Everything was soaking wet. Down on
narrow flat terraces below the buildings were rows of lettuce, and rows of
apple trees so pruned and tied to frameworks that they were no more than
fan-shaped bushes.
Colors were seeping into things when Art came to the bottom of the
little farm, over the lagoon. There a lawn lay spread like a carpet under a big
old oak tree. Art walked over to the tree, feeling drawn to it. He touched its
rough, fissured bark. Then he heard voices; coming up a path by the lagoon were
a line of people, wearing black wetsuits and carrying surfboards, or long
folded birdsuits. As they passed he recognized the faces of the previous
night’s kitchen crew, and also their driver. The driver waved and continued up
the path. Art walked down it to the lagoon. The low sound of waves mumbled
through the salty air, and birds swam in the reeds.
After a while Art went back up the trail, and in the compound’s
dining room he found the elderly workers back in the kitchen, flipping
pancakes. After Art and the rest of the guests had eaten, yesterday’s driver
led them upstairs to a large meeting room. They sat on couches arranged in a
square. Big picture windows in all four walls let in a lot of the morning’s
gray light. The driver sat on a chair between two couches. “I’m William Fort,”
he said. “I’m glad you’re all here.”
He was, on closer inspection, a strange-looking old man; his face
was lined as if by a hundred years of anxiety, but the expression it currently
displayed was serene and detached. A chimp, Art thought, with a past in lab
experimentation, now studying Zen. Or simply a very old surfer or hang-glider,
weathered, bald, round-faced, snub-nosed. Now taking them in one by one. Sam
and Max, who had ignored him as driver and cook, were looking uncomfortable,
but he didn’t seem to notice. “One index,” he said, “for measuring how full the
world is of humans and their activities, is the percent appropriation of the
net product of land-based photosynthesis.”
Sam and Max nodded as if this were the usual way to start a
meeting.
“Can I take notes?” Art asked.
“Please,” Fort said. He gestured at the coffee table in the middle
of the square of couches, which was covered with papers and lecterns. “I want
to play some games later, so there’s lecterns and workpads, whatever you like.”
Most of them had brought their own lecterns, and there was a short
silent scramble as they got them out and running. While they were at it Fort
stood up and began walking in a circle behind their couches, making a
revolution every few sentences.
“We now use about eighty percent of the net primary product of
land-based photosynthesis,” he said. “One hundred percent is probably
impossible to reach, and our long-range carrying capacity has been estimated to
be thirty percent, so we are massively overshot, as they say. We have been
liquidating our natural capital as if it were disposable income, and are
nearing depletion of certain capital stocks, like oil, wood, soil, metals,
fresh water, fish, and animals. This makes continued economic expansion
difficult.”
Difficult! Art wrote. Continued?
“We have to continue,” Fort said, with a piercing glance at Art,
who unobtrusively sheltered his lectern with his arm. “Continuous expansion is
a fundamental tenet of economics. Therefore one of the fundamentals of the
universe itself. Because everything is economics. Physics is cosmic economics,
biology is cellular economics, the humanities are social economics, psychology
is mental economics, and so on.”
His listeners nodded unhappily.
“So everything is expanding. But it can’t happen in contradiction
to the law of conservation of matter-energy. No matter how efficient your
throughput is, you can’t get an output larger than the input.”
Art wrote on his note page, Output larger than input—everything
economics—natural capital—Massively Overshot.
“In response to this situation, a group here in Praxis has been
working on what we call full-world economics.”
“Shouldn’t that be overfull-world?” Art asked.
Fort didn’t appear to hear him. “Now as Daly said, man-made
capital and natural capital are not substitutable. This is obvious, but since
most economists still say they are substitutable, it has to be insisted on. Put
simply, you can’t substitute more sawmills for fewer forests. If you’re
building a house you can juggle the number of power saws and carpenters, which
means they’re substitutable, but you can’t build it with half the amount of
lumber, no matter how many saws or carpenters you have. Try it and you have a
house of air. And that’s where we live now.”
Art shook his head and looked down at his lectern page, which he
had filled again. Resources and capital nonsubstitutable—power saws/carpenters—
house of air.
“Excuse me?” Sam said. “-Did you say natural capital?”
Fort jerked, turned around to look at Sam. “Yes?”
“I thought capital was by definition man-made. The produced means
of production, we were taught to define it.”
“Yes. But in a capitalist world, the word capital has taken on
more and more uses. People talk about human capital, for instance, which is
what labor accumulates through education and work experience. Human capital
differs from the classic kind in that you can’t inherit it, and it can only be
rented, not bought or sold.”
“Unless you count slavery,” Art said.
Fort’s forehead wrinkled. “This concept of natural capital
actually resembles the traditional definition more than human capital. It can
be owned and bequeathed, and divided into renewable and nonrenewable, marketed
and nonmarketed.”
“But if everything is capital of one sort or another,” Amy said,
“you can see why people would think that one kind was substi-tutable for
another kind. If you improve your man-made capital to use less natural capital,
isn’t that a substitution?”
Fort shook his head. “That’s efficiency. .Capital is a quantity of
input, and efficiency is a ratio of output to input. No matter how efficient
capital is, it can’t make something out of nothing.”
“New energy sources ...” Max suggested.
“But we can’t make soil out of electricity. Fusion power and
self-replicating machinery have given us enormous amounts of power, but we have
to have basic stocks to apply that power to. And that’s where we run into a
limit for which there are no substitutions possible.”
Fort stared at them all, still displaying that primate calm that
Art had noted at the beginning. Art glanced at his lectern screen. Natural
capital—human capital—traditional capital—energy vs. matter—electric soil—no
substitutes please—He grimaced and clicked to a new page.
Fort said, “Unfortunately, most economists are still working
within the empty world model of economics.”
“The full-world model seems obvious,” Sally said. “It’s just
common sense. Why would any economist ignore it?”
Fort shrugged, made another silent circumnavigation of the room.
Art’s neck was getting tired.
“We understand the world through paradigms. The change from empty-world
economics to full-world economics is a major paradigm shift. Max Planck once
said that a new paradigm takes over not when it convinces its opponents, but
when its opponents eventually die.”
“And now they aren’t dying,” Art said.
Fort nodded. “The treatments are keeping people around. And a lot
of them have tenure.”
Sally looked disgusted. “Then they’ll have to learn to change
their minds, won’t they.”
Fort stared at her. “We’ll try that right now. In theory at least.
I want you to invent full-world economic strategies. It’s a game I play. If you
plug your lecterns into the table, I can give you the starting data.”
They all leaned forward and plugged into the table.
* * *
The first game Fort wanted to play involved estimating maximum
sustainable human populations. “Doesn’t that depend on assumptions about
lifestyle?” Sam asked.
“We’ll make a whole range of assumptions.”
He wasn’t kidding. They went from scenarios in which Earth’s every
acre of arable land was farmed with maximum efficiency, to scenarios involving
a return to hunting and gathering; from universal conspicuous consumption, to
universal subsistence diets. Their lecterns set the initial conditions and then
they tapped away, looking bored or nervous or impatient or absorbed, using
formulas provided by the table, or else supplying some of their own.
It occupied them until lunch, and then all afternoon. Art enjoyed
games, and he and Amy always finished well ahead of the others. Their results
for a maximum sustainable population ranged from a hundred million (the
“immortal tiger” model, as Fort called it) to thirty billion (the “ant farm”
model).
“That’s a big range,” Sam noted.
Fort nodded, and eyed them patiently.
“But if you look only at models with the most realistic
conditions,” Art said, “you usually get between three and eight billion.”
“And the current population is about twelve billion,” Fort said.
“So, say we’re overshot. Now what do we do about that? We’ve got companies to
run, after all. Business isn’t going to stop because there’s too many people.
Full-wo rid economics isn’t the end of economics, it’s just the end of business
as usual. I want Praxis to be ahead of the curve on this. So. It’s low tide,
and I’m going back out. You’re welcome to join me. Tomorrow we’ll play a game
called Overfull.”
With that he left the room, and they were on their own. They went
back to their rooms, and then, as it was close to dinnertime, to the dining
hall. Fort was not there, but several of his elderly associates from the night
before were; and joining them tonight was a crowd of young men and women, all
of them lean, bright-faced, healthy-looking. They looked like a track club or a
swim team, and more than half were women. Sam’s and Max’s eyebrows shot up and
down in a simple Morse code, spelling “Ah ha! Ah ha!” The young men and women
ignored that and served them dinner, then returned to the kitchen. Art ate
quickly, wondering if Sam and Max were correct in their suppositions. Then he
took his plate into the kitchen and started to help at the dishwasher, and said
to one of the young women, “What brings you here?”
“It’s a kind of scholarship program,” she said. Her name was
Joyce. “We’re all apprentices who joined Praxis last year, and we were selected
to come here for classes.”
“Were you by chance working on full-world economics today?”
“No, volleyball.”
Art went back outside, wishing he had gotten selected to their
program rather than his. He wondered if there was some big hot-tub facility,
down there overlooking the ocean. It did not seem impossible; the ocean here
was cool, and if everything was economics, it could be seen as an investment.
Maintaining the human infrastructure, so to speak.
Back in the residence, his fellow guests were talking the day
over. “I hate this kind of stuff,” said Sam.
“We’re stuck with it,” Max said gloomily. “It’s join a cult or
lose your job.”
The others were not so pessimistic. “Maybe he’s just lonely,” Amy
suggested.
Sam and Max rolled their eyes and glanced toward the kitchen.
“Maybe he always wanted to be a teacher,” Sally said.
“Maybe he wants to keep Praxis growing ten percent per year,”
George said, “full world or not.”
Sam and Max nodded at this, and Elizabeth looked annoyed. “Maybe
he wants to save the world!” she said.
“Right,” Sam said, and Max and George snickered.
“Maybe he’s got this room bugged,” Art said, which cut short the
conversation like a guillotine.
The days that followed were much like the first one. They sat in
the conference room, and Fort circled them and talked through the mornings,
sometimes coherently, sometimes not. One morning he spent three hours talking
about feudalism—how it was the clearest political expression of primate
dominance dynamics, how it had never really gone away, how transnational
capitalism was feudalism writ large, how the aristocracy of the world had to
figure out how to subsume capitalist growth within the steady-state stability
of the feudal model. Another morning he talked about a caloric theory of value
called eco-economics, apparently first worked out by early settlers on Mars;
Sam and Max rolled their eyes at that news, while Fort droned on about Taneev
and Tokareva equations, scribbling illegibly on a drawing board in the corner.
But this pattern didn’t last, because a few days after their
arrival a big swell came in from the south, and Fort canceled their meetings
and spent all his time surfing or skimming over the, waves in a birdsuit, which
was a light broad-winged bodysuit, a flexible fly-by-wire hang glider that
translated the flyer’s muscle movements into the proper semi-rigid
configurations for successful flight. Most of the young scholarship winners
joined him in the air, swooping around like Icaruses, and then dropping in and
planing swiftly over the cushions of air pushed up by every breaking wave, air
surfing just like the pelicans that had invented the sport.
Art went out and thrashed around on a body board, enjoying the
water, which was chill, but not so much as to absolutely require a wetsuit. He
hung out near the break that Joyce surfed, and chatted with her between sets,
and found out that the other ancient kitchen workers were good friends of
Fort’s, veterans of the first years of Praxis’s rise to prominence. The young
scholars referred to them as the Eighteen Immortals. Some of the Eighteen were
based at the camp, while others dropped by for a kind of ongoing reunion,
conferring about problems, advising the current Praxis leadership on policy,
running seminars and classes, and playing in the waves. Those who didn’t care
for the water worked in the gardens.
Art inspected the gardeners closely as he hiked back up to the
compound. They worked in something resembling slow motion, talking to each
other all the while. Currently the main task appeared to be harvesting the
tortured apple bushes.
The south swell subsided, and Fort reconvened Art’s group. One day
the topic was Full-World Business Opportunities, and Art began to see why he
and his six fellows might have been chosen to attend: Amy and George worked in
contraception, Sam and Max in industrial design, Sally and Elizabeth in
agricultural technology, and he himself in resource recovery. They all worked
in full-world businesses already, and in the afternoon’s games they proved
fairly good at designing new ones.
Another day Fort proposed a game in which they solved the
full-world problem by returning to an empty world. They were to suppose the
release of a plague vector that would kill- everyone in the world who had not
had the gerontological treatment. What would the pros and cons of such an
action be?
The group stared at their lecterns, nonplussed. Elizabeth declared
that she wouldn’t play a game based on such a monstrous idea.
“It is a monstrous idea,” Fort agreed. “But that doesn’t make it
impossible. I hear things, you see. Conversations at certain levels. Among the
leadership of the big transnationals, for instance, there are discussions.
Arguments. You hear all kinds of ideas put out quite seriously, including some
like this one. Everyone deplores them, and the subject changes. But no one
claims that they are technically impossible. And some seem to think that they
would solve certain problems that otherwise are unsolvable.”
The group considered this thought unhappily. Art suggested that
agricultural workers would be in short supply.
Fort was looking out at the ocean. “That’s the fundamental problem
with a collapse,” he said thoughtfully. “Once you start one, it’s hard to pick
a point at which one can confidently say it will stop. Let’s go on.”
And they did, rather subdued. They played Population Reduction,
and given the alternative they had just contemplated, went at it with a certain
intensity. Each of them took a turn being Emperor of the World, as Fort put it,
and outlined his or her plan in some detail.
When it was Art’s turn, he said, “I would give everyone alive a
birthright which entitled them to parent three-quarters of a child.”
Everyone laughed, including Fort. But Art persevered. He explained
that every pair of parents would thus have the right to bear a child and a
half; after having one, they could either sell the right to the other half, or
arrange to buy a half from some other couple and go on to have a second child.
Prices for half children would fluctuate in classic supply/demand fashion.
Social consequences would be positive; people who wanted extra children would
have to sacrifice for them, and those who didn’t would have a source of income
to help support the one they had. When populations dropped far enough, the
World Emperor might consider changing the birthright to one child per person, which
would be close to a demographic steady state; but given the longevity
treatment, the three-quarters limit might have to be in effect for a long time.
When Art was done outlining the proposal he looked up from the
notes on his lectern. Everyone was staring at him.
“Three quarters of a child,” Fort repeated with a grin, and
everyone laughed again. “I like that.” The laughter stopped. “It would finally
establish a monetary value for a human life, on the open market. So far the
work done in that area has been sloppy at best. Lifetime incomes and
expenditures and the like.” He sighed and shook his head. “The truth is,
economists cook most of the numbers in the back room. Value isn’t really an
economic calculation. No, I like this. Let’s see if we can estimate how much
the price of a half child would be. I’m sure there would be speculation,
middlemen, a whole market apparatus.”
So they played the three-quarters game for the rest of the
afternoon, getting right down to the commodities market and the plots for soap
operas. When they finished, Fort invited them to a barbecue on the beach.
They went back to their rooms and put on windbreakers, and hiked
down the valley path into the glare of the sunset. On the beach under a dune
was a big bonfire, being tended by some of the young scholars. As they
approached and sat on blankets around the fire, a dozen or so of the Eighteen
Immortals landed out of the air, running across the sand and bringing their
wings slowly down, then unzipping from their suits, and pulling wet hair out of
their eyes, and talking among themselves about the wind. They helped each other
out of the long wings, and stood in their bathing suits goose-pimpled and
shivering: centenarian flyers with wiry arms outstretched to the fire, the
women just as muscular as the men, their faces just as lined by a million years
of squinting into the sun and laughing around the fire. Art watched the way
Fort joked with his old friends, the easy way they toweled each other down.
Secret lives of the rich and famous! They ate hot dogs and drank beer. The
flyers went behind a dune and returned dressed in pants and sweatshirts, happy
to stand by the fire a bit longer, combing out each other’s wet hair. It was a
dusky twilight, and the evening onshore breeze was salty and cold. The big mass
of orange flame danced in the wind, and light and shadow flickered over Fort’s
simian visage. As Sam had said earlier, he didn’t look a day over eighty.
Now he sat among his seven guests, who were sticking together, and
stared into the coals and started talking again. The people on the other side
of the fire continued in their conversations, but Fort’s guests leaned closer
to hear him over the wind and waves and crackling wood, looking a bit lost
without their lecterns in their laps.
“You can’t make people do things,” Fort said. “It’s a matter of
changing ourselves. Then people can see, and choose. In ecology they have what
they call the founder principle. An island population is started by a small
number of settlers, so it has only a small fraction of the genes of the parent
population. That’s the first step toward speciation. Now I think we need a new
species, economically speaking of course. And Praxis itself is the island. The
way we structure it is a kind of engineering of the genes we came to it with.
We have no obligation to abide by the rules as they stand now. We can make a
new species. Not feudal. We’ve got the collective ownership and
decision-making, the policy of constructive action. We’re working toward a
corporate state similar to the civic state they’ve made in Bologna. That’s a
kind of democratic communist island, outperforming the capitalism around it,
and constructing a better way to live. Do you think that kind of democracy is
possible? We’ll have to try playing at that one of these afternoons.”
“Whatever you say,” Sam remarked, which got him a sharp glance
from Fort.
The following morning it was sunny and warm, and Fort decided the
weather was too good to stay indoors. So they returned to the beach and set up
under a big awning near the firepit, among coolers and hammocks strung between
the awning poles. The ocean was a deep bright blue, the waves small but crisp,
and often occupied by wetsuited surfers. Fort sat in one of the hammocks and
lectured on selfishness and altruism, taking his examples from economics,
sociobiology, and bioethics. He concluded that strictly speaking, there was no
such thing as altruism. It was only selfishness taking the long view,
acknowledging the real costs of behavior and making sure to pay them in order
not to run up any long-term debts. A very sound economic practice, in fact, if
properly directed and applied. As he tried to prove by means of the
selfish-altruism games they then played, like Prisoner’s Dilemma, or Tragedy of
the Commons.
The next day they met in the surf camp again, and after a
meandering talk on voluntary simplicity, they played a game Fort called Marcus
Aurelius. Art enjoyed this game as he did all the others, and he played it
well. But each day his lectern notes were getting shorter; for this day they
read, in their entirety, Consumption—appetite—artificial needs—real needs—real
costs—straw beds! Env. Impact = population X appetite X efficiency—in tropics
refrigerators not a luxury—community refrigerators—coldhouses—Sir Thomas More.
That evening the conferees ate alone, and their discussion over
dinner was tired. “I suppose this place is a kind of voluntary simplicity,” Art
remarked.
“Would that include the young scholars?” Max asked. “I don’t see
the Immortals doing very much with them.” “They just like to look,” Sam said.
“When you’re that old ...” “I wonder how long he plans to keep us here,” Max
said. “We’ve only been here a week and it’s already boring.” “I kind of like
it,” Elizabeth said. “It’s relaxing.” Art found that he agreed with her. He was
getting up early; one of the scholars marked every dawn by striking a wooden
block with a big wooden mallet, in a descending interval that drew Art out of
sleep every time: tock…… tock…… tock… tock… tock.. tock. tock tock toc toc
toc-toc-to-to-to-t-t-ttttttt. After that Art went out into gray wet mornings,
full of birdcalls. The sound of the waves was always there, as if invisible
shells were held to his ears. When he walked the trail through the farm he
always found some of the Eighteen Immortals around, chatting as they worked
with hoes or pruning shears, or sat under the big oak tree looking out at the
ocean. Fort was often among them. Art could hike through the hour before
breakfast with the knowledge that he would spend the rest of the day in a warm
room or on a warm beach, talking and playing games. Was that simple? He wasn’t
sure. It was definitely relaxing; he had never spent time like it.
But of course there was more to it than that. It was, as Sam and
Max kept reminding them, a kind of test. They were being judged. The old man
was watching them, and maybe the Eighteen Immortals as well, and the young
scholars too, the “apprentices” who began to look to Art like serious powers,
young hotshots who ran a lot of the day-to-day operations of the compound, and
perhaps of Praxis too, even at its highest levels—in consultation with the
Eighteen, or perhaps not. After listening to Fort ramble, he could see how one
might be inclined to bypass him when it came to practical matters. And the
conversations around the dishwasher sometimes had the tone of siblings
squabbling over how to deal with incapacitated parents…
Anyway, a test: one night Art went over to the kitchen to get a
glass of milk before bed, and passed a small room off the dining hall, where a
number of people, old and young, were watching a videotape of the morning’s
session with Fort. Art went back to his room, deep in thought.
The next morning in the conference room Fort circled the room in
his usual way. “The new opportunities for growth are no longer in growth.”
Sam and Max glanced at each other ever so briefly.
“That’s what all this full-world thinking comes down to. So we’ve
got to identify the new nongrowth growth markets, and get into them. Now recall
that natural capital can be divided into marketable and nonmarketable.
Nonmarketable natural capital is the substrate from which all marketable
capital arises. Given its scarcity and the benefits that it provides, it would
make sense according to standard supply/demand theory to set its price as
infinite. I’m interested in anything that has a theoretically infinite price.
It’s an obvious investment. Essentially it’s infrastructure investment, but at
the most basic biophysical level. Infra-infrastructure, so to speak, or
bioinfrastructure. And that’s what I want Praxis to start doing. We obtain and
rebuild whatever bioinfrastructure has been depleted by liquidation. It’s
long-term investment, but the yields will be fantastic.”
“Isn’t most bioinfrastructure publicly owned?” Art asked.
“Yes. Which means close cooperation with the governments involved.
Praxis’s gross annual product is much larger than most countries’. What we need
to do is find countries with small GNPs and bad CFIs.”
“CFI?” Art said.
“Country Future Index. It’s an alternative to the GNP measurement,
taking into account debt, political stability, environmental health and the
like. A useful cross-check on the GNP, and it helps tag countries that could
use our help. We identify those, go to them and offer them a massive capital
investment, plus political advice, security, whatever they need. In return we
take custody of their bioinfrastructure. We also have access to their labor.
It’s an obvious partnership. I think it will be the coming thing.”
“How do we fit in?” Sam asked, gesturing at the group.
Fort looked at them one by one. “I’m going to give each of you a
different assignment. I’ll want you to keep them confidential. You’ll be
leaving here separately in any case, and going different places. You’ll all be
doing diplomatic work as a Praxis liaison, as well as specific jobs involved
with bioinfrastructure investment. I’ll give you the details in private. Now
let’s take an early lunch, and afterward I’ll meet with you one at a time.”
Diplomatic work! Art wrote in his lectern.
He spent the afternoon wandering around the gardens, looking at
the espaliered apple bushes. Apparently he was not early in the list of
personal appointments with Fort. He shrugged at that. It was a cloudy day, and
the flowers in the garden were wet and vibrant. It would be tough to move back
to his studio under the freeway in San Jose. He wondered what Sharon was doing,
whether she ever thought of him. Sailing with her vice-chairman, no doubt.
It was nearly sunset, and he was about to go back to his room and
get ready for dinner when Fort appeared on the central path. “Ah, there you
are,” he said. “Let’s go down to the oak.”
They sat by the big tree’s trunk. The sun was cutting under the
low clouds, and everything was turning the color of the roses. “You live in a
beautiful place,” Art said.
Fort didn’t appear to hear him. He was looking up at the un-derlit
clouds billowing overhead.
After a few minutes of this contemplation he said, “We want you to
acquire Mars.”
“Acquire Mars,” Art repeated.
“Yes. In the sense that I spoke about this morning. These
national-transnational partnerships are the coming thing, there’s no doubt
about it. The old flag-of-convenience relationships were suggestive, but they
need to be taken further, so that we have more control over our investment. We
did that with Sri Lanka, and we’ve had so much success in our deal there that
the other big transnats are all imitating us, actively recruiting countries in
trouble.”
“But Mars isn’t a country.”
“No. But it is in trouble. When the first elevator crashed, its
economy was shattered. Now the new elevator is in place, and things are ready
to happen. I want Praxis to be ahead of the curve. Of course the other big
investors are all still there too, jockeying for position, and that will only
intensify now that the new elevator is up.”
“Who runs the elevator?”
“A consortium led by Subarashii.”
“Isn’t that a problem?”
“Well, it gives them an edge. But they don’t understand Mars. They
think it’s just a new source of metals. They don’t see the possibilities.”
“The possibilities for…”
“For development! Mars isn’t just an empty world, Randolph— in
economic terms, it’s nearly a nonexistent world. Its bioinfras-tructure has to
be constructed, you see. I mean one could just extract the metals and move on,
which is what Subarashii and the others seem to have in mind. But that’s
treating it like nothing more than a big asteroid. Which is stupid, because its
value as a base of operations, as a planet so to speak, far surpasses the value
of its metals. All its metals together total about twenty trillion dollars, but
the value of a terraformed Mars is more in the neighborhood of two hundred
trillion dollars. That’s about one third of the current Gross World Value, and
even that doesn’t make proper assessment of its scarcity value, if you ask me.
No, Mars is bioinfrastructure investment, just like I was talking about.
Exactly the kind of thing Praxis is looking for.”
“But acquisition ...” Art said. “I mean, what are we talking
about?”
“Not what. Who.”
“Who?”
“The underground.”
“The underground!”
Fort gave him time to think it over. Television, the tabloids, and
the nets were full of tales of,the survivors of 2061, living in underground
shelters in the wild southern hemisphere, led by John Boone and Hiroko Ai,
tunneling everywhere, in contact with aliens, and dead celebrities, and current
world leaders... . Art stared at Fort, a bona fide current world leader,
shocked by the sudden notion that these Pellucidarian fantasies might have some
truth to them. “Does it really exist?”
Fort nodded. “It does. I’m not in full contact with it, you
understand, and I don’t know how extensive it is. But I’m sure that some of the
First Hundred are still alive. You know the Taneev-Tokareva theories I talked
about when you first arrived? Well, those two, and Ursula Kohl, and that whole
biomedical team, they all lived in the Acheron Fin, north of Olympus Mons.
During the war the facility was destroyed. But there were no bodies at the
site. So about six years ago I had a Praxis team go in and rebuild the
facility. When it was done we named it the Acheron Institute, and we left it
empty. Everything is on-line and ready to go, but nothing is happening there,
except for a small annual conference on their eco-economics. And last year,
when the conference was over, one of the cleanup crew found a few pages in a
fax tray. Comments on one of the papers presented. No signature, no source. But
there was some work there that I’m positive was written by Taneev or Tokareva,
or someone very familiar with their work. And I think it was a little hello.”
A very little hello, Art thought. But Fort seemed to read his
mind: “I’ve just gotten an even bigger hello. I don’t know who it is. They’re
being very cautious. But they’re out there.”
Art swallowed. It was big news, if true. “And so you want me to
...”
“I want you to go to Mars. We have a project there that will be
your cover story, salvaging a section of the fallen elevator cable. But while
you’re doing that, I’ll be making arrangements to get you together with this
person who has contacted me. You won’t have to initiate anything. They’ll make
the move, and take you in: But look. In the beginning, I don’t want you to let
them know exactly what you’re trying to do. I want you to go to work on them.
Find out who they are, and how extensive their operation is, and what they
want. And how we might deal with them.”
“So I’ll be a kind of—”
“A kind of diplomat.”
“A kind of spy, I was going to say.”
Fort shrugged. “It depends on who you’-re with. This project has
to remain a secret. I deal with a lot of the other transnat leaders, and
they’re scared people. Perceived threats to the current order often get
attacked quite brutally. And some of them already think Praxis is a threat. So
for the time being there is a hidden arm to Praxis, and this Mars investigation
has to be part of that. So if you join, you join the hidden Praxis. Think you
can do it?”
“I don’t know.”
Fort laughed. “That’s why I chose you for this mission, Randolph.
You seem simple.”
I am simple, Art almost said, and bit his tongue. Instead he said,
“Why me?”
Fort regarded him. “When we acquire a new company, we review its
personnel. I read your record. I thought you might have the makings of a
diplomat.”
“Or a spy.”
“They are often different aspects of the same job.”
Art frowned. “Did you bug my apartment? My old apartment?”
“No.” Fort laughed again. “We don’t do that. People’s records are
enough.”
Art recalled the late-night viewing of one of their sessions.
“That and a session down here,” Fort added. “To get to know you.”
Art considered it. None of the Eighteen wanted this job. Nor the
scholars, perhaps. Of course it was off to Mars, and then into some invisible
world no one knew anything about, maybe for good. Some people might not find it
attractive. But for someone at loose ends, maybe looking for new employment,
maybe with a potential for diplomacy... .
So all this had indeed proved to be a kind of interview process.
For a job he hadn’t even known existed. Mars Acquirer. Mars Acquisition Chief.
Mars Mole. A Spy in the House of Ares. Ambassador to the Mars Underground.
Ambassador to Mars. My oh my, he thought.
“So what do you say?”
“I’ll do it,” Art said.
William Fort
didn’t fool around. The
moment Art agreed to take the Mars assignment, his life speeded up like a video
on fast forward. That night he was back in the sealed van, and then in the
sealed jet, all alone this time, and when he staggered up the jetway it was
dawn in San Francisco.
He went to the Dumpmines office, and made the round of friends and
acquaintances there. Yes, he said again and again, I’ve taken a job on Mars.
Salvaging a bit of the old elevator cable. Only temporary. The pay is good.
I’ll be back.
That afternoon he went home and packed. It took ten minutes. Then
he stood groggily in the empty apartment. There on the stove-top was the frying
pan, the only sign of his former life. He took the frying pan over to his
suitcases, thinking he could fit it in and take it with him. He stopped over
the cases, full and shut. He went back and sat down on the single chair, the
frypan hanging from his hand.
After a while he called Sharon, hoping partly to get her answering
machine, but she was home. “I’m going to Mars,” he croaked. She wouldn’t
believe it. When she believed it she got angry. It was desertion pure and
simple, he was running out on her. But you already threw me out, Art tried to
say, but she had hung up. He left the frying pan on the table, lugged his
suitcases down to the sidewalk. Across the street a public hospital that did
the longevity treatment was surrounded by its usual crowd, people whose turn at
the treatment was supposedly near, camping out in the parking lot to make sure
nothing went awry. The treatments were guaranteed to all U.S. citizens by law,
but the waiting lists for the public facilities were so long that it was a
question whether one would survive to reach one’s turn. Art shook his head at
the sight, and flagged down a pedicab.
He spent his last week on Earth in a motel in Cape Canaveral. It
was a lugubrious farewell, as Canaveral was restricted territory, occupied
chiefly by military police, and service personnel who had extremely bad
attitudes toward the “late lamented,” as they called those waiting for
departure. The daily extravaganza of takeoff only left everyone either
apprehensive or resentful, and in all cases rather deaf. People went around in
the afternoons with ears ringing, repeating, What? What? What? To counteract
the problem most of the locals had earplugs; they would be dropping plates on
one’s restaurant table while talking to people in the kitchen, and suddenly
they’d glance at the clock and take earplugs out of their pocket and stuff them
in their ears, and boom, off would go another Novy Energia booster with two
shuttles strapped to it, causing the whole world to quake like jelly. The late
lamented would rush out into the streets with hands over their ears to get
another preview of their fate, staring up stricken at the biblical pillar of
smoke and the pinpoint of fire arching over the Atlantic. The locals would
stand in place chewing gum, waiting for the time-out to be over. The only time
they showed any interest was one morning when the tides were high and news came
that a group of party-crashers had swum up to the fence surrounding the town
and cut their way inside, where security had chased them to the area of the
day’s launch; it was said some of them had been incinerated by takeoff, and
this was enough to get some of the locals out to watch, as if the pillar of
smoke and fire would look somehow different.
Then one Sunday morning it was Art’s turn. He woke and dressed in
the ill-fitting jumper provided, feeling as if he were dreaming. He got in the
van with another man looking just as stunned as he felt, and they were driven to
the launching compound and identified by retina, fingerprint, voice, and visual
appearance; and then, without ever really having managed to think about what it
all meant, he was led into an elevator and down a short tunnel into a tiny room
where there were eight chairs somewhat like dentist’s chairs, all of them
occupied by round-eyed people, and then he was seated and strapped in and the
door was shut and there was a vibrant roar under him and he was squished, and
then he weighed nothing at all. He was in orbit.
After a while the pilot unbuckled and the passengers did too, and
they went to the two little windows to look out. Black space, blue world, just
like the pictures, but with the startling high resolution of reality. Art
stared down at West Africa and a great wave of nausea rolled through every cell
of him.
He was only just getting the slightest touch of appetite back,
after a timeless interval of space sickness that apparently in the real world
had clocked in at three days, when one of the continuous shuttles came bombing
by, after swinging around Venus and aero-braking into an Earth-Luna orbit just
slow enough to allow the little ferries to catch up to it. Sometime during his
space sickness Art and the other passengers had transferred into one of these
ferries, and when the time was right it blasted off in pursuit of the
continuous shuttle. Its acceleration was even harder than the take-off from
Canaveral, and when it ended Art was reeling, dizzy, and nauseated again. More
weightlessness would have killed him; he groaned at the very thought; but
happily there was a ring in the continuous shuttle that rotated at a speed that
gave some rooms what they called Martian gravity. Art was given a bed in the
health center occupying one of these rooms, and there he stayed. He could not
walk well in the peculiar lightness of Martian g; he hopped and staggered
about, and he still felt bruised internally, and dizzy. But he stayed on just
the right side of nausea, which he was thankful for even though it was not a very
pleasant feeling in itself.
The continuous shuttle was strange. Because of its frequent
aerobraking in the atmospheres of Earth, Venus, and Mars, it had somewhat the
shape of a hammerhead shark. The ring of rotating rooms was located near the
rear of the ship, just ahead of the propulsion center and the ferry docks. The
ring spun, and one walked with head toward the centerline of the ship, feet
pointing down at the stars under the floor.
About a week into their voyage Art decided to give weightlessness
one more try, as the rotating ring was without windows. He went to one of the
transfer chambers for getting from the rotating ring to the nonrotating parts
of the ship; the chambers were on a narrow ring that moved with the g ring, but
could slow.down to match the rest of the ship. The chambers looked just like
freight elevator cars, with doors on both sides; when you got in one and pushed
the right button, it decelerated through a few rotations to a stop, and the far
door opened on the rest of the ship.
So Art tried that. As the car slowed, he began to lose weight, and
his gorge began to rise in an exact correspondence. By the time the far door
opened he was sweating and had somehow launched himself at the ceiling, where
he hurt his wrist catching himself before hitting his head. Pain battled
nausea, and the nausea was winning; it took him a couple of caroms to get to
the control panel and hit the button to get him moving again, and back into the
gravity ring. When the far door closed he settled gently back to the floor, and
in a minute Martian gravity returned, and the door he had come in through
reopened. He bounced gratefully out, suffering no more than the pain of a
sprained wrist. Nausea was far more unpleasant than pain, he reflected—at least
certain levels of pain. He would have to get his outside view over the TVs.
He would not be lonely. Most of the passengers and all of the crew
spent the majority of their time in the gravity ring, which was therefore
fairly crowded, like a full hotel in which most of the guests spent most of
their time in the restaurant and bar. Art had seen and read accounts of the
continuous shuttles that made them seem like flying Monte Carlos, with
permanent residents made up of the rich and bored; a popular vid series had had
just such a setting. Art’s ship, the Ganesh, was not like that. It was clear
that it had been hurtling around the inner solar system for a good long time
now, and always at full capacity; its interiors were getting shabby, and when
restricted to the ring it seemed very small, much smaller than the impression
one had of these kinds of ships from watching history shows about the Ares. But
the First Hundred had lived in about five times as much space as the Ganesh’s g
ring, and the Ganesh carried five hundred passengers.
Flight time, however, was only three months. So Art settled down
and watched TV, concentrating on documentaries about Mars. He ate in the dining
room, which was decorated to look like one of the great ocean liners of the
1920s, and he gambled a bit in the casino, which was decorated to look like one
of the Las Vegas casinos of the 1970s. But mostly he slept and watched TV, the
two activities melting into each other so that he dreamed very lucidly about
Mars, while the documentaries took on a very surreal logic. He saw the famous
videotapes of the Russell-Clayborne debate, and that night dreamed he was
unsuccessfully arguing with Ann Clay-borne, who, just as in the vids, looked
like the farmer’s wife in American Gothic only more gaunt and severe. Another
film, taken by a flying drone, also affected him deeply; the drone had dropped
off the side of one of the big Marineris cliffs, and fallen for nearly a minute
before pulling out and swooping low over the jumbled rock and ice on the canyon
floor. Repeatedly in the following weeks Art dreamed of making that fall
himself, and woke up just before impact. It appeared that parts of his
unconscious mind felt that the decision to go had been a mistake. He shrugged
at this, ate his meals, and practiced his walking. He was biding his time.
Mistake or not, he was committed.
Fort had given him an encryption system, and instructions to
report back on a regular basis, but in transit he found there was very little
to say. Dutifully he sent off a monthly report, each one the same: We’re on our
way. All seems well. There was never any reply.
And then Mars swelled up like an orange thrown at the TV screens,
and soon after that they were there, crushed into their g couches by an
extremely violent aerobraking, and then crushed again in their ferry’s chairs;
but Art came through these flattening decelerations like a veteran, and after a
week in orbit, still rotating, they docked with New Clarke. New Clarke had only
a very small gravity, which barely held people to the floor, and made Mars
appear to be overhead. Art’s space sickness returned. And he had a two-day wait
before his reservation for an elevator ride.
The elevator cars proved to be like slender tall hotels, and they
ran their tightly packed human cargo down toward the planet over a period of
five days, with no gravity to speak of until the last couple of days, when it
got stronger and stronger, until the elevator car slowed and descended gently
into the receiving facility called the Socket, just west of Sheffield on
Pavonis Mons, and the g came to something like the g in the Ganesh’s g ring.
But a week of space sickness had left Art completely devastated, and as the
elevator car opened, and they were guided out into something very like an
airport terminal, he found himself scarcely able to walk, and amazed at how
much nausea decreased one’s desire to live. It was four months to the day since
he had gotten the fax from William Fort.
The trip from the Socket into Sheffield proper was by subway, but
Art would have been too miserable to notice a view even if there had been one.
Wasted and unsteady, he tiptoed bouncily down a tall hallway after someone from
Praxis, and collapsed thankfully on a bed in a small room. Martian g felt
blessedly solid when he was lying down, and after a while he fell asleep.
When he woke he could not remember where he was. He looked around
the little room, completely disoriented, wondering where Sharon had gone and
why their bedroom had gotten so small. Then it came back. He was on Mars.
He groaned and sat up. He felt hot and yet detached from his body,
and everything was pulsing slightly, though the room lights appeared to be
functioning normally. There were drapes covering the wall opposite the door,
and he stood and walked over, and opened them with a single pull.
“Hey!” he cried, leaping back. He woke up a second time, or so it
felt.
It was like the view out an airplane window. Endless open space, a
bruise-colored sky, the sun like a blob of lava; and there far below stretched
a flat rocky plain—flat and round, as it lay at the bottom of an enormous
circular cliff—extremely circular, remarkably circular, in fact, for a natural
feature. It was difficult to estimate how distant the far side of the cliff
was. Features of the cliff were perfectly clear, but structures on the opposite
rim were teensy; what looked like an observatory could have fit on a pin-head.
This, he concluded, was the caldera of Pavonis Mons. They had
landed at Sheffield, so really there could be no doubt about it. Therefore it was
some sixty kilometers across the circle to that observatory, as Art recalled
from his video documentaries, and five kilometers to the floor. And all of it
completely empty, rocky, untouched, primordial—the volcanic rock as bare as if
cooled the week before—nothing at all of humanity in it—no sign of
terra-forming. It must have looked exactly like this to John Boone, a half
century before. And so ... alien. And frig. Art had looked into the calderas of
Etna and Vesuvius, while on vacation from Tehran, and those two craters were
big by Terran standards, but you could have lost a thousand of them in this,
this thing, this hole... .
He closed the drapes and got slowly dressed, his mouth imitating
the shape of the unearthly caldera.
A friendly Praxis guide named Adrienne, tall enough to be a
Martian native but possessing a strong Australian accent, collected him and
took him and half a dozen other new arrivals on a tour of the town. Their rooms
turned out to be on the city’s lowest level, though it wouldn’t be lowest for
long; Sheffield was in the process of burrowing downward these days, to give as
many rooms as possible the view onto the caldera that had so disconcerted Art.
An elevator took them up nearly fifty stories, and let them out in
the lobby of a shiny new office building. They walked out its big revolving
doors and emerged on a wide grassy boulevard, and walked down it past squat
buildings faced with polished stone and big windows, separated by narrow grassy
side streets, and a great number of construction sites, as many buildings were
still in various stages of completion. It was going to be a handsome town, the
buildings mostly three and four stories tall, getting taller as they moved
south, away from the caldera rim. The green streets were crowded with people,
and the occasional small tram running on narrow tracks set in the grass; there
was a general air of bustle and excitement, caused no doubt by the arrival of
the new elevator. A boom town.
The first place Adrienne took them was across a boulevard to the
caldera rim. She led the seven newcomers out into a thin curving park, to the
nearly invisible tenting that encased the town. The transparent fabrics were
held in place by equally transparent geodesic struts, anchored in a chest-high
perimeter wall. “The tenting has to be stronger than usual up here on Pavonis,”
Adrienne told them, “because the atmosphere outside is still extremely thin.
It’ll always be thinner than the lowlands, by a factor of ten.”
She led them out into a viewing blister in the tent wall and,
looking down between their feet, they could see through the blister’s
transparent deck, straight down onto the caldera floor some five kilometers
below them. People exclaimed in delicious fright, and Art bounced on the clear
floor uneasily. The width of the caldera was coming into perspective for him;
the north rim was just about as far away as Mount Tamalpais and the Napa hills
when one descended into the San Jose airport. That was no extraordinary
distance. But the depth below, the depth; over five kilometers, or about twenty
thousand feet. “Quite a hole!” Adrienne said.
Mounted telescopes and display plaques with map drawings enabled
them to spot the previous version of Sheffield, now lying on the caldera floor.
Art had been wrong about the caldera’s untouched primeval nature; an
insignificant pile of cliff-bottom talus, with some shiny dots in it, was in
fact the ruins of the original city.
Adrienne described with great gusto the destruction of the town in
2061. The falling elevator cable had, of course, crushed the suburbs east of
its socket in the very first moments of the fall. But then the cable had
wrapped all the way around the planet, delivering a massive second blow to the
south side of town, a blow which had caused an undiscovered fault in the basalt
rim to give way. About a third of the town had been on the wrong side of this
fault, and had fallen the five kilometers to the caldera floor. The remaining
two-thirds of the town had been knocked flat. Luckily the occupants had mostly evacuated
in the four hours between the detachment of Clarke and the second coming of the
cable, so loss of life had been minimized. But Sheffield had been utterly
destroyed.
For many years after that, Adrienne told them, the site had lain
abandoned, a wreck like so many other towns after the unrest of ‘61. Most of
those other towns had been left in ruins, but Sheffield’s location remained the
ideal place for tethering a space elevator, and when Subarashii began
organizing the in-space construction of a new one in the late 2080s,
construction on the ground had rapidly followed. A detailed areological
investigation had found no other faults in the southern rim, which had
justified rebuilding right on the edge, on the same site as before. Demolition
vehicles had cleared the wreckage of the old town, shoving most of it over the
rim, and leaving only the easternmost section of town, around the old socket,
as a kind of monument to the disaster—also as the central element of a little
tourist industry, which had clearly been an important part of the town’s income
in the fallow years before an elevator had been reinstalled.
Adrienne’s next point on the tour led them out to see this
preserved bit of history. They took a tram to a gate in the east wall of the
tent, and then walked through a clear tube into a smaller tent, which covered
the blasted ruins, the concrete mass of the old cable facility, and the lower
end of the fallen cable. They walked a roped path that had been cleared of
wreckage, staring curiously at the foundations and twisted pipes. It looked
like the results of saturation bombing.
They came to a halt under the butt end of the cable, and Art
observed it with professional interest. The big cylinder of black carbon
filaments looked nearly undamaged by the fall, although admittedly this was the
part that had hit Mars with the least force. The end had jammed down into the
Socket’s big concrete bunker, Adrienne said, then been dragged a couple of
kilometers as the cable had fallen down the eastern slope of Pavonis. That
wasn’t that much of a beating for material designed to withstand the pull of an
asteroid swinging beyond the areosynchronous point.
And so it lay there, as if waiting to be straightened up and put
back in place: cylindrical, two stories high, its black bulk encrusted by steel
tracks and collars and the like. The tent only covered.a hundred meters or so
of it; after that it ran on uncovered, east along the wide rounded plateau of
the rim, until it disappeared over the rim’s outer edge, which formed their
horizon—they could see nothing of the planet below. But out away from the town
they could see better than ever that Pavonis Mons was huge—its rim alone was an
impressive expanse, a doughnut of flat land perhaps thirty kilometers wide,
from the abrupt inner edge of the caldera to the more gradual drop-off down the
volcano’s flanks. Nothing of the rest of Mars could be seen from their vantage
point, so it seemed they stood on a high circular ring world, under a dark
lavender sky.
Just to the south of them, the new Socket was like a titanic
concrete bunker, the new elevator cable rising out of it like an elevator
cable, standing alone as if in some version of the Indian rope trick, thin and
black and straight as a plumb line dropping down from heaven—visible for only a
few tall skyscrapers’ worth of height, at most—and, given the wreckage they
stood in, and the immensity of the volcano’s bare rocky peak, as
fragile-looking as if it were a single carbon nanotube filament, rather than a
bundle of billions of them, and the strongest structure ever made. “This is
weird,” Art said, feeling hollow and unsettled.
After their tour of the ruins, Adrienne took them back to a plaza
cafe in the middle of the new town, where they had lunch. Here they could have
been in the heart of a fashionable district in any town anywhere—it could have
been Houston or Tbilisi or Ottawa, in some neighborhood where a lot of noisy
construction marked a fresh prosperity. When they went back to their rooms, the
subway system was likewise familiar to the eye—and when they got out, the halls
of the Praxis floors were those of a fine hotel. All utterly familiar—so much
so that it was again a shock to walk into his room and look out the window and
see the awesome sight of the caldera—the bare fact of Mars, immense and stony,
seeming to exert a kind of vacuum pull on him through the window. And in fact
if the windowpane were to break the pressure blowout would certainly suck him
immediately into that space; an unlikely eventuality, but the image still gave
him an unpleasant thrill. He closed the drapes.
And after that he kept the drapes closed, and tended to stay on
the side of his room away from the window. In the mornings he dressed and left
the room quickly, and attended orientation meetings run by Adrienne, which were
joined by a score or so of new arrivals. After lunching with some of them, he
spent his afternoons touring the town, working earnestly on his walking skills.
One night he thought to send a coded report off to Fort: On Mars, going through
orientation. Sheffield is a nice town. My room has a view. There was no reply.
Adrienne’s orientation took them to a number of Praxis buildings,
both in Sheffield and up the east rim, to meet people in the transnational’s
Martian operations. Praxis had much more of a presence on Mars than it did in
America. During Art’s afternoon walks he tried to gauge the relative strengths
of the transnationals, just by the little plates on the sides of the buildings.
All the biggest transnats were there—Armscor, Subarashii, Oroco, Mitsubishi,
The 7 Swedes, Shellalco, Gentine, and so on—each occupying a complex of
buildings, or even entire neighborhoods of the town. Clearly they were all
there because of the new elevator, which had made Sheffield once again the most
important city on the planet. They were pouring money into the town, building
submartian subdivisions, and even entire tent suburbs. The sheer wealth of the
transnats was obvious in all the construction—and also, Art thought, in the way
people moved: there were a lot of people bouncing around the streets just as
clumsily as he was, newcomer businessmen or mining engineers or the like,
concentrating with furrowed brow on the act of walking. It was no great trick
to pick out the tall young natives, with their catlike coordination; but they
were in a distinct minority in Sheffield, and Art wondered if that was true
everywhere on Mars.
As for architecture, space under the tent was at a premium, and so
the completed buildings were bulky, often cubical, occupying their lots right
out to the street and right up to the tent. When all the construction was
finished there would only be a network of ten triangular plazas, and the wide
boulevards, and the curving park along the rim, to keep the town from being a
continuous mass of squat skycrapers, faced with polished stone of various
shades of red. It was a city built for business.
And it looked to Art like Praxis was going to get a good share of
that business. Subarashii was the general contractor for the elevator, but
Praxis was supplying the software as they had for the first elevator, and also
some of the cars, and part of the security system. All these allocations, he
learned, had been made by a committee called the United Nations Transitional
Authority, supposedly part of the UN, but controlled by the transnats; and
Praxis had been as aggressive on this committee as any of the others. William
Fort might have been interested in bioinfrastructure, but the ordinary kind was
obviously not outside Praxis’s field of operations; there were Praxis divisions
building water supply systems, train pistes, canyon towns, wind-power
generators, and areother-mal plants. The latter two were widely regarded as
marginal endeavors, as the new orbiting solar collectors and a fusion plant in
Xanthe were turning out so well, not to mention the older generation of
integral fast reactors. But local energy sources were the specialty of the
Praxis subsidiary Power From Below, and so that was what they did, working hard
in the outback.
Praxis’s local salvage subsidiary, the Martian equivalent of
Dumpmines, was called Ouroborous, and like Power From Below it was also fairly
small. In truth, as the Ouroborous people were quick to tell Art when they met
one morning, there was not a large garbage output on Mars; almost everything
was recycled or put to use in creating agricultural soil, so each settlement’s
dump was really more of a holding facility for miscellaneous materials,
awaiting their particular reuse. Ouroborous therefore got its business by
finding and collecting the garbage or sewage that was somehow
recalcitrant—toxic, or orphaned, or simply inconvenient—and then finding ways
to turn it to use.
The Ouroborous team in Sheffield occupied one floor of Praxis’s
downtown skyscraper. The company had gotten its start excavating the the old
town, before the ruins had been so unceremoniously shoved over the side. A man
named Zafir headed the fallen cable salvage project, and he and Adrienne
accompanied Art to the train station, where they got on a local train and took
a short ride around to the east rim, to a line of suburb tents. One of the
tents was the Ouroborous storage facility, and just outside it, among many
other vehicles, was a truly gigantic mobile processing factory, called the
Beast. The Beast made a SuperRathje look like a compact car—it was a building
rather than a vehicle, and almost entirely robotic. Another Beast was already
out processing the cable in west Tharsis, and Art was slated to go out and make
an on-site inspection of it. So Zafir and a couple of technicians showed him
around the inside of the training vehicle, ending up in a wide compartment on
the top floor, where there were living quarters for any humans who might be
visiting.
Zafir was enthusiastic about what the Beast out on west Tharsis
had found. “Of course just recovering the carbon filament and the diamond gel
helixes gives us a basic income stream,” he said. “And we are doing well with
some brecciated exotics metamorphosed in the final hemisphere of the fall. But what
you’ll be interested in are the buckyballs.” Zafir was an expert in these
little carbon geodesic spheres called buckminsterfullerenes, and he waxed
enthusiastic: “Temperatures and pressures in the west Tharsis zone of the fall
turned out to be similar to those used in the arc-reactor-synthesis method of
making fullerenes, and so there’s a hundred-kilometer stretch out there where
the carbon on the bottom side of the cable consists almost entirely of
buckyballs. Mostly sixties, but also some thirties, and a variety of
superbuckies.” And some of the super-buckies had formed with atoms of other
elements trapped inside their carbon cages. These “full fullerenes” were useful
in composite manufacturing, but very expensive to make in the lab because of
the high amounts of energy required. So they were a nice find. “It’s sorting
out the various superbuckies where your ion chromatog-raphy will come in.”
“So I understand,” Art said. He had done work with ion
chro-matography during analyses in Georgia, and this was his ostensible reason
for being sent into the outback. So over the next few days Zafir and some Beast
technicians trained Art in dealing with the Beast, and after these sessions
they had dinner together at a small restaurant in the suburb tent on the east rim.
After sunset they had a great view of Sheffield, some thirty kilometers around
the curve of the rim, glowing in the twilight like a lamp perched on the black
abyss.
As they ate and drank, the conversation seldom turned to the
matter of Art’s project, and, considering it, Art decided that this was
probably a deliberate courtesy on his colleagues’ part. The Beast was fully
self-operating, and though there were some problems to be solved in sorting out
the recently discovered full fullerenes, there must have been local ion
chromatographers who could have done the job. So there was no obvious reason
why Praxis should have sent Art up from Earth to do it, and there had to be
something more to his story. And so the group avoided the topic, saving Art the
embarrassment of lies, or awkward shrugs, or an explicit appeal to
confidentiality.
Art would have been uncomfortable with any of these dodges, so he
appreciated their tact. But it put a certain distance in their conversations.
And he seldom saw the other Praxis newcomers, outside of orientation meetings;
and he didn’t know anyone else in town, or elsewhere on the planet. So he was a
little lonely, and the days passed in an increasing sense of uneasiness, even
oppression. He kept the drapes closed on his window view, and ate in
restaurants away from the rim. It began to feel a bit too much like the weeks
on the Ganesh, which he now understood to have been a miserable time. Sometimes
he had to fend off the feeling that it had been a mistake to come.
And so after their last orientation lecture, at a reception
luncheon in the Praxis building, he drank more than was his custom, and took a
few inhalations from a tall canister of nitrous oxide. Inhalation of
recreational drags was a local custom, fairly big among Martian construction
workers, he had been told, and there were even little canisters of various
gases for sale from dispensers in some public men’s rooms. Certainly the
nitrous added a certain extra bubbly quality to the champagne; it was a nice
combination, like peanuts and beer, or ice cream and apple pie.
Afterward he walked down the streets of Sheffield bouncing
erratically, feeling the nitrous champagne as a kind of antigravita-tional
effect, which, added to the Martian baseline, made him feel altogether too
light. Technically he weighed about forty kilos, but as he walked along it felt
more like five. Very strange, even unpleasant. Like walking on buttered glass.
He nearly ran into a young man, slightly taller than him—a
black-haired youth, as slender as a bird and as graceful, who quickly veered
away from him and then steadied him with a hand to his shoulder, all in one
smooth flow of movement.
The youth looked him in the eye. “Are you Arthur Randolph?”
“Yes,” Art said, surprised. “I am. And who are you?”
“I’m the one who contacted William Fort,” the young man said.
Art stopped abruptly, swaying to get back over his feet. The young
man held him upright with a gentle pressure, his hand hot on Art’s upper arm.
He regarded Art with a direct look, a friendly smile. Perhaps twenty-five, Art
judged, perhaps younger—a handsome youth with brown skin and thick black
eyebrows, and eyes that were slightly Asian, set wide over prominent
cheekbones. An intelligent look, full of curiosity and a kind of magnetic
quality, hard to pin down.
Art took to him instantly, for no reason he could tell. It was
just a feeling. “Call me Art,” he said.
“And I am Nirgal,” the youth said. “Let’s go down to Overlook
Park.”
So Art walked with him down the grassy boulevard to,the park on
the rim. There they strolled the path next to the coping wall, Nirgal helping
Art with his drunken turns by frankly seizing his upper arm and steering him.
His grasp had an electric penetrating quality to it, and was really very warm,
as if the youth had a fever, though there was no sign of it in his dark eyes.
“Why are you here?” Nirgal asked—and his voice, and the look on
his face, made the question into something other than a superficial inquiry.
Art checked his response, thought about it.
“To help,” he said.
“So you will join us?”
Again the youth somehow made it clear that he meant something
different, something fundamental.
And Art said, “Yes. Anytime you like.”
Nirgal smiled, a quick delighted grin that he only partly
overmastered before he said, “Good. Very good. But look, I’m doing this on my
own. Do you understand? There are people who wouldn’t approve. So I want to
slip you in among us, as if it were an accident. That’s okay with you?”
“That’s fine.” Art shook his head, confused. “That’s how I was
planning on doing it anyway.”
Nirgal stopped by the observation bubble, took Art’s hand and held
it. His gaze, so open and unflinching, was contact of another kind. “Good.
Thanks. Just keep doing what you’re doing, then. Go out on your salvage
project, and you’ll be picked up out there. We’ll meet again after that.”
And he was off, walking across the park in the direction of the
trr.m station, moving with the long graceful lope that all the young natives
seemed to have. Art stared after him, trying to remember everything about the
encounter, trying to put his finger on what had made it so charged. Simply the
look on the youth’s face, he decided—not just the unself-conscious intensity
one sometimes saw on the faces of the young, but more—some humorous power. Art remembered
the sudden grin unleashed when Art had said (had promised) that he would join
them. Art grinned himself.
When he got back to his room, he walked right to the window and
opened the drapes. He went over to the table by his bed, and sat and turned on
his lectern, and looked up Nirgal. No person listed by that name. There was a
Nirgal Vallis, between Argyre Basin and Valles Marineris. One of the best
examples of a water-carved channel on the planet, the entry said, long and
sinuous. The word was the Babylonian name for Mars.
Art went back to the window and pressed his nose against the
glass. He looked right down the throat of the thing, into the rocky heart of
the monster itself. Horizontal banding of the curved walls, the broad round
plain so far below, the sharp edge where it met the circular wall—the infinite
shadings of maroon, rust, black, tan, orange, yellow, red—everywhere red, all
the variations of red... . He drank it in, for the first time unafraid. And as
he looked down this enormous coring into the planet, a new feeling leaped into
him to replace the fear, and he shivered and hopped in place, in a little
dance. He could handle the view. He could handle the gravity. He had met a
Martian, a member of the underground, a youth with a strange charisma, and he
would be seeing more of him, more of all of them... . He was on Mars.
And a few days later he was on the west slope of Pavonis Mons,
driving a small rover down a narrow road that paralleled a band of disturbed
volcanic rubble, with what looked like a cog railway track running right down
it. He had sent a final coded message to Fort, telling him that he was taking
off, and had gotten the only reply of his journey so far: Have a nice trip.
The first hour of his drive held what everyone had told him would
be its most spectacular sight: going over the western rim of the caldera, and
starting down the outer slope of the vast volcano. This occurred about sixty
kilometers west of Sheffield. He drove over the southwest edge of the vast rim
plateau, and started downhill, and a horizon appeared very far below, and very
far away—a slightly curved hazy white bar, like the view of Earth as seen from
a space plane’s window—which made sense, as the peak of Pavonis was about
eighty-five thousand feet above Amazonis Planitia. So it was a huge view, the
most forcible reminder possible of the stupendous height of the Tharsis
volcanoes. And he had a great view of Arsia Mons at that moment, in fact, the
southernmost of the three volcanoes lined up on Tharsis, bulking over the
horizon to his left like a neighboring world. And what looked like a black
cloud, over the far horizon to the northwest, could very possibly be Olympus
Mons itself!
So the first day’s drive was all downhill, but Art’s spirits
remained high. “Toto, there is no chance we are in Kansas anymore. We’re
...offto see the wizard! The wonderful wizard of Mars!”
The road paralleled the fall line of the cable. The cable had hit
the west side of Tharsis with a tremendous impact, not as great as during the
final wrap, of course, but enough to create the interesting superbuckies Art
had been sent out to investigate. The Beast he was going down to meet had
already salvaged the cable in this vicinity, however, and the cable was almost
entirely gone; the only thing left of it was a set of old-fashioned-looking
train tracks, with a third cog rail running down the middle. The Beast had made
these tracks out of carbon from the cable, and then used other parts of the
cable, and magnesium from the soil, to make little self-powered cog rail mining
cars, which then carried salvage cargo back up the side of Pavonis to the
Ouroborous facilities in Sheffield. Very neat, Art thought as he watched a
little robot car roll past him in the opposite direction, up the tracks toward the
city. The little train car was black, squat, powered by a simple motor engaging
the cog track, filled with a cargo that was no doubt mostly carbon nanotube
filaments, and capped on top by a big rectangular block of diamond. Art had
heard about this in Sheffield, and so was not surprised to see it. The diamond
had been salvaged from the double helixes strengthening the cable, and the
blocks were actually much less valuable than the carbon filament stored
underneath them— basically a kind of fancy hatch door. But they did look nice.
On the second day of his drive, Art got off the immense cone of
Pavonis, and onto the Tharsis bulge proper. Here the ground was much more
littered than the volcano’s side had been with loose rock, and meteor craters.
And down here, everything was blanketed with a drift of snow and sand, in a mix
that looked like equal shares of both. This was the firn slope of west Tharsis,
an area where storms coming in from the west frequently dumped loads of snow,
which never melted but instead built up year by year, packing down the snow on
the bottom. So far the pack consisted only of crushed snow, called firn, but
after more years of compaction the lowest layers would be ice, and the slopes
glaciers.
Now the slopes were still punctuated by big rocks sticking out of
the firn, and small crater rings, the craters mostly less than a kilometer
across, and looking as fresh as if they had been blasted the day before, except
for the sandy snow now filling them.
When he was still many kilometers away, Art caught sight of the
Beast salvaging the cable. The top of it appeared over the western horizon, and
over the next hour the rest of it reared into view. Out on the vast empty slope
it seemed somewhat smaller than its twin up in East Sheffield, at least until
he drove under its flank, when once again it became clear that it was as big as
a city block. There was even a square hole in the bottom of one side which
looked for all the world like the entrance to a parking garage. Art drove his
rover right at this hole—the Beast was moving at three kilometers a day, so it
was no trick to hit it—and once inside, he drove up a curving ramp, following a
short tunnel into .a lock. There he spoke by radio to the Beast’s AI, and doors
behind his rover slid shut, and in a minute he could simply get out of his car,
and go over to an elevator door, and take an elevator up to the observation
deck.
It did not take long to realize that life inside the Beast was not
the essence of excitement, and after checking in with the Sheffield office, and
taking a look at the ion chromatograph down in the lab, Art went back out in
the rover to have a more extensive look around. This was the way things went
when working the Beast, Zafir assured him; the rovers were like pilot fishes
swimming around a great whale, and though the view from the observation deck
was nice and high, most people ended up spending a good part of their days out
driving around.
So Art did that. The fallen cable out in front of the Beast showed
clearly how much harder it had been coming down here than it had back at the
start of its fall. Here it was buried to perhaps a third of its diameter, and
the cylinder was flattened, and marked by long cracks running along its sides,
revealing its structure, which consisted of bundles of bundles of carbon
nanotube filament, still one of the strongest substances known to materials
science, though apparently the current elevator’s cable material was stronger
yet.
The Beast straddled this wreckage, about four times as tall as the
cable; the charred black semicylinder disappeared into a hole at the front end
of the Beast, from which came a grumbling, low, nearly subsonic vibration. And
then, every day at about two in the afternoon, a door at the back of the Beast
slid open over the tracks always being excreted from the back end of the Beast,
and one of the diamond-capped train cars would roll out, winking in the
sunlight, and glide off toward Pavonis. The trains disappeared over the high
eastern horizon into the apparent “depression” now between him and Pavonis
about ten minutes after emerging from their maker.
After viewing the daily departure, Art would take a drive in the
pilot-fish rover, investigating craters and big isolated boulders, and,
frankly, looking for Nirgal, or rather waiting for him. After a few days of
this, he added the habit of suiting up and taking a walk outside for a few
hours every afternoon, strolling beside the cable or the pilot fish, or hiking
out into the surrounding countryside.
It was odd-looking terrain, not only because of the even
distribution of millions of black rocks, but because the hard blanket of firn
had been sculpted into fantastic shapes by the sandblaster winds: ridges,
boles, hollows, tear-shaped tailings behind every exposed rock, etc.—sastrugi,
these shapes were called. It was fun to walk around among these extravagant
aerodynamic extrusions of reddish snow.
Day after day he did this. The Beast ground slowly westward. He
found that the windswept bare tops of the rocks were often colored by tiny
flakes that were scales of fast lichen, a kind that grew quickly, or at least
quickly for lichen. Art picked up a couple of sample rocks, and took them back
into the Beast, and read about the lichen curiously. These apparently were
engineered cryptoen-dolithic lichens, meaning they lived in rock, and at this
altitude they were living right at the edge of the possible—the article on them
said that over ninety-eight percent of their energy was used simply to stay
alive, with less than two percent going toward reproduction. And this was a big
improvement over the Terran species they had been based on.
More days passed, then weeks; but what could he do? He kept on
collecting lichen. One of the cryptoendoliths he found was the first species to
survive on the Martian surface, the lectern said, and it had been designed by
members of the fabled First Hundred. He broke apart some rocks to have a better
look, and found bands of the lichen growing in the rocks’ outer centimeter:
first a yellow stripe right at the surface, then a blue stripe under that, then
a green one. After that discovery he often stopped on his walks to kneel and
put his faceplate to colored rocks sticking up out of the firn, marveling at
the crusty scales and their intense pale colors— yellows, olives, khaki greens,
forest greens, blacks, grays.
One afternoon he drove the pilot fish far to the north of the
Beast, and got out to hike around and collect samples. When he returned, he
found that the lock door in the side of the pilot fish would not open. “What
the hell?” he said aloud.
It had been so long that he had forgotten that something was
supposed to happen. The happening had taken the form of some kind of electronic
failure, apparently. Assuming that this was the happening, and not ...
something else. He called in over the intercom, and tried every code he knew on
the keypad by the lock door, but nothing had any effect. And since he couldn’t
get back in, he couldn’t turn on the emergency systems. And his helmet’s
intercom had a very limited range—the horizon, in effect—which down here off
Pavonis had shrunk to a Martian closeness, only a few kilometers away in all
directions. The Beast was well over the horizon, and though he could probably
walk to it, there would be a section of the hike where both Beast and pilot
fish would be over the horizon, and himself alone in a suit, with a limited air
supply... .
Suddenly the landscape with its dirty sastrugi took on an alien,
ominous cast, dark even in the bright sunshine. “Well, hell,” Art said, thinking
hard. He was out here, after all, to get picked up by the underground. Nirgal
had said it was going to look like an accident. Of course this was not
necessarily that accident, but whether it was or it wasn’t, panic was not going
to help. Best to make the working assumption that it was a real problem, and go
from there. He could try walking back to the Beast, or he could try getting
into the pilot-fish rover.
He was still thinking things over, and typing at the keypad of the
lock door like a champion speed-typist, when he was tapped hard on the
shoulder. “Aaa!” he shouted, leaping around.
There were two of them, in walkers and scratched old helmets.
Through their faceplates he could see them: a woman with a face like a hawk’s,
who looked like she would be happy to bite him; and a short thin-faced black
man, with gray dreadlocks crowding the border of his faceplate, like the rope
picture frames one sometimes sees in nautical restaurants.
It was the man who had tapped Art on the shoulder. Now he lifted
three fingers, pointing at his wrist console. The intercom band they were
using, no doubt. Art switched it on. “Hey!” he cried, feeling more relieved
than he ought to, considering that this was probably Nirgal’s setup, so that he
had never been in danger. “Hey, I seem to be locked out of my car? Could you
give me a lift?”
They stared at him.
The man’s laugh was scary.
“Welcome to Mars,” he said.
PART
3
------------
---
Long Runout
-----------
Ann Clayborne was driving down the Geneva Spur, stopping every few
switchbacks to get out and take samples from the roadcuts. The Trans-marineris
Highway had been abandoned after ‘61, as it now disappeared under the dirty
river of ice and boulders covering the floor of Co-prates Chasma. The road was
an archaeological relic, a dead end.
But Ann was studying the Geneva Spur. The Spur was the final
extension of a much longer lava dike, most of which was buried in the plateau
to the south. The dike was one of several—the nearby Melas Dorsa, the Felis
Dorsa farther east, the Solis Dorsa farther west—all of them perpendicular to
the Marineris canyons, and all mysterious in their origin. But as the southern
wall of Melas Chasma had receded, by collapse and wind erosion, the hard rock
of one dike had been exposed, and this was the Geneva Spur, which had provided
the Swiss with a perfect ramp to get their road down the canyon wall, and was
now providing Ann with a nicely exposed dike base. It was possible that it and
all its companion dikes had been formed by concentric fissuring resulting from
the rise of Tharsis; but they could also be much older, remnants of a
basin-and-range type spread in the earliest Noachian, when the planet was still
expanding from its own internal heat. Dating the basalt at the foot of the dike
would help answer the question one way or the other.
So she drove a little boulder car slowly down the frost-covered
road. The car’s movement would be quite visible from space, but she didn’t
care. She had driven all over the southern hemisphere in the previous year,
taking no precautions except when approaching one of Coyote’s hidden refuges to
resupply. Nothing had happened.
She reached the bottom of the Spur, only a short distance from the
river of ice and rock that now choked the canyon floor. She got out of the car
and tapped away with a geologist’s hammer at the bottom of the last roadcut.
She kept her back to the immense glacier, and did not think of it. She was
focused on the basalt. The dike rose before her into the sun, a perfect ramp to
the clifftop, some three kilometers above her and fifty kilometers to the
south. On both sides of the Spur the immense southern cliff of Melas Chasma
curved back in huge embayments, then out again to lesser prominences—a slight
point on the distant horizon to the left, and a massive headland some sixty
kilometers to the right, which Ann called Cape Solis.
Long ago Ann had predicted that greatly accelerated erosion would
follow any hydration of the atmosphere, and on both sides of the Spur the cliff
gave indications that she had been right. The embayment between the Geneva Spur
and Cape Solis had always been a deep one, but now several fresh landslides
showed that it was getting deeper fast. Even the freshest scars, however, as
well as all the rest of the fluting and stratification of the cliff, were
dusted with frost. The great wall had the coloration o/Zton or Bryce after a
snowfall—stacked reds, streaked with white.
There was a very low black ridge on the canyon floor a kilometer
or two west of the Geneva Spur, paralleling it. Curious, Ann hiked out to it.
On closer inspection the low ridge, no more than chest high, did indeed appear
to be made of the same basalt as the Spur. She took out her hammer, and knocked
off a sample.
A motion caught her eye and she jerked up to look. Cape Solis was
missing its nose. A red cloud was billowing out from its foot.
Landslide! Instantly she started the timer on her wristpad, then
knocked the binocular hood down over her faceplate, and fiddled with the focus
until the distant headland stood clear in her field of vision. The new rock
exposed by the break was blackish, and looked nearly vertical; a coolingfault
in the dike, perhaps—if it too was a dike. It did look like basalt. And it
looked as if the break had extended the entire height of the cliff, all four
kilometers of it.
The cliff face disappeared in the rising cloud of dust, which
billowed up and out as if a giant bomb had gone off. A distinct boom was
followed by a faint roaring, like distant thunder. She checked her wrist; a
little under four minutes. Speed of sound on Mars was 252 meters per second, so
the distance of sixty kilometers was confirmed. She had seen almost the very
first moment of the fall.
Deep in the embayment a smaller piece of cliff gave way as well,
no doubt triggered by shock waves. But it looked like the merest rockfall
compared to the collapsed headland, which had to be millions of cubic meters of
rock. Fantastic to actually see one of the big landslides—most areologists and
geologists had to rely on explosions, or computer simulations. A few weeks
spent in Valles Marineris would solve that problem for them.
And here it came, rolling over the ground by the edge of the
glacier, a low dark mass topped by a rolling cloud of dust, like time-lapse
film of an approaching thunderhead, sound effects and all. It was really quite
a long way out from the cape. She realized with a start that she was witnessing
a long runout landslide. They were a strange phenomenon, one of the unsolved
puzzles of geology. The great majority of landslides move horizontally less
than twice the distance they fall; but a few very large slides appear to defy
the laws of friction, running horizontally ten times their vertical drop, and
sometimes even twenty or thirty. These were called long runout slides, and no
one knew why they happened. Cape Solis, now, had fallen four kilometers, and so
should have run out no more than eight; but there it was, well across the floor
of Melas, running downcanyon directly at Ann. If it ran only fifteen times its
vertical drop, it would roll right over her, and slam into the Geneva Spur.
She adjusted the focus of her binoculars for the front edge of the
slide, just visible as a dark churning mass under the tumbling dustcloud. She
could feel her hand trembling against her helmet, but other than that she felt
nothing. No fear, no regret—nothing, in fact, but a sense of release. All over
at last, and not her fault. No one could blame her for it. She had always said
that the terraforming would kill her. She laughed briefly, and then squinted,
trying to get a better focus on the front edge of the slide. The earliest
standard hypothesis to explain long runouts had been that the rock was riding
over a layer of air trapped under the fall; but then old long runouts discovered
on Mars and Luna had cast doubts on that notion, and Ann agreed with those who
argued that any air trapped under the rock would quickly diffuse upward. There
had to be some form of lubricant, however, and other forms proposed had
included a layer of molten rock caused by the slide’s friction, acoustic waves
caused by the slide’s noise, or merely the extremely energetic bouncing of the
particles caught on the slide’s bottom. But none of these were very
satisfactory suggestions, and no one knew for sure. She was being approached by
a phenomenological mystery.
Nothing about the mass approaching her under the dustcloud
indicated one theory over another. Certainly it wasn’t glowing like molten
lava, and though it was loud, there was no way of judging whether it was loud
enough to be riding on its own sonic boom. On it came in any case, no matter
what the mechanism. It looked as though she was going to get a chance to
investigate in person, her last act a contribution to geology, lost in the
moment of discovery.
She checked her wrist, and was surprised to see that twenty
minutes had passed already. Long runouts were known to be fast; the Blackhawk
slide in the Mojave was estimated to have traveled at 120 kilometers per hour,
going down a slope of only a couple of degrees. Melas was in general a bit
steeper than that. And indeed the front edge of the slide was closing fast. The
noise was getting louder, like rolling thunder directly overhead. The dustcloud
reared up, blocking out the afternoon sun.
Ann turned and looked out at the great Marineris glacier. She had
almost been killed by it more than once, when it was an aquifer outbreak
flooding down the great canyons. And Frank Chalmers had been killed by it, and
was entombed somewhere in its ice, far downstream. His death had been caused by
her mistake, and the remorse had never left her. It had been a moment of
inattention only, but a mistake nevertheless; and some mistakes you never can
make good.
And then Simon had died too, engulfed in an avalanche of his own white
blood cells. Now it was her turn. The relief was so acute it was painful.
She faced the avalanche. The rock visible at the bottom was
bouncing, it seemed, but not rolling over itself like a broken wave. Apparently
it was indeed riding over some kind of lubricating layer. Geologists had found
nearly intact meadows on top of landslides that had moved many kilometers, so
this was confirmation of something known, but it certainly did look peculiar,
even unreal a low rampart advancing across the land without a rollover, like a
magic trick. The ground under her feet was vibrating, and she found that her
hands were clenched into fists. She thought of Simon, fighting death in his
last hours, and hissed; it seemed wrong to stand there welcoming the end so happily,
she knew he would not approve. As a gesture to his spirit she stepped off the
low lava dike and went down onto one knee behind it. The coarse grain of its
basalt was dull in the brown light. She felt the vibrations, looked up at the
sky. She had done what she could, no one could fault her. Anyway it was foolish
to. think that way; no one would ever know what she did here, not even Simon.
He was gone. And the Simon inside her would never stop harassing her, no matter
what she did. So it was time to rest, and be thankful. The dustdoud rolled over
the low dike, there was a wind—Boom! She was thrown flat by the impact of the
noise, picked up and dragged over the canyon floor, thrown and pummeled by
rock. She was in a dark cloud, on her hands and knees, dust all around her, the
roar of gnashing rock filling everything, the ground tossing underfoot like a
wild thing....
The jostling subsided. She was still on her hands and knees,
feeling the cold rock through her gloves and kneepads. Gusts of wind slowly
cleared the air. She was covered with dust, and small fragments of stone.
Shakily she stood. Her palms and knees hurt, and one kneecap was
numb with cold. Her left wrist felt the stab of a sprain. She walked up to the
low dike, looked over it. The landslide had stopped about thirty meters short
of the dike. The ground in between was littered with rubble, but the edge of
the slide proper was a black wall of pulverized basalt, sloping back at about a
forty-five-degree angle, and twenty or twenty-five meters tall. If she had
stayed standing on the low dike, the impact of the air would have thrown her
down and killed her. “Goddamn you,” she said to Simon.
The northern border of the slide had run out onto the Melas
glacier, melting the ice and mixing with it in a steaming trough of boulders
and mud. The dustdoud made it hard to see much of that. Ann crossed the dike,
walked up to the foot of the slide. The rocks at the bottom of it were still
hot. They seemed no more fractured than the rock higher in the slide. Ann stared
at the new black wall, her ears ringing. Not fair, she thought. Not fair.
She walked back to the Geneva Spur, feeling sick and dazed. The boulder car was still on the dead-end road, dusty but apparently unharmed. For the longest time she could not bear to touch it. She stared back over the long smoking mass of the slide—a black glacier, next to a white one. Finally she opened the lock door and ducked inside. There was no other choice.
Ann drove a
little every day, then
got out and walked over the planet, doing her work doggedly, like an automaton.
To each side of the Tharsis bulge there was a depression. On the
west side was Amazonis Planitia, a low plain reaching deep into the southern
highlands. On the east was the Chryse Trough, a depression that ran from the
Argyre Basin through the Margaritifer Sinus and Chryse Planitia, the deepest
point in the trough. The trough was an average of two kilometers lower than its
surroundings, and all the chaotic terrain on Mars, and most of the ancient
outbreak channels, were located in it.
Ann drove east along the southern rim of Marineris, until she was
between Nirgal Vallis and the Aureum Chaos. She stopped to resupply at the
refuge called Dolmen Tor, which was where Michel and Kasei had taken them at
the end of their retreat down Marineris, in 2061. Seeing the little refuge
again did not affect her; she scarcely remembered it. All her memories were
going away, which she found comforting. She worked at it, in fact,
concentrating on the moment with such intensity that even the moment itself
went away, each instant a burst of light in a fog, like things breaking in her
head.
Certainly the trough predated the chaos and the outbreak channels,
which were no doubt located there because of the trough. The Tharsis bulge had
been a tremendous source of outgassing from the hot center of the planet, all
the radial and concentric fractures around it leaking volatiles out of the hot
center of the planet. Water in the regolith had run downhill, into the
depressions on each side of the bulge. It could be that the depressions were
the direct result of the bulge, simply a matter of the lithosphere bent down on
the outskirts of where it had been pushed up. Or it could be that the mantle
had sunk underneath the depressions, as it had plumed under the bulge. Standard
convection models would support such an idea—the upwelling of the plume had to
go back down somewhere, after all, rolling at its sides and pulling the
lithosphere down after it.
And then, up in the regolith, water had run downhill in its usual
way, pooling in the troughs, until the aquifers burst open, and the surface
over them collapsed: thus tfie outbreak channels, and the chaos. It was a good
working model, plausible and powerful, explaining a lot of features.
So every day Ann drove and then walked, seeking confirmation of
the mantle convection explanation for the Chryse trough, wandering over the
surface of the planet, checking old seismographs and picking away at rocks. It
was hard now to make one’s way north in the trough; the aquifer outbreaks of
2061 nearly blocked the way, leaving only a narrow slot between the eastern end
of the great Marineris glacier and the western side of a smaller glacier that
filled the whole length of Ares Vallis. This slot was the first chance east of
Noctis Labyrinthus to cross the equator without going over ice, and Noctis was
six thousand kilometers away. So a piste and a road had been built in the slot,
and a fairly large tent town established on the rim of Galilaei Crater. South
of Galilaei the narrowest part of the’ slot was only forty kilometers wide, a
zone of navigable plain located between the eastern arm of the Hydaspis Chaos
and the western part of Aram Chaos. It was hard to drive through this zone and
keep the piste and road under the horizons, and Ann drove right on the edge of
Aram Chaos, looking down onto the shattered terrain.
North of Galilaei it was easier. And then she was out of the slot,
and onto Chryse Planitia. This was the heart of the trough, with a
gravitational potential of -0.65; the lightest place on the planet, lighter
even than Hellas and Isidis.
But one day she drove onto the top of a lone hill, and saw that
there was an ice sea out in the middle of Chryse. A long glacier had run down
from Simud Vallis and pooled in the Chryse low point, spreading until it became
an ice sea, covering the land over the horizons to north, northeast, northwest.
She drove slowly around its western shore, then its northern shore. It was some
two hundred kilometers across.
Near the end of one day she stopped her car on a ghost crater rim,
and stared out across the expanse of broken ice. There had been so many
outbreaks in ‘61. It was clear that there had been some good areologists
working for the rebels in those days, finding aquifers and setting off
explosions or reactor meltdowns precisely where the hydrostatic pressures were
the greatest. Using a lot of her own findings, it seemed.
But that was the past, banished now. All that was gone. Here and
now, there was only this ice sea. The old seismographs she had picked up all
had records disturbed by recent temblors from the north, where there should
have been very little activity. Perhaps the melting of the northern polar cap
was causing the lithosphere there to rebound upward, setting off lots of small
marsquakes. But the temblors recorded by the seismographs were discrete
short-period shocks, like explosions rather than marsquakes.-She had studied
her car’s AI screen through many a long evening, mystified.
Every day she drove, then walked. She left the ice sea, and
continued north onto Acidalia.
The great plains of the northern hemisphere were generally
referred to as level, and they certainly were compared to the chaoses, or to
the southern highlands. But still, they were not level like a playing field or
a table top—not even close. There were undulations everywhere, a continuous
up-and-downing of hummocks and hollows, ridges of cracking bedrock, hollows of
fine drifts, great rumpled boulder fields, isolated tors and little sinkholes
... It was unearthly. On Earth, soil would have filled the hollows, and wind
and water and plant life would have worn down the bare hilltops, and then the
whole thing would have been submerged or subducted or worn flat by ice sheets,
or uplifted by tectonic action, everything torn away and rebuilt scores of
times as the eons passed, and always flattened by weather and biota. But these
ancient corrugated plains, their hollows banged out by meteor impact, had not
changed for a billion years. And they were among the youngest surfaces on Mars.
It was a hard thing to drive across such lumpy terrain, and very
easy to get lost when out walking, particularly if one’s car looked just like
all the other boulders scattered about; particularly if one was distracted.
More than once Ann had to find the car by radio signal rather than visual
sighting, and sometimes she walked right up to it before recognizing it—and
then would wake up, or come to, hands shaking in the aftershock of some
forgotten reverie.
The best driving routes were along the low ridges and dikes of
exposed bedrock. If these high basalt roads had connected one to the next, it
would have been easy. But they commonly were broken by transverse faults, at
first no more than line cracks, which then got deeper and wider as one
progressed, in sequences like loaves of sliced bread tipping open, until the
faults gaped and were filled with rubble and fines, and the dike became nothing
but part of a boulder field again.
She continued north, onto Vastitas Borealis. Acidalia, Borealis:
the old names were so strange. She was doing her best never to think, but
during the long hours in the car it was sometimes impossible not to. At those
times it was less dangerous to read than it was to try staying blank. So she
would read randomly in her AI’s library. Often she ended up staring at
areological maps, and one evening at sunset after such a session, she looked
into this matter of Mars’s names.
It turned out most of them came from Giovanni Schiaparelli. On his
telescope maps he had named over a hundred albedo features, most of which were
just as illusory as his canali. But when the astronomers of the 1950s had
regularized a map of the albedo features everyone could agree on—features that
could be photographed—many of Schiaparelli’s names had been retained. It was a
tribute to a certain power he had had, a power evocative if not consistent; he
had been a classical scholar, and a student of biblical astronomy, and among
his names there were Latin, Greek, biblical, and Homeric references, all mixed
together. But he had had a good ear, somehow. One proof of his talent was the
contrast between his maps and the competing Martian maps of the nineteenth
century. A map by an Englishman named Proctor, for instance, had relied on the
sketches of a Reverend William Dawes; and so on Proctor’s Mars, which had no
recognizable relations even to the standard albedo features, there was a Dawes
Continent, a Dawes Ocean, a Dawes Strait, a Dawes Sea, and a Dawes Forked Bay.
Also an Airy Sea, a DeLaRue Ocean, and a Beer Sea. Admittedly this last was a
tribute to a German named Beer, who had drawn a Mars map even worse than
Proctor’s. Still, compared to them Schiaparelli had been a genius.
But not consistent. And there was something wrong in this melange
of references, something dangerous. Mercury’s features were all named after
great artists, Venus’s were named after famous women; they would drive or fly
over those landscapes one day, and feel that they lived in coherent worlds.
Only on Mars did they walk about in a horrendous mishmash of the dreams of the
past, causing who knew what disastrous misapprehensions of the real terrain:
the Lake of the Sun, the Plain of Gold, the Red Sea, Peacock Mountain, the Lake
of the Phoenix, Cimmeria, Arcadia, the Gulf of Pearls, the Gordian Knot, Styx,
Hades, Utopia... .
On the dark dunes of Vastitas Borealis she began to run low on
supplies. Her seismographs showed daily temblors to the east, and she drove
toward them. On her walks outside she studied the garnet sand dunes, and their
layering, which revealed the old climates like tree rings. But snow and high
winds were tearing off the crests of the dunes. The westerlies could be
extremely strong, enough to pick up sheets of large-grained sand and hurl them
against her car. -The sand would always settle in dune formations, as a simple
matter of physics, but the dunes would be picking up the pace of their slow
march around the world, and the record they had made of earlier ages would be
destroyed.
She forced that thought from her mind, and studied the phenomenon
as if there were no new artificial forces disturbing it. She focused on her
work as if clenching her geologist’s hammer, as if breaking apart rocks. The
past was spalled away piece by piece. Leave it behind. She refused to think of
it. But more than once she jerked out of sleep with the image of the long
runout coming at her. And then she was awake for good, sweating and trembling,
faced with the incandescent dawn, the sun blazing like a chunk of burning
sulphur.
Coyote had given her a map of his caches in the north, and now she
came to one buried in a cluster of house-sized boulders. She restocked, leaving
a brief thank-you note. The last itinerary Coyote had given her said he was
going to be dropping by this area sometime soon, but there was no sign of him,
and no use waiting. She drove on.
She drove, she walked. But she couldn’t help it; the memory of the
landslide haunted her. What bothered her was not that she had had a brush with
death, which no doubt had happened many times before, mostly in ways she had
not noticed. It was simply how arbitrary it had been. It had nothing to do with
value or fitness; it was pure contingency. Punctuated equilibrium, without the
equilibrium. Effects did not follow from causes, and one did not get one’s just
desserts. She was the one who had spent too much time outdoors, after all,
taking on far too much radiation; but it was Simon who had died. And she was
the one who had fallen asleep at the wheel; but it was Frank who had died. It
was simply a matter of chance, of accidental survival or erasure.
It was hard to believe natural selection had made any way in such
a universe. There under her feet, in the troughs between the dunes,
archaebacteria were growing on sand grains; but the atmosphere was gaining
oxygen fast, and all the archaebacteria would die out except those that were by
accident underground, away from the oxygen they themselves had respired, the
oxygen that was poisonous to them. Natural selection or accident? You stood,
breathing gases, while death rushed toward you—and were covered by boulders,
and died, or covered by dust, and lived. And nothing you did mattered in that
great either-or. Nothing you did mattered. One aftemo.on, reading randomly in
the AI to distract herself between her return to the car and her dinner hour,
she learned that the Czarist police had taken Dostoyevsky out to be executed,
and only brought him back in after several hours of waiting for his turn. Ann
finished reading about this incident and sat in the driver’s seat of her car,
feet on the dash, staring at the screen blindly. Another garish sunset poured
through the window over her, the sun weirdly large and bright in the thickening
atmosphere. Dostoyevsky had been changed for life, the writer declared in the
easy omniscience of biography. An epileptic, prone to violence, prone to
despair. He hadn’t been able to integrate the experience. Perpetually angry.
Fearful. Possessed.
Ann shook her head and laughed, angry at the idiot writer, who
simply didn’t understand. Of course you didn’t integrate the experience. It was
meaninglessness. The experience that couldn’t be integrated.
The next day a tower poked over the horizon. She stopped the car,
stared at it through the car’s telescope. There was a lot of ground mist behind
it.-The temblors registering on her seismograph were very strong now, and
appeared to be coming from a bit to the north. She even felt one of them
herself, which, given the car’s shock absorbers, meant they were strong indeed.
It seemed likely there was a connection with the tower.
She got out of her car. It was almost sunset, the sky a great arch
of violent colors, the sun low in the hazy west. The light would be behind
heir, making her very hard to see. She wound between dunes, then carefully made
her way to the crest of one, and crawled the final meters of the way, and
looked over the crest at the tower, now only a kilometer to the east. When she
saw how close its base was she kept her chin right on the ground, among ejecta
the size of her helmet.
It was some kind of mobile drilling operation, a big one. The
massive base was flanked by giant caterpillar tracks, like those used to move
the largest rockets around a spaceport. The drill tower rose out of this
behemoth more than sixty meters, and the base and lower part of the tower
clearly contained the technicians’ housing and equipment and supplies.
Beyond this thing, a short distance down a gentle slope to the
north, was a sea of ice. Immediately north of the drill, the crests of the
great barchan dunes still stuck out of the ice—first as a bumpy beach, then as
hundreds of crescent islands. But a couple of kilometers out the dune crests
disappeared, and it was ice only.
The ice was pure, clean—translucent purple under the sunset
sky—clearer than any ice she had ever seen on the Martian surface, and smooth,
not broken like all the glaciers. It was steaming faintly, the frost steam
whipping east on the wind. And out on it, looking like ants, people in walkers
and helmets were ice-skating.
It came clear the moment she saw the ice. Long ago she herself had
confirmed the big impact hypothesis, which accounted for the dichotomy between
the hemispheres: the low smooth northern hemisphere was simply a superhuge
impact basin, the result of a scarcely imaginable collision in the Noachian,
between Mars and a planetesimal nearly as big as it. The rock of the impact
body that had not vaporized had become part of Mars itself, and there were
arguments in the literature that the irregular movements in the mantle that had
caused the Tharsis bulge were late developments resulting from perturbations
originating with the impact. To Ann that wasn’t likely, but what was clear was
that the great crash had happened, wiping out the surface of the entire
northern hemisphere, and lowering it by an average of four kilometers relative
to the south. An astonishing hit, but that was the Noachian. An impact of
similar magnitude had in all probability caused the birth of Luna out of Earth.
In fact there were some anti-impact holdouts arguing that if Mars had been hit
as hard, it should have had a moon as big.
But now, as she lay flat looking at. the giant drilling rig, the
point was that the northern hemisphere was even lower than it first appeared,
for its floor of bedrock was amazingly deep, as much as five kilometers beneath
the surface of the dunes. The impact had blown that deep, and then the
depression had mostly refilled, with a mixture of ejecta from the big impact,
windblown sand and fines, later impact material, erosional material sliding
down the slope of the Great Escarpment, and water. Yes, water, finding the
lowest point as it always did; the water in the annual frost hood, and the
ancient aquifer outbreaks, and the outgassing from the blistered bedrock, and
the lensing from the polar cap, had all eventually migrated to this deep zone,
and combined to form a truly enormous underground reservoir, an ice and liquid
pool that extended in a band all the way around the planet, underlying almost
everything north of 60° north latitude, except, ironically, for a bedrock
island on which the polar cap itself stood.
Ann herself had discovered this underground sea many years before,
and by her estimates between sixty and seventy percent of all the water on Mars
was down there. It was, in fact, the Oceanus Borealis that some terraformers
talked about—but buried, deeply buried, and mostly frozen, and mixed with
regolith and dense fines; a permafrost ocean, with some liquid down on the
deepest bedrock. All locked down there for good, or so she had thought, because
no matter how much heat the terraformers applied to the planet’s surface, the
permafrost ocean would not thaw much faster than a meter per millennium—and
even when it did melt it would remain underground, simply as a matter of gravity.
Thus the drilling rig before her. They were mining the water.
Mining the liquid aquifers directly, and also melting the permafrost with
explosives, probably nuclear explosives, and then collecting the melt and
pumping it onto the surface. The weight of the overlying regolith would help
push the water up through pipes. The weight of water on the surface would help
push up more. If there were very many drilling rigs like this one, they could
put a tremendous amount on the surface. Eventually they would have a shallow
sea. It would re-freeze and become an ice sea again for a while, but between
atmospheric warming, sunlight, bacterial action, increasing winds—it would melt
again, eventually. And then there would be an Oceanus Borealis. And the old Vastitas
Borealis, with its world-wrapping black garnet dunes, would be sea bottom.
Drowned.
She walked back to her car in the twilight, moving clumsily. It
was difficult to operate the locks, to get her helmet off. Inside she sat
before the microwave without moving for more than an hour, images flitting
through her mind. Ants burning under a magnifying glass, an anthill drowned
behind a mud dam... . She had thought that nothing could reach her anymore in
this pre-posthumous existence she was living—but her hands trembled, and she
could not face the rice and salmon cooling in the microwave. Red Mars was gone.
Her stomach was a small stone in her body. In the random flux of universal
contingency, nothing mattered; and yet, and yet... .
She drove away. She couldn’t think of anything else to do. She
returned south, driving up the low slopes, past Chryse and its little ice sea.
It would be a bay of the larger ocean, eventually. She focused on her work, or
tried. She fought to see nothing but rock, to think like a stone.
One day she drove over a plain of small black boulders. The plain
was smoother than usual, the horizon its usual five kilometers away, familiar
from Underhill and all the rest of the lowlands. A little world, and completely
filled with small black boulders, like fossil balls from various sports, only
all black, and all faceted to one extent or another. They were ventifacts.
She got out of the car to walk around and look. The rocks drew her
on. She walked a long way west.
A front of low clouds rolled over the horizon, and she could feel
the wind pushing at her in gusts. In the premature dark of the suddenly stormy
afternoon, the boulder field took on a weird beauty; she stood in a slab of dim
air, rushing between two planes of lumpy blackness.
The boulders were basalt rocks, which had been scoured by the
winds on one exposed surface, until that surface had been scraped flat. Perhaps
a million years for that first scraping. And then the underlying clays had been
blown away, or a rare marsquake had shaken the region, and the rock had shifted
to a new position, exposing a different surface. And the process had begun
again. A new facet would be slowly scraped flat by the ceaseless brushing of
micron-sized abrasives, until once again the rock’s equilibrium changed, or
another rock bumped it, or something else shifted it from its position. And
then it would start again. Every boulder in that field, shifting every million
years or so, and then lying still under the wind for day after day, year after
year. So that there were einkanters with single facets, and dreikanters with
three facets— fierkanters, funfkanters—all the way up to nearly perfect
hexahedrons, octahedrons, dodecahedrons. Ventifacts. Ann hefted one after
another of them, thinking about how many years their planed sides represented,
wondering whether her mind might not reveal similar scourings, big sections
worn flat by time.
It began to snow. First swirling flakes, then big soft blobs,
pouring down on the wind. It was relatively warm out, and the snow was slushy,
then sleety, then an ugly mix of hail and wet snow, all flailing down in a hard
wind. As the storm progessed, the snow became very dirty; apparently it had
been pushed up and down in the atmosphere for a long time, collecting fines and
dust and smoke particulates, and crystallizing more moisture and then flying up
on another updraft in the thunderhead to do it again, until what came down was
nearly black. Black snow. And then it was a kind of frozen mud that was
falling, filling in the holes and gaps between the ventifacts, coating their
tops, then dropping off their sides, as the keening wind caused a million
little avalanches. Ann staggered aimlessly, pointlessly, until she twisted an
ankle and stopped, her breath racking in and out of her, a rock clutched in
each cold gloved hand. She understood that the long runout was running still.
And mud snow pelted down out of the black air, burying the plain.
But nothing
lasts, not even
stone, not even despair.
Ann got back to her car, she didn’t know how or why. She drove a
little every day, and without consciously intending to, came back to Coyote’s
cache. She stayed there for a week, walking over the dunes and mumbling her
food.
Then one day: “Ann, di da do?”
She only understood the word Ann. Shocked at the return of her
glossolalia, she put both hands to the radio speaker, and tried to talk.
Nothing came out but a choking sound.
“Ann, di da do?”
It was a question.
“Ann,” she said, as if vomiting.
Ten minutes later he was in her car, reaching up to give her a
hug. “How long have you been here?”
“Not... not long.”
They sat. She collected herself. It was like thinking, it was
thinking out loud. Surely she still thought in words.
Coyote talked on, perhaps a bit slower than usual, eyeing her
closely.
She asked him about the ice-drilling rig.
“Ah. I wondered if you would run across one of those.”
“How many are there?”
“Fifty.”
Coyote saw her expression, and nodded briefly. He was eating
voraciously, and it occurred to her that he had arrived at the cache empty.
“They’re putting a lot of money into these big projects. The new elevator,
these water rigs, nitrogen from Titan ... a big mirror out there between us and
the sun, to put more light on us. Have you heard of that?”
She tried to collect herself. Fifty. Ah, God... .
It made her mad. She had been angry at the planet, for not giving
her her release. For frightening her, but not backing it up with action. But
this was different, a different kind of anger. And now as she sat watching
Coyote eat, thinking about the inundation of Vastitas Borealis, she could feel
that anger contracting inside her, like a prestellar dustcloud, contracting
until it collapsed and ignited. Hot fury—it was painful to feel it. And yet it
was the same old thing, anger at the terraforming. That old burnt emotion that
had gone nova in the early years, now coalescing and going off again; she
didn’t want it, she really didn’t. But dammit, the planet was melting under her
feet. Disintegrating. Reduced to mush in some Terran cartel’s mining venture.
Something ought to be done.
And really she had to do something, if only just to fill the hours
that she had to fill before some accident had mercy on her. Something to occupy
the preposthumous hours. Zombie vengeance— well, why not? Prone to violence,
prone to despair... .
“Who’s building them?” she asked.
“Mostly Consolidated. There’s factories building them at Mar-eotis
and Bradbury Point.” Coyote wolfed down food for a while more, then eyed her.
“You don’t like it.”
“No.”
“Would you like to stop it?”
She didn’t reply.
Coyote seemed to understand. “I don’t mean stop the whole
terraforming effort. But there are things that can be done. Blow up the
factories.”
“They’ll just rebuild them.”
“You never can tell. It would slow them down. It might buy enough
time for something to happen on a more global scale.”
“Reds, you mean.”
“Yes. I think people would call them Reds.”
Ann shook her head. “They don’t need me.”
“No. But maybe you need them, eh? And you’re a hero to them, you
know. You would mean more to them than just another body.”
Ann’s mind had gone blank again. Reds—she had never believed in
them, never believed that mode of resistance would work. But now—well, even if
it wouldn’t work, it might be better than doing nothing. Poke them in the eye
with a stick!
And if it did work... .
“Let me think about it.”
They talked about other things. Suddenly Ann was hit by a wall of
fatigue, which was strange as she had spent so much time doing nothing. But
there it was. Talking was exhausting work, she wasn’t used to it. And Coyote
was a hard man to talk to.
“You should go to bed,” he said, breaking off his monologue. “You
look tired. Your hands—” He helped her up. She lay down on a bed, in her
clothes. Coyote pulled a blanket over her. “You’re tired. I wonder if it isn’t
time for another longevity treatment for you, old girl.”
“I’m not going to take them anymore.”
“No! Well, you surprise me. But sleep, now. Sleep.”
She caravaned with Coyote back south, and in the evenings they ate
together, and he told her about the Reds. It was a loose grouping, rather than
any rigidly organized movement. Like the underground itself. She knew several
of the founders: Ivana, and Gene and Raul from the farm team, who had ended up
disagreeing with Hiroko’s areophany and its insistence on viriditas; Kasei and
Dao and several of the Zygote ectogenes; a lot of Arkady’s followers, who had
come down from Phobos and then clashed with Arkady over the value of
terraforming to the revolution. A good many Bogdanovists, including Steve and Marian,
had become Reds in the years since 2061, as had followers of the biologist
Schnelling, and some radical Japanese nisei and sansei from Sabishii, and Arabs
who wanted Mars to stay Arabian forever, and escaped prisoners from Korolyov,
and so on. A bunch of radicals. Not really her type, Ann thought, feeling a
residual sensation that her objection to terraforming was a rational scientific
thing. Or at least a defensible ethical or aesthetic position. But then the
anger burned through her again in a flash, and she shook her head, disgusted at
herself.
Who was she to judge the ethics of the Reds? At least they had
expressed their anger, they had lashed out. Probably they felt better, even if
they hadn’t accomplished anything. And maybe they had accomplished something,
at least in years past, before the ter-raforming had entered this new phase of
transnat gigantism.
Coyote maintained that the Reds had considerably slowed
ter-raforming. Some of them had even kept records to try to quantify the
difference they had made. There was also, he said, a growing movement among
some of the Reds to acknowledge reality and admit that terraforming was going
to happen, but to work up policy papers advocating various kinds of
least-impact terraforming. “There are some very detailed proposals for a
largely carbon dioxide atmosphere, warm but water-poor, which would support
plant life, and people with facemasks, but not wrench the world into a Terran
model. It’s very interesting. There are also several proposals for what they call
ecopoesis, or areobiospheres. Worlds in which the low altitudes are arctic, and
just barely livable for us, while the higher altitudes remain above the bulk of
the atmosphere, and thus in a natural state, or close to it. The calderas of
the four big volcanoes would stay especially pure in such a world, or so they
say.”
Ann doubted most of these proposals were achievable, or would have
the effects predicted. But Coyote’s accounts intrigued her nevertheless. He was
a strong supporter of all Red efforts, apparently, and he had been a big help
to them from the start, giving them aid from the underground refuges,
connecting them up with each other, and helping them to build their own
refuges, which were chiefly in the mesas and fretted terrain of the Great Escarpment,
where they remained close to the terraforming action, and could therefore
interfere with it more easily. Yes—Coyote was a Red, or at least a sympathizer.
“Really I’m nothing. An old anarchist. I suppose you could call me a Boonean,
now, in that I believe in incorporating anything and everything that will help
make a free Mars. Sometimes I think the argument that a human-viable surface
helps the revolution is a good one. Other times not. Anyway the Reds are such a
great guerrilla pool. And I take their point that we’re not here to, you know,
reproduce Canada, for God’s sake! So I help. I’m good at hiding, and I like
it.”
Ann nodded.
“So do you want to join them? Or at least meet them?”
“I’ll think about it.”
* * *
Her focus on rock was shattered. Now she could not help noticing
how many signs of life there were on the land. In the southern tens and
twenties, ice from the outbreak glaciers was melting during summer afternoons,
and the cold water was flowing downhill, cutting the land in new primitive watersheds,
and turning talus slopes into what ecologists called fellfields, those rocky
patches that were the first living communities after ice receded, their living
component made of algae and lichens and moss. Sandy regolith, infected by the
water and microbacteria flowing through it, became fellfield with shocking
speed, she found, and the fragile landforms were quickly destroyed. Much of the
regolith on Mars had been superarid, so arid that when water touched it there
were powerful chemical reactions—lots of hydrogen peroxide release, and salt
crystallizations—in essence the ground disintegrated, flowing away in sandy
muds that only set downstream, in loose terraces called solifluction rims, and
in frosty new proto-fellfields. Features were disappearing. The land was
melting. After one long day’s drive through terrain altered like this, Ann said
to Coyote, “Maybe I will talk to them.”
But first they returned to Zygote, or Gamete, where Coyote had
some business. Ann stayed in Peter’s room, as he was gone, and the room she had
shared with Simon had been put to other uses. She wouldn’t have stayed in it
anyway. Peter’s room was under Harmakhis’s, a round bamboo segment containing a
desk, a chair, a crescent mattress on the floor, and a window looking out at
the lake. Everything was the same but different in Gamete, and despite the
years she had spent visiting Zygote regularly, she felt no connection with any
of it. It was hard, in fact, to remember what Zygote had been like. She didn’t
want to remember, she practiced forgetting assiduously; any-time some image
from the past came to her, she would jump up and do something that required
concentration, studying rock samples or seismograph readouts, or cooking
complex meals, or going out to play with the kids—until the image had faded,
and the past was banished. With practice one could dodge the past almost
entirely.
One evening Coyote stuck his head in the door of Peter’s room.
“Did you know Peter is a Red too?”
“What?”
“He is. But he works on his own, in space mostly. I think that his
ride down from the elevator gave him a taste for it.”
“My God,” she said, disgusted. That was another random accident;
by all rights Peter should have died when the elevator fell. What were the
chances of a spaceship floating by and spotting him, alone in areosynchronous
orbit? No, it was ridiculous. Nothing existed but contingency.
But still she was angry.
She went to sleep upset by these thoughts, and once in her uneasy
slumber she had a dream in which she and Simon were walking through the most
spectacular part of Candor Chasma, on that first trip they had taken together,
when everything was immaculate, and nothing had changed for a billion years—the
first humans to walk in that vast gorge of layered terrain and immense walls. Simon
had loved it just as much as she had, and he was so silent, so absorbed in the
reality of rock and sky—there was no better companion for such glorious
contemplation. Then in the dream one of the giant canyon walls started to
collapse, and Simon said, “Long runout,” and she woke up instantly, sweating.
She dressed and left Peter’s rooms and went out into the little
mesocosm under the dome, with its white lake and the krummholz on the low
dunes. Hiroko was such a strange genius, to conceive such a place and then
convince so many others to join her in it. To conceive so many children,
without the fathers’ permission, without controls over the genetic
manipulations. It was a form of insanity, really, divine or not.
There along the icy strand of their little lake came a group of
Hiroko’s brood. They couldn’t be called kids anymore, the youngest were fifteen
or sixteen Terran years old, the oldest—well, the oldest were out scattered
over the world; Kasei was probably fifty by now, and his daughter Jackie nearly
twenty-five, a graduate of the new university in Sabishii, active in demimonde
politics. That group of ectogenes were back in Gamete on a visit, like Ann
herself. There they were, coming along the beach. Jackie was leading the group,
a tall graceful black-haired young woman, quite beautiful and imperious, the
leader of her generation no doubt. Unless it might be the cheery Nirgal, or the
brooding Dao. But Jackie led them—Dao followed her with doggy loyalty, and even
Nirgal kept an eye on her. Simon had loved Nirgal, and Peter did too, and Ann
could see why; he was the only one among Hiroko’s gang of ectogenes who did not
put her off. The rest cavorted in their self-absorption, kings and queens of
their little world, but Nirgal had left Zygote soon after Simon’s death, and
had hardly ever come back. He had studied in Sabishii, which was what had given
Jackie the idea, and now he spent most of his time in Sabishii, or out with
Coyote or Peter, or visiting the cities of the north. So was he too a Red?
Impossible to say. But he was interested in everything, aware of everything,
running around everywhere, a kind of young male Hiroko if such a creature was
possible, but less strange than Hiroko, more engaged with other people; more
human. Ann had never in her life managed to have a normal conversation with
Hiroko, who seemed an alien consciousness, with entirely different meanings for
all the words in thelanguage, and, despite her brilliance at ecosystem design,
not really a scientist at all, but rather some kind of prophet. Nirgal on the
other hand seemed intuitively to strike right to the heart of whatever was most
important to the person he was talking to—and he focused on that, and asked
question after question, curious, assimilative, sympathetic. As Ann watched him
trailing Jackie down the strand, running here and there, she recalled how
slowly and carefully he had walked at Simon’s side. How he had looked so
frightened that last night, when Hiroko in her peculiar way had brought him in
to say good-bye. All that business had been a cruel thing to subject a boy to,
but Ann hadn’t objected at the time; she had been desperate, ready to try
anything. Another mistake she could never repair.
She stared at the blond sand underfoot, upset, until the ectogenes
had passed. It was a shame Nirgal was so hooked by Jackie, who cared so little
for him. Jackie was a remarkable woman in her way, but much too much like
Maya—moody and manipulative, fixated on no man, except, perhaps, for Peter—who
luckily (although it had not seemed so at the time) had had an affair with
Jackie’s mother, and was not the least bit interested in Jackie herself. A
messy business that, and Peter and Kasei were still estranged by it, and Esther
had never been back. Not Peter’s finest hour. And its effects on Jackie ... Oh
yes, there would be effects (there, watch out—some black blank, there in her
own deep past) yes, on and on and on it went, all their sordid little lives,
repeating themselves in their meaningless rounds... .
She tried to concentrate on the composition of the sand grains.
Blond was not really a usual color for sand on Mars. A very rare
granitic stuff. She wondered if Hiroko had hunted for it, or else gotten lucky.
The ectogenes were gone, down by the other side of the lake. She
was alone on the beach. Simon somewhere underneath her. It was hard to keep
from connecting with any of that.
A man came walking over the dunes toward her. He was short, and at
first she thought it was Sax, then Coyote, but he wasn’t either of these. He
hesitated when he saw her, and by that motion she saw that it was indeed Sax.
But a Sax greatly altered in appearance. Vlad and Ursula had been doing some
cosmetic surgery on his face, enough so that he didn’t look like the old Sax.
He was going to move to Burroughs, and join a biotech company there, using a
Swiss passport and one of Coyote’s viral identities. Getting back into the
terraforming effort. She looked out at the water. He came over and tried to
talk to her, strangely un-Saxlike, nicer-looking now, a handsome old coot; but
it was still the old Sax, and her anger filled her up so much that she could
hardly think, hardly remember what they were talking about from one second to
the next. “You really do look different,” was all she could recall. Inanities
like that. Looking at him she thought, He will never change. But there was
something frightening about the stricken look on his new face, something deadly
that it would evoke, if she did not stop it ... and so she argued with him
until he grimaced one last time, and went away.
She sat there for a long time, getting colder and more distraught.
Finally she put her head on her knees, and fell into a kind of sleep.
She had a dream. All the First Hundred were standing around her,
the living and the dead, Sax at their center with his old face, and that
dangerous new look of distress. He said, “Net gain in complexity.”
Vlad and Ursula said, “Net gain in health.”
Hiroko said, “Net gain in beauty.”
Nadia said, “Net gain in goodness.”
Maya said, “Net gain in emotional intensity,” and behind her John
and Frank rolled their eyes.
Arkady said, “Net gain in freedom.”
Michel said, “Net gain in understanding.”
From the back Frank said, “Net gain in power,” and John elbowed
him and cried, “Net gain in happiness!”
And then they all stared at Ann. And she stood up, quivering with
rage and fear, understanding that she alone among them did not believe in the
possibility of the net gain of anything at all, that she was some kind of crazy
reactionary; and all she could do was point a shaking finger at them and say,
“Mars. Mars. Mars.”
That night after supper, and the evening in the big meeting room,
Ann got Coyote alone and said, “When do you go out again?”
“In a few days.”
“Are you still willing to introduce me to those people you talked
about?”
“Yeah, sure.” He looked at her with his head cocked. “It’s where
you belong.”
She only nodded. She looked around the common room, thinking,
Good-bye, good-bye. Good riddance.
A week later she was flying with Coyote in an ultralight plane.
They flew north through the nights, into the equatorial region, then onward to
the Great Escarpment, to the Deuteronilus Mensae north of Xanthe—wild fretted
terrain, the mensae like an archipelago of stack islands, dotting a sand sea.
They would become a real archipelago, Ann thought as Coyote descended between
two of the stacks, if the pumping to the north continued.
Coyote landed on a short
stretch of dusty sand, and taxied into a hangar cut into the side of one of the
mesas. Out of the plane they were greeted by Steve and Ivana and a few others,
and taken up in an elevator to a floor just under the top of the mesa. The
northern end of this particular mesa came to a sharp rocky point, and high in
this point a large triangular meeting room had been excavated. On entering it
Ann stopped in surprise; it was jammed with people, several hundred of them at
least, all seated at long tables about to start a meal, leaning over the tables
to pour each other’s water. The people at one table saw her, and stopped what
they were doing, and the people at the next table noticed that and looked
around, and saw her and likewise stopped—and so the -effect rippled out through
the room, until they had all gone still. Then one stood, and another, and in a
ragged motion they all rose to their feet. For a moment everything was as if
frozen. Then they began to applaud, their hands flailing wildly, their faces
gleaming; and then they cheered.
PART
4
------------
---
The Scientist
------------------As Hero
----------
Hold it between
thumb and middle finger. Feel the rounded edge, observe the smooth curves of
glass. A magnifying lens: it has the simplicity, elegance, and heft of a
paleolithic tool. Sit with it on a sunny day, hold it over a pile of dry twigs.
Move it up and down, until you see a spot in the twigs turn bright. Remember
that light? It was as if the twigs caged a little sun.
The Amor asteroid that was spun out into the elevator cable was
made up mostly of carbonaceous chondrites and water. The two Amor asteroids intercepted
by groups of robot landers in the year 2091 were mostly silicates and water.
The material of New Clarke was spun out into a single long strand
of carbon. The material of the two silicate asteroids was transformed by their
robot crews into sheets of solar sail material. Silica vapor was solidified
between rollers ten kilometers long, and pulled out in sheets coated with a
thin layer of aluminum, and these vast mirror sheets were unfurled by
spacecraft with human crews, into circular arrays which held their shape using
spin and sunlight.
From one asteroid, pushed into a Martian polar orbit and called
Birch, they teased the mirror sheets out into a ring a hundred thousand
kilometers in diameter. This annular mirror spun around Mars in a polar orbit,
the mirror ring facing the sun, angled in so that the light reflected from it
met at a point inside Mars’s orbit, near its Lagrange One point.
The second silicate asteroid, called Solettaville, had been pushed
near this Lagrange point. There the solar sailmakers spun the mirror sheets out
into a complex web of slatted rings, all connected and set at angles, so that
they looked like a lens made of circular Venetian blinds, spinning around a hub
that was a silver cone, with the cone’s open end facing Mars. This huge
delicate object, ten thousand kilometers in diameter, bright and stately as it
wheeled along between Mars and the sun, was called the soletta.
Sunlight striking the soletta directly bounced through its blinds,
hitting the sun side of one, then the Mars side of the next one out, and onward
to Mars. Sunlight striking the annular ring in its polar orbit was reflected
back and in to the inner cone of the soletta, and then was reflected again,
also on to Mars. Thus light struck both sides of the soletta, and these
countervailing pressures kept it moving in its position, about a hundred
thousand kilometers out from Mars—closer at perihelion, farther away at
aphelion. The angles of the slats were constantly adjusted by the soletta’s Al,
to keep its orbit and its focus.
Through the decade when these two great pinwheels were being
constructed out of their asteroids, like silicate webs out of rock spiders,
observers on Mars saw almost nothing of them. Occasionally someone would see an
arcing white line in the sky, or random glints by day or by night, as if the
brilliance of a much vaster universe were shining through loose seams in the
fabric of our sphere.
Then, when the two mirrors were completed, the annular mirror’s
reflected light was aimed at the cone of the soletta. The soletta’s circular
slats were adjusted, and it moved into a slightly different orbit.
And one day people living on the Tharsis side of Mars looked up,
for the sky had darkened. They looked up, and saw an eclipse of the sun such as
Mars had never seen: the sun bit into, as if there were some Luna-sized moon up
there to block its rays. The eclipse then proceeded as they do on Earth, the
crescent of darkness biting deeper into the round blaze as the soletta floated
into its position between Mars and sun, with its mirrors not yet positioned to
pass the light through: the sky going a dark violet, the darkness taking over
the majority of the disk, leaving only a crescent of blaze until that too
disappeared, and the sun was a dark circle in the sky, edged by the whisper of
a corona—then entirely gone. Total eclipse of the sun....
A very faint moire pattern of light appeared in the dark disk,
unlike anything ever seen in any natural eclipse. Everyone on the daylight side
of Mars gasped, squinted as they looked up. And then, as when one tugs open
Venetian blinds, the sun came back all at once.
Blinding light!
And now more blinding than ever, as the sun was noticeably
brighter than it had been before the strange eclipse had begun. Now they walked
under an augmented sun, the disk appearing about the same size as it did from
Earth, the light some twenty percent greater than before— noticeably brighter,
warmer on the back on the neck—the red expanse of the plains more brilliantly
lit. As if floodlights had suddenly been turned on, and all of them were now
walking a great stage.
A few months after that a third mirror, much
smaller than the so-letta, spun down into the highest reaches of the Martian
atmosphere. It was another lens made of circular slats, and looked like a
silver UFO. It caught some of the light pouring down from the soletta, and
focused it still further, into points on the surface of the planet that were
less than a kilometer across. And it flew like a glider over the world, holding
that concentrated beam of light in focus, until little suns seemed to bloom
right there on the land, and the rock itself melted, turning from solid to
liquid. And then to fire.
The underground
wasn’t big enough for Sax
Russell. He wanted to get back to work. He could have moved into the demimonde,
perhaps taken a teaching position at the new university in Sabishii, which ran
outside the net and covered many of his old colleagues, and provided an
education for many of the children of the underground. But on reflection he
decided he didn’t want to teach, or remain on the periphery—he wanted to return
to terra-forming, to the heart of the project if possible, or as close as he
could get to it. And that meant the surface world. Recently the Transitional
Authority had formed a committee to coordinate all the work on terraforming,
and a Subarashii-led team had gotten the old synthesis job that Sax had once
held. This was unfortunate, as Sax didn’t speak Japanese. But the lead in the
biological part of the effort had been given to the Swiss, and was being run by
a Swiss collective of biotech companies called Biotique, with main offices in
Geneva and Burroughs, and close ties with the transnational Praxis.
So the first task was to insinuate himself into Biotique under a
false name, and get himself assigned to Burroughs. Desmond took charge of this
operation, writing a computer persona for Sax similar to the one he had given
to Spencer years before, when Spencer had moved to Echus Overlook. Spencer’s
persona, and some extensive cosmetic surgery, had enabled him to work
successfully in the materials labs in Echus Overlook, and then later in Kasei
Vallis, the very heart of transnat security. So Sax had faith in Desmond’s
system. The new persona listed Sax’s physical ID data—genome, retina, voice,
and finger prints—all slightly altered, so that they still almost fit Sax
himself, while escaping notice in any comparative matching searches in the
nets. These data were given a new name with a full Terran background, credit
rating, and immigration record, and a viral subtext to attempt to overwhelm any
competing ID for the physical data, and the whole package was sent off to the
Swiss passport office, which had been issuing passports to these arrivals
without comment. And in the balkanized world of the transnat nets, that seemed
to be doing the job. “Oh yeah, that part works no problem,” Desmond said. “But
you First Hundred are all movie stars. You need a new face too.”
Sax was agreeable. He saw the need, and his face had never meant
anything to him. And these days the face in the mirror didn’t much resemble
what he thought he looked like anyway. So he got Vlad to do the work on him,
emphasizing the potential usefulness of his presence in Burroughs. Vlad had
become one of the leading theoreticians of the resistance to the Transitional
Authority, and he was quick to see Sax’s point. “Most of us should just live in
the demimonde,” he said, “but a few people hidden in Burroughs would be a good
thing. So I might as well practice my cosmetic surgery on a no-lose situation
like yours.”
“A no-lose situation!” Sax said. “And verbal contracts are
binding. I expect to come out handsomer.”
And for a wonder he did, although it was impossible to tell until
the spectacular bruising went away. They capped his teeth, puffed his thin
lower lip, and gave his button nose a prominent bridge, and a little bit of a
bend. They thinned his cheeks and gave him more of a chin. They even cut some
muscles in his eyelids so that he didn’t blink so often. When the bruises went
away he looked like a real movie star, as Desmond said. Like an ex-jockey,
Nadia said. Or an ex-dance instructor, said Maya, who had faithfully attended
Alcoholics Anonymous for many years. Sax, who had never liked the effects of
alcohol, waved her off.
Desmond took photos of him and put them in the new persona, then
inserted this construct successfully into the Biotique files, along with a
transfer order from San Francisco to Burroughs. The persona appeared in the
Swiss passport listings a week later, and Desmond chuckled when he saw it.
“Look at that,” he said, pointing at Sax’s new name. “Stephen Lindholm, Swiss
citizen! Those folks are covering for us, there’s no doubt about it. I’ll bet
you anything they put a stopper on the persona, and checked your genome with
old print records, and even with my alterations I bet they figured out who you
really are.”
“Are you sure?”
“No. They aren’t saying, are they? But I’m pretty sure.”
“Is it a good thing?”
“In theory, no. But in practice, if someone is on to you, it’s
nice to see them behaving as a friend. And the Swiss are good friends to have.
This is the fifth time they’ve issued a passport to one of my personas. I even
have one myself, and I doubt they were able to find out who I really am,
because I was never ID’d like you folks in the First Hundred. Interesting,
don’t you think?”
“Indeed.”
“They are interesting people. They have their own plans, and I
don’t know what they are, but I like the look of them. I think they’ve made a
decision to cover for us. Maybe they just want to know where we are. We’ll
never know for sure, because the Swiss dearly love their secrets. But it
doesn’t matter why when you’ve got the how.”
Sax winced at the sentiment, but was happy to think that he would
be safe under Swiss patronage. They were his kind of people—rational, cautious,
methodical.
A few days before he was going to fly with Peter north to
Burroughs, he took a walk around Gamete’s lake, something he had rarely done in
his years there. The lake was certainly a neat bit of work. Hiroko was a fine
systems designer. When she and her team had disappeared from Underhill so long
ago, Sax had been quite mystified; he hadn’t seen the point, and had worried
that they would begin to fight the terraforming somehow. When he had managed to
coax a response out of Hiroko on the net, he had been partly reassured; she
seemed sympathetic to the basic goal of terraforming, and indeed her own
concept of viriditas seemed just another version of the same idea. But Hiroko
appeared to enjoy being cryptic, which was very unscientific of her; and during
her years of hiding she had indulged herself to the point of information
damage. Even in person she was none too easy to understandj and it was only
after some years of coexistence that Sax had become confident that she too
desired a Martian biosphere that would support humans. That was all the
agreement he asked for. And he could not think of a better single ally to have
in that particular project, unless it was the chairperson of this new Transitional
Authority committee. And probably the chair was an ally too. There were not too
many opposed, in fact.
But there on the beach sat one, as gaunt as a heron. Ann
Clay-borne. Sax hesitated, but she had already seen him. And so he walked on,
until he stood by her side. She glanced up at him, and then stared out again at
the white lake. “You really look different,” she said.
“Yes.” He could still feel the sore spots in his face and mouth,
though the bruises had cleared up. It felt a bit like wearing a mask, and
suddenly that made him uncomfortable. “Same me,” he added.
“Of course.” She did not look up at him. “So you’re off to the
overwork!?”
“Yes.”
“To get back to your work?”
“Yes.”
She looked up at him. “What do you think science is for?”
Sax shrugged. It was their old argument, again and always, no
matter what kind of beginning it had. To terraform or not to ter-raform, that
is the question. ... He had answered the question long ago, and so had she, and
he wished they could just agree to disagree, and get on with it. But Ann was
indefatigable.
“To figure things out,” he said.
“But terraforming is not figuring things out.”
“Terraforming isn’t science. I never said it was. It’s what people
do with science. Applied science, or technology. What have you. The choice of
what to do with what you learn from science. Whatever you call that.”
“So it’s a matter of values.”
“I suppose so.” Sax thought about it, trying to marshal his
thoughts concerning this murky topic. “I suppose our ... our disagreement is
another facet of what people call the fact-value problem. Science concerns
itself with facts, and with theories that turn facts into examples. Values are
another kind of system, a human construct.”
“Science is also a human construct.”
“Yes. But the connection between the two systems isn’t clear.
Beginning from the same facts, we can arrive at different values.”
“But science itself is full of values,” Ann insisted. “We talk
about theories with power and elegance, we talk about clean results, or a
beautiful experiment. And the desire for knowledge is itself a kind of value,
saying that knowledge is better than ignorance, or mystery. Right?”
“I suppose,” Sax said, thinking it over.
“Your science is a set of values,” Ann said. “The goal of your
kind of science is the establishment of laws, of regularities, of exactness and
certainty. You want things explained. You want to answer the whys, all the way
back to the big bang. You’re a reductionist. Parsimony and elegance and economy
are values for you, and if you can make things simpler that’s a real
achievement, right?”
“But that’s the scientific method itself,” Sax objected. “It’s not
just me, it’s how nature itself works. Physics. You do it yourself.”
“There are human values imbedded in physics.”
“I’m not so sure.” He held out a hand to stop her for a second.
“I’m not saying there are no values in science. But matter and energy do what
they do. If you want to talk about values, better just to talk about them. They
arise out of facts somehow, sure. But that’s a different issue, some kind of
sociobiology, or bioethics. Perhaps it would be better just to talk about
values directly. The greatest good for the greatest number, something like
that.”
“There are ecologists who would say that’s a scientific
description of a healthy ecosystem. Another way of saying climax ecosystem.”
“That’s a value judgment, I think. Some kind of bioethics.
Interesting, but...” Sax squinted at her curiously, decided to change tack.
“Why not try for a climax ecosystem here, Ann? You can’t speak of ecosystems
without living things. What was here on Mars before us wasn’t an ecology. It
was geology only. You could even say there was a start at an ecology here, long
ago, that somehow went wrong and froze out, and now we’re starting it up
again.”
She growled at that, and he stopped. He knew she believed in some
kind of intrinsic worth for the mineral reality of Mars; it was a version of
what people called the land ethic, but without the land’s biota. The rock
ethic, one might say. Ecology without life. An intrinsic worth indeed!
He sighed. “Perhaps that’s just a value speaking. Favoring living
systems over nonliving systems. I suppose we can’t escape values, like you say.
It’s strange ... I mostly feel like I just want to figure things out. Why they
work the way they do. But if you ask me why I want that—or what I would want to
have happen, what I work toward...” He shrugged, struggling to understand
himself. “It’s hard to express. Something like a net gain in information. A net
gain in order.” For Sax this was a good functional description of life itself,
of its holding action against entropy. He held out a hand to Ann, hoping to get
her to understand that, to agree at least to the paradigm of their debate, to a
definition of science’s ultimate goal. They were both scientists after all, it
was their shared enterprise... .
But she only said, “So you destroy the face of an entire planet. A
planet with a clear record nearly four billion years old. It’s not science.
It’s making a theme park.”
“It’s using science for a particular value. One I believe in.” ,
“As do the transnationals.”
“I guess.”
“It certainly helps them.”
“It helps everything alive.”
“Unless it kills them. The terrain is destabilized; there are
landslides every day.”
“True.”
“And they kill. Plants, people. It’s happened already.”
Sax waggled a hand, and Ann jerked her head up to glare at -him.
“What’s this, the necessary murder? What kind of value is that?”
“No, no. They’re accidents, Ann. People need to stay on bedrock,
out of the slide zones, that kind of thing. For a while.”
“But vast regions will turn to mud, or be drowned entirely. We’re
talking about half the planet.”
“The water will drain downhill. Create watersheds.”
“Drowned land, you mean. And a completely different planet. Oh,
that’s a value all right! And the people who hold the value of Mars as it is
... we will fight you, every step of the way.”
He sighed. “I wish you wouldn’t. At this point a biosphere would
help us more than the transnationals. The transnats can operate from the tent
cities, and mine the surface robotically, while we hide and concentrate most of
our efforts on concealment and survival. If we could live everywhere on the
surface, it would be a lot easier for all kinds of resistance.”
“All but Red resistance.”
“Yes, but what’s the point of that, now?”
“Mars. Just Mars. The place you’ve never known.”
Sax looked up at the white dome over them, feeling distress like a
sudden attack of arthritis. It was useless to argue with her.
But something in him made him keep trying. “Look, Ann, I’m an
advocate of what people call the minimum viable model. It’s a model that calls
for a breathable atmosphere only up to about the two- or three-kilometer
contour. Above that the air would be kept too thin for humans, and there
wouldn’t be much life of any kind— some high-altitude plants, and above that
nothing, or nothing visible. The vertical relief on Mars is so extreme that
there can be vast regions that will remain above the bulk of the atmosphere.
It’s a plan that makes sense to me. It expresses a comprehensible set of
values.”
She did not reply. It was distressing, it really was. Once, in an
attempt to understand Ann, to be able to talk to her, he had done research in
the philosophy of science. He had read a fair amount of material, concentrating
particularly on the land ethic, and the fact-value interface. Alas, it had
never proved to be of much help; in conversation with her, he had never seemed
able to apply what he had learned in any useful manner. Now, looking down at
her, feeling the ache in his joints, he recalled something that Kuhn had
written about Priestley—that a scientist who continued to resist after his
whole profession had been converted to a new paradigm might be perfectly
logical and reasonable, but had ipso facto ceased to be a scientist. It seemed
that something like this had happened to Ann, but what then was she now? A
counterrevolutionary? A prophet?
She certainly looked like a prophet—harsh, gaunt, angry,
unforgiving. She would never change, and she would never forgive him. And all
that he would have liked to say to her, about Mars, about Gamete, about
Peter—about Simon’s death, which seemed . to haunt Ursula more than her ... all
that was impossible. This was why he had more than once resolved to give up
talking to Ann: it was so frustrating never to get anywhere, to be faced with
the dislike of someone he had known for over sixty years. He won every argument
but never got anywhere. Some people were like that; but that didn’t make it any
less distressing. In fact it was quite remarkable how much physiological
discomfort could be generated by a merely emotional response.
Ann left with Desmond the next day. Soon after that Sax got a ride
north with Peter, in one of the small stealthed planes that Peter used to fly
all over Mars.
Peter’s route to Burroughs led them over the Hellespontus Monies,
and Sax gazed down into the big basin of Hellas curiously. They caught a
glimpse of the edge of the icefield that had covered Low Point, a white mass on
the dark night surface, but Low Point itself stayed over the horizon. That was
too bad, as Sax was curious to see what had happened over the Low Point mohole.
It had been thirteen kilometers deep when the flood had filled it, and that
deep it was likely that the water had remained liquid at the bottom, and
probably warm enough to rise quite a distance; it was possible that the
icefield was in that region an ice-covered sea, with telltale differences at
the surface.
But Peter would not change his route to get a better view. “You
can look into it when you’re Stephen Lindholm,” he said with a grin. “You can
make it part of your work for Biotique.”
And so they flew on. And the next night they landed in the broken
hills south of Isidis, still on the high side of the Great Escarpment. Sax then
walked to a tunnel entrance, and went down into the tunnel and followed it into
the back of a closet in the service basement of Libya Station, which was a
little train station complex at the intersection of the Burroughs-Hellas piste
and the newly rerouted Burroughs-Elysium piste. When the next train to
Burroughs came in, Sax emerged from a service door and joined the crowd getting
on the train. He rode into Burroughs’ main station, where he was met by a man
from Biotique. And then he was Stephen Lindholm, newcomer to Burroughs and to
Mars.
The man from Biotique, a personnel secretary, complimented him on
his skillful walking, and took him to a studio apartment high in Hunt Mesa,
near the center of the old town. The labs and offices of Biotique were also in
Hunt, just under the mesa’s plateau, with window walls looking down on the
canal park. A high-rent district, as only befitted the company leading the
terraforming project’s bioengineering efforts.
Out the Biotique office’s windows he could see most of the old
city, looking about the same as he remembered it, except that the mesa walls
were even more extensively lined by glass windows, colorful horizontal bands of
copper or gold or metallic green or blue, as if the mesas were stratified by
some truly wonderful mineral layers. Also the tents that had topped the mesas
were gone, their buildings now standing free under the much larger tent that
now covered all nine mesas, and everything in between and around them. Tenting
technology had reached the point where they could enclose vast mesocosms, and
Sax had heard that one of the trans-nats was going to cover Hebes Chasma, a
project that Ann had once suggested as an alternative to terraforming—a
suggestion that Sax himself had scoffed at. And now they were doing it. One
should never underestimate the potential of materials science, that was clear.
Burroughs’ old canal park, and the broad grass boulevards that
climbed away from the park and between the mesas, were now strips of green,
cutting through orange tile rooftops. The old double row of salt columns still
stood beside the blue canal. There had
i been a lot of building, to be sure; but the configuration of the city
was still the same. It was only on the outskirts that one could see clearly how
much things had changed, and how much larger the city really was; the city wall
lay well beyond the nine mesas, so that quite a bit of surrounding land was
sheltered, and much of it built upon already.
The personnel secretary gave Sax a quick tour of Biotique, making
introductions to more people than he could remember. Then Sax was asked to
report to his lab the next morning, and given the rest of the day to get
settled in.
As Stephen Lindholm he planned to exhibit signs of intellectual
energy, sociability, curiosity, and high spirits; and so he very plausibly
spent that afternoon exploring Burroughs, wandering from neighborhood to
neighborhood. He strolled up and down the wide swards of streetgrass,
considering as he did the mysterious phenomenon of the growth of cities. It was
a cultural process with no very good physical or biological analogy. He could
see no obvious reason why this low end of Isidis Planitia should have become
home to the largest city on Mars. None of the original reasons for siting the
city here were at all adequate to explain it; so far as he knew, it had begun
as an ordinary way station on the piste route from Elysium to Tharsis. Perhaps
it was precisely because of its lack of strategic location that it had
prospered, for it had been the only major city not damaged or destroyed in
2061, and thus perhaps it simply had had a head start on growth in the postwar
years. By analogy to the punctuated equilibrium model of evolution, one might
say that this particular species had accidentally survived an impact that had
devastated most other species, giving it an open ecosphere to expand in.
And no doubt the bowllike shape of the region, with its
archipelago of small mesas, gave it an impressive look as well. When he walked
around on the wide grassy boulevards, the nine mesas appeared evenly
distributed, and each mesa had a slightly different look, its rugged rock walls
distinguished by characteristic knobs, buttresses, smooth walls, overhangs,
cracks—and now the horizontal bands of colorful mirror windows, and the
buildings and parks on the flat plateaus crowning each mesa. From any point on
the streets one could always see several of the mesas, scattered like
magnificent neighborhood cathedrals, and this no doubt gave a certain pleasure
to the eye. And then if one took an elevator up to one of the mesa’s plateau
tops, all about a hundred meters higher than the city floor, then one had a
view over the rooftops of several different districts, and a different
perspective on the other mesas, and then, beyond those, the land surrounding
the city for many kilometers, distances larger than were usual on Mars, because
they were at the bottom of a bowl-shaped depression: over the flat plain of
Isidis to the north, up the dark rise to Syrtis in the west, and to the south one
could see the distant rise of the Great Escarpment itself, standing on the
horizon like a Himalaya.
Of course whether a handsome prospect mattered to city formation
was an open question, but there were historians who asserted that many ancient
Greek cities were sited principally for their view, in the face of other
inconveniences, so it was at least a possible factor. And in any case Burroughs
was now a bustling little metropolis of some 150,000 people, the biggest city
on Mars. And it was still growing. Near the end of his afternoon’s sightseeing,
Sax rode one of the big exterior elevators up the side of Branch Mesa,
centrally located north of Canal Park, and from its plateau he could see that
the northern outskirts of town were studded with construction sites all the way
to the tent wall. There was even work going on around some of the distant mesas
outside the tent. Clearly critical mass had been reached in some kind of group
psychology— some herding instinct, which had made this place the capital, the
social magnet, the heart of the action. Group dynamics were complex at best,
even (he grimaced) unexplainable.
Which was unfortunate, as always, because Biotique Burroughs was a
very dynamic group indeed, and in the days that followed Sax found that determining
his place in the crowd of scientists working on the project was no easy thing.
He had lost the skill of finding his way in a new group, assuming he had ever
had it. The formula governing the number of possible relationships in a group
was n(n—1)/2, where n is the number of individuals in the group; so that, for
the 1,000 people at Biotique Burroughs, there were 499,500 possible
relationships. This seemed to Sax well beyond anyone’s ability to
comprehend—even the 4,950 possible relationships in a group of 100, the
hypothesized “design limit” of human group size, seemed unwieldy. Certainly it
had been at Underbill, when they had had a chance to test it.
So it was important to find a smaller group at Biotique, and Sax
set about doing so. It certainly made sense to concentrate at first on his lab.
He had joined them as a biophysicist, which was risky, but put him where he
wanted to be in the company; and he hoped he could hold his own. If not, then
he could claim to have come to biophysics from physics, which was true. His
boss was a Japanese woman named Claire, middle-aged in appearance, a very
congenial woman who was good at running their lab. On his arrival she put him
to work with the team designing second- and third-generation plants for the
glaciated regions of the northern hemisphere. These newly hydrated environments
represented tremendous new possibilities for botanical design, as the designers
no longer had to base all species on desert xerophytes. Sax had seen this
coming from the very first moment he had spotted the flood roaring down lus
Chasma into Melas, in 2061. And now forty years later he could actually do
something about it.
So he very happily joined in the work. First he had to bring
himself up to date on what had already been put out there in the glacial
regions. He read voraciously in his usual manner, and viewed videotapes, and
learned that with the atmosphere still so thin and cold, all the new ice
released on the surface was subliming until its exposed surfaces were fretted
to a minute lacework. This meant there were billions of pockets large and small
for life to grow in, directly on the ice; and so one of the first forms to have
been widely distributed were varieties of snow and ice algae. These algae had
been augmented with phreatophytic traits, because even when the ice started
pure it became salt-encrusted by way of the ubiquitous windblown fines. The
genetically engineered salt-tolerant algaes had done very well, growing in the
pitted surfaces of the glaciers, and sometimes right into the ice. And because
they were darker than the ice, pink or red or black or green, the ice under
them had a tendency to melt, especially during summer days, when temperatures
were well above freezing. So small diurnal streams had begun to run off the glaciers,
and along their edges. These wet morainelike regions were similar to some
Terran polar and mountain environments. Bacteria and larger plants from these
Terran environments, genetically altered to help them survive the pervasive
saltiness, had first been seeded by teams from Biotique several M-years before,
and for the most part these plants were prospering as the algae had.
Now the design teams were trying to build on these early successes
and introduce a wider array of larger plants, and some insects bred to tolerate
the high CO2 levels in the air. Biotique had an extensive inventory of template
plants to take chromosome sequences from, and 17 M-years of field experimental
records, so Sax had a lot of catching up to do. In his first weeks at the lab,
and in the company arboretum on Hunt plateau, he focused on the new plant
species to the exclusion of everything else, content to work his way up to the
bigger picture in due time.
Meanwhile, when he was not at his desk reading, or looking through
the microscopes or into the various Mars jars in the labs, or up in the
arboretum, there was the daily work of being Stephen Lindholm to keep him busy
as well. In the lab it was not all that different from being Sax Russell. But
at the end of the workdays he would often make a conscious effort and join the
group that went upstairs to one of the plateau cafes, to have a drink and talk
about the day’s work, and then everything else.
Even there he found it surprisingly easy to “be” Lindholm, who, he
discovered, asked a lot of questions, and laughed frequently; whose mouth
somehow made laughter easier. Questions from the others—usually from Claire,
and an English immigrant named Jessica, and a Kenyan man named Berkina—very
rarely had anything to do with Lindholm’s Terran past. When they did, Sax found
it was easy to give a minimal response—Desmond had given Lindholm a past in
Sax’s own home town of Boulder, Colorado, a sensible move—and then he could
turn things around on the questioner, in a technique he had often observed
Michel using. People were so happy to talk. And Sax himself had never been a
particularly quiet one, like Simon. He had always pitched in his conversational
ante, and if he had contributed infrequently thereafter, it was because he was
only interested when the stakes reached a certain minimum level. Small talk was
usually a waste of time. But it did in fact pass that time, which otherwise
might be irritat-ingly blank. It also seemed to ameliorate feelings of
solitude. And his new colleagues usually engaged in pretty interesting shop
talk, anyway. And so he did his part, and told them about his walks around
Burroughs, and asked them many questions about what he had seen, and about
their past, and Biotique, and the Martian situation, and so on. It made as much
sense for Lindholrn as for Sax.
In these conversations his colleagues, especially Claire and
Ber-kina, confirmed what was obvious in his walks—that Burroughs was in some
sense becoming the de facto capital of Mars, in that the headquarters for all
of the biggest transnationals were located there. The transnationals were at
this point the effective rulers of Mars. They had enabled the Group of Eleven
and the other wealthy industrial nations to win or at least survive the war of
2061, and now they were all intertwined in a single power structure, so that it
wasn’t clear who on Earth was calling the shots, the countries or the
supracorporations. On Mars, however, it was obvious. UNOMA had been shattered
in 2061 like one of the domed cities, and the agency that had taken its place,
the United Nations Transitional Authority, was an administrative group staffed
by transnat executives, its decrees enforced by transnat security forces. “The
UN has nothing to do with it, really,” Berkina said. “The UN is just as dead on
Earth as UNOMA is here. So the name is just a cover.”
Claire said, “Everyone calls it just the Transitional Authority
anyway.”
“They can see who is who,” Berkina said. And indeed, uniformed
transnational security police were to be seen frequently in Burroughs. They
wore rust-colored construction jumpers, with armbands of different colors.
Nothing very ominous, but there they were.
“But why?” Sax asked. “Who are they afraid of?”
“They’re worried about Bogdanovists coming out of the hills,”
Claire said, and laughed. “It’s ridiculous.”
Sax raised his eyebrows, let it pass. He was curious, but it was a
dangerous topic. Better just to listen when it came up on its own. Still, after
that when he walked around Burroughs he watched the crowds more, checking the
security police wandering around for their armband identification.
Consolidated, Amexx, Oroco ... he found it curious that they had not formed a
single force. Possibly the transnationals were still rivals as well as
partners, and competing security systems would naturally result. This perhaps
would also explain the proliferation of identification systems, which created
the gaps that made it possible for Desmond to insert his per-sonas into one
system, and have them creep elsewhere. Switzerland was obviously willing to
cover for some people coming into its system from nowhere, as Sax’s own
experience showed; and no doubt other countries and transnationals were doing
the same kind of thing.
So in the current political situation, information technology was
creating not totalization but balkanization. Arkady had predicted such a
development, but Sax had considered it too irrational to be a likely
eventuality. Now he had to admit that it had come to pass. The computer nets
could not keep track of things because they were in competition with each
other; and so there were police in the streets, keeping an eye out for people
like Sax.
But he was Stephen Lindholm. He had Lindholm’s rooms in the Hunt
Mesa, he had Lindholm’s work, and his routines, and his habits, and his past.
His little studio apartment looked very unlike what Sax himself would have
lived in: the clothes were in the closet, there were no experiments in the
refrigerator or on the bed, there were even prints on the walls, Eschers and
Hundertwassers and some unsigned sketches by Spencer, an indiscretion that was
certainly undetectable. He was secure in his new identity. And really, even if
he was found out, he doubted the results would be all that traumatic. He might
even be able to return to something like his previous power. He had always been
apolitical, interested only in terraforming, and he had disappeared during the
madness of ‘61 because it looked as if it might be fatal not to do so. No doubt
several of the current transnationals would see it that way and try to hire
him.
But all that was hypothetical. In reality he could settle into the
life of Lindholm. ‘
As he did, he discovered that he enjoyed his new work very much.
In the old days, as head of the entire terraforming project, it had been
impossible not to get bogged down in administration^ or diffused across the
whole range of topics, trying to do enough of everything to be able to make
informed policy decisions. Naturally this had led to a lack of depth in any one
discipline, with a resulting loss of understanding. Now, however, his whole
attention was focused on creating new plants to add to the simple ecosystem
that had been propagated in the glacial regions. For several weeks he worked on
a new lichen, designed to extend the borders of the new bioregions, based on a
chasmdendolith from the Wright Valleys in Antarctica. The base lichen had lived
in the cracks in the Antarctic rock, and here Sax wanted it to do the same, but
he was trying to replace the algal part of the lichen with a faster algae, so
that the resulting new symbiote would grow more quickly than its template
organism, which was notoriously slow. At the same time he was trying to
introduce into the lichen’s fungus some phreato-phytic genes from salt-tolerant
plants like tamarisk and pickleweed. These could live in salt levels three
times as salty as sea water, and the mechanisms, which had to do with the
permeability of cell walls, were somewhat transferable. If he managed it, then
the result would be a very hardy and fast-growing new salt lichen. Very
encouraging, to see the progress that had been made in this area since their
first crude attempts to make an organism that would survive on the surface,
back in Underbill. Of course the surface had been more difficult then. But
their knowledge of genetics and their range of methods were also greatly
advanced.
One problem that was proving very obdurate was adjusting the
plants to the paucity of nitrogen on Mars. Most large concentrations of
nitrites were being mined upon discovery and released as nitrogen into the
atmosphere, a process Sax had initiated in the 2040s and thoroughly approved
of, as the atmosphere was desperately in need of nitrogen. But so was the soil,
and with so much of it being put into the air, the plant life was coming up
short. This was a problem that no Terran plant had ever faced, at least not to
this degree, so there were no obvious adaptive traits to clip into the genes of
their areoflora.
The nitrogen problem was a recurrent topic of conversation in
their after-work sessions at the Cafe Lowen, up on the mesa plateau’s edge.
“Nitrogen is so valuable that it’s the medium of exchange among the members of
the underground,” Berkina told Sax, who nodded uncomfortably at this
misinformation.
Their cafe group made its own homage to the importance of nitrogen
by inhaling N2O from little canisters, passed from person to person around the
table. It was claimed, with marginal accuracy but very high spirits, that their
exhalation of this gas would help the terraforming effort. When the canister
came around to Sax for the first time, he regarded it dubiously. He had noticed
that one could purchase the canisters in restrooms—there was an entire
pharmacology inside every men’s room now, wall units that dispensed canisters of
nitrous oxide, omegendorph, pandorph, and other drug-laced gases. Apparently
respiration was the current method of choice for drug ingestion. It was not
something that interested him, but now he took the canister from Jessica, who
was leaning against his shoulder. This was an area in which Stephen’s and Sax’s
behaviors diverged, apparently. So he breathed out and then put the little
facemask over his mouth and nose, feeling Stephen’s slim face under the
plastic.
He breathed in a cold rush of the gas, held it briefly, exhaled,
and felt all the weight go out of him—that was the subjective impression. It
was fairly humorous to see how responsive mood was to chemical manipulation,
despite what it implied about the precarious balance of one’s emotional equanimity,
even sanity itself. Not on the face of it a pleasant realization. But at the
moment, not a problem. In fact it made him grin. He looked over the rail at the
rooftops of Burroughs, and noticed for the first time that the new
neighborhoods to the west and north we’re shifting to blue tile roofs and white
walls, so that they were taking on a Greek look, while the old parts of town
were more Spanish. Jessica was definitely making an effort to keep their upper
arms in contact. It was possible her balance was impaired by mirth.
“But it’s time to get beyond the alpine zone!” Claire was saying.
“I’m sick of lichen, and I’m sick of mosses and grasses. Our equatorial
fellfields are becoming meadows, we’ve even got krummholz, and they’re all
getting lots of sunlight year-round, and the atmospheric pressure at the foot
of the escarpment is as high as in the Himalayas.”
“Top of the Himalayas,” Sax pointed out, then checked himself
mentally; that had been a Saxlike qualification, he could feel it. As Lindholm
he said, “But there are high Himalayan forests.”
“Exactly. Stephen, you’ve done wonders since you arrived on that
lichen, why don’t you and Berkina and Jessica and C.J. start working on
subalpine plants. See if we can’t make some little forests.”
They toasted the idea with another hit of nitrous oxide, and the
idea of the briny frozen borders of the aquifer outbreaks becoming meadows and
forests suddenly struck them all as extremely funny. “We need moles,” Sax said,
trying to wipe the grin from his face. “Moles and voles are crucial in changing
fellfields to meadow, I wonder if we can make some kind of CO2-tolerant arctic
moles.”
His companions thought this was hilarious, but he was lost in
thought for a while, and didn’t notice.
“Listen, Claire, do you think we could go out and have a look at
one of the glaciers? Do some of the work on-site?”
Claire stopped giggling and nodded. “Sure. In fact that reminds
me. We’ve got a permanent experimental station out at Arena Glacier, with a
good lab. And we’ve been contacted by a biotech group from Armscor, one with a
lot of clout with the Transitional Authority. They want to be taken out to see
the station and the ice. I guess they’re planning to build a similar station in
Marineris. We can go out with that group and show them around, and do some
fieldwork, and kill two birds with one stone.”
Plans to make this trip actually made it from the Lowen into the
lab, and then the front office. Approval came swiftly, as was usual in
Biotique. So Sax worked hard for a couple of weeks, preparing for the
fieldwork, and at the end of that intensive period he packed his bag, and one
morning took the subway out to West Gate. There in the Swiss garage he spotted
some people from the office, gathered with several strangers. Introductions
were still being made. Sax approached, and Claire saw him and drew him into the
crowd, looking excited. “Here, Stephen, I want to introduce you to our guest
for the trip.” A woman wearing some kind of prisming fabric turned around, and
Claire said, “Stephen, I’d like you to meet Phyllis Boyle. Phyllis, this is
Stephen Lindholm.”
“How do you do?” Phyllis said, extending a hand.
Sax took her
hand and shook. “I do fine,”
he said.
Vlad had nicked his vocal cords to give him a different vocal
print if he was ever tested, but everyone in Gamete had agreed that he sounded
just the same. And now Phyllis cocked her head curiously at him, alerted by
something. “I’m looking forward to the trip,” he said, and glanced at Claire.
“I hope I haven’t held you up?”
“No no, we’re still waiting for the drivers.”
“Ah.” Sax backed away. “Good to meet you,” he said to Phyllis
politely. She nodded, and with a final curious glance turned back to the people
she had been talking to. Sax tried to concentrate on what Claire was saying about
the drivers. Apparently driving a rover across open terrain was a specialized
occupation now.
That was fairly cool, he thought. Of course coolness was a
Sax-trait. Probably he ought to have gushed all over her, said he knew her from
the old vids and had admired her for years, etc. Although how someone could
admire Phyllis he had no idea. Surely she had come out of the war fairly
compromised; on the winning side, but the only one of the First Hundred to have
chosen it. A quisling, did they call that? Something like that. Well, she
hadn’t been the only one of the First Hundred; Vasili had stayed in Burroughs
throughout, and George and Edvard had been on Clarke with Phyl-lis when it
detached from the cable and catapulted out of the plane of the ecliptic. A neat
bit of work to survive that, actually. He wouldn’t have thought it possible—but
there she was, chattering with her host of admirers. Luckily he had heard of
her survival a few years before; otherwise it would have been a shock to see
her.
She still looked about sixty years old, although she had been born
the same year as Sax, and so was now 115. Silver-haired, blue-eyed, her jewelry
made of gold and bloodstone, her blouse made of a material that shone through
all the colors of the spectrum—right now her back was a vibrant blue, but as
she turned tr glance over her shoulder at him it went emerald green. He
pretended not to notice the look.
Then the drivers came, and they were into the rovers and off, and
fcr a blessing Phyllis was in one of the other cars. The rovers were big
hydrazine-powered things, and they followed a concrete road north, so that Sax
could not see the necessity for specialist drivers, unless it was to handle
.the rovers’ speed; they were rolling along at about a hundred and sixty kilometers
an hour, and to Sax, who was used to rover speeds about a quarter that, it felt
fast and smooth. The other passengers complained at how bumpy and slow the ride
was—apparently express trains now floated over the pistes at about six hundred
kilometers per hour.
The Arena Glacier was some eight hundred kilometers northwest of
Burroughs, spilling from the highlands of Syrtis Major north onto Utopia
Planitia. It ran in one of the Arena Fossae for a distance of some three
hundred fifty kilometers. Claire and Berkina and the others in the car told Sax
the glacier’s history, and he did his best to indicate absorbed interest;
indeed it was interesting, for they were aware that Nadia had rerouted the
outbreak of the Arena aquifer. Some of the people who had been with Nadia when
she did it had ended up in South Fossa after the war, and the story had been
told there, and had spread into the public domain.
In fact these people seemed to think they knew a lot about Nadia.
“She was against the war,” Claire told him confidently, “and she did everything
she could to stop it and then to repair the damage, even while it was
happening. People who saw her on Elysium say she never slept at all, just took
stimulants to keep going. They say she saved ten thousand lives in the week she
was active around South Fossa.”
“What happened to her?” Sax asked.
“No one knows. She dis?.ppeared from South Fossa.”
“She was headed for Low Point,” Berkina said. “If she got there in
time for that flood, she was probably killed.”
“Ah.” Sax nodded solemnly. “That was a bad time.”
“Very bad,” Claire said vehemently. “So destructive. It set the
terraforming back decades, I’m sure.”
“Although the aquifer outbreaks have been useful,” Sax murmured.
“Yes, but those could have been done anyway, in a controlled
manner.”
“True.” Sax shrugged and let the conversation go on without him.
After the encounter with Phyllis it was a bit much to get into a discussion of
‘61.
He still couldn’t quite believe she hadn’t recognized him. The
passenger compartment they were in had shiny magnesium panels over the windows,
and there, among the faces of his new colleagues, was the little face of
Stephen Lindholm. A bald old man with a slightly hooked nose, which made the
eyes somewhat hawkish rather than just birdlike. Visible lips, strong jaw, a
chin—no, it didn’t look like him at all. No reason why she should have
recognized him.
But looks weren’t everything.
He tried not to think about that as they hummed north over the
road. He concentrated on the view. The passenger compartment had a domed
skylight, as. well as windows on all four sides, so he could see a lot. They
were driving up the slope of west Isidis, a section of the Great Escarpment
that was like a great shaved berm. The jagged dark hills of Syrtis Major rose
over the northwest horizon, sharp as the edge of a saw. The air was clearer
than it had been in the old days, even though it was fifteen times thicker. But
there was less dust in it, as snowstorms were knocking the fines down and then
fixing them on the surface in a crust. Of course this crust was often broken by
strong winds, and the trapped fines rein-troduced to the air. But these breaks
were localized, and the sky-cleaning storms were slowly getting the upper hand.
And so the sky was changing color. Overhead it was a rich violet,
and above the western hills it was whitish, shading up into lavender, and some
color between lavender and violet that Sax didn’t have a name for. The eye
could distinguish differences in light frequency of only a few wavelengths, so the
few names for the colors between red and blue were totally inadequate to
describe the phenomena. But whatever you called them, or didn’t, they were sky
colors very unlike the tans and pinks of the early years. Of course a dust
storm would always temporarily return the sky to that primeval ochre tone; but
when the atmosphere washed out, its color would be a function of its thickness
and chemical composition. Curious as to what they could expect to see in the
future, Sax took his lectern from his pocket to try some calculations.
He stared at the little box, suddenly realizing that it was Sax
Russell’s lectern—that if checked, it would give him away. It was like-carrying
around a genuine passport.
He dismissed the thought, as there was nothing to be done about it
now. He concentrated on the color of the sky. In clean air, sky color was
caused by preferential light scattering in the air molecules themselves. Thus
the thickness of the atmosphere was critical. Air pressure when they had
arrived had been about 10 millibars, and now it averaged about 160. But since
air pressure was created by the weight of the air, creating 160 millibars on
Mars had taken about three times as much air over any given spot than would
have created such a pressure on Earth. So the 160 millibars here ought to
scatter light about as much as 480 millibars on Earth; meaning the sky overhead
ought to have something like the dark blue color seen in photos taken in
mountains about 4,000 meters high.
But the actual color filling the windows and skylight of their
rover was much more reddish than that, and even on clear mornings after heavy
storms, Sax had never seen it look anywhere near as blue as a Terran sky. He
thought about it more. Another effect of Mars’s light gravity was that the air
column lofted taller than Earth’s. It was possible that the smallest fines were
effectively in suspension, and had been blown above the altitude of most
clouds, where they escaped being scrubbed out by storms. He recalled that haze
layers had been photographed that were as much as fifty kilometers high, well
above the clouds. Another factor might be the composition of the atmosphere;
carbon dioxide molecules were more efficient light scatterers than oxygen and
nitrogen, and Mars, despite Sax’s best efforts, still had much more CO2 in its
atmosphere than Earth did. The effects of that difference would be calculable.
He typed up the equation for Rayleigh’s law of scattering, which states that
the light energy scattered per unit volume of air is inversely proportional to
the fourth power of the wavelength of the illuminating radiation. Then he
scribbled away on his lectern screen, altering the variables, checking
handbooks, or filling in quantities by memory, or guesswork.
He concluded that if the atmosphere was thickened to one bar, then
the sky would probably turn milk white. He also confirmed that in theory the
present-day Martian sky ought to be a lot bluer than it was, with its scattered
blue light about sixteen times the intensity of the red. This suggested that
fines very high in the atmosphere were probably reddening the sky. If that was
the correct explanation, one could infer that the color and opacity of the
Martian sky would for many years be subject to very wide variation, depending
on weather and other influences on the cleanness of the air... .
And so he worked on, trying to incorporate into the calculation
skylight radiance intensities, Chandrasekhar’s radiative transfer equation,
chromaticity scales, aerosol chemical compositions, Le-gendre polynomials to
evaluate the angular scattering intensities, Riccati-Bessel functions to
evaluate the scattering cross sections, and so on—occupying the better part of
the drive to Arena Glacier, concentrating hard and steadfastly ignoring the
world around him and the situation in which he now found himself.
Early that afternoon they came to a small town called Bradbury,
which under its Nicosia-class tent looked like something out of Illinois:
treelined blacktop streets, screened-in porches fronting two-story brick houses
with shingle roofs, a main street with shops and parking meters, a central park
with a white gazebo under giant maples... .
They headed west on a smaller road, across the top of Syrtis
Major. The road was made of black sand that had been cleared of rocks and
sprayed with a fixative. This whole region was very dark—Syrtis Major had been
the first Martian surface feature spotted through Earth telescopes, by
Christiaan Huygens on November 28, 1659, and it was this dark rock that had
allowed him to see it. The ground was almost black, sometimes a kind of
eggplant purple; the hills and grabens and escarpments that the road twisted
through were black; the fretted mesas were black, the thulleya or little ribs
were black, ridge after ridge after ridge of them; the giant ejecta erratics,
on the other hand, were often rust-colored, reminding them forcibly of the
color from which they had temporarily escaped.
Then they drove over a black bedrock rib and the glacier lay
before them, crossing the world from left to right like a lightning bolt inlaid
into the landscape. A bedrock rib on the far side of the glacier paralleled the
one they were on, and the two ribs together looked like old lateral moraines,
although really they were just parallel ridges that had channelized the
outbreak flood.
The glacier was about two kilometers across. It appeared to be no
more than five or six meters thick, but apparently it had run down a canyon, so
there were hidden depths.
Parts of its surface were like ordinary regolith, just as rocky
and dusty, with a kind of gravel surface that revealed no sign of the ice
below. Other parts looked like chaotic terrain, except clearly made of ice,
with knots of white seracs sticking up out of what looked like boulders. Some
of the seracs were broken plates, bunched like the back of a stegosaurus,
translucent yellow with the setting sun behind them.
All was motionless, to every horizon—not a movement to be seen
anywhere. Of course not; Arena Glacier had been here for forty years. But Sax
could not help remembering the last time he had seen such a sight, and he
glanced involuntarily to the south, as if a new flood might burst out at any
moment.
The Biotique station was located a few kilometers upstream, on the
rim and apron of a small crater, so that it had an excellent view over the
glacier. In the last part of sunset, as some of the regulars got the station
activated, Sax went with Claire and the visitors from Armscor, including
Phyllis, up to a big observation room on the top floor of the station, to look
at the broken mass of ice in the waning moments of the day.
Even on a relatively clear afternoon like this one, the horizontal
rays of the sun turned the air a burnished dark red, and the surface of the
glacier sparked in a thousand places, the recently broken ice reflecting the
light like mirrors. The majority of these scarlet gleams lay in a rough line
between them and the sun, but there were a few elsewhere on the ice, where the
reflecting surfaces stood at odd angles. Phyllis pointed out how much larger
the sun looked, now that the soletta was in position. “Isn’t it wonderful? You
can almost see the mirrors, can’t you?”
“It looks like blood.”
“It looks positively Jurassic.”
To Sax it looked like a G-type star about one astronomical unit
away. Of course this was significant, as they were 1.5 astronomical units away.
As for the talk of rubies, or dinosaur’s eyes ...
The sun slipped over the horizon and all the points of red light
disappeared at once. A great fan of crepuscular rays stretched across the sky,
the pinkish beams cutting a dark purple sky. Phyllis exclaimed over the colors,
which were indeed very clear and pure. She said, “I wonder what makes those
magnificent rays,” and automatically Sax opened his mouth to explain about the
shadows of hills or clouds over the horizon, when it occurred to him that a, it
was a rhetorical question (perhaps), and b, to give a technical answer would be
a very Sax Russell thing to do. So he shut his mouth, and considered what
Stephen Lindholm would say in such a situation. This kind of self-consciousness
was new to him, and distinctly uncomfortable, but he was going to have to say
things, at least some of the time, because long silences were also fairly Sax
Russellish, and not at all like Lindholm as he had been playing him so far. So
he tried his best.
“Just think how close those photons came to hitting Mars,” he
said, “and now they’re going to run all the way across the universe instead.”
People squinted at this odd observation. But it drew him into the
group nonetheless, and so served its purpose.
After a while they went down to the dining room, to eat pasta and
tomato sauce, and bread just out of the ovens. Sax stayed at the main table,
and ate and talked as much as the rest, striving for the norm, doing his best
to follow the elusive rules of conversation and of social discourse. These he
had never understood well, and less so the more he thought about them. He knew
that he had always been considered eccentric; he had heard the story of the
hundred transgenic lab rats taking over his brain. —A strange moment, that,
standing outside the lab door in the dark, hearing the tale being promulgated
with much hilarity from one generation of postdocs to the next, experiencing
the rare discomfort of seeing himself as if he were someone else, someone
strikingly peculiar.
But Lindholm, now: he was a congenial fellow. He knew how to get
along. Someone who could partake of a bottle of Utopian zinfandel, someone who
could do his part to make a dinner party festive. Someone who understood
intuitively the hidden algorithms of good fellowship, so that he would be able
to operate the system without even thinking about it.
So Sax ran a forefinger up and down the bridge of his new nose,
and drank the wine which did indeed suppress his parasympathetic nervous system
to the point of making him less inhibited and more voluble, and he chattered
away very successfully, he thought, although several times he was alarmed by
the way he was drawn into conversation by Phyllis, sitting across the table
from him—and by the way she looked at him—and by the way he looked back! There
were protocols for this kind of thing too, but he had never understood them in
the slightest. Now he recalled the way Jessica had leaned on him at the Lowen,
and drank another half glass and smiled, and nodded, thinking uneasily about
sexual attraction and its causes.
Someone asked Phyllis the inevitable question about the escape
from Clarke, and as she launched into the tale she glanced frequently at Sax,
seeming to assure him that she was telling the story principally to him. He
attended politely, resisting a certain tendency to go cross-eyed, which might
indicate his dismay.
“There was no warning of any kind,” Phyllis said to the
questioner. “One minute we were orbiting Mars at the top of the elevator, just
sick at what was happening down on the surface, and doing our best to figure
out some way to stop the unrest, and then the next minute there was a jerk like
an earthquake, and we were on our way out of the solar system.” She smiled and
paused for the laugh that followed, and Sax saw that she had told the story
many times before in just this way.
“You must have been terrified!” someone said.
“Well,” Phyllis said, “it’s strange how in an emergency there
isn’t really time for any of that. As soon as we understood what had happened,
we knew that every second we stayed on Clarke diminished our chances of
surviving by hundreds of kilometers. So we convened in the command center and
counted heads and talked it over and took stock of what we had available. It
was hectic but not panicked, if you see what I mean. Anyway, there turned out
to be about the usual number of Earth-to-Mars freighters in the hangars, and
the AI calculations indicated we would need the thrust of almost all of them to
get ourselves back down into the plane of the ecliptic in time to intersect the
Jovian system. We were on our way out as well as up, and in the general
direction of Jupiter, which was a blessing. Anyway, that was when it got crazy.
We had to get all the freighters outside the hangars and flying beside Clarke,
and then link them together and stock them with everything they could hold of
Clarke’s air and fuel and so on. And we were off in that jury-rigged lifeboat
only thirty hours after launching, which now that I look back on it, is almost
unbelievable. Those thirty hours ...”
She shook her head, and Sax thought he saw a real memory suddenly
invade her tale, shaking her slightly. Thirty hours was a remarkably fast
evacuation, and no doubt the time had flashed by in a dreamlike rush of action,
in a state of mind so different from ordinary time that it might pass for
transcendence.
“After that it was just a matter of cramming into a couple of crew
quarters—two hundred and eighty-six of us, there were— and going out on EVAs to
cut away inessential parts of the freighters. And hoping there would be enough
fuel to get us on course down to Jupiter. It was more than two months before we
could be positive we would intercept the Jovian system, and ten weeks before we
actually did. We used Jupiter itself as a gravity handle, and swung around
toward Earth, which at that time was closer than Mars. And we swung so hard
around Jupiter that we needed Earth’s atmosphere and Luna’s gravity to slow us
down, because we were almost out of fuel at the very same time that we were the
fastest humans in history, by a factor of two. Eighty thousand kilometers an
hour, I think it was when we hit the stratosphere the first time. A useful
speed, really, because we were running out of food and air. We got really
hungry near the end. But we made it. And we saw Jupiter from about this close,”
holding thumb and forefinger apart a couple of centimeters.
People laughed, and the gleam of triumph in Phyllis’s eye had
nothing to do with Jupiter. But there was a tightening at the comer of her
mouth; something at the end of her tale had darkened the triumph, somehow.
“And you were the leader, right?” someone asked.
Phyllis held up a hand, to say she could not deny it though she
wanted to. “It was a cooperative effort,” she said. “But sometimes someone has
to decide when there’s an impasse, or simply a need for speed. And I had been
head of Clarke before the catastrophe.”
She flashed her big smile, confident that they had enjoyed the
account. Sax smiled with the rest, and nodded when she looked his way. She was
an attractive woman, but not, he thought, very bright. Or maybe it was just
that he did not like her very much. For certainly she was very intelligent in
some ways, a good biologist when she had done biology, and certain to score
high on an IQ test.-But there were different types of intelligence, and not all
of them were subject to analytic testing. Sax had noticed this fact in his
student years: that there were people who would score high on any intelligence
test, and were very good at their work, but who at the same time could walk
into a room of people and within an hour have many of the occupants of that
room laughing at them, or even despising them. Which was not very smart. Indeed
the most giddy of high school cheerleaders, say, managing to be friendly with
everyone and therefore universally popular, seemed to Sax to be exercising an
intelligence at least as powerful as any awkward brilliant mathematician’s—the
calculus of human interaction being so much more subtle and variable than any
physics, somewhat like the emerging field of math called cascading recom-binant
chaos, only less simple. So that there were at least two kinds of intelligence,
and probably many more: spatial, aesthetic, moral or ethical, interactional,
analytic, synthetic, and so forth. And it was those people who were intelligent
in a number of different ways who were truly exceptional, who stood out as
something special.
Phyllis, however, basking in the attention of her listeners, most
of them much younger than her and, at least on the surface, in awe of her
historicity—Phyllis was not one of those polymaths. On the contrary, she seemed
rather dim when it came to judging what people thought of her. Sax, who knew he
shared the deficiency, watched her with the best Lindholm smile he could
muster. But it seemed to him a fairly obviously vain performance on her part,
even a bit arrogant. And arrogance was always stupid. Or else a “ mask for some
kind of insecurity. Hard to guess what that insecurity might be, in such a
successful and attractive person. And she certainly was attractive.
After supper they went back up to the observation room on the top
floor, and there under a glittering bowl of stars the crowd from Biotique turned
on some music. It was the kind called nuevo calypso, the current rage in
Burroughs, and several members of the group brought out instruments and played
along, while others moved to the middle of the room and began to dance. The
music was paced at about a hundred beats a minute, Sax calculated, perfect
physiological riming for stimulating the heart just a bit; the secret to most
dance music, he supposed.
And then Phyllis was there by his side, grabbing for his hand and
pulling him out among the dancers. Sax only just restrained-himself from
jerking his hand away from her, and he was sure that his response to her
smiling invitation was sickly at best. He had never danced in his life; as far
as he could recall. But that was Sax Russell’s life. Surely Stephen Lindholm
had danced a lot. So Sax began to hop gently up and down in time with the bass
steel drum, wiggling his arms uncertainly at his sides, smiling at Phyllis in a
desperate simulation of debonair pleasure.
Later that evening the younger Biotique crew were still dancing,
and Sax took the elevator down to bring some tubs of ice milk back up from the
kitchens. When he got back into the elevator Phyllis was already inside, coming
back up from the dorm floor. “Here, let me help with those,” she said, and took
two of the four plastic bags hanging from his fingers. Then when she had them
she leaned down (she was a few centimeters taller than him) and kissed him full
on the mouth. He kissed back, but it was such a shock that he didn’t really
start to feel it until she pulled away; then the memory of her tongue between
his lips was like another kiss. He tried to look less than befuddled, but by
the way she laughed he knew he had failed. “I see you’re not as much of a
lady-killer as you look,” she said, which given the situation only made him
more alarmed. In point of fact, no one had ever done that to him before. He
tried to rally, but the elevator slowed and the doors hissed open.
Through dessert and the rest of the party Phyllis did not approach
him again. But when the timeslip began he went to the elevators to go back to
his room, and as the doors began to close Phyllis slipped through them and in,
and as soon as the elevator began to drop she was kissing him again. He put his
arms around her and kissed back, trying to figure out what Lindholm would do in
this situation, and if there was any way out of it that wouldn’t lead to
trouble. When the elevator slowed, Phyllis leaned back with a dreamy unfocused
gaze and said, “Come walk me to my room.” Reeling a bit, Sax held her upper arm
like a bit of delicate lab equipment, and was led to her room, a tiny chamber
like all the rest of the bedrooms. Standing in the doorway they kissed again,
despite Sax’s strong feeling that this was his last chance to escape, gracefully
or not; but he was kissing her back pretty passionately, he noticed, and when
she pulled back to murmur, “You might as well come inside,” he followed without
protest; indeed his penis was snagged halfway up in its blind grope toward the
stars, all his chromosomes humming loudly, the silly fools, at this chance at
immortality. It had been a long time since he had made love to anyone except
Hiroko, and those encounters, though friendly and pleasant, were not
passionate, more an extension of their bathing; whereas Phyllis, fumbling at
their clothes as they fell onto her bed kissing, was clearly excited, and this
excitement was transferring to Sax by a kind of immediate conduction. His
erection sprang free eagerly from his pants as Phyllis got the pants down his
legs, as if in illustration of the selfish gene theory, and he could only laugh
and tug at the long ventral zipper of her jumpsuit. Lindholm, free of any
worries, would certainly be aroused by the encounter. That was clear. And so he
had to be too. And besides, although he did not especially like Phyllis, he did
know her; there was that old First Hundred bond, the memories of those years
together in Underbill—there was something provocative in the notion of making
love to a woman he had known so long. And every one else in the First Hundred
had been polygamous, it seemed, everyone but Phyllis and him. So now they were
making up for it. And she was very attractive. And it was something, actually,
just to be wanted.
All these rationalizations were easy in the moment itself, and
indeed forgotten entirely in the rush of sexual sensation. But immediately upon
completion of the act Sax began to worry again. Should he go back to his room,
should he stay? Phyllis had fallen asleep with her hand on his flank, as if to
assure herself that he would stay. In sleep everyone looked like a child. He
surveyed the length of her body, shocked slightly once again by the various
manifestations of sexual dimorphism. Breathing so calmly. Just to be wanted ...
her fingers, still tensed across his ribs. And so he stayed; but he did not
sleep much.
Sax threw
himself into the work on the
glacier and the surrounding terrain. Phyllis went out in the field sometimes,
but she was always discreet in her behavior with him; Sax doubted if Claire (or
Jessica!) or anyone else realized what had happened— or realized that every few
days, it was happening again. This was another complication; how would Lindholm
react to Phyllis’s apparent desire for secrecy? But in the end it was not an issue.
Lindholm was more or less forced, as a matter of chivalry or compliance or
something like that, to act as Sax would have. And so they kept their affair to
themselves, much as they would have in Underbill, or on the Ares, or in
Antarctica. Old habits die hard.
And with the distraction of the glacier, it was easy enough to
keep the affair secret. The ice and the ribbed land around it were fascinating
environments, and there was a lot to study and try to understand out there.
The surface of the glacier proved to be extremely broken, as the
literature had suggested—mixed with regolith during the flooding, and shot
through with trapped carbonation bubbles. Rocks and boulders caught on the
surface had melted the ice underneath them, and then it had refrozen around
them, in a daily cycle that had left them all about two-thirds submerged. All
the seracs, standing above the jumbled surface of the glacier like titanic
dolmens, were on close inspection found to be deeply pitted. The ice was
brittle because of the extreme cold, and slow to flow downhill because of the
reduced gravity; nevertheless it was moving downstream, like a river in slow
motion, and because its source was emptied, the whole mass would eventually end
up on Vastitas Bo-’realis. And signs of this movement could be found in the
newly broken ice seen every day—new crevasses, fallen seracs, cracked bergs.
These fresh surfaces were quickly covered by crystalline ice flowers, whose
saltiness only added to the speed of crystallization.
Fascinated by this environment, Sax got in the habit of going out
by himself every day at dawn, following flagged trails the station crew had set
out. In the first hour of the day all the ice glowed in vibrant pink and rose
tones, reflecting tints of the sky. As direct sunlight struck the glacier’s
smashed surfaces, steam would begin to rise out of the cracks and iced-over
pools, and the ice flowers glittered like gaudy jewelry. On windless mornings a
small inversion layer trapped the mist some twenty meters overhead, forming a
thin orange cloud. Clearly the glacier’s water was diffusing fairly quickly out
into the world.
As he hiked through the frigid air he spotted many different
species of snow algae and lichen. The glacier-facing slopes of the two lateral
ridges were especially well populated, flecked by small patches of green, gold,
olive, black, rust, and many other colors— perhaps thirty or forty all told.
Sax strolled over these pseudo-moraines carefully, as unwilling to step on the
plant life as he would be to step on any experiment in the lab. Although
truthfully it looked as though most of the lichens would not notice. They were
tough; bare rock and water were all they required, plus light—though not much
of that appeared necessary—they grew under ice, inside ice, and even inside
porous chunks of translucent rock. In something as hospitable as a crack in the
moraine, they positively flourished. Every crack Sax looked in sported knobs of
Iceland lichen, yellow and bronze, which under the glass revealed tiny forking
stalks, fringed by spines. On flat rocks he found the crustose lichens: button
lichen, stud lichen, shield lichen, candel-laria, apple-green map lichen, and
the red-orange jewel lichen that indicated a concentration of sodium nitrate in
the regolith. Clumped under the ice flowers were growths of pale gray-green
snow lichen, which under magnification proved to have stalks like the Iceland
lichen, great masses of them looking delicate as lace. Worm lichen was dark
gray, and under magnification revealed weathered antlers that appeared
extremely delicate. And yet if pieces broke off, the algal cells enclosed in
their fungal threads would simply keep growing, and develop into more lichen,
attaching wherever they came to rest. Reproduction by fragmentation; useful indeed
in such an environment.
So the lichen were prospering, and along with the species that Sax
could identify, with the help of photos on his wristpad’s little display
screen, were many more that seemed not to correspond to any listed species. He
was curious enough about these nondescripts to pluck a few samples, to take
back and show to Claire and Jessica.
But lichen was only the beginning. On Earth, regions of broken
rock newly exposed by retreating ice, or by the growth of young mountains, were
called boulder fields, or talus. On Mars the equivalent zone was the
regolith—thus effectively the greater part of the surface of the planet. Talus
world. On Earth these regions were first colonized by microbacteria and lichen,
which, along with chemical weathering, began to break the rock down into a thin
immature soil, slowly filling the cracks between rocks. In time there was
enough organic material in this matrix to support other kinds of flora, and
areas at this stage were called fellfields,/el! being Gaelic for stone. It was
an accurate name, for stone fields they were, the ground surface studded with
rocks, the soil between and under them less than three centimeters thick,
supporting a community of small ground-hugging plants.
And now there were fellfields on Mars. Claire and Jessica
suggested to Sax that he cross the glacier, and hike downstream along the
lateral moraine, and so one morning (slipping away from Phyl-lis) he did so,
and after half an hour’s hiking, stopped on a knee-high boulder. Below him, sloping
into the rocky trough next to the glacier, was a wet patch of flat ground,
twinkling in the late-morning light. Clearly meltwater ran over it most
days—already in the utter stillness of the morning he could hear the drips of
little streams under the glacier’s edge, sounding like a choir of tiny wooden
chimes. And on this miniature watershed, among the threads of running water,
were spots of color, everywhere, leaping out at the eye—flowers. A patch of
fellfield, then, with its characteristic millefleur effect, the gray waste
peppered with dots of red, blue, yellow, pink, white... .
The flowers were mounted on little mossy cushions or florettes, or
tucked among hairy leaves. All the plants hugged the dark ground, which would
be markedly warmer than the air above it; nothing but grass blades stuck higher
than a few centimeters off the soil, tie tiptoed carefully from rock to rock,
unwilling to step on even a single plant. He knelt on the gravel to inspect
some of the little growths, the magnifying lenses on his faceplate at their
highest power. Glowing vividly in the morning light were the classic fellfield
organisms: moss campion, with its rings of tiny pink flowers on dark green
pads; a phlox cushion; five-centimeter sprigs of bluegrass, like glass in the
light, using the phlox taproot to anchor its own delicate roots ... there was a
magenta alpine primrose, with its yellow eye and its deep green leaves, which
formed narrow troughs to channel water down into the rosette. Many of the
leaves of these plants were hairy. There was an intensely blue forget-me-not,
the petals so suffused with warming anthocyanins that they were nearly
purple—the color that the Martian sky would achieve at around 230 millibars,
according to Sax’s’calculations on the drive to Arena. It was surprising there
was no name for that color, it was so distinctive. Perhaps that was cyanic
blue.
The morning passed as he moved very slowly from plant to plant,
using his wristpad’s field guide to identify sandwort, buckwheat, pussypaws,
dwarf lupines, dwarf clovers, and his namesake, saxifrage. Rock breaker. He had
never seen one in the wild before, and he spent a long time looking at the
first one he found: arctic saxifrage, Saxifraga hirculus, tiny branches covered
with long leaves, ending in small pale blue flowers.
As with the lichens, there were many plants that he couldn’t
identify; they exhibited features from different species, even gen-uses, or
else they were completely nondescript, their features an odd melange of
features from exotic biospheres, some looking like underwater growths, or new
kinds of cacti. Engineered species, presumably, although it was surprising
these weren’t listed in the guide. Mutants, perhaps. Ah but there, where a wide
crack had collected a deeper layer of humus and a tiny rivulet, was a clump of
kobresia. Kobresia and the other sedges grew where it was wet, and their
extremely absorbent turf chemically altered the soil under it quite rapidly,
performing important work in the slow transition from fellfield to alpine
meadow. Now that he had spotted it he could see minuscule watercourses marked
by their population of sedges, running down through the rocks. Kneeling on a
thinsulate pad, Sax clicked off his magnifying glasses and looked around, and
as low as he was, he could suddenly see a whole series of little fellfields,
scattered on the slope of the moraine like patches of Persian carpet, shredded
by the passing ice.
Back at the station Sax spent a lot of time sequestered in the
labs, looking at plant specimens through microscopes, running a variety of
tests, and talking about the results to Berkina and Claire and Jessica.
“They’re mostly polyploids?” Sax asked.
“Yes,” Berkina said.
Polyploidy was fairly .frequent at high altitudes on Earth, so it
was not surprising. It was an odd phenomenon—a doubling or tripling or even
quadrupling of the original chromosome number in a plant. Diploid plants, with
ten chromosomes, would be succeeded by polyploids with twenty or thirty or even
forty chromosomes. Hybridizers had used the phenomenon for years to develop
fancy garden plants, because polyploids were usually larger—larger leaves,
flowers, fruits, cell sizes—and they often had a wider range than their
parents. That kind of adaptability made them better at occupying new areas,
like the spaces in and under a glacier. There were islands in the Terran Arctic
where eighty percent of the plants were polyploid. Sax supposed that it was a
strategy to avoid the destructive effects of excessive mutation rates, which
would explain why it occurred in high-UV areas. Intense UV irradiation would
break a number of genes, but if they were replicated in the other sets of
chromosomes, then there was likely to be no genotypic damage, and no impediment
to reproduction.
“We find that even when we haven’t started with polyploids, which
we usually do, they change within a few generations.”
“Have you identified the triggering mechanism that causes it?”
“No.”
Another mystery. Sax stared into the microscope, vexed by this
rather astonishing gap in the bizarrely rent fabric of biological science. But
there was nothing to be done about it; he had looked into the matter himself in
his Echus Overlook labs in the 2050s, and it had appeared that polyploidy was
indeed stimulated by more UV radiation than the organism was used to, but how
cells read this difference, and then actually doubled or tripled or quadrupled
their chromosome count...
“I must say, I’m surprised at how much everything is flourishing.”
Claire smiled happily. “I was afraid that after Earth you might
think this was pretty barren.”
“Well, no.” He cleared his throat. “I guess I expected nothing. Or
just algae and lichen. But those fellfields seem to be thriving. I thought it
would take longer.”
“It would on Earth. But you have to remember, we’re not just
throwing seeds out there and waiting to see what happens. Every single species
has been augmented to increase hardiness and speed of growth.”
“And we’ve been reseeding every spring,” Berkina said, “and
fertilizing with nitrogen-fixing bacteria.”
“I thought it was denitrifying bacteria that were all the rage.”
“Those are distributed specifically in thick deposits of sodium
nitrate, to transpire the nitrogen into the atmosphere. But where we’re
gardening we need more nitrogen in the soil, so we spread nitrogen-fixers.”
“It still seems to be going very fast to me. And all of this must
have happened before the soletta.”
“The thing is,” Jessica said from her desk across the room, “there
isn’t any competition at this point. Conditions are harsh, but these are very
hardy plants, and when we put them out there, there isn’t any competition to
slow them down.”
“It’s an empty niche,” Claire said.
“And conditions here are better than most.places on Mars,” Berkina
added. “In the south you’ve got the aphelion winter, and the high altitude. The
stations down there report that the winterkill is just devastating. But here
the perihelion winter is a lot milder, and we’re only a kilometer high. It’s
pretty benign, really. Better than Antarctica in many ways.”
“Especially in the CO2 level,” Berkina said. “I wonder if that
doesn’t account for some of that speed you’re talking about. It’s like the
plants are being supercharged.”
“Ah,” Sax said, nodding.
So the fellfields were gardens. Aided growth rather than natural
growth. He had known that, of course—it was a given everywhere on Mars—but the
fellfields, so rocky and diffuse, had looked spontaneous and wild enough to
momentarily confuse him. And even remembering they were gardens, he was still
surprised that they were so vigorous.
“Well, and now with this soletta pouring sunlight onto the
surface!” Jessica exclaimed. She shook her head, as if disapproving. “Natural
insolation averaged forty-five percent of Earth’s, and with the soletta it’s
supposed to be up to fifty-four.”
“Tell me more about the soletta,” Sax said carefully.
They told him in a kind of round. A group of transnationals, led
by Subarashii, had built a circular slatted array of solar sail mirrors, placed
between the sun and Mars and aligned to focus inward sunlight that would have
just missed the planet. An annular support mirror, rotating in a polar orbit,
reflected light back to the soletta to counterbalance the pressure of the
sunlight, and that light was bounced back onto Mars as well. Both these mirror
systems were truly huge compared to the early freighter sails Sax had enlisted
to reflect light onto the surface, and the reflected light they were adding to
the system was really significant. “It must have cost a fortune to build them,”
Sax murmured.
“Oh, it did. The big transnats are investing like you can’t
believe.”
“And they’re not done yet,” Berkina said. “They’re planning to fly
an aerial lens just a few hundred kilometers above the surface, and this lens
will focus some of the incoming light from the soletta, until it heats the
surface up to fantastic temperatures, like five thousand degrees—”
“Five thousand!”
“Yes, I think that’s what I heard. They plan to melt the sand and
the regolith underneath, which will release all the volatiles into the atmosphere.”
“But what about the surface?”
“They plan to do it in remote areas.”
“In lines,” Claire said. “So that they end up with ditches?”
“Canals,” Sax said.
“Yes, that’s right.” They laughed.
“Glass-sided canals,” Sax said, troubled by the thought of all those
volatiles. Carbon dioxide would be prominent among them, perhaps chief among
them.
But he did not want to show too much interest in the larger
terraforming issues. He let it go, and soon enough the talk returned to their
work. “Well,” Sax said, “I guess some of the fellfields will turn into alpine
meadows pretty soon.”
“Oh, they’re already there,” Claire said.
“Really!”
“Yes, well, they’re small. But hike down the western edge about
three kilometers, have you done that yet? You’ll see. Alpine meadows and
krummholz too. It hasn’t been that difficult. We planted trees without even
altering them very much, because a lot of spruce and pine species turned out to
have temperature tolerances much lower than they needed in their Terran
habitats.”
“That’s peculiar.”
“A holdover from the Ice Ages, I guess. But now it’s coming in
handy.”
“Interesting,” Sax said.
And he spent the rest of that day staring into the microscopes
without seeing a thing, lost in thought. Life is so much spirit, Hi-roko used
to say. It was a very strange business, the vigor of living things, their
tendency to proliferate, what Hiroko called their green surge, their viriditas.
A striving toward pattern: it made him so.
When dawn arrived the next day he woke up in Phyllis’s bed, with
Phyllis tangled in the sheets beside him. After dinner the whole group had
retired to the observation room, as was becoming habitual, and Sax had
continued the conversation with Claire and Jessica and Berkina, and Jessica had
been very friendly to him, as was her wont, and Phyllis had seen this, and had
followed him to the bathrooms by the elevator, and pounced on him with that
shocking seductive embrace of hers, and they had ended up going down to the
dorm floor, and to her room. And although Sax had felt uncomfortable about
disappearing without saying good-night to the others, he had made love to her
passionately enough.
Now, looking at her, he remembered their precipitate departure
with distaste. It did not take any more than the most simple-minded
sociobiology to explain such behavior: competition for mates, a very basic
animal activity. Of course Sax had never been the subject of such competition
before, but there was nothing to pride oneself on in this sudden manifestation;
clearly it was happening because of Vlad’s cosmetic surgery, which through some
chance had rearranged his face into a configuration appealing to women.
Although why one arrangement of facial features should be more attractive than
another was a total mystery to him. He had heard sociobiological explanations
of sexual attractiveness before, and he could see that some of them might have
some validity: a man would look for a mate with wide hips to be able safely to
give birth to his children, with significant breasts in order to feed his
children, etc.; a woman would look for a strong man to feed her children and to
father strong children, etc., etc. That made a kind of sense; but none of it
had anything to do with facial features. For them, sociobiological explanations
got pretty tenuous: wide-set eyes for good eyesight, good teeth to aid health,
a significant nose to avoid getting colds—no. It just wasn’t as sensible as
that. It was a matter of chance configurations, somehow appealing to the eye.
An aesthetic judgment in which tiny nonfunctional features could make a great
difference, which indicated that practical concerns were not a factor. A case
in point was a pair of twin sisters with whom Sax had gone to high school—they
had been identical twins, and had looked very much alike, and yet somehow one
had been plain while the other had been beautiful. No, it was a matter of
millimeters of flesh and bone and cartilage, accidentally falling into patterns
that pleased or did not. So Vlad had made some alterations to his face, and now
women were competing for his attentions, though he was the same person he had
always been. A person Phyllis had never shown the slightest interest in before,
when he had looked the way nature had made him. It was hard not to be somewhat
cynical about it. To be wanted, yes; but wanted for trivialities... .
He got out of bed and suited up in one of the latest lightweight
suits, so much more comfortable than the old stretch-fabric walkers; one had to
insulate against the subfreezing temperatures, and wear a helmet and airtank of
course, but there was no longer any need to provide pressure to avoid bruising
of the skin. Even 160 millibars was enough for that, and so now it was only a
matter of warm clothing and boots, and the helmet. So it only took a few
minutes to dress, and then he was out to the glacier again.
He crunched over the hoarfrost on the main flagged trail across
the river of ice, and then wound downstream on the western bank, passing the
little millejleur fellfields, coated with frost that was already beginning to
melt in the light. He came to a place where the glacier dropped down a small
escarpment, in a short crazed icefall; it also took a few degrees’ turn to the
left, following its bordering ribs. Suddenly a loud creak filled the air,
followed by a low-frequency boom that vibrated in his stomach. The ice was
moving. He stopped, listening. He heard the distant bell-sound of an under-ice
stream. He hiked on, feeling lighter and happier with every step. The morning
light was very clear, the steam on the ice like white smoke.
And then, in the shelter of some huge boulders, he came upon an
amphitheater of fellfield, dotted with flowers like flecks of paint; and at the
bottom of the field was a little alpine meadow, south-facing and shockingly
green, the mats of grass and sedge all cut with ice-coated watercourses. And
around the edges of the amphitheater, sheltered in cracks and under rocks,
hunched a number of dwarf trees.
It was krummholz, then, which in the evolution of mountain
landscapes was the next stage after alpine meadows. The dwarf trees he had
spotted were actually members of ordinary species, mostly white spruce, Picea
glauca, which in these harsh conditions miniaturized on their own, contouring
into the protected spaces they sprouted in. Or had been planted in, more
likely. Sax saw some lodgepole pine, Pinus contorta, joining the more numerous
white spruce. These were the most cold-tolerant trees on Earth, and apparently
the Biotique team had added salt tolerance from trees like the tamarisks. All
kinds of engineering had been done to aid them, and yet still the extreme
conditions stunted their growth, until trees that might have grown thirty
meters high crouched in little knee-high pockets of protection, sheered off by
winds and winter snowpacks as if by hedge clippers. Thus the name ferummho!z,
German for “crooked wood” or perhaps “elfin wood”— the zone where trees first
managed to take advantage of the soil-building work of fellfields and alpine
meadows. Treelimit.
Sax wandered slowly around the amphitheater, stepping on rocks,
inspecting the mosses, the sedges, the grasses, and every single individual
tree. The gnarly little things were twisted as if cultivated by deranged bonsai
gardeners. “Oh how nice,” he said out loud more than once, inspecting a branch
or a trunk, or a pattern of laminate bark, peeling away like phyllo dough. “Oh
how nice. Oh for some moles. Some moles and voles, and marmots and minxes and
foxes.”
But the CO2 in the atmosphere was still nearly thirty percent of
the air, perhaps fifty millibars all by itself. All mammals would die very
quickly in such air. This was why he had always resisted the two-stage
terraforming model, which called for a massive CO2 buildup to precede anything
else. As if warming the planet were the only goal! But warming was not the
goal. Animals on the surface was the goal. This was not only a good in itself,
but good also for the plants, many of which needed animals. Most of these
fellfield plants propagated on their own, of course, and there were some altered
insects that Biotique had released, out there bumbling around in stubborn
insect survivalist mode, half alive and only just managing their work of
pollination. But there were many other symbiotic ecological functions that
needed animals, like the soil aeration accomplished by moles and voles, or the
spread of seeds by birds, and without them plants could not thrive, and some
would not live at all. No, they needed to reduce the CO2 in the air, probably
right back to the ten millibars it had been when they arrived, when it had been
the only air there was. Which was why the plan his colleagues had mentioned, to
melt the regolith with an aerial lens, was so troubling. It would only increase
their problem.
Meanwhile, this unexpected beauty. Hours passed as he inspected
specimens one by one, admiring in particular the spiraling trunk and branches,
the flaking bark and sprays of needles, of one little lodgepole pine—like a
piece of flamboyant sculpture, really. And he was down on his knees, with his
face in a sedge and his butt in the air, when Phyllis and Claire and a whole
group came trooping down into the meadow, laughing at him and trampling
carelessly on the living grass.
Phyllis stayed
with him that
afternoon, as she had one or two times before, and they walked back together,
Sax trying at first to play the role of native guide, pointing out plants he
had just learned the previous week. But Phyllis asked no questions about them,
and did not appear even to listen when he spoke. It seemed she only wanted him to
be an audience to her, a witness to her life. So he gave up on the plants and
asked questions, and listened and then asked more. It was a good opportunity to
learn more about the current Martian power structure, after all. Even if she
exaggerated her,own role in it, it was still informative. “I was amazed how
fast Subarashii got the new elevator built and into position,” she said.
“Subarashii?”
“They were the principal contractor.”
“Who awarded the contract, UNOMA?”
“Oh no. UNOMA has been replaced by the UN Transitional Authority.”
“So when you were president of the Transitional Authority, you
were in effect president of Mars.”
“Well, the presidency just rotates among the members, it doesn’t
confer much more power than any other members have. It’s just for media
consumption, and to run the meetings. Scut work.”
“Still…”
“Oh, I know.” She laughed. “It’s a position a lot of my old
colleagues wanted but never got. Chalmers, Bogdanov, Boone, Toitovna—I wonder
what they would have thought if they had seen it. But they backed the wrong
horse.”
Sax looked away from her. “So why did Subarashii get the new
elevator?”
“The steering committee of the TA voted that way. Praxis had made
a bid for it, and no one likes Praxis.”
“Now that the elevator is back, do you think things will change
again?”
“Oh certainly! Certainly! A lot of things have been on hold since
the unrest. Emigration, building, terraforming, commerce—they’ve all been
slowed down. We’ve barely managed to rebuild some of the damaged towns. It’s
been a kind of martial law, necessary of course, given what happened.”
“Of course.”
“But now! All the stockpiled metals from the last forty years are
ready to enter the Terran market, and that’s going to stimulate the entire
two-world economy unbelievably. We’ll see more production out of Earth now, and
more investment here, more emigration too. We’re finally ready to get on with
things.”
“Like the soletta?”
“Exactly! That’s a perfect example of what I mean. There’s all
kinds of plans for major investment here.”
“Glass-sided canals,” Sax said. It would make the moholes look
trivial.
Phyllis was saying something about how bright things looked for
Earth, and he shook his head to clear it of joules per square centimeter. He
said, “But I thought Earth had some serious difficulties.”
“Oh, Earth always has serious difficulties. We’re going to have to
get used to that. No, I’m very optimistic. I mean this recession has hit them
hard down there, especially the little tigers and the baby tigers, and of
course the less developed countries. But the influx of industrial metals from
here will stimulate the economy for everyone, including the environment-control
industries. And, unfortunately, it looks like the diebacks will solve a lot of
their other problems for them.”
Sax focused on the section of moraine they were climbing. Here
solifluction, the daily melting of ground ice on a tilt, had caused the loose
regolith to slide down in a series of dips and rims, and although it all looked
gray and lifeless, a faint pattern like minuscule tiling revealed that it was
actually covered with blue-gray flake lichen. In the dips there were clumps of
what looked like gray ash, and Sax stooped to pluck a’small sample. “Look,” he
said brusquely to Phyllis, “snow liverwort.”
“It looks like dirt.”
“That’s a parasitic fungus that grows on it. The plant is actually
green, see those little leaves? That’s new growth that the fungus hasn’t
covered yet.” Under magnification the new leaves looked like green glass.
But Phyllis didn’t bother to look. “Who designed that one?” she
asked, her tone of voice implying that the designer had poor taste.
“I don’t know. Could be no one. Quite a few of the new species out
here weren’t designed.”
“Can evolution be working so fast?” ‘ “Well, you know^is
polyploidy evolution?”
“No.”
Phyllis moved on, not much interested in the gray little specimen.
Snow liverwort. Probably very lightly engineered, or even undesigned. Test
specimens, cast out here among the rest to see how they would do. And thus very
interesting, in Sax’s opinion.
But somewhere along the way Phyllis had lost interest. She had
been a first-rate biologist once, and Sax found it hard to imagine losing the
curiosity which lay at the core of science, that urge to figure things out. But
they were getting old. In the course of their now unnatural lives it was likely
they would all change, perhaps profoundly. Sax didn’t like the idea, but there
it was. Like all the rest of the new centenarians, he was having more and more
trouble remembering specifics from his past, especially the middle years,
things that had happened between the ages of around twenty-five to ninety. Thus
the years before ‘61, and most of his years on Earth, were getting dim. And
without fully functioning memories, they were certain to change.
So when they returned to the station he went to the lab,
disturbed. Perhaps, he thought, they had gone polyploidal, not as individuals
but culturally—an international array, arriving here and effectively
quadrupling the meme strands, providing the adaptability to survive in this
alien terrain despite all the stress-induced mutations... .
But no. That was analogy rather than homology. What in the
humanities they would call a heroic simile, if he understood the term, or a
metaphor, or some other kind of literary analogy. And analogies were mostly
meaningless—a matter of phenotype rather than genotype (to use another
analogy). Most, of poetry and literature, really all the humanities, not to
mention the social sciences, were phenotypic as far as Sax could tell. They added
up to a huge compendium of meaningless analogies, which did not help to explain
things, but only distorted perception of them. A kind of continuous conceptual
drunkenness, one might say. Sax himself much preferred exactitude and
explanatory power, and why not? If it was 200 Kelvin outside why not say so,
rather than talk about witches’ tits and the like, hauling the whole great
baggage of the ignorant past along to obscure every encounter with sensory
reality? It was absurd.
So, okay, there was no such thing as cultural polyploidy. There
was just a determinate historical situation, the consequence of all that had
come before—the decisions made, the results spreading out over the planet in
complete disarray, evolving, or one should say developing, without a plan.
Planless. In that regard there was a similarity between history and evolution,
both of them being matters of contingency and accident, as well as patterns of
development. But the differences, particularly in time scales, were so gross as
to make that similarity nothing more than analogy again.
No, better to concentrate on homologies, those structural
similarities that indicated actual physical relationships, that really
explained something. This of course took one back into science. But after an encounter
with Phyllis, that was just what he wanted.
So he dove back into studying plants. Many of the fellfield
organisms he was finding had hairy leaves, and very thick leaf surfaces; which
helped protect the plants from the harsh UV blast of Martian sunlight. These
adaptations could very well be examples of homologies, in which species with
the same ancestors had all kept family traits. Or they could be examples ‘of
convergence, in which species from separate phyla had come to the same forms
through functional necessity. And these days they could also be simply the
result of bioengineering, the breeders adding the same traits to different
plants in order to provide the same advantages.
Finding out which it was required identifying the plant, and then
checking the records to see if it had been designed by one of the terraforming
teams. There was a Biotique lab in Elysium, led by a Harry Whitebook, designing
many of the most successful surface plants, especially the sedges and grasses,
and a check in the Whitebook catalog often showed that his hand had been at
work, in which case the similarities were often a matter of artificial
convergence, Whitebook inserting traits like hairy leaves into almost every
leaved plant he bred.
An interesting case of history imitating evolution. And certainly,
since they wanted to create a biosphere on Mars in a short time, perhaps 107
times quicker than it had taken on Earth, they would have to intervene
continuously in the act of evolution itself. So the Martian biosphere would not
be a case of phylogeny recapitulating ontogeny, a discredited notion in any
case, but of history recapitulating evolution. Or rather imitating it, to the
extent possible given the Martian environment. Or even directing it. History
directing evolution. It was a daunting thought.
Whitebook was going about the task with a lot of flair; he had
bred phreatophytic lichen reefs, for instance, which built the salts they
incorporated into a kind of millepore coral structure, so that the resulting
plants were olive or dark green masses of semicrys-tailine blocks. Walking
through a patch of them was like walking through a Lilliputian garden maze
which had been crushed, abandoned, and half covered with sand. The individual
blocks of the plant were fractured or fissured in a crackle pattern, and they
were so lumpish they looked diseased, with a disease that appeared to petrify
plants while they were still living, leaving them struggling to exist inside
broken sheaths of malachite and jade. Strange-looking, but very successful; Sax
found quite a few of these lichen reefs growing on the crest of the western
moraine rib, and in the more arid regolith beyond.
He spent a few mornings studying them there, and one morning
crossing the ridge he looked back over the glacier, and saw a sandy whirlwind
spinning over the ice, a sparkling rust-colored little tornado that rushed
downstream. Immediately afterward he was struck by a high wind, with gusts of
at least a hundred kilometers an hour, and then a hundred and fifty; he ended
up crouching behind a lichen reef, lifting a hand to try to estimate the wind
speed. It was hard to make an accurate guess, because the thickening atmosphere
had increased the force of winds, making them seem faster than they really
were. All estimates based on the instincts from the Underbill days were now
badly off. The gusts striking him now might have been as slow as eighty
kilometers an hour. But full of sand, ticking against his faceplate and
reducing visibility to a hundred meters or so. After an hour of waiting for the
sandstorm to decrease he gave up and returned to the station, crossing the
glacier by moving very carefully from flag to flag, careful not to lose the
trail they made—important, if one wanted to stay out of dangerous crevasse
zones.
Once across the ice Sax made his way back to the station quickly,
pondering the little tornado that had announced the arrival of the wind.
Weather was strange. Inside he called up the meteorology channel, and ran
through all its information on the day’s weather, and then stared at a
satellite photo of their region. A cyclonic cell was bearing down on them from
Tharsis. With the air thickening, the winds coming off Tharsis were powerful
indeed. The bulge would forever remain an anchoring point in Martian climatology,
Sax suspected. Most of the time the northern hemisphere jet stream would circle
up and around its northern end, like Terra’s northern jet stream did around the
Rockies. But every once in a while, air masses would shove over the Tharsis
crest between volcanoes, dropping their moisture on west Tharsis as they rose.
Then these dehydrated air masses would roar down the eastern slope, Big Man’s
mistral or sirocco or foehn, with winds so fast and forceful that as the
atmosphere thickened they were getting to be a problem; some tent towns on the
open surface were endangered to the point where it looked like they might have
to retreat into craters or canyons, or at least greatly strengthen their
tenting.
As Sax considered it the whole issue of weather became so exciting
that he wanted to drop his botanical studies, and go after it full-time. In the
old days he would have done that, and dived into climatology for a month or a
year until his curiosity was satisfied, and he had managed to think of some
contribution to policy regarding any problems that were arising.
But that had been a rather undisciplined approach, as he now saw,
leading to a kind of scattershot method, even to a certain dilettantism. Now,
as Stephen Lindholm, working for Claire and Biotique, he had to abandon
climatology with a longing glance at the satellite photos and their
suggestively swirling new cloud systems, and merely tell the others about the
whirlwind, and talk about weather in a recreational way in the lab or over
dinner— while his main effort returned to their little ecosystem and its
plants, and how to help them along. And as he was just beginning to feel he was
learning the particularities of Arena, these restrictions imposed by his new
identity were not a bad thing. They meant he was forced to concentrate on a
single discipline in a way he hadn’t since his postdoc work. And the rewards of
concentration were becoming more and more evident to him. They could make him a
better scientist.
The next day, for instance, with the winds merely brisk, he went
back out and located the coral lichen patch he had been investigating when the
sandstorm had hit. All the structure’s fissures were filled with sand, which
must have been true most of the time. So he brushed one of the fissures clean,
and looked inside through the 20x magnifiers on his faceplate. The walls of the
fissures were coated with very fine cilia, somewhat like the tiny versions of
the hairs on exposed leaves of alpine cinquefoil. Clearly there was no need for
protection of these already well-hidden surfaces. Perhaps they were there to
release excess oxygen from the tissues of the semicrystalline outside mass.
Spontaneous or planned? He read through descriptions on his wrist, and added a
new one of this specimen, which because of the cilia appeared to be
nondescript. He took out a little camera from his thigh pocket and took a
picture, put a sample of the cilia in a bag, and put both camera and bag in his
thigh pocket, and moved on.
He went down to look at the glacier, stepping onto it at one of
the many junctures where its side came down and met smoothly the rising slope
of the moraine rib. It was bright on the glacier at midday, as if bits of
broken mirror were reflecting sunlight everywhere on it. Chunks of ice crunched
underfoot. Little watersheds gathered to deep-channeled streams, which abruptly
disappeared down holes in the ice. These holes, like the crevasses, were
various shades of blue. The moraine ribs gleamed like gold, and seemed to
bounce in the rising heat. Something in the sight reminded Sax of the soletta
plan, and he whistled through his teeth.
He straightened up and stretched his lower back, feeling very
alive and curious, absolutely in his element. The scientist at work. He was
learning to like the ever-fresh primary effort of “natural history,” its close
observation of things in nature; description, categorization, taxonomy—the
primal attempt to explain, or rather its first step, simply to describe. How
happy the natural historians had always seemed to him in their writings,
Linnaeus and his wild Latin, Lyell and his rocks, Wallace and Darwin and their
great step from category to theory, from observation to paradigm. Sax could
feel it, right there on Arena Glacier in the year 2101, with all these new
species, this flourishing process of speciation that was half human and half
Martian—a process that would need its own theories eventually, some kind of
evohistory, or historico-evolution, or ecopoesis, or simply areology. Or
Hiroko’s viriditas, perhaps. Theories of the terraforming project—not only in
what it intended, but how it was actually working. A natural history,
precisely. Very little of what was happening could be studied with experimental
lab science, so natural history was going to return to its proper place among
the sciences, as one among equals. Here on Mars all kinds of hierarchies were
destined to fall, and that was no meaningless analogy, but simply a precise
observation of what all could see.
What all could see. Would he have understood, before his time out
here? Would Ann understand? Looking down the wild cracked surface of the
glacier, he found himself thinking of her. Every little berg and crevasse stood
out as if he still had the 20x magnification on in his faceplate, but with an
infinite depth of field—every tint of ivory and pink in the pocked surfaces,
every mirror gleam of meltwater, the bumpy hillocks of the far
horizon—everything was, for the moment, surgically clear and focused. And it
occurred to him that this vision was not a matter of accident (the lensing of
tears over his cornea, for instance) but the result of a new and growing
conceptual understanding of the landscape. It was a kind of cognitive vision,
and he could not help but remember Ann saying angrily to him, Mars is the place
you have never seen.
He had taken it as a figure of speech. But now he recalled Kuhn,
asserting that scientists who used different paradigms existed in literally
different worlds, epistemology being such an integral component of reality.
Thus Aristoteleans simply did not see the Galilean pendulum, which to them was
a body falling with some difficulty; and in general, scientists debating the
relative merits of competing paradigms simply talked right through each other,
using the same words to discuss different realities.
He had considered that too to be a figure of speech. But thinking
of it now, absorbing the hallucinatory clarity of the ice, he had to admit that
it certainly described what his conversations with Ann had always felt like. It
had been a frustration to both of them, and when Ann had cried’ out that he had
never seen Mars, a statement that was obviously false on some levels, she had
perhaps meant only to say that he hadn’t seen her Mars, the Mars created by her
paradigm. And that was no doubt true.
Now, however, he was seeing a Mars he had never seen before. But
the transformation had come by focusing for a matter of weeks on just those
parts of the Martian landscape that Ann despised, the new life-forms. So he
doubted that the Mars he was seeing, with its snow algae and ice lichen, and
the enchanting little patches of Persian carpet fringing the glacier, was Ann’s
Mars. Nor was it the Mars of his colleagues in terraforming. It was a function
of what he believed, and what he wanted—it was his Mars, evolving right before
his very eyes, always in the process of becoming something new. Like a stab to
the heart he felt the wish that he could seize Ann at that very moment, and
pull her by the arm down the western moraine crying, See? See? See?
Instead he had Phyllis, perhaps the least philosophical person he
had ever known. He avoided her when he could do it without appearing to, and
passed his days on the ice, in the wind under the vast northern sky, or on the
moraines, crawling around studying plants. Back in the station he talked over
dinner with Claire and Berkina and the rest about what they were finding out
there, and what it meant. After dinner they retired to the observation room and
talked some more, dancing on some nights, especially Fridays and Saturdays. The
music they played was always nuevo calypso, guitars and steel drums in fast
simultaneous melodies, creating complex rhythms that Sax had great difficulty
analyzing. There were often measures of 5/4 time alternating or even coexisting
with 4/4, a pattern seemingly designed to throw him out of step. Luckily the
current dance style was a kind of free-form movement that had little relation
to the beat anyway, so when he failed in his attempts to stay in rhythm, he was
pretty sure he was the only one who noticed. In fact it made a pretty good
entertainment just trying to keep time, off on his own, hopping around with a
little jig added to the 5/4 measures. When he returned to the tables and
Jessica said to him, “You’re really a good dancer, Stephen,” he burst out
laughing, pleased even though he knew all it revealed was Jessica’s
incompetence to judge dance, or her attempt to please him. Although perhaps the
daily boulder-walking in the field was improving his balance and timing. Any
physical action, properly studied and practiced, could no doubt be accomplished
with a reasonable amount of skill, if not flair.
He and Phyllis talked or danced together only as much as they did
with everyone else; and only in the secrecy of their rooms did they embrace,
kiss, make love. It was the old pattern of the hidden affair, and one morning
around four A.M., returning to his room from hers, a flash of fear shook him;
it seemed to him suddenly that his immediate undiscussed complicity in this
behavior must tag him to Phyllis as suspiciously like one of the First Hundred.
Who else would fall into such a bizarre pattern so readily, as if it were the
natural thing to do?
But on consideration it did not seem that Phyllis was attentive to
nuances of that kind. Sax had almost given up trying to understand her thinking
and her motivations, as the data were contradictory and, despite the fact that
they were spending nights together on a fairly regular basis, rather sparse.
She seemed interested mostly in the intertransnational maneuvering that was
going on in Sheffield, and back on Earth—shifts in executive personnel and
subsidiaries and stock prices that were clearly ephemeral and meaningless, but
to her utterly absorbing. As Stephen he remained brightly interested in all
this, and asked her questions about it to show his interest when she brought it
up, but when he asked about what the daily changes meant in any larger
strategic sense, she was either unable or unwilling to give him good answers.
Apparently it was interesting to her more for the personal fortunes of those
she knew than for the system that their careers revealed. An ex-Consolidated
executive now with Subarashii had been made head of elevator operations, a
Praxis executive had disappeared in the outback, Armscor was going to explode
scores of hydrogen bombs in the megaregolith under the north polar cap, to
stimulate growth and warming of the northern sea; and this last fact was no
more interesting to her than the two previous ones.
And perhaps it made sense to pay attention to the individual
careers of the people running the biggest transnational, and the micropolitics
of the jockeying for power among them. These were the current rulers of the
world, after all. So Sax lay next to Phyllis, listening to her and making Stephen’s
comments, trying to sort out all the names, wondering if the founder of Praxis
really was a senile surfer, wondering if Shellalco would be taken over by
Amexx, wondering why the transnat executive teams were so fiercely competitive,
given that they already ruled the world, and had everything they could
conceivably want in their personal lives. Perhaps socio-biology indeed had the
answer, and it was all primate dominance dynamics, a matter of increasing one’s
reproductive success in the corporate realm—which might not be a mere analogy,
if one considered one’s company as one’s kin. And then again, in a world where
one might live indefinitely, it could be simple self-protection. “Survival of
the fittest,” which Sax had always considered a useless tautology. But if
social Darwinists were taking over, then maybe the concept gained importance,
as a religious dogma of the ruling order... .
And then Phyllis would roll over onto him and kiss him, and he
would enter the realm of sex, where different rules seemed to obtain. For
instance, though he liked Phyllis less and less as he got to know her better,
his attraction to her did not correlate to this, but fluctuated according to
mysterious principles of its own, no doubt pheromone-driven and hormonally
based; so that sometimes he had to steel himself to accept her touches, while
other times he felt alive with a lust that seemed all the stronger because it
was so unmixed with affection. Or more senseless still, a lust actually
heightened by dislike. This last reaction was rare, however, and as the stay at
Arena went on, and the novelty of their affair wore off, Sax more and more
frequently found himself distanced from their lovemaking, and inclined to
fantasize during it, and fall very deeply into Stephen Lindholm, who appeared
to be thinking about caressing women Sax did not know or had scarcely heard of,
like Ingrid Bergman or Marilyn Monroe.
One dawn, after a disturbing night of that sort, Sax got up to go
out on the ice, and Phyllis stirred and woke, and decided to come along.
They suited up and went out into a pure purple dawn, and hiked in
silence down the near moraine to the side of the glacier, ascending it by a
trail of steps cut into the ice. Sax took the southernmost flagged trail across
the glacier, intending to climb the west lateral moraine as far upstream as he
could go in a morning.
They made their way between knee-high crenellations of ice, all
holed like Swiss cheese, and stained pink with snow algae. Phyllis was charmed
as always by the fantastic jumble, and commented on the more unusual seracs,
comparing those they passed this morning to a giraffe, the Eiffel Tower, the
surface of Europa, etc. Sax stopped often to inspect chunks of jade ice that
were shot through with an ice bacteria. In one or two places the jade ice sat
exposed in suncups turned pink with snow algae; the effect was strange, like a
vast field of pistachio ice cream.
So their progress was slow, and they were still on the glacier
when a sequence of small tight whirlwinds popped into existence one after the
next, like something out of a magic trick: brown dust devils, glittering with
ice particulates, in a rough line that bore down the glacier toward them. Then
the whirlwinds collapsed in some fluctuation, and with a clattery bang a gust
struck them hard, whistling downslope with a surge so powerful they had to
crouch into it to keep their balance. “What a gale!” Phyllis exclaimed in his
ear.
“Katabatic wind,” Sax said, watching a knot of seracs disappear in
the dust. “Falling off Tharsis.” Visibility was dropping. “We should try to get
back to the station.”
So they set off back along the flagged trail, moving from one
emerald dot to the next. But visibility continued to decrease, until they
couldn’t see from one marker to the next. Phyllis said, “Here, . let’s get into
the shelter of those icebergs.”
She struck off toward the dim shape of an ice prominence, and Sax
hurried after her, saying, “Be careful, a lot of seracs have crevasses at their
base,” and reaching forward to take her hand, when she dropped as if falling
through a trap door. He caught an upflung wrist and was jerked down hard,
hitting his knees painfully on the ice. Phyllis was still falling, sliding down
a chute at the end of a shallow crevasse; he should have let go of her but
instinctively held on, and was dragged over the edge head first. Both of them
slid down into the packed snow at the bottom of the crevasse, and the snow gave
under them so that they dropped again, crashing onto frosty sand after a brief
but terrifying free-fall.
Sax, having landed mostly on Phyllis, sat up unhurt. Alarming
sucking sounds came over the intercom from Phyllis, but it soon became clear
that she had only had the wind knocked out of her. When she controlled her
gasping she tested her limbs gingerly, and declared she was okay. Sax admired
her toughness.
There was a rip in the fabric over his right knee; but otherwise
he was fine. He took some suit tape from his thigh pocket and taped the rip;
theT^knee still bent without pain, so he forgot about it and stood.
The hole that they had punched through the snow above them was
about two meters over his outstretched hand. They were in an elongated bubble,
the lower half of a crevasse that had a kind of hourglass shape. The downstream
wall of their little bubble was ice, the upstream wall ice-coated rock. The
rough circle of visible sky overhead was an opaque peach color, and the bluish
ice wall of the crevasse gleamed with reflections of the dusty sunlight, so
that the net effect was somewhat opalescent, and quite picturesque. But they
were stuck.
“Our beeper signal will be cut off, and then they’ll come
looking,” Sax said to Phyllis as she stood up beside him.
“Yes,” Phyllis said. “But will they find us?”
Sax shrugged. “The beeper leaves a directional record.”
“But the wind! Visibility may go right down to nothing!”
“We’ll have to hope they can deal with it.”
The crevasse extended to the east like a narrow low hallway. Sax
ducked under a low point, and shone his headlamp down the space between ice and
rock; it extended for as far as he could see, in the direction of the east side
of the glacier. It seemed possible that it might reach all the way to one of
the many small caves on the glacier’s lateral edge, so after sharing the
thought with Phyllis he set off to explore the crevasse, leaving her in
position to be sure that any searchers who found the hole would also find
someone at the bottom of it.
Outside the glary cone of his headlamp’s beam, the ice was an
intense cobalt blue, an effect caused by the same Rayleigh scattering that
blued the color of the sky. There was a fair amount of light even with his
headlamp off, which suggested that the ice overhead was not very thick.
Probably the same approximate thickness as the height of their fall, now that he
thought of it.
Phyllis’s voice in his ear asked if he was all right.
“I’m fine,” he said. “I think this space might have been caused by
the glacier running over a transverse escarpment. So it very well might run all
the way out.”
But it didn’t. A hundred meters farther on, the ice on the left
closed in and met the ice over the rockface to the right, and that was it: dead
end.
On the way back he walked more slowly, stopping to inspect cracks
in the ice, and bits of rock underfoot that had perhaps been plucked from the
escarpment. In one fissure the cobalt of the ice turned blue-green, and
reaching into it with a gloved finger, he pulled out a long dark green mass,
frozen on the surface but soft underneath. It was a long dentritic mass of
blue-green algae.
“Wow,” he said, and plucked a few frozen strands away, then shoved
the rest back into their home crack. He had read that algae were burrowing down
into the rock and ice of the planet, and bacteria were going even deeper; but
actually to find some buried down here, so far from the sun, was enough to make
one marvel. He turned off his headlamp again, and the luminous cobalt blue of
the glacial light glowed around him, dim and rich. So dark, so cold, how did
any living thing do it?
“Stephen?”
“I’m coming. Look,” he said to Phyllis when he returned to her
side, “it’s blue-green algae, all the way down here.”
He held it out for her to look at, but she only gave it the
briefest glance. He sat down and got out a sample bag from his thigh pocket,
and put a small strand of algae inside, then stared at it through his 20x
magnifying lenses. The lenses were not powerful enough to show him all he
wanted to see, but they did reveal the long strands of dentritic green, looking
slimy as they thawed out. His lectern had catalogs with photos at similar
magnifications, but he couldn’t find the species that resembled this one in
every detail. “It could be nondescript,” he said. “Wouldn’t that be something.
It really makes you wonder if the mutation rate out here is higher than the
standard rates. We should work up experiments to determine that.”
Phyllis did not reply.
Sax kept his thoughts to himself as he continued to search through
the catalogs. He was still at it when they heard scratchy squeals and hisses
over their radio, and Phyllis began calling out over the common band. Soon they
could hear voices on the intercom, and not long after that, a round helmet
filled the hole overhead. “We’re here!” Phyllis cried.
“Wait a second,” Berkina said, “we’ve got a rope ladder for you.”
And after
an awkward swinging climb they were back on the surface of the glacier,
blinking in the dusty fluctuating daylight, and crouching over to meet the
gusts of wind, which were still powerful. Phyllis was laughing, explaining what
had happened in her usual manner—”We were holding hands so we didn’t lose each
other, and boom, down we went!”—and their rescuers were describing the brute
force of the strongest gusts. All seemed back to normal; but when they got
inside the station, and took off their helmets, Phyllis gave him a brief
searching glance, a very curious look indeed, as if he had revealed something
to her out there which had made her wary—as if he had somehow reminded her of
something, down in that crevasse. As if he had behaved down there in a manner
which gave him away, without hope of contradiction, as her old comrade
Saxifrage Russell.
Through the
Northern fall they worked
around the glacier, and saw the days grow shorter, and the winds colder. Big
intricate ice flowers grew on the glacier every night, and only melted at the
edges briefly in the midafternoons, after which they hardened and served as the
base for even more complex petals that appeared the next morning, the small
sharp crystalline flakes bursting away in every direction from the larger fins
and tines beneath. They could not help crushing entire fractal worlds with
every step as they crunch-crunched over the ice, looking for the plants now
covered in frost, to see how they were coping with the coming cold. Looking
across the bumpy white waste, feeling the wind cut through one of the thicker
insulated walkers, it seemed to Sax that a very severe winterkill was
inevitable. ‘
But looks were deceptive. Oh there would be winterkill, of course;
but the plants were hardening, as the overwintering gardeners called it,
acclimatizing to the onset of winter. It was a three-stage process, Sax
learned, digging in the thin hard-packed snow to find the signs. First,
phytochrome clocks in the leaves sensed the shorter days-and now they were getting
shorter fast, with dark fronts coming through every week or so, dumping
dirtywhite snow out of black low-bellied cumulonimbus clouds. In the second
stage, growth ceased, carbohydrates translocated to the roots, and amounts of
abscisic acid grew in some leaves until they fell off. Sax found lots of these
leaves, yellowed or brown and still hanging from their stems, hugging the
ground and providing the yet living plant with some more insulation. During
this stage water was moving out of cells into intercellular ice crystals, and
the cell membranes were toughening, while sugar molecules replaced water
molecules in some proteins. Then in the third and coldest stage, a smooth ice
formed around the cells without rupturing them, in a process called vitrification.
At this point the plants could tolerate temperatures down to
220°K, which had been approximately the average temperature of Mars before
their arrival, but was now about as cold as it got. And the snow which fell in
the ever more frequent storms actually served as insulation for the plants,
keeping the ground that it covered warmer than the windy surface. As he dug
around in the snow with numbed fingers, the subnivean environment looked to Sax
to be a fascinating place, especially the adaptations to the spectrally
selected blue light that was transmitted through as much as three meters of
snow-^-another example of Rayleigh scattering. He would have liked to study
this winter world in person for the entire six months of the season; he found
he liked it out under the low dark waves of cloud, on the white surface of the
snowy glacier, leaning into the wind and stomping through drifts. But Claire
wanted him to return to Burroughs, to work with the labs there on a tundra
tamarisk they were close to succeeding with in the Mars jars. And Phyllis and
the rest of the crew from Armscor and the Transitional Authority were going
back as well. So one day they left the station to a little crew of
researcher-gardeners, and got in a caravan of cars, and drove back south together.
Sax had groaned when he heard that Phyllis and her group would be
going back with them. He had hoped that mere physical separation would end the
relationship with Phyllis, and get him away from that probing eye. But as they
were going back together, it looked like some sort of action would have to be
taken. He would have to break it off if he wanted it to end, which he did. The
whole idea of getting involved with her had been a bad one to begin with; talk
about the surge of the unexplainable! But the surge was over,
and he was left in the company of a person who was at best
irritating, and at worst dangerous. And of course it was no comfort to think
that he had been acting in bad faith the entire time. No step along the way had
seemed more than a little thing; but altogether it came to something rather
monstrous.
So their first night back in Burroughs, when his wrist beeped and
Phyllis appeared to ask him out to dinner, he agreed and ended the call, and
muttered to himself uneasily. It was going to be awkward.
They went out to a patio restaurant that Phyllis knew of on Ellis
Butte, west of Hunt Mesa. Because of Phyllis they were seated at a corner
table, with a view over the high district between Ellis and Table Mountain,
where the woods of Princess Park were ringed by new mansions. Across the park
Table Mountain was so glass-walled that it looked like a giant hotel, and the
more distant mesas were not much less gaudy.
Waiters and waitresses brought by a carafe of wine, and then
dinner, interrupting Phyllis’s chatter, which was mostly about the new
construction on Tharsis. But she seemed very willing to talk with the waiters
and waitresses, signing napkins for them, and asking where they were from, how
long they had been on Mars, and so forth. Sax ate steadily and watched Phyllis,
and Burroughs, waiting for the meal to come to an end. It seemed to go on for
hours.
But finally they were done, and taking the elevator ride to the
valley floor. The elevator brought back memories of their first night together,
which made Sax acutely uncomfortable. Perhaps Phyllis felt the same way, for
she moved to the other side of the car, and the long descent passed in silence.
And then on the streetgrass of the boulevard she pecked him on the
cheek with a swift hard hug, and said, “It’s been a lovely evening, Stephen,
and a lovely time out at Arena as well, I’ll never forget our little adventure
under the glacier. But now I have to get back up to Sheffield and deal with
everything that’s been piling up, you know. I hope you’ll come visit me if
you’re ever up there.”
Sax struggled to control his face, trying to figure out how
Stephen would feel and what he would say. Phyllis was a vain woman, and it was
possible she would forget the entire affair faster if she was avoiding thought
about the hurt she had caused someone by dropping him, rather than brooding
over why he had seemed so relieved. So he tried to locate the minority voice
inside him that was offended to be treated in such a manner. He tightened the
corners of his mouth, and looked down to the side. “Ah,” he said.
Phyllis laughed like a girl, and caught him up in an affectionate
hug. “Come on,” she admonished him. “It’s been fun, hasn’t it? And we’ll see
each other again when I visit Burroughs, or if you ever come up to Sheffield.
Meanwhile, what else can we do? Don’t be sad.”
Sax shrugged. This made such sense that it was hard to imagine any
but the most lovelorn suitor objecting, and he had never pretended to be that.
They were both over a hundred, after all. “I know,” he said, and gave her a
nervous, rueful smile. “I’m just sorry the time has come.”
“I know.” She kissed him again. “Me too. But we’ll meet again, and
then we’ll see.”
He nodded, looking down again, feeling a new appreciation for the
difficulties actors faced. What to do?
But with a brisk good-bye she was off. Sax said his own goodbye to
a look over the shoulder, a quick wave.
He walked across Great Escarpment Boulevard, toward Hunt Mesa. So
that was that. Easier than he had thought it would be, certainly. In fact,
extremely convenient. But a part of him was still irritated. He looked at his
reflection in the shop windows he passed on the lower floors of Hunt. A raffish
old geezer; handsome? Well, whatever that meant. Handsome for some women,
sometimes. Picked up by one and used as a bed partner for a few weeks, then
tossed aside when it was time to move on. Presumably it had happened to many
another through the years, more often to women than to men, no doubt, given the
inequalities of culture and reproduction. But now, with reproduction out of the
picture, and the culture in pieces... . She really was rather awful. But then
again he had no right to complain; he had agreed to it without conditions, and
had lied to her from the very start, not only about who he was, but about how
he felt toward her. And now he was free of it, and all that it implied. And all
that it threatened.
Feeling a kind of nitrous oxide lift, he walked up Hunt’s huge
atrium staircase to his floor, and down the hall to his little apartment.
* * *
Late that winter, for a couple of weeks in 2 February, the annual
conference on the terraforming project took place in Burroughs. It was the
tenth such conference, titled by the organizers “M-38: New Results and New
Directions,” and it would be attended by scientists from all over Mars, nearly
three thousand of them all told. The meetings were held in the big conference
center in Table Mountain,, while the visiting scientists stayed in hotels all
over the city.
Everyone at Biotique Burroughs went over to attend the meetings,
hurrying back to Hunt Mesa if they had experiments running that they wanted to
check in on. Sax was intensely interested in every aspect of the conference,
naturally enough, and on its first morning he went down early to Canal Park and
grabbed a coffee and pastry, and walked up to the conference center and was
nearly the first in line at the check-in table. He took his packet of program
information, pinned his name tag to his coat, and wandered through the halls
outside the meeting rooms, sipping his coffee, reading the program for the
morning, and glancing at the poster displays set in designated parts of the
halls.
Here, and for the first time in more years than he could remember,
Sax felt supremely in his element. Scientific conferences were all the same, at
all times and in all places, even down to the way people dressed: the men in
conservative, slightly shabby professorial jackets, all tans and browns and
dark rust colors; the women, perhaps thirty percent of the total population, in
unusually drab and severe business dress; many people still wearing spectacles,
even though it was a rare vision problem that was not correctable by surgery;
most of them carrying around their program packets; everyone with their name
tag on their left lapel. Inside the darkened meeting rooms Sax passed talks
that were beginning, and there too all was the same as ever: speakers standing
before video screens that displayed their graphs and tables and molecular
structures and so on, talking in stilted cadences timed to the rhythm of their
images, using a pointer to indicate the parts of overcrowded diagrams that were
relevant... . The audiences, composed of the thirty or forty colleagues most
interested in the work being described, sat in rows of chairs next to their
friends, listening closely and readying questions that they would ask at the
end of the presentation.
For those fond of this world, it was a very pleasant sight. Sax
poked his head into several of the rooms, but none of the talks intrigued him
enough to draw him in, and soon he found himself in a hall full of poster
displays, so he kept on browsing.
“Solubilization of Polycyclic Aromatic Hydrocarbons in Mono-meric
and Micellar Surfactant Solutions.” “Post-Pumping Subsidence in Southern Vastitas
Borealis.” “Epithelial Resistance to Third-Stage Gerontological Treatment.”
“Incidence of Radial Fracture Aquifers in Impact Basin Rims.” “Low-voltage
Electroporation of Long Vector Plasmids.” “Katabatic Winds in Echus Chasma.”
“Base Genome for a New Cactus Genera.” “Resurfacing of the Martian Highlands in
the Amenthes and Tyrrhena Region.” “Deposition of the Nilosyrtis Sodium Nitrate
Strata.” “A Method for Assessing Occupational Exposure to Chlorophenates
Through Analysis of Contaminated Work Clothing.”
As always, the posters were a deliciously mixed bag. They were
posters rather than talks for a variety of reasons-often the work of graduate
students at the university in Sabishii, or concerned with topics peripheral to
the conference-but anything might be there, and it was always very interesting
to browse. And at this conference there had been no strong attempt to organize
the posters into hallways by subject matter, so that “Distribution of
Rhizocarpon geo-graphicum in the East Charitum Monies,” detailing the
high-altitude fortunes of a crustose lichen that could live up to four thousand
years, was facing “Origins of Graupel Snow in Saline Particulates Found in
Cirrus, Altostratus and Altocumulus Clouds in Cyclonic Vortexes in North
Tharsis,” a meteorological study of some importance.
Sax was interested in everything, but the posters that held him
the longest were those that described aspects of the terraforming that he had
initiated, or once had a hand in. One of these, “Estimate of the Cumulative Heat
Released by the Underhill Windmills,” stopped him in his tracks. He read it
through twice, feeling a slight dampening of spirits as he did.
The mean temperature of the Martian surface before their arrival
had been around 220°K, and one of the universally agreed-upon goals of
terraforming was to raise that mean temperature to something above the freezing
point of water, which was 273°K. Raising the average surface temperature of an
entire planet by more than 53°K was a very intimidating challenge, requiring,
Sax had figured, the application over time of no less than 3.5 X 10” joules to
every square centimeter of the Martian surface. Sax in his own modeling had
always aimed to reach a mean of about 274°K, figuring that with this as the
average, the planet would be warm enough for much of the year to create an
active hydrosphere, and thus a biosphere. Many people advocated even more
warming than that, but Sax did not see the need.
In any case, all methods for adding heat to the system were judged
by how much they had raised the global mean temperature; and this poster
examining the effect of Sax’s little windmill heaters estimated that over seven
decades they had added no more than 0.05°K. And he could find nothing wrong
with the various assumptions and calculations in the model outlined in the
poster. Of course heating was not the only reason he had distributed the
windmills; he had also wanted to provide warmth and shelter for an early
engineered cryptoendolith he had wanted to test on the surface. But all those
organisms had in fact died immediately upon exposure, or shortly thereafter. So
on the whole the project could not be said to be one of his better efforts.
He moved on. “Application of Process-Level Chemical Data in
Hydrochemical Modeling: Dao Vallis Watershed, Hellas.” “Increasing CO2
Tolerance in Bees.” “Epilimnetic Scavenging of Compton Fallout Radionuclides in
the Marineris Glacial Lakes.” “Clearing Fines from Piste Reaction Rails.”
“Global Warming As a Result of Released Halocarbons.”
This last one stopped him again. The poster was the work of the
atmospheric chemist S. Simmon and some of his students, and reading it made Sax
feel considerably better. When Sax had been made head of the terraforming
project in 2042, he had immediately initiated the construction of factories to
produce and release into the atmosphere a special greenhouse gas mix, composed
mostly of carbon tetrafluoride, hexafluoroethane, and sulphur hexafluoride,
along with some methane and nitrous oxide. The poster referred to this mix as
the “Russell Cocktail,” which was what his Echus Overlook team had called it in
the old days. The halocarbons in the cocktail were powerful greenhouse gases,
and the best thing about them was that they absorbed outgoing planetary
radiation at the 8-to 12-micron wavelength, the so-called “window” where
neither water vapor nor CO2 had much absorptive ability. This window, when
open, had allowed fantastic amounts of heat to escape back into space, and Sax
had decided early on to attempt to close it, by releasing enough of the
cocktail so that it would form ten or twenty parts per million of the
atmosphere, following the classic early modeling on the subject by McKay et al.
So from 2042 on, a major effort had been put into building automated factories,
scattered all over the planet, to process the gases from local sources of
carbon and sulphur and fluorite, and then release them into the atmosphere.
Every year the amounts pumped out had increased, even after the twenty parts
per million level had been reached, because they wanted to retain that
proportion in an ever-thickening atmosphere, and also because they had to
compensate for the continual high-altitude destruction of the halocarbons by UV
radiation.
And as the tables in the Simmon poster made clear, the factories
had continued to operate through 2061 and the decades since, keeping the levels
at about twenty-six parts per million; and the poster’s conclusion was that
these gases had warmed the surface by around 12°K.
Sax moved on, a little smile fixed on his face. Twelve degrees!
Now that was something!-over twenty percent of all the warming they needed, and
all by the early and continuous deployment of a nicely designed gas cocktail.
It was elegant, it truly was. There was something so comforting about simple
physics…
By now it was ten A.M., and a keynote talk was beginning by H. X.
Borazjani, one of the best atmospheric chemists on Mars, concerning just this
matter of global warming. Borazjani was apparently going to give his
calculations of the contributions of all the attempts at wanning that had been
made up until 2100, the year before the soletta had come into operation. After
estimating individual contributions, he was going to try to judge whether there
were any synergistic effects taking place. This talk was therefore one of the
crucial talks of the conference, as so many other people’s work was going to be
mentioned and evaluated in it.
It took place in one of the biggest meeting rooms, and the chamber
was packed for the occasion, a couple of thousand people in there at least. Sax
slipped in right at starting time, and stood at the back behind the last row of
chairs.
Borazjani was a small dark-skinned white-haired man, speaking with
a pointer before a large screen, which was now showing video images of the
various heating methods that had been tried: black dust and lichen on the
poles, the orbiting mirrors that had sailed out from Luna, the moholes, the
greenhouse gas factories, the ice asteroids burning up in the atmosphere, the
denitrifying bacteria, and then all the rest of the biota.
Sax had initiated every single one of these processes in the 2040s
and ‘50s, and he watched the video even more intently than the rest of the
audience. The only obvious warming strategy that he had avoided in the early
years was the massive release of CO2 into the atmosphere. Those supporting this
strategy had wanted to start a runaway greenhouse effect and create a CO2
atmosphere of up to 2 bar, arguing that this would warm the planet
tremendously, and stop UV radiation, and encourage rampant plant growth. All
true, no doubt; but for humans and other animals it would be poisonous, and
though advocates of the plan spoke of a second phase that would scrub the CO2
from the atmosphere and replace it with a breathable one, their methods were
vague, as were their time scales, which varied from 100 to 20,000 years. And
the sky milk white however long it lasted.
Sax didn’t find this an elegant solution to the problem. He much
preferred his single-phase model, striking directly toward the eventual goal.
It meant they had always been a bit short on heat, but Sax judged that
disadvantage worth it. And he had done his best to find replacements for the
heat that CO2 would have added, as for instance the moholes. Unfortunately Borazjani’s
estimate of the heat released by the moholes was fairly low; altogether they
had added perhaps 5°K to the mean temperature. Well, there was no getting
around it, Sax thought as he tapped notes into his lectern- the only good
source of heat was the sun. Thus his aggressive introduction of the orbiting
mirrors, which had been growing yearly as sunsailers came out from Luna, where
a very efficient production process made them from lunar aluminum. These
fleets, Borazjani said, had grown large enough to have added some 5°K to the
mean temperature.
The reduced albedo, an effort which had never been very vigorously
pursued, had added some 2 degrees. The two hundred or so nuclear reactors
scattered around the planet had added another 1.5 degrees.
Then Borazjani came to the cocktail of greenhouse gases; but
instead of using the 12°K figure from Simmon’s poster, he estimated it was
14°K, and cited a twenty-year-old paper by J. Watkins to support his assertion.
Sax had spotted Berkina sitting in the back row near him, and now he sidled
over and leaned down until his mouth was by Berkina’s ear, and whispered, “Why
isn’t he using Simmon’s work?”
Berkina grinned and whispered back, “A few years ago Simmon
published a paper in which he had taken a very complex figure of the
UV-halocarbon interaction from Borazjani. He modified it slightly, and that
first time he attributed it to Borazjani, but after that when he used it he
only cited his own earlier paper. It’s made Borazjani furious, and he thinks
Simmon’s papers on this subject are derivative of Watkins anyway, so whenever
he talks about warming he goes back to the Watkins work, and pretends Simmon’s
stuff doesn’t exist.”
“Ah,” Sax said. He straightened up, smiling despite himself at
Borazjani’s subtle but telling little payback. And in fact Simmon was there
across the room, frowning heavily.
By now Borazjani had moved on to the warming effects of the water
vapor and CO2 that had been released into the atmosphere, which he estimated
together as adding another 10°K. “Some of this might be called a synergistic
effect,” he said, “as the desorption of CO2 is mainly a result of other
warming. But other than that I don’t think we can say that synergy has been
much of a factor. The sum of the warming created by all the individual methods
matches pretty closely the temperatures reported by weather reports from around
the planet.”
The video screen displayed his final table, and Sax made a
simplified copy of it into his lectern:
From Borazjani 2
February 14, 2102:
Halocarbons: 14
H2O and CO2: 10
Moholes: 5
Pre-Soletta Mirrors: 5
Reduced Albedo: 2
Nuclear Reactors: 1.5
Borazjani had not even included the windmill heaters, so on his
lectern Sax did. Altogether it came to 37.55°K, a very respectable step, Sax
thought, toward their goal of’53°+. They had only been going at it for sixty
years, and already most summer days were reaching temperatures above freezing,
allowing arctic and alpine plant life to flourish, as he had seen in the Arena
Glacier area. And all this before the introduction of the soletta, which was
raising insolation by twenty percent.
The question period had begun, and someone brought up the soletta,
asking Borazjani if he thought it was necessary, given the progress being made
with the other methods.
Borazjani shrugged in just the way Sax would have. “What does
necessary mean?” he replied. “It depends how warm you want it. According to the
standard model as initiated by Russell at Echus Overlook, it is important to
keep CO2 levels as low as possible. If we do this, then other warming methods
are going to have to be applied to compensate for the loss of the heat that CO2
would have contributed. The soletta might be thought of as compensating for the
eventual reduction of CO2 to breathable levels.”
Sax was nodding despite himself.
Someone else rose and said, “Don’t you think the standard model is
inadequate, given the amount of nitrogen we now know we have?”
“Not if all the nitrogen is put into the atmosphere.”
But this was an unlikely achievement, as the questioner was quick
to point out. A fair percentage of the total would remain in the ground, and in
fact was needed there for plants. So they were short on nitrogen, as Sax had
always known. And if they kept the amount of CO2 in the air to the lowest
levels possible, that left the percentage of oxygen in the air at a dangerously
high level, because of its flammability. Another person rose to state that it
was-possible that the lack of nitrogen could be compensated for by the release
of other inert gases, chiefly argon. Sax pursed his lips; he had been
introducing argon into the atmosphere since 2042, as he had seen this problem
coming, and there were significant amounts of argon in the regolith. But they
were not easy to free, as his engineers had found, and as other people were now
pointing out. No, the balance of gases in the atmosphere was turning out to be
a real problem.
A woman rose to note that a consortium of transnats coordinated by
Armscor was building a continuous shuttle system to harvest nitrogen from the
almost pure nitrogen atmosphere of Titan, liquefying it and flying it back to
Mars and dumping it in the upper atmosphere. Sax squinted at this, and did some
quick calculations on his lectern. His eyebrows shot up when he saw the result.
It would take a very great number of shuttle trips to accomplish anything that
way, that or else extremely large shuttles. It was remarkable that anyone had
thought it worth the investment.
Now they were discussing the soletta again. It certainly had the
capability of compensating for the 5 or 8°K that would be lost if they scrubbed
the current amount of CO2 from the air, and probably it would add even more
heat than that; theoretically, Sax calculated on his lectern, it could add as
much as 22°K. The scrubbing itself would not be easy, someone pointed out. A
man standing near Sax, from a Subarashii lab, rose to announce that a
demonstration talk on the soletta and the aerial lens would occur later in the
conference, when some of these issues would be greatly clarified. He added
before sitting down that serious flaws in the single-phase model made the
creation of a two-phase model nearly mandatory.
People rolled their eyes at this, and Borazjani declared that the
next meeting in the room needed to begin. No one had commented on his skillful
modeling, which had sorted out so plausibly all the contributions of the
various warming methods. But in a way this was a sign of respect-no one had
challenged the model either, Borazjani’s preeminence in this area being taken
for granted. Now people stood, and some went up to talk with him; a thousand
conversations broke out as the rest filed out of the room and into the halls.
Sax went to lunch with Berkina, in a cafe just outside the foot of
Branch Mesa. Around them scientists from all over Mars ate and talked about the
events of the morning. “We think it’s parts per billion.” “No, sulfates behave
conservatively.” It sounded like the people at the table next to theirs were
assuming there was going to be a shift to a two-phase model. One woman said
something about raising the mean temperature to 295°K, seven degrees higher
than Terra’s average.
Sax squinted at all these expressions of haste, of greed for heat.
He saw no need to be dissatisfied with the progress that had been made so far.
The ultimate goal of the project was not purely heat, after all, but a viable
surface. The results so far certainly seemed to give no reason for complaint.
The present atmosphere was averaging 160 millibars at the datum, and it was
composed about equally of CO2, oxygen, and nitrogen, with trace amounts of
argon and other gases. This was not the mixture Sax wanted to see in the end,
but it was the best they had been able to do given the inventory of volatiles
they had to begin with. It represented a substantial step on the way to the
final mix Sax had in mind. His recipe for this mix, following the early Fogg
formulation, was as follows:
300 millibars nitrogen
160 millibars oxygen
30 millibars argon, helium, etc.
10 millibars CO2 =
Total pressure at datum, 500 millibars
All these amounts had been fixed by physical requirements and
limits of various kinds. The total pressure had to be high enough to drive
oxygen into the blood, and 500 millibars was what was obtained on Earth at
about the 4,000-meter elevation, near the upper limit of what people could live
at permanently. Given that it was near the upper limit, it would be best if
such a thin atmosphere had more than the Terran percentage of oxygen in it, but
it could not be too much more or else fires might be hard to extinguish.
Meanwhile CO2 had to be kept below 10 millibars, or else it would be poisonous.
As for nitrogen, the more the better, in fact 780 millibars would be ideal, but
the total nitrogen inventory on Mars was now estimated at less than 400 millibars,
so 300 millibars was as much as one could reasonably ask to put into the air,
and perhaps more. Lack of nitrogen was in fact one of the biggest problems the
terraforming effort faced; they needed more than they had, both in the air and
in their soil.
Sax stared down at his plate and ate in silence, thinking hard
about all these factors. The morning’s discussions had given him cause to
wonder whether he had made the right decisions back in 2042-whether the
volatile inventory could justify his attempt to go straight for a human-viable
surface in a single stage. Not that there was much that could be done about it
now. And all things considered, he still thought they were the right decisions;
shikata ga nai, really, if they wanted to walk freely on the surface of Mars in
their own lifetimes. Even if their lifetimes were going to be considerably
extended.
But there were people who seemed more concerned with high
temperatures than breathability. Apparently they were confident that they could
balloon the CO2 level, heat things tremendously, and then reduce the CO2
without problems. Sax was dubious about that; any two-phase operation was going
to be messy, so messy that Sax couldn’t help wondering if they would get stuck
with the 20,000-year time scales predicted in the earliest two-phase models.
It made him blink to think of it. He couldn’t see the need. Were
people really willing to risk such a long-term problem? Could they be so
impressed by the new gigantic technologies that were becoming available that they
believed anything was possible?
“How was the pastrami?” Berkina asked.
“The what?”
“The pastrami. That’s the kind of sandwich you just ate, Stephen.”
“Oh! Fine, fine. It must have been fine.”
The afternoon’s sessions were mostly devoted to problems caused by
the successes of the global warming campaign. As surface temperatures rose, and
the underground biota began to penetrate deeper into the regolith, the
permafrost down there was melting, just as hoped. But this was proving
disastrous in certain permafrost-rich regions. One of these, unfortunately, was
Isidis Planitia itself. A well-attended talk by an areologist from a Praxis lab
in Burroughs described the situation; Isidis was one of the big old impact
basins, about the size of Argyre, with its northern side completely erased, and
its southern rim now part of the Great Escarpment. Underground ice had been
creeping off the Escarpment and pooling in the basin for billions of years. Now
the ice near the surface was melting, and in the winters freezing again. This
thaw-freeze cycle was causing frost heaving on an unprecedented scale; it was
pretty near the usual two-magnitude enlargement compared to similar phenomena
on Earth, and karsts and pingos a hundred times the size of their Terran
analogues were big holes, and big mounds. All over Isidis these giant new holes
and hummocks were blistering the landscape, and after her talk and a sequence
of mind-boggling slides, the areologist led a large group of interested
scientists to the south end of Burroughs, past Moeris Lacus Mesa to the tent
wall, where the neighborhood looked like it had been devastated by earthquake,
the ground having heaved up to reveal a rising mass of ice like a bald round
hill.
“This is a fine specimen of a pingo,” the areologist said with a
proprietary air. “The ice masses are relatively pure compared to the permafrost
matrix, and they act in the matrix the same way rocks do-when the permafrost
refreezes at night or in winter, it expands, and anything hard stuck in this
expansion gets pushed upward toward the surface. There’s a lot of pingos in
Terran tundra, but none as big as this one.” She led the group up the shattered
concrete of what had been a flat street, and they stared out from an earthen
crater rim, onto a mound of dirty white ice. “We’ve lanced it like a boil, and
are melting it and piping it into the canals.”
“Out in the country one of these coming up would be like an
oasis,” Sax remarked to Jessica. “It would melt in the summer, and hydrate the
ground around it. We ought to develop a community of seeds and spores and
rhizomes that we could scatter on any sites like this out in the country.”
“True,” Jessica said. “Although, to be realistic, the permafrost
country is mostly going to end up under the Vastitas sea anyway.”
“Hmm.”
The truth was Sax had temporarily forgotten the drilling and
mining in Vastitas. When they had returned to the conference center, he
deliberately looked for a talk describing an aspect of that work. There was one
at four: “Recent Advances in North Polar Lens Permafrost Pumping Procedures.”
He watched the speaker’s video show impassively. The lens of ice
that extended underground from the northern polar cap was like the submerged
part of an iceberg, containing some ten times as much water as the visible cap.
The Vastitas permafrost contained even more. But getting that water to the
surface ... like the retrieval of nitrogen from Titan’s atmosphere, it was a
project so massive that Sax had never even considered it in the early years; it
simply hadn’t been possible then. All these big projects-the so-letta, the
nitrogen from Titan, the northern ocean drilling, the frequent arrival of ice
asteroids-were on a scale that Sax found he was having trouble adjusting to.
They were thinking big these days, the transnational. Certainly the new
abilities in design and in materials science, and the emergence of fully
self-replicating factories, were what made the projects technically feasible;
but the initial financial investments were still huge.
As for the technical capabilities involved, he found himself
adjusting to the idea of them fairly rapidly. It was an extension of what they
had done in the old days: solve some initial problems in materials, design, and
homeostatic control, and one’s powers grew very considerable indeed. One might
say that their reach no longer exceeded their grasp. Which, given the
directions their reach sometimes took, was a frightening thought.
In any case, some fifty drilling platforms were now located in the
northern Sixties, boring wells and inserting permafrost melting devices at
their bottoms that ranged from heated collection galleries to nuclear
explosives. The new meltwater was then being pumped up and distributed over the
dunes of Vastitas Borealis, where it froze again. Eventually this ice sheet
would melt, partly under its own weight, and they would have an ocean in the
shape of a ring around the northern Sixties and Seventies, no doubt a very good
thermal sink, as all oceans were, although while it remained an ice sea the
increase in albedo would probably make it a net heat loss to the global system.
Yet another example of their operations cutting against each other. As was the
location of Burroughs itself, relative to this new sea; the city was well below
the sea level most often mentioned, the datum itself. People talked of a dike,
or a smaller sea, but no one knew for sure. It was all very interesting.
So Sax attended the conference every day, all day, living in the
hushed rooms and halls of the conference center, chatting with colleagues, and
the authors of posters, and his neighbors in audiences. More than once he had
to pretend not to know old associates, and it made him nervous enough that he
avoided them when he could. But people did not seem to feel that he reminded
them of someone they knew, and for the most part he was able to concentrate on
the science. He did that with gusto. People gave talks, asked questions,
debated details of fact, discussed implications, all under the uniform
fluorescent glow of the conference rooms, in the low hum of ventilators and
video machines-as if they were in a world outside of time and space, in the
imaginary space of pure science, surely one of the greatest achievements of the
human spirit-a kind of Utopian community, cozy and bright and protected. For
Sax, a scientific conference was Utopia.
The sessions at this conference, however, had a new tone, a kind
of nervous edge that Sax had never witnessed before, and did not like. The
questions after the presentations were more aggressive, the answers more
quickly defensive. The pure play of scientific discourse which he so enjoyed
(and which admittedly was never quite pure) was now more and more diluted by
sheer argument, by obvious power struggles, motivated by something more than
the usual egotism. It wasn’t like Simmon’s unconscionable lift from Borazjani,
and Borazjani’s exquisite riposte; it was more a matter of direct assault. As
at the end of a presentation on deep moholes and the possibility of reaching
the mantle, when a short bald Terran stood and said, “I don’t think the basic
model of the lithosphere here is valid,” and then walked out of the room.
Sax witnessed this in complete disbelief. “What is his problem?”
he whispered to Claire.
She shook her head. “He works for Subarashii on the aerial lens,
and they don’t like any potential competition for their regolith melting
program.”
“My Lord.”
The question-and-answer session staggered on, shaken by this
display of rudeness, but Sax slipped out of the room and stared down the hall
curiously after the Subarashii scientist. What could he be thinking?
But this miscreant wasn’t the only one acting strange. People were
stressed, nerves were on edge. Of course the stakes were high; as the pingo
below Moeris Lacus showed in a small-scale way, there were going to be some bad
side effects to the procedures being studied and advocated at the conference,
side effects which would cost money, time, lives. And then there were financial
motivations... .
And now that they were entering its final days, the programming
was shifting from very specific issues to more general presentations and
workshops, including some presentations in the main room on the big new
projects, what people were calling the “monster projects.” These were going to
have such major impacts that they affected almost everyone else’s programs. So
when they discussed them, they were arguing policy, in effect, talking about
what to do next rather than about what had already happened. That always made
things more of a wrangle-but never more so than now, as people began to try to
plug the information from the earlier presentations into advocacy for their own
causes, whatever they might be. They were entering that unfortunate zone where
science began to drift into politics, where papers became grant proposals; and
it was dismaying to see that degraded dark zone invade the heretofore neutral
terrain of a conference.
Part of this, Sax reflected over a solitary lunch, was no doubt
caused by the big-science nature of the monster projects. They were all so expensive
and difficult that they had been contracted out to different transnational.
This was a plausible strategy on the face of it, an obvious efficiency move,
but unfortunately it meant that the different angles of attack on the
terraforming problem now had interested parties defending them as the “best”
methods, twisting data in order to defend their own ideas.
Praxis, for instance, was the leader along with Switzerland in the
very extensive bioengineering effort, and so its representative theoreticians defended
what they called the ecopoesis model, which claimed that no further influx of
heat or volatiles was necessary at this point, and that biological processes
alone, aided by a minimum of ecological engineering, would be sufficient to
terraform the planet to the levels envisioned in the early Russell model. Sax
thought they were probably correct in this judgment, given the arrival of the
soletta, though he deemed their time scales optimistic. And he worked for
Biotique, so possibly his judgment was skewed.
The scientists from Amscor, however, were adamant that the low
nitrogen inventory would cripple any ecopoetic hopes. They insisted that
continued industrial intervention was necessary; and of course it was Armscor
that was building the Titan nitrogen transfer shuttles. People from
Consolidated, in charge of the drilling in Vastitas, emphasized the vital
importance of an active hydrosphere. And people from Subarashii, in charge of
the new mirrors, touted the great power of the soletta and the aerial lens to
pump heat and gases into the system, allowing everything else to accelerate. It
was always quite obvious why people were advocating one program over another;
you could look at people’s name tags and see their institutional affiliation,
and predict what they were going to support or attack. To see science twisted
so blatantly pained Sax a great deal, and it seemed to him that it distressed
everyone there, even the ones doing it, which added to the general irritability
and defensiveness. Everyone knew what was going on, and no one liked it, and
yet no one would admit it.
Nowhere was this more apparent than in the last morning’s panel
discussion of the CO2 question. This quickly became a defense of the soletta
and the aerial lens, made very vehemently by the two Subarashii scientists on
the panel. Sax sat at the back of the room and listened to their enthusiastic
description of the big mirrors, feeling more and more tense and unhappy as they
went on. He liked the soletta itself, which was no more than the logical
extension of the mirrors he had been putting into orbit from the very
beginning. But the low-flying aerial lens was clearly an extremely powerful
instrument, and if wielded on the surface to anywhere near its full capacity,
it would volatilize hundreds of millibars of gases into the atmosphere, much of
it CO2, which according to Sax’s single-phase model they did not want, and
which in any sensible course of action would stay bonded in the regolith. No,
there were several hard questions that needed to be asked about the effects of
this aerial lens, and the Subarashii people ought to be harshly censured for
beginning the melting of the regolith without consulting anyone outside their
UNTA rubberstamp committee about it. But Sax did not want to draw attention to
himself, and so he could only sit there by Claire and Berkina with his lectern
out, squirming in his seat and hoping that someone else would ask the hard
questions for him.
And as they were obvious questions as well as hard, they did get
asked; a scientist from Mitsubishi, which was in a perpetual hometown feud with
Subarashii, stood and inquired very politely about the runaway greenhouse
effect that might result from too much CO2. Sax nodded emphatically. But the
Subarashii scientists replied that this was exactly what they were hoping for,
that there could not be too much heat, and that an eventual atmospheric
pressure of seven or eight hundred millibars would be preferabk to five hundred
anyway. “But not if it’s CO2!” Sax muttered to Claire, who nodded.
H. X. Borazjani stood to say the same. He was followed by others;
many in the room were still using Sax’s original model as their template for
action, and they insisted in many different ways on the difficulty of scrubbing
any great excess of CO2 from the air. But there were also a good many
scientists, from Armscor and Consolidated as well as Subarashii, who either
claimed that scrubbing CO2 would not be difficult, or else that a CO2-heavy
atmosphere would not be so bad. An ecosystem of mostly plants, with
CO2-tolerant insects and perhaps some genetically engineered animals, would
flourish in the warm thick air, and people could walk around in their
shirtsleeves with nothing more cumbersome than a facemask.
This set Sax’s teeth on edge, and happily he was not the only one,
so he could stay in his seat while others rose to their feet to challenge this
fundamental shift in the goal of terraforming. The argument quickly became
heated, even rancorous.
“It’s not a jungle planet we’re after here!”
“You’re making a hidden assumption that people can be genetically
engineered to tolerate higher CO2 levels, but it’s ridiculous!”
Very soon it became clear that they were accomplishing nothing.
No one was really listening, and everyone had their opinions,
which were tightly aligned to their employers’ interests. It was unseemly,
really. A mutual distaste for the tone of the debate caused all but the
immediate participants to withdraw-around Sax people were folding programs,
turning off lecterns, whispering to their companions, all while people were
still standing and speaking ... bad form, no doubt about it. But it only took a
moment’s thought to realize that they were now arguing over policy decisions
that were not going to be made at the level of working scientists anyway. No
one liked that, and people actually began to get up and leave the room, right
in the middle of the discussion. The overwhelmed panel moderator, an overpolite
Japanese woman who was looking miserable, spoke over the rising voices, and
suggested that they close the session. People trooped into the halls in little
knots, some still talking heatedly to their allies, making their cases
decisively now that they were only complaining to their friends.
Sax followed Claire and Jessica and the other Biotique people
across the canal and into Hunt Mesa. They took the elevator up to the mesa
plateau, and had lunch at Antonio’s.
“They’re going to flood us with CO2,” Sax said, unable to hold his
tongue any longer. “I don’t think they understand what a fundamental blow that
will be to the standard model.”
“It’s a different model entirely,” Jessica said. “A two-phase,
heavy-industrial model.”
“But it will keep people and animals in tents more or less
indefinitely,” Sax said.
“Maybe the transnat executives don’t mind that,” Jessica said.
“Maybe they like it,” Berkina said.
Sax made a face.
Claire said, “It could just be that they’ve got this soletta and
lens, and they want to use them. Like playing with toys. It’s so much like the
magnifying glass you use to start fires with when you’re ten. But this one is
so powerful. They can’t stand not to use it. And then calling the burn zones
canals, you know...”
“That is so stupid,” Sax said sharply, and when the others stared
at him in some surprise, he tried to lighten his tone: “Well, it’s just so
silly, you know. It’s such a kind of fuzzy romanticism. They won’t be canals in
the sense of usefully connecting one body of
water with another, and even if they tried to use them, the banks
would be slag.”
“Glass, they’re claiming,” Claire said. “And it’s just the idea of
canals, anyway.”
“But it’s not a game we’re playing here,” Sax said. It was
extremely hard to keep Stephen’s sense of humor about it; for some reason it
was really irritating to him, really distressing. Here they had started so
well, sixty years of solid achievement-and now different people were hacking
about with different ideas and different toys, arguing and working against each
other, bringing ever more powerful and expensive methods to bear, but with ever
less coordination. They were going to ruin his plan!
The afternoon’s closing sessions were perfunctory, and did nothing
to restore his faith in the conference as disinterested science. That evening,
back in his room, he watched the environmental news on vid more closely than
ever, searching for answers to questions he hadn’t quite formulated. Cliffs
were falling. Rocks of all sizes were being shoved out of the permafrost by the
thaw-freeze cycle, the rocks arranging themselves into characteristic polygonal
patterns. Rock glaciers were forming in ravines and chutes, the rocks pried
free by ice and then sliding down gorges in masses that behaved much like ice
glaciers. Pingos were blistering the northern lowlands, except of course where
the frozen seas were pouring out of the drilling platforms, inundating the
land.
It was change on a massive scale, becoming apparent everywhere
now, and accelerating every year as the summers got warmer, and the submartian
biota grew deeper-while everything still froze solid every winter, and froze a
little bit almost every summer night. Such an intense freeze-thaw cycle would
tear any landscape apart, and the Martian landscape was particularly
susceptible to it, having been stalled in a cold arid stasis for millions of
years. Mass wasting was causing many landslides a day, and fatalities and
unexplained disappearances were not at all uncommon. Cross-country travel was
dangerous. Canyons and fresh craters were no longer safe places to locate a
town, or even to spend a night.
Sax stood and walked to the window of his room, looked down at the
lights of the city. All of this was as Ann had predicted to him, long ago. No
doubt she was noting reports of all the changes with disgust, she and all the
rest of the Reds. For them every collapse was a sign that things were going
wrong rather than right. In the past Sax would have shrugged them off; mass
wasting exposed frozen soil to the sun, warming it and revealing potential
nitrate sources and the like. Now, with the conference fresh in his mind, he
was not so sure.
On the vid no one seemed to be worrying about it. There were no
Reds on vid. The collapse of landforms were considered no more than an
opportunity, not only for terraforming, which seemed to be considered the
exclusive business of the transnats, but for mining. Sax watched a news account
of a freshly revealed vein of gold ore with a sinking feeling. It was strange
how many people seemed to feel the lure of prospecting. That was Mars as the
twenty-second century began; with the elevator returned they were back to the
old gold rush mentality, it seemed, as if it really were a manifest destiny,
out on the frontier with great tools wielded left and right: cosmic engineers,
mining and building. And the terraforming that had been his work, the sole
focus of his life, in fact, for sixty years and more, seemed to be turning into
something else. ...
Insomnia began to plague Sax. He had never suffered the phenomenon before, and found it quite
uncomfortable. He would wake, roll over, gears in his mind would catch, and
everthing would start whirring. When it was clear he was not going to fall back
asleep he would get up, and turn on the AI screen and watch video programs,
even the news, which he had never watched before. He saw symptoms of some kind
of sociological dysfunction on Earth. It did not appear, for instance, that
they had even attempted to adjust their societies to the impact of the
population rise caused by the gerontological treatments. That should have been
elementary-birth control, quotas, sterilization, the lot-but most countries
hadn’t done any of that. Indeed it appeared that a permanent underclass of the
untreated was developing, especially in the highly populated poor countries.
Statistics were hard to come by now that the UN was moribund, but one World
Court study claimed that seventy percent of the population of the developed
nations had gotten the treatment, while only twenty percent had in the poor
countries. If that trend held for long, Sax thought, it would lead to a kind of
physicalization of class-a late emergence or retroactive unveiling of Marx’s
bleak vision-only more extreme than Marx, because now class distinctions would
be exhibited as an actual physiological difference caused by a bimodal
distribution, something almost akin to speciation…
This divergence between rich and poor was obviously dangerous, but
it seemed to be taken on Earth as something of a given, as if it were part of
nature. Why couldn’t they see the danger?
He no longer understood Earth, if he ever had. He sat there
shivering through the dregs of his insomniac nights, too tired to read or to
work; he could only call up one Terran news program after another, trying to
understand better what was happening down there. He would have to if he wanted
to understand Mars, for the transnational’ Martian behavior was being driven by
Terran ultimate causes. He needed to understand. But the news vids seemed
beyond rational comprehension. Down there, even more dramatically than on Mars,
there was no plan.
He needed a science of history, but unfortunately there was no
such thing. History is Lamarckian, Arkady used to say, a notion that was
ominously suggestive given the pseudospeciation caused by the unequal
distribution of the gerontological treatments; but it was no real help.
Psychology, sociology, anthropology, they were all suspect. The scientific
method could not be applied to human beings in any way that yielded useful
Information. It was the fact-value problem stated in a different way; human
reality could only be explained in terms of values. And values were very
resistant to scientific analysis: Isolation of factors for study, falsifiable
hypotheses, repeatable experiments-the entire apparatus as practiced in lab
physics simply could not be brought to bear. Values drove history, which was
whole, nonrepeatable, and contingent. It might be characterized as Lamarckian,
or as a chaotic system, but even those were guesses, because what factors were
they talking about, what aspects might be acquired by learning and passed on,
or cycling in some nonrepetitive but patterned way?
No one could say.
He began to think again about the discipline of natural history
which had so captivated him on Arena Glacier. It used scientific methods to
study the natural world’s history, and in many ways that history was just as
problematic a methodological problem.as human history, being likewise
nonrepeatable and resistant to experiment. And with human consciousness out of
the picture, natural history was often fairly successful, even if it was based
mostly on observation and hypothesis that could be tested only by further
observation. It was a real science; it had discovered, there among the
contingency and disorder, some valid general principles of
evolution-development, adaptation, complexification, and many more specific
pri’nciples as well, confirmed by the various subdis-ciplines.
What he needed were similar principles influencing human history.
The little reading he did in historiography was not encouraging; it was either
a sad imitation of the scientific method, or art pure and simple. About every
decade a new historical explanation revised all that had come before, but
clearly revisionism held pleasures that had nothing to do with the actual
justice of the case being made. Sociobiology and bioethics were more promising,
but they tended to explain things best when working on evolutionary time
scales, and he wanted something for the past hundred years, and the next
hundred. Or even the past fifty and the next five.
Night after night he woke, failed to fall back asleep, got up, sat
at the screen and puzzled over these matters, too tired to think well. And as
these night watches kept happening, he found himself returning more and more to
shows about 2061. There were any number of video compilations on the events of
that year, and some of them were not shy about naming it: World War Three! was
the title of the longest series, some sixty hours’ worth of video from that
year, poorly edited and sequenced.
One only had to watch the series for a while to realize that the
title was not entirely sensationalist. Wars had raged all over Terra in that
fateful year, and the analysts reluctant to call it the Third World War seemed
to think that it simply hadn’t gone on long enough to qualify. Or that it
hadn’t been the contest of two great global alliances, but was much more
confused and complex: different sources would claim it was north against south,
or young against old, or UN against nations, or nations against
transnation-als, or transnationals against flags of convenience, or armies
against police, or police against citizens-so that it began to seem every kind
of conflict at once. For a matter of six or eight months the world had
descended into chaos. In the course of his wanderings through “political
science” Sax had stumbled across a pseudo-scientific chart by a Herman Kahn,
called an “Escalation Ladder,” which attempted to categorize conflicts
according to their nature and severity. There were forty-four steps in Kahn’s
ladder, going from the first, Ostensible Crisis, up gradually through
categories like Political and Diplomatic Gestures, Solemn and Formal
Declarations, and Significant Mobilization, then more steeply through steps
like Show of Force, Harassing Acts of Violence, Dramatic Military
Confrontations, Large Conventional War, and then off into the unexplored zones
of Barely Nuclear War, Exemplary Attacks Against Property, Civilian Devastation
Attack, and right on up to number forty-four, Spasm or Insensate War. It was
certainly an interesting attempt at taxonomy and logical sequence, and although
there were obviously elements of fetishization in the excessive detail, Sax
could see that the categories had been abstracted from many wars of the past.
And by the definitions of the table, 2061 had shot right up the ladder to
number forty-four.
In that maelstrom, Mars had been no more than one spectacular war
among fifty. Very few general programs about ‘61 devoted more than a few
minutes to it, and these merely collected clips Sax had seen at the time: the
frozen guards at Korolyov, the broken domes, the fall of the elevator, and then
that of Phobos. Attempts at analysis of the Martian situation were shallow at
best; Mars had been an exotic sideshow, with some good vid, but nothing else to
distinguish it from the general morass. No. One sleepless dawn it came to him;
if he wanted to understand 2061, he was going to have to piece it together
himself, from the primary sources of the videotapes, from all the bouncing
shots of enraged crowds torching cities, and the occasional press conferences
with desperate, frustrated leaders.
Even getting these in chronological order was no easy task. And
indeed this became (in his Echus style) his only interest for a few weeks, as
slotting events into a chronology was the first step in piecing together what
had happened-which had to precede figuring out why.
Over the weeks he began to get a sense of it. Certainly the common
wisdom was correct; the emergence of the transnationals in the 2040s had set
the stage, and was the ultimate cause of the war. In that decade, while Sax had
been devoting every bit of his attention to terraforming Mars, a new Terran
order had come into being, shaped as the thousands of multinational
corporations began to coalesce into the scores of colossal transnationals.
Something like planetary formation, he thought one night, planetesimals
becoming planets.
It was not entirely a new order, however. The multinationals had
mostly originated in the wealthy industrial nations, and so in certain senses
the transnationals were expressions of these nations-extensions of their power
into the rest of the world, in a way that reminded Sax of what little he knew
of the imperial and colonial systems that had preceded them. Frank had said
something like that: colonialism had never died, he used to declare, it just
changed names and hired local cops. We’re all colonies of the transnats.
This was Frank’s cynicism, Sax decided (wishing that he had that
hard bitter mind on hand to instruct him), because all colonies were not equal.
It was true that transnats were so powerful that they had rendered national
governments little more than toothless servants. And no transnat had shown any
particular loyalty to any given government, or the UN. But they were children
of the West- children who no longer cared for their parents, yet still
supported them. For the record showed that the industrial nations had prospered
under the transnats, while the developing nations had had no recourse but to
fight each other for flag-of-convenience status. And thus in 2060 when the
transnats had come under fire from desperate poor countries, it had been the
Group of Seven and its military might that had come to their defense.
But the proximate cause? Night after night he sifted through vid
of the 2040s and ‘50s, looking for traces of patterns. Eventually he decided
that it was the longevity treatment which had pushed things over the edge.
Through the 2050s the treatment had spread through the rich countries,
illustrating the gross economic inequality in the world like a color stain in a
microscope sample. And as the treatment spread, the situation had gotten
increasingly tense, rising steadily up the steps of Kahn’s ladder of crises.
The immediate cause of the explosion of ‘61, strangely enough,
appeared to be a squabble concerning the Martian space elevator. The elevator
had been operated by Praxis, but after it had started operations, in February
of 2061 to be precise, it had been taken over by Subarashii, in a clearly
hostile takeover. Subarashii at that time was a conglomeration of most of the
Japanese corporations that had not folded into Mitsubishi, and it was a rising
power, very aggressive and ambitious. Upon acquisition of the elevator-a
takeover approved by UNOMA-Subarashii had immediately increased the emigration
quotas, causing the situation on Mars to go critical. At the same time on
Earth, Subarashii’s competitors had objected to what was effectively an
economic conquest of Mars, and though Praxis had confined its objections to
legal action at the hapless UN, one of Subarashii’s flags of convenience,
Malaysia, had been attacked by Singapore, which was a base for Shellalco. By
April of 2061 much of south Asia was at war. Most of the fights were
long-standing conflicts, such as Cambodia versus Vietnam, or Pakistan versus
India; but some were attacks on Subarashii flags, as in Burma and Bangladesh.
Events in the region had shot up the escalation ladder with deadly speed as old
enmities joined the new transnat conflicts, and by June wars had spread all
over Terra, and then to Mars. By October fifty million people had died, and
another fifty million were to die in the aftermath, as many basic services had
been interrupted or destroyed, and a newly released malaria v ctor remained without
an effective prevention or cure.
That seemed enough to qualify it as a world war to Sax, brevity
nonwithstanding. It had been, he concluded, a deadly synergistic combination of
fights among the transnats, and revolutions by a wide array of disenfranchised
groups against the transnat order. But the chaotic violence had convinced the
transnats to resolve their disputes, or at least table them, and all the
revolutions had failed, especially after the militaries of the Group of Seven
intervened to rescue the transnats from dismemberment in their flags of
convenience. All the giant military-industrial nations had ended up on the same
side, which had helped to make it a very short world war compared to the first
two. Short, but terrible-about as many people had died in 2061. as in the first
two world wars together.
Mars had been a minor campaign in this Third World War, a campaign
in which certain of the transnats had overreacted to a flamboyant but
disorganized revolt. When it was over, Mars had been seized firmly in the grip
of the major transnationals, with the blessing of the Group of Seven and the
transnats’ other clients. And Terra had staggered on, a hundred million people
fewer.
But nothing else had changed. None of its problems had been
addressed. So it all might happen again. It was perfectly possible. One might
even say that it was likely.
Sax continued to sleep poorly. And though he spent his days in the
ordinary routines of work and habit, it seemed that he saw things differently
than he had before the conference. Another proof, he supposed glumly, of the
notion of vision as a paradigm construct. But now it was so obvious the
transnationals were everywhere. In terms of authority, there was hardly
anything else. Burroughs was a transnat town, and from what Phyllis had said,
Sheffield was too. There were none of the national scientific teams that had
proliferated in the years before the treaty conference; and with the First
Hundred dead or in hiding, the whole tradition of Mars as a research station was
extinct. What science there was was devoted to the terraforming project, and he
had seen what kind of science that was becoming. No, the research was applied
only, these days.
And there were very few other signs of the old nation-states, now
that he looked. The news gave the impression that they were mostly bankrupt,
even the Group of Seven; and the transnats were holding the debts, if anybody
was. Some reports made Sax think that in a sense the transnats were even taking
on smaller countries as a kind of capital asset, in a new business/government
arrangement that went far beyond the old flag-of-convenience contracts.
An example of this new arrangement in a slightly different form
was Mars itself, which seemed effectively in the possession of the big transnats.
And now that the elevator was back, the export of metals and the import of
people and goods had vastly accelerated. Terran stock markets were ballooning
hysterically to mark the action, with no end in sight, despite the fact that
Mars could only provide Terra with certain metals in certain quantities. So the
stock market rise was probably some kind of bubble phenomenon, and if it burst
it might very well be enough to bring everything down again. Or perhaps not;
economics was a bizarre field, and there were senses in which the whole stock
market was simply too unreal to have impacts beyond itself. But who knew till
it happened? Sax, wandering the streets of Burroughs looking at the stock
market displays in the office windows, certainly didn’t claim to. People were
not rational systems.
This profound truth was reinforced when Desmond showed up one
evening at his door. The famous Coyote himself, the stowaway, Big Man’s little
bro, standing there small and slight in a brightly colored construction
worker’s jumper, diagonal slashes of aquamarine and royal blue leading the eye
down to lime-green walker boots. Many construction workers in Burroughs (and
there were a lot of them) wore the new light and flexible walker boots all the
time as a kind of fashion statement, and all were brightly colored, but very
few achieved the stunning quality of Desmond’s fluorescent greens.
He grinned his cracked grin as Sax stared at them. “Yes, so
beautiful aren’t they? And very distracting.”
Which was just as well, as his dreadlocks were stuffed into a
voluminous red, yellow, and green beret, an unusual sight,anywhere on Mars.
“Come on, let’s go out for a drink.”
He led Sax down to a cheap canalside bar, built into the side of a
massive emptied pingo. The construction crowd here was tightly packed around
long tables, and sounded mostly Australian. At the canalside itself a
particularly rowdy group were throwing ice shot-puts the size of cannonballs
out into the canal, and very occasionally thumping one down on the grass of the
far bank, which caused cheers and often a round of nitrous oxide for the house.
Strollers on the far bank were giving that part of the canalside a wide berth.
Desmond got them four shots of tequila and one nitrous inhaler.
“Pretty soon we’ll have agave cactus growing on the surface, eh?”
“I think you could do it now.”
They sat at the end of one table, with their elbows bumping and
Desmond talking into Sax’s ear as they drank. He had a whole wish list of
things he wanted Sax to steal from Biotique. Seed stocks, spores, rhizomes,
certain growth media, certain hard-to-synthesize chemicals... . “Hiroko says to
tell you she really needs all of it, but especially the seeds.”
“Can’t she breed those herself? I don’t like taking things.”
“Life is a dangerous game,” Desmond said, toasting the thought
with a big whiff of nitrous, followed by a shot of tequila. “Ahhhhhhhhh,” he
said.
“It’s not the danger,” Sax said. “I just don’t like doing it. I
work with those people.”
Desmond shrugged and did not answer. It occurred to Sax that these
scruples might strike Desmond, who had spent most of the twenty-first century
living by theft, as a bit overfine.
“You won’t be taking it from those people,” Desmond said at last.
“You’ll be taking it from the transnat that owns Biotique.”
“But that’s a Swiss collective, and Praxis,” Sax said. “And Praxis
doesn’t look so bad. It’s a very loose egalitarian system, it reminds me of
Hiroko’s, actually.”
“Except that they’re part of a global system that has a fairly
small oligarchy running the world. You have to remember the context.”
“Oh believe me, I do,” Sax, said, remembering his sleepless
nights. “But you have to make distinctions as well.”
“Yes, yes. And one distinction is that Hiroko needs these
materials and cannot make them, given the necessity to hide from the police
hired by your wonderful transnational.”
Sax blinked disgruntledly.
“Besides, theft of materials is one of the few resistance actions
left to us these days. Hiroko has agreed with Maya that obvious sabotage is
simply an announcement of the underground’s existence, and an invitation for
reprisal and a shutdown of the demimonde. Better simply to disappear for a
while, she says, and make them think that we never existed in any great
numbers.”
“It’s a good idea,” Sax said. “But I’m surprised you’re doing what
Hiroko says.”
“Very funny,” Desmond said with a grimace. “Anyway, I think it’s a
good idea too.”
“You do?”
“No. But she talked me into it. It may be for the best. Anyway
there’s still a lot of materials to be obtained.”
“Won’t theft itself tip off the police that we’re still out
there?”
“No way. It’s so widespread that what we do can’t be noticed
against the background levels. There’s a whole lot of inside jobs.”
“Like me.”
“Yes, but you’re not doing it for money, are you.”
“I still don’t like it.”
Desmond laughed, revealing his stone eyetooth, and the odd
asymmetricality of his jaw and his whole lower face. “It’s hostage syndrome.
You work with them and you get to know them, and have a sympathy for them. You
have to remember what they’re doing here. Come on, finish that cactus and I’ll
show you some things you haven’t seen, right here in Burroughs.”
There was a commotion, as an ice shot had hit the other bank and
rolled up the grass and bowled over an old man. People were cheering and
lifting the woman who had made the throw onto their shoulders, but the group
with the old man was charging down to the nearest bridge. “This place is
getting too noisy,” Desmond said. “Come on, drink that and let’s go.”
Sax knocked back the liquor while Desmond popped the last of the
inhaler. Then they left quickly to avoid the developing brouhaha, walking up
the canalside path. A half hour’s walk took them past the rows of Bareiss
columns and up into Princess Park, where they turned right and walked up the
steep wide grassy incline of Thoth Boulevard. Beyond Table Mountain they turned
left down a narrower swath of streetgrass, and came to the westernmost part of
the tent wall, extending in a big arc around Black Syrtis Mesa. “Look, they’re
getting back to the old coffin quarters for workers again,” Desmond pointed
out. “That’s Subarashii’s standard housing now, but see how these units are set
into the mesa. Black Syrtis contained a plutonium processing plant in the early
days of Burroughs, when it was well out of town. But now Subarashii has built
workers’ quarters right next to it, and their jobs are to oversee the
processing and the removal of the waste, north to Nili Fossae, where some
integral fast reactors will use it. The cleanup operation used to be almost
completely robotic, but the robots are hard to keep on-line. They’ve found it’s
cheaper to use people for a lot of the jobs.”
“But the radiation,” Sax said, blinking.
“Yes,” Desmond said with his savage grin. “They take on forty rem
a year.”
“You’re kidding!”
“I am not kidding. They tell the workers this, and give them
hardship pay, and after three years they get a bonus, which is the treatment.”
“Is it withheld from them otherwise?”
“It’s expensive, Sax. And there are waiting lists. This is a way
to skip up the list, and cover the costs.”
“But forty rems! There’s no way to be sure the treatment will
repair the damage that could do!”
“We know that,” Desmond said with a scowl. There was no need to
refer to Simon. “But they don’t.”
“And Subarashii is doing this just to cut costs?”
“That’s important in such a large capital investment, Sax. All
kinds of cost-cutting measures are showing up. The sewage systems in Black
Syrtis are all the same system, for instance-the med clinic and the coffins and
the plants in the mesa.”
“You’re kidding.”
“I am not kidding. My jokes are funnier than that.”
Sax waved him off.
“Look,” Desmond said, “there are no regulatory agencies anymore.
No building codes or whatever. That is what the transnational success in
sixty-one really means-they make their own rules now. And you know what their
one rule is.”
“But this is simply stupid.”
“Well, you know, this particular division of Subarashii is run by
Georgians, and they’re in the grip of a big Stalin revival there. It’s a patriotic
gesture to run their country as stupidly as possible. That means business too.
And of course the top managers of Subarashii are still Japanese, and they
believe Japan became great by being tough. They say they won in sixty-one what
they lost in World War Two. They’re the most brutal transnat up here, but all
the rest are imitating them to compete successfully. Praxis is an anomaly in
that sense, you must remember that.”
“So we reward them by stealing from them.”
“You’re the one who went to work for Biotique. Maybe you should
change jobs.”
“No.”
“Do you think you can get these materials from one of Subarashii’s
firms?”
“No.”
“But you could from Biotique.”
“Probably. Security is pretty tight.”
“But you could do it.”
“Probably.” Sax thought about it. “I want something in return.”
“Yes?”
“Will you fly me out to have a look at this soletta burn zone?”
“Certainly! I would like to see it again myself.”
So the next afternoon they left Burroughs and trained south up the
Great Escarpment, getting off at Libya Station, some seventy kilometers from
Burroughs. There they slipped into the basement and their closet door, down
their tunnel and out into the rocky countryside. Down in a shallow graben they
found one of Desmond’s cars, and when night came they drove east along the
Escarpment to a small Red hideout in the rim of Du Martheray Crater, next to a
stretch of flat bedrock the Reds used as an airstrip. Desmond did not identify
Sax to their hosts. They were led into a little cliffside hangar, where they
got into one of Spencer’s old stealth planes and taxied out to the bedrock,
then took off in an undulant acceleration down the runway. Once in the air they
flew east slowly through the night.
They flew in silence for a while. Sax saw lights on the dark
surface of the planet only three times: once a station in Escalante Crater,
once the tiny moving line of lights of a round-the-world train, and the last an
unidentified blink in the rough land behind the Great Escarpment. “Who do you
think that is?” Sax asked.
“No idea.”
After a few minutes more Sax said, “I ran into Phyllis.”
“Really! Did she recognize you?”
“No.”
Desmond laughed. “That’s Phyllis for you.”
“A lot of old acquaintances haven’t recognized me.”
“Yeah, but Phyllis ... Is she still president of the Transitional
Authority?”
“No. She didn’t seem to think it was a powerful post, anyway.”
Desmond laughed again. “A silly woman. But she did get that group
on Clarke back to civilization, I’ll give her that. I thought they were goners,
myself.”
“Do you know much about that?”
“I talked with two of the people who were on it, yeah. One night
in Burroughs at the Pingo Bar, in fact. You couldn’t get them to shut up about
it.”
“Did anything happen near the end of their flight?”
“The end? Well, yeah-someone died. I guess some woman got a hand
crushed when they were evacuating Clarke, and Phyllis was the closest thing
they had to a doctor, so Phyllis took care of her through the whole trip, and
thought she was going to make it, but I guess they ran out of something, the
two telling me the story weren’t too clear on it, and she took a turn for the
worse. Phyllis called a prayer meeting for her and prayed for her, but she died
anyway, a couple of days before they came into the Terran system.”
“Ah,” Sax said. Then: “Phyllis doesn’t seem all that ... religious
anymore.”
Desmond snorted. “She was never religious, if you ask me. Hers was
the religion of business. You visit real Christians like the folks down in
Christianopolis, or Bingen, and you don’t find them talking profits at breakfast,
and lording it over you with that horrible unctuous righteousness they have.
Righteousness, good Lord-it is I a
most unpleasant quality in a person. You know it has to be a house built on
sand, eh? But the demimonde Christians are not i like that. They’re gnostics, Quakers, Baptists, Baha’i
Rastafarians, whatever-the most agreeable people in the underground if you ask
me, and I’ve traded with everybody. So helpful. And no airs about being best
friends with Jesus. They’re tight with Hiroko, and the Sufis as well. Some kind
of mystic networking going on down there.” He cackled. “But Phyllis, now, and
all those business fundamentalists-using religion to cover extortion, I hate
that. Actually I never heard Phyllis speak in a religious manner after we
landed. “
“Did you have much opportunity to hear Phyllis speak after we
landed?”
Another laugh. “More than you might think! I saw more than you did
in those years, Mister Lab Man! I had my little hidey-holes everywhere.”
Sax made a skeptical noise, and Desmond shouted a laugh and
slapped him on the shoulder. “Who else could tell you that you and Hiroko were
an item in the Underbill years, eh?”
“Hmm.”
“Oh yes, I saw a lot. Of course you could make that particular
observation about practically any man in Underbill and be right. That vixen was
keeping us all as a harem.”
“Polyandry?”
“Two-timing, goddammit! Or twenty-timing.”
“Hmm.”
Desmond laughed at him.
Just after dawn they caught sight of a white column of smoke,
obscuring the stars over a whole quadrant of the sky. For a while this dense
cloud was the only anomaly they could see in the landscape. Then, as they flew
on and the terminator of the planet rolled under them, a broad swath of bright
ground appeared on the east-em horizon ahead-an orange strip, or trough,
running roughly northeast to southwest across the land, obscured by smoke that
poured out of one section of it. The trough under the smoke was white and
turbulent, as if a small volcanic eruption were confined to that one spot.
Above it stood a beam of light-a beam of illuminated smoke, rather, so tight
and solid that it was like a physical pillar, extending straight up and
becoming less distinct as the cloud smoke thinned, and disappearing where the
smoke reached its maximum height of around ten thousand meters.
At first there was no sign of the origin of this beam in the sky-
the aerial lens was some four hundred kilometers overhead, after all. Then Sax
thought he saw something like the ghost of a cloud, soaring very far above.
Maybe that was it, maybe it wasn’t. Desmond wasn’t sure.
At the foot of the pillar of light, however, there was no question
of visibility-the pillar of light had a kind of biblical presence, and the
melted rock under it was truly incandescent, a very brilliant white. That was
what 5000°K looked like, exposed to the open air. “We have to be careful,”
Desmond said. “We fly into that beam and it would be like a moth in a flame.”
“I’m sure the smoke is very turbulent as well.”
“Yes. I plan to stay windward of it.”
Down where the pillar of lit smoke met the orange channel, new
smoke was spewing out in violent billows, weirdly lit from underneath. To the
north of the white spot, where the rock had had a chance to cool, the melted
channel reminded Sax of film of the eruptions of the Hawaiian volcanoes. Bright
yellow-orange waves surged north in the channel of fluid rock, occasionally
meeting resistances and splashing up onto the dark banks of the molten channel.
The channel was about two kilometers wide, and ran over the horizon in both
directions; they could see perhaps two hundred kilometers of it. South of the
pillar of light, the channel bed was almost covered with cooling black rock,
webbed by dark orange cracks. The straightness of the channel, and the pillar
of light itself, were the only obvious signs that it was not some kind of
natural lava channel; but these signs were more than enough. Besides, there
hadn’t been any volcanic activity on the surface of Mars for many thousands of
years.
Desmond closed on the sight, then banked their plane sharply and
headed north. “The beam from the aerial lens is moving south, so up the line we
should be able to fly closer.”
For many kilometers the channel of melted rock ran northeast
without changing. Then as they got farther away from the current burn zone, the
orange of the lava darkened and began to cake over from the sides with a black
surface, broken by more orange cracks. Beyond that the channel surface was
black, as were the banks on each side of it; a straight swath of pure black,
running over the rust-colored highlands of Hesperia.
Desmond banked and turned south again, and flew closer to the
channel. He was a rough pilot, shoving the light plane around ruthlessly. When
the orange cracks reappeared, a thermal updraft bucked the plane hard, and he
slid to the west a little. The light of the molten rock itself illuminated the
banks of the channel, which appeared to be smoking lines of hills, very black.
“I thought they were supposed to be glass,” Sax said.
“Obsidian. Actually I’ve seen some different colors. Swirls of
various minerals in the glass.”
“How far does this bum extend?”
“They’re cutting from Cerberus to Hellas, running just west of
Tyrrhena and Hadriaca volcanoes.”
Sax whistled.
“They say it will be a canal between the Hellas Sea and the
northern ocean.”
“Yes, yes. But they’re volatilizing carbonates much too fast.”
“Thickens the atmosphere, right?”
“Yes, but with CO2! They’re wrecking the plan! -We won’t be able
to breathe the atmosphere for years! We’ll be stuck in the cities.”
“Maybe they think they’ll be able to scrub the CO2 out when things
are warmed up.” Desmond glanced at him. “Have you seen enough?”
“More than enough.”
Desmond laughed his unsettling laugh, and banked the plane
sharply. They began to chase the terminator to the west, flying low over the
long shadows of the dawn terrain.
“Think about it, Sax. For a while people are forced to stay in the
cities, which is convenient if you want to keep control of things. You burn
cuts with this flying magnifying glass, and fairly quickly you have your
one-bar atmosphere, and your warm wet planet. Then you have some method for
scrubbing the air of carbon dioxide-they must have something in mind,
industrial or biological or both. Something they can sell, no doubt. And presto,
you have another Earth, and very quickly. It might be expensive-”
“It’s definitely expensive! All these big projects must be setting
the transnationals back by huge amounts, and they’re doing it even though we’re
a good step on the way to two-seventy-three K. I don’t get it.”
“Maybe they feel two-seventy-three is too modest. An average of
freezing is a bit chilly, after all. Kind of a Sax Russell vision of
terraforming, you might call that. Practical, but...” He cackled. “Or maybe
they’re feeling rushed. Earth is in a mess, Sax.”
“I know that,” Sax said sharply. “I’ve been studying it.”
“Good for you! No, really. So you kntiw that the people who
haven’t got the treatment are getting desperate-they’re getting older, and
their chances of ever getting it seem to be getting worse. And the people who
have gotten the treatment, especially the ones at the top, are looking around
trying to figure out what to do. Sixty-one taught them what can happen if
things get out of control. So they’re buying up countries like bad mangoes at
the end of market day. But it doesn’t seem to be helping. And here right next
door they see a fresh empty planet, not quite ready for occupation, but close.
Full of potential. It could be a new world. Beyond the reach of the untreated billions.”
Sax thought it over. “A kind of bolt-hole, you mean. To escape to
if there’s trouble.”
“Exactly. I think there are people in these transnationals who
want Mars terraformed just as quickly as possible, by any means necessary.”
“Ah,” Sax said. And was silent all the way back.
Desmond accompanied him back into Burroughs, and as they walked
from South Station to Hunt Mesa, they could see across the treetops of Canal
Park, through the slot between Branch Mesa and Table Mountain to Black Syrtis.
“Are they really doing things as stupid as that all over Mars?” Sax said.
Desmond nodded. “I will bring you a list next time.”
“Do that.” Sax shook his head as he pondered it. “It doesn’t make
sense. It doesn’t take into account the long run.”
“They are short-run thinkers.”
“But they’re going to live a long time! Presumably they’ll still
be in charge when these policies collapse on them!”
“They may not see it that way. They change jobs a lot up at the
top. They try to establish a reputation by building a company very quickly,
then get hired upward somewhere else, then try to do it again. It’s musical
chairs up there.”
“It won’t matter what chair they’re in, it’s the whole room that’s
going to come down! They aren’t paying attention to the laws of physics!”
“Of course not! Haven’t you noticed that before, Sax?”
“... I guess not.”
Of course he had seen that human affairs were irrational and
unexplainable. This no one could miss. But he realized now that he had been
making the assumption that the people who involved themselves in governance
were making a good-faith effort to run things in a rational manner, with a view
to the long-term well-being of humanity and its biophysical support system.
Desmond laughed at him as he tried to express this, and irritably he exclaimed,
“But why else take on such compromised work, if not to that end?”
“Power,” Desmond said. “Power and gain.”
“Ah.”
Sax had always been so uninterested in those things that it was
hard for him to understand why anyone else would be. What was personal gain but
the freedom to do what you wanted to do? And what was power but the freedom to
do what you wanted to do? And once you had that freedom, any more wealth or
power actually began to restrict one’s options, and reduce one’s freedom. One
became a servant of one’s wealth or power, constrained to spend all one’s time
protecting it. So that properly seen, the freedom of a scientist with a lab at
his command was the highest freedom possible. Any more wealth and power only
interfered with that.
Desmond was shaking his head as Sax described this philosophy.
“Some people like to tell others what to do. They like that more than freedom.
Hierarchy, you know. And their place in the hierarchy. As long as it’s high
enough. Everyone bound into their places. It’s safer than freedom. And a lot of
people are cowards.”
Sax shook his head. “I think it’s simply an inability to
understand the concept of diminishing returns. As if there can never be too
much of a good thing. It’s very unrealistic. I mean, there is no process in nature
that is a constant irrespective of quantity!”
“Speed of light.”
“Bah., Irrelevant. Physical reality is clearly not a factor in
these calculations.”
“Well put.”
Sax shook his head, frustrated. “Religion again. Or ideology. What
was it Frank used to say? An imaginary relationship to a real situation?”
. “There was a man who loved power.”
“True.”
“But he was very imaginative.”
They stopped at Sax’s apartment and changed clothes, then-went up
to the top of the mesa, to get breakfast at Antonio’s. Sax was still thinking
about their discussion. “The problem is that people with a hypertrophied regard
for wealth and power achieve positions that give them these gifts in excess,
and then they find that they’re as much slaves to them as masters. And then
they become dissatisfied and bitter.”
“Like Frank, you mean.”
“Yes. So the powerful almost always seem to have a dysfunctional
aspect to them. Everything from cynicism to full-blown de-structiveness.
They’re not happy.”
“But they are powerful.”
“Yes. And thus our problem. Human affairs”-Sax paused to eat one
of the rolls just brought to their table; he was famished- “you know, they
ought to be run according to principles of systems ecology.”
Desmond laughed out loud, hastily grabbing up a napkin to clean
off his chin. He laughed so hard that people at other tables looked over at
them, worrying Sax somewhat. “What a concept!” he cried, and started to laugh
again. “Ah ha ha! Oh, my Saxifrage! Scientific management, eh?”
“Well, why not?” Sax said mulishly. “I mean, the principles
governing the behavior of the dominant species in a stable ecosystem are fairly
straightforward, as I recall. I’ll bet a council of ecol-ogists could construct
a program that would result in a stable benign society!”
“If only you ran the world!” Desmond cried, and started laughing
again. He put his face right down on the table and howled.
“Not just me.”
“No, I am joking.” He composed himself. “You know Vlad and Marina
have been working on their eco-economics for years now. They have even had me using
it in the trade between the underground colonies.”
“I didn’t know that,” Sax said, surprised.
Desmond shook his head. “You have to pay more attention, Sax. In
the south we have lived by eco-economics for years now.”
“I’ll have to look into that.”
“Yes.” Desmond grinned widely, on the verge of cracking up yet
again. “You have a lot to learn.”
Their orders arrived, with a carafe of orange juice, and Desmond
poured their glasses full. He clinked his glass against Sax’s, offered a toast:
“Welcome to the revolution!”
Desmond left for the South, having extracted a promise that Sax would pilfer what he could
from Biotique for Hiroko. “I’ve got to go meet Nirgal.” He gave Sax a hug and
was gone.
A month or so passed, during which Sax thought about all he had
learned from Desmond and the videos, sifting through it slowly, getting more
and more disturbed as he did. His sleep was still broken nearly every night by
hours of wakefulness.
Then one morning after one of these restless, fruitless bouts of
insomnia, Sax got a call on his wristpad. It was Phyllis, in town for meetings,
and she wanted to get together for dinner.
Sax agreed, with his surprise and Stephen’s enthusiasm. He met her
that evening, at Antonio’s. They kissed in the European style, and were led to
one of the corner tables, overlooking the city. There they ate a meal that Sax
scarcely noticed, talking inconsequentially about the latest events in
Sheffield and Biotique.
After cheesecake they lingered over brandies. Sax was in no hurry to leave, as he was not sure what Phyllis had in mind for afterward. She had given no clear sign, and she seemed in no hurry either.
Now she leaned back in her chair, and regarded him cheerfully. “It
really is you, isn’t it.”
Sax tilted his head to indicate his incomprehension.
Phyllis laughed. “It’s hard to believe, really. You were never
like this in the old days, Sax Russell. I wouldn’t have guessed in a hundred
years that you would be such a lover.”
Sax squinted uncomfortably and looked around. “I would hope that
says more about you than me,” he said with Stephen’s insouciance. The nearby
tables were all empty, and the waiters were leaving them alone. The restaurant
would close in a half hour or so.
Phyllis laughed again, but her eyes had a hard look to them, and
suddenly Sax saw that she was angry. Embarrassed, no doubt, at being fooled by
a man she had known for some eighty years. And angry that he had decided to
fool her. And why not? It showed a very fundamental lack of trust, after all,
especially from someone who was sleeping with you. The bad faith of his
behavior at Arena was coming back to him with a vengeance, making him quite
queasy. But what to do about it?
He recalled that moment in the elevator when she had kissed him,
when he had been similarly nonplussed. Taken aback first by her nonrecognition,
and now by her recognition. It had a certain symmetry. And both times he had
gone along with it.
“Don’t you have anything more to say?” Phyllis demanded.
He spread his hands. “What makes you think this?”
Again she laughed angrily, then regarded him with lips tight.
“It’s so easy to see it now,” she said. “They just gave you a nose and a chin,
I suppose. But the eyes are the same, and the head shape. It’s funny what you
remember and what you forget.”
“That’s true.”
Actually it was not a matter of forgetting, but of being unable to
recollect. Sax suspected the memories were still there, in storage.
“I can’t really remember your old face,” Phyllis said. “To me you
were always in a lab with your nose pressing a screen. You might as well have
worn a white lab coat, that’s the way I see you in my memories. A kind of giant
lab rat.” Now her eyes were glittering. “But somewhere along the line you
managed to learn to imitate ! human behavior pretty well, didn’t you? Well enough
to fool an old friend who liked the way you looked.”
“We are not old friends.”
“No,” she snapped. “I guess we’re not. You and your old tried to kill me. And they did kill
thousands of other people, and destroyed most of this planet. And obviously
they’re still out there, or else you wouldn’t be here, would you. In fact they
must be pretty widespread, because when I ran a DNA check on your sperm, the
official TA records had you as Stephen Lindholm. That put me off the trail for
a while. But there was something about you that made me wonder. When we fell in
that crevasse. That did it—it reminded me of something that happened when we
were in Antarctica. You and Tatiana Durova and I were up on Nussbaum Riegel
when Ta-tiana tripped and sprained her ankle, and it got windy and late and
they had to helicopter us back down to the base, and while we were waiting, you
found some kind of rock lichen ...”
Sax shook his head, truly surprised. “I don’t remember that.” And
he didn’t. The year of training and evaluation in Antarctica’s dry valleys had
been intense, but now the entire year was a dim blur to him, and that incident
would not come back at all; it was hard to believe it had happened. He couldn’t
even remember what poor Tatiana Durova had looked like.
Absorbed in his thoughts, and in a concerted push for his memories
of that year, he missed a bit of what Phyllis was saying, but then he caught
“... checked again with one of my old copies of my AFs memory, and there you
were.”
“Your AI’s memory units may be degrading,” he said absently.
“They’re finding that the circuitry tends to get scrambled by cosmic radiation
if it isn’t reinforced from time to time.”
She ignored that weak sally. “The point is, people who can change
Transitional Authority records like that are still worth watching out for. I’m
afraid I can’t just let this pass. Even if I wanted to.”
“What do you mean?”
“I’m not sure. It depends what you do. You could just tell me
where you were hiding, and who with, and what’s going on. You just showed up at
Biotique a year ago, after all. Where were you before that?”
“On Earth.”
Her smile had a bad twist to it. “If that’s the course you take,
I’ll be forced to ask for help from some of my associates. There are security
people in Kasei Vallis who will be able to refresh your memory.”
“Come on.”
“I don’t mean that metaphorically. They won’t beat the information
out of you or anything like that. It’s more a matter of extraction. They put
you under, stimulate the hippocampus and the amygdala, and ask questions. People
simply answer.”
Sax considered this. The mechanisms of memory were still very
poorly understood, but no doubt something crude could be applied to the areas
they knew were involved. Fast MRI, point-specific ultrasound, who knew what. It
would surely be dangerous, however... .
“Well?” Phyllis said.
He stared at her smile, so angry and triumphant. A sneer. Random
thoughts nickered through his mind, images without words: Desmond, Hiroko, the
kids in Zygote shouting Why, Sax, why? He had to hold his face steady to keep
it from revealing his dislike for her, suddenly pouring through him in a wave.
Perhaps this.sort of distaste was what people called hatred.
After a time he cleared his throat. “I suppose I’d rather just
tell you.”
She nodded firmly, as if this was the decision she would have made
herself. She looked around: the whole restaurant was empty now, the waiters
sitting at one table, nursing glasses of grappa. “Come on,” she said, “let’s go
to my offices.”
Sax nodded and rose stiffly. His right leg had gone asleep. He
limped after her. They said good-night to the mobilizing waiters and left.
They got into the elevator, and Phyllis punched the button for the
subway level. The door closed and they dropped. In an elevator again; Sax took
a deep breath, then jerked his head down as if to look at something unusual on
the control panel. Phyllis followed his gaze and with a jerky motion he slugged
her on the side of the jaw. She crashed into the side of the elevator and
collapsed in a heap, dazed and breathing in gasps. The two middle knuckles of
his right hand hurt horribly. He hit the button for the floor two above the
subway, which had a long passageway through Hunt Mesa, lined with shops that
would be closed at this hour. He grabbed Phyllis by the armpits and hauled her
up; she was taller than him, loose and heavy, and when the elevator door
opened, he prepared himself to shout for help. But no one stood outside the
door, and he pulled one of her arms over his neck and dragged her over to one
of the little carts that sat by the elevator for the convenience of people who
wanted to cross the mesa quickly, or with a load. He dumped her onto the
backseat and she groaned, sounding as if she was coming to. He sat down ahead
of her in the driver’s seat and stomped the accelerator pedal to the floor, and
the little vehicle hummed down the hallway. He found he was breathing hard, and
sweating.
He passed a pair of rest rooms, and stopped the cart. Phyllis
rolled helplessly off the seat and onto the floor, moaning louder than ever.
Soon she would regain consciousness, if she hadn’t already. He got out and ran
over to see if the men’s room was unlocked. It was, so he ran to the cart and
pulled Phyllis up by the shoulders, up and over his back. He staggered under
her weight until he reached the men’s room door, then flopped her down; her
head cracked against the concrete floor, and her moaning stopped. He opened the
door and pulled her through it, then closed and locked it.
He sat on the bathroom floor beside her, gasping. She was still
breathing, and her pulse was shallow but steady. She seemed okay, but knocked
out even more definitively than when he had hit her. Her skin was pale and
damp, and her mouth hung open. He felt sorry for her, until he remembered her
threat to give him to security technicians, to tear his secrets out of him.
Their methods were advanced, but still it was torture. And if they had
succeeded they would know about the refuges in the south, and all the rest.
Once they had a general idea of what he knew, they could coax the specifics out
of him; it wouldn’t be possible to resist their combinations of drugs and
behavior modification.
And even now Phyllis knew too much. The fact that he had such a
good false ID implied a whole infrastructure that up until now had been hidden.
Once they knew of its existence, they could probably ferret it out. Hiroko,
Desmond, Spencer who was deep in the system in Kasei Vallis, all exposed ...
Nirgal and Jackie, Peter, Ann ... all of them. Because he had not been clever
enough to avoid a stupid awful woman like Phyllis.
He looked around the men’s room. It was the size of two toilet
stalls, one stall with a toilet, the other with a sink, a mirror, and the usual
wall of dispensers: sterility pills, recreational gases. He stared at these,
catching his breath and thinking things over. As plans tumbled in his mind he
whispered instructions to the AI in his wristpad. Desmond had given him some
very destructive viral programs, and he plugged his wristpad into Phyllis’s,
and waited for the transfers to take place. With luck he could crash her entire
system: personal security measures were nothing against Desmond’s
military-based viruses, or so Desmond claimed.
But there was still Phyllis. The recreational gases in the wall
dispenser were mostly nitrous oxide, in individual inhalers containing about
two or three cubic meters of gas. The room was, he judged, about thirty-five or
forty cubic meters. The ventilation grill was next to the ceiling, and could be
blocked with a strip of the towel, on its roll by the sink.
He stuck money cards in the dispenser and bought all the
recreational gases in it: twenty little pocket-sized bottles, with
nose-and-mouth masks. And nitrous oxide would be slightly heavier than
Burroughs air.
He took the little scissors out of the key compartment on his
wristpad, and cut a sheet out of the continuous roll of towel. He climbed onto
the toilet tank and covered the ventilation grill, stuffing the sheet into the
slits. There were still gaps, but they were small. He climbed back down and
went over to the door. There was a gap at the bottom of the door, almost a
centimeter tall. He cut some more strips from the towel. Phyllis was snoring.
He went to the door, opened it, kicked the gas bottles out and stepped out
after them. He took one last look at Phyllis, prone on the floor, and then
closed the door. He stuffed the towel strips under the door, leaving only a
small opening at one comer. Then, after glancing up and down the hall, he sat
down and took a bottle and shaped the flexible mask to the hole he had left,
and shot the contents of the bottle into the men’s room. He did that twenty
times, stuffing the empty bottles in his pockets until they were full, and then
making a little satchel for the remainder out of the last strip of towel. He
got up and clanked over to the cart and sat down in the driver’s seat. He
stepped on the accelerator and the cart jerked forward, in a movement the
opposite of the sudden stop that had thrown Phyllis off the back-seat and onto
the floor. That would have hurt.
He stopped the cart. He got out and ran back to the men’s room,
clinking and clanking. He jerked open the door, walked in holding his breath,
and grabbed Phyllis’s ankles and hauled her out into the air. She was still
breathing, and had a little smile on her face. Sax resisted the impulse to kick
her, and ran back to the cart.
He drove to the other side of Hunt Mesa at full speed, and then
took the elevator there down to the subway level. He got on the next subway
train, and waited out the trip across town to South Station. He observed that
his hands were trembling, and the two big knuckles on his right hand were
swollen and turning blue. They hurt a good deal.
At the station he bought a ticket south, but when he gave the
ticket and his ID to the ticket-taker at the track entrance, the man’s eyes
went round and he and his associates actually pulled their pistols to make the
arrest, calling out nervously for help from people in another room. Apparently
Phyllis had come to faster than his calculations had led him to expect.
------------
---------Homeless
-----------
Biogenesis is in the first place psychogenesis. This truth was
never more manifest than on Mars, where noosphere preceded biosphere—the layer
of thought first enwrapping the silent planet from afar, inhabiting it with
stones and plans and dreams, until the moment when John stepped out and said
Here we are—from which point of ignition the green force spread like wildfire,
until the whole planet was pulsing with viriditas. It was as if the planet
itself had felt something missing, and at the tap of mind against rock,
noosphere against lithosphere, the absent biosphere had sprung into the gap
with the startling suddenness of a magician’s paper flower.
Or so it seemed to Michel Duval, who was passionately devoted to
every sign of life in the rust waste; who had seized Hiroko’s areophany with
the fervor of a drowning man thrown a buoy. It had given him a new way of
seeing. To practice this sight he had taken on Ann’s habit of walking outside
in the hour before sunset, and in the long-shadowed landscapes he found every
patch of grass a piercing delight. In each little tangle of sedge and lichen he
saw a miniature Provence.
This was his task, as he now conceived it: the hard work of
reconciling the centrifugal antinomy of Provence and Mars. He felt that in this
project he was part of a long tradition, for recently in his studies he had
noticed that the history of French thought was dominated by attempts to resolve
extreme antinomies. For Descartes it had been mind and body, for Sartre,
Freudianism and Marxism, for Teilhard de Chardin, Christianity and
evolution—the list could be extended, and it seemed to him that the particular
quality of French philosophy, its heroic tension and its tendency to be a long
march of magnificent failures, came from this repeated attempt to yoke together
impossible opposites. Perhaps they were all, including his, attacks on the same
problem, the struggle to knit together spirit and matter. And perhaps this was
why French thought had so often welcomed complex rhetorical apparatuses such as
the semantic rectangle, structures which might bind these centrifugal
oppositions in nets strong enough to hold them.
So now it was Michel’s work patiently to knit green spirit and
rust matter, to discover the Provence in Mars. Crustose lichen, for instance,
made parts of the red plain look as if they were being plated with apple jade.
And now, in the lucid indigo evenings (the old pink skies had made grass look
brown), the sky’s color allowed every blade of grass to radiate such pure
greens that the little meadow lawns seemed to vibrate. The intense pressure of
color on the retina ... such delight.
And it was awesome as well, to see how fast this primitive biosphere
had taken root, and flowered, and spread. There was an inherent surge toward
life, a green electric snap between the poles of rock and mind. An incredible
power, which here had reached in and touched the genetic chains, inserted
sequences, created new hybrids, helped them to spread, changed their
environments to help them grow. The natural enthusiasm of life for life was
everywhere clear, how it struggled and so often prevailed; but now there were
guiding hands as well, a noosphere bathing all from the start. The green force,
bolting into the landscape with every touch of their fingertips.
So that human beings were miraculous indeed—conscious creators, walking this new world like fresh young gods, wielding immense alchemical powers. So that anyone Michel met on Mars he regarded curiously, wondering as he looked at their often innocuous exteriors what kind of new Paracelsus or Isaac of Holland stood before him, and whether they would turn lead to gold, or cause rocks to blossom.
The American
rescued by Coyote and
Maya was no more or less remarkable on first acquaintance than any other person
Michel had met on Mars; more inquisitive perhaps, more ingenuous it seemed; a
bulky shambling man with a swarthy face and a quizzical expression. But Michel
was used to looking past that kind of surface to the transformative spirit
within, and quickly he concluded that they had a mysterious man on their hands.
His name was Art Randolph, he said, and he had been salvaging
useful materials from the fallen elevator. “Carbon?” Maya had asked. But he had
missed or ignored her sarcastic tone and replied, “Yes, but also—” and he had
rattled off a whole list of exotic brec-ciated minerals. Maya had only glared
at him, but he had not appeared to notice. He only had questions. Who were
they? What were they doing out there? Where were they taking him? What kind of
cars were these? Were they really invisible from space? How did they get rid of
their thermal signals? Why did they need to be invisible from space? Could they
be part of the legendary lost colony? Were they part of the Mars underground?
Who were they, anyway?
No one was quick to answer these questions, and it was Michel
who finally said to him, “We are Martians. We live out here on our
own.”
“The underground. Incredible. I would have said you guys were a
myth, to tell you the truth. This is great.”
Maya only rolled her eyes, and when their guest asked to be
dropped off at Echus Overlook, she laughed nastily and said, “Get serious.”
“What do you mean?”
Michel explained to him that as they could not release him without
revealing their presence, they might not be able to release him at all.
“Oh, I wouldn’t tell anyone.”
Maya laughed again.
Michel said, “It’s a matter that is too important for us to trust
a stranger. And you might not be able to keep it a secret. You would have to
explain.how you had gotten so far from your vehicle.”
“You could take me back to it.”
“We don’t like to spend time around things like that. We wouldn’t
have come close to it if we hadn’t noticed you were in trouble.”
“Well, I appreciate it, but I must say this isn’t much of a
rescue.”
“Better than the alternative,” Maya told him sharply,
“Very true. And I do appreciate it, really. But I promise I won’t
tell anyone. And you know it isn’t as if people don’t know you’re out here. TV
back home has shows about you all the time.”
Even Maya was silenced by that. They drove on, Maya got on their
intercom and had a brief rapid exchange with Coyote, who was traveling in the
rover ahead of them, with Kasei and Nirgal. Coyote was adamant; as they had
saved the man’s life, they could certainly rearrange it for a time to keep
themselves out of danger. Michel reported the gist of the exchange to their
prisoner.
Randolph frowned briefly, then shrugged. Michel had never seen a
faster adjustment to the rerouting of a life; the man’s sangfroid was
impressive. Michel regarded him attentively, while also keeping one eye on the
front camera screen. Randolph was already asking questions again, about the
rover’s controls. He only made one more reference to his situation, after
looking at the radio and intercom controls. “I hope you’ll let me send some
kind of message to my company, so they’ll know I’m safe. I worked for
Dumpmines, a part of Praxis. You and Praxis have a lot in common, really. They
can be very secretive too. You ought to contact them just for your own sake, I
swear. You must have some coded bands that you use, right?”
No response from Maya or Michel. And later, when Randolph had gone
into the rover’s little toilet chamber, Maya hissed, “He’s obviously a spy. He
was out there deliberately so we would pick him up.”
That was Maya. Michel did not try to argue with her, but only
shrugged. “We’re certainly treating him like one.”
And then he was back out among them, and asking more questions.
Where did they live? What was it like hiding all the time? Michel began to be
amused at what seemed more and more like a performance, or even a test;
Randolph appeared perfectly open, ingenuous, friendly, his swarthy face almost
that of a moon-calf simpleton—and yet his eyes watched them very carefully, and
with every unanswered question he looked more interested and more pleased, as
if their answers were coming to him by telepathy. Every human was a great
power, every human on Mars an alchemist; and though Michel had given up
psychiatry a long time ago, he could still recognize the touch of a master at
work. He almost laughed at the growing urge he felt in himself, to confess
everything to this hulking quizzical man, still clumsy in the Martian g.
Then their radio beeped, and a compresed message lasting no more
than two seconds buzzed over the speakers. “See,” Randolph said helpfully, “you
could get a message out to Praxis just like that.”
But when the AI finished running the message through the
decryption sequence, there was no more joking. Sax had been arrested in
Burroughs.
At dawn they drew up with Coyote’s car, and spent the day
conferring about what to do. They sat in a cramped circle in the living
compartment, their faces all lined and etched with worry— all except their
prisoner, who sat between Nirgal and Maya. Nirgal had shaken hands with him and
nodded as if they were old friends, although neither had said a word. But the
language of friendship was not in words.
The news about Sax had come from Spencer, by way of Nadia. Spencer
was working in Kasei Vallis, which was a kind of new Korolyov, a security town,
very sophisticated and at the same time very low-profile. Sax had been taken to
one of the compounds
there, and Spencer had found out about it and made the call out to
Nadia.
“We have to get him out,” Maya said, “and fast. They’ve only had
him a couple days.”
“The Sax Russell?” Randolph was saying. “Wow. I can’t believe it.
Who are you all, anyway? Hey, are you Maya Toitovna?”
Maya cursed him in livid Russian. Coyote ignored them all; he
hadn’t said anything since the message had arrived, and was busy at his AI
screen, looking at what appeared to be weather satellite photos.
“You might as well let me go,” Randolph said into the silence. “I
couldn’t tell them anything they won’t get out of Russell.”
“He won’t tell them anything!” Kasei said hotly.
Randolph waggled a hand. “Scare him, maybe hurt him a little, put
him under, plug him in, dope him up and zap his brain in the right
places—they’ll get answers to whatever they ask. They’ve got it down to a
science, as I understand it.” He was staring at Kasei. “You look familiar too.
Never mind! Anyway, if they can’t tweak it out, they can usually do it more
crudely.”
“How do you know all this?” Maya demanded.
“Common knowledge,” Randolph said. “So maybe it’s all wrong,
but...”
“I want to go get him,” Coyote said.
“But they’ll know we’re out here,” Kasei said.
“They know that anyway. What they don’t know is where we are.”
“Besides,” Michel said, “it’s our Sax.”
Coyote said, “Hiroko won’t object.”
“If she does, tell her to fuck off!” Maya exclaimed. “Tell her
shikata ga nai!”
“It would be my pleasure,” Coyote said.
The western and northern slopes of the Tharsis bulge were
unpopulated relative to the eastern drop to Noctis Labyrinthus; there were a
few areothermal stations and aquifer wells, but much of the region was covered
in a year-round blanket of snow and fim and young glaciers. Winds out of the
south collided with the strong northwest winds coming around Olympus Mons, and
the blizzards could be fierce. The protoglacial zone extended up from the
six-or seven-kilometer contour nearly to the base of the great volcanoes; it
was not a good place to build, nor was it a good place for stealth cars to
hide. They drove hard over the sastrugi and along ropy lava mounds that served
as roads, north past the bulk of Tharsis Tholus, a volcano that was about the
size of Mauna Loa, though under the rise of Ascraeus it looked like a cinder
cone. The next night they made it off the snow and northeast across Echus
Chasma, and hid for the day under the stupendous eastern wall of Echus, just a
few kilometers north of Sax’s old headquarters at the top of the cliff.
The east wall of Echus Chasma was the Great Escarpment at its
absolute greatest—a cliff three kilometers tall, running in a straight line
north and south for a thousand kilometers. The areologists were still arguing
over its origin, as no ordinary force of landscape formation seemed adequate to
have created it. It was simply a break in the fabric of things, separating the
floor of Echus Chasma from the high plateau of Lunae Planum. Michel had visited
Yosemite Valley in his youth, and he still recalled those towering granite
cliffs; but this wall standing before them was as long as the whole state of
California, and three kilometers high for most of that length: a vertical
world, its massive planes of redrock staring out blankly to the west, glowing
in each empty sunset like the side of a continent.
At its northern end this incredible cliff finally became less
tall, and less steep, and just above 20° North it was cut by a deep broad
channel, which ran east through Lunae plateau, down onto the Chryse basin. This
big canyon was Kasei Vallis, one of the clearest manifestations of ancient
flooding anywhere on Mars. A single glance at a satellite photo and it was
obvious that a very large flood had run down Echus Chasma once upon a time,
until it reached a break in its great eastern wall, perhaps a graben. The water
had turned right down this valley and smashed through it with fantastic force,
eroding the entrance until it was a smooth curve, slopping over the outside
bank of the turn and ripping at joints in the rock until they were a complex
gridwork of narrow canyons. A central ridge in the main valley had been shaped
into a long lemniscate or tear-shaped island, the shape as hydrodynamic as a
fishback. The inner bank of the fossil watercourse was incised by two canyons
that had been mostly untouched by water, ordinary fossae that showed what the
main channel had probably looked like before the flood. Two late meteor strikes
on the highest part of the inner bank had completed the shaping of the terrain,
leaving fresh steep craters.
From the ground, driving slowly onto the rise of the outer bank,
it was a rounded elbow of a valley, with the lemniscate ridge, and the round
ramparts of the craters on the rise of the inner bank, the most prominent
features. It was an attractive landscape, reminiscent of the Burroughs region
in its spatial majesty, the great sweep of the main channel just begging to be
filled with running water, which no doubt would be a shallow braided stream,
coursing over pebbles and cutting new beds and islands every week... .
But now it was the site for the transnationals’ security compound.
The two craters on the inner bank had been tented, as had big sections of the
gridwork terrain on the outer bank, and part of the main channel on both sides
of the lemniscate island; but none of this work was ever shown on the video, or
mentioned in the news. It was not even on the maps.
Spencer had been there since the beginning of construction,
however, and his infrequent reports out had told them what the new town was
for. These days almost all the people found guilty of crimes on Mars were sent
out to the asteroid belt, to work off their sentences in mining ships. But
there were people in the Transitional Authority who wanted a jail on Mars
itself, and Kasei Vallis was it.
Outside the valley entrance they hid their boulder cars in a knot
of boulders, and Coyote studied weather reports. Maya fumed at the delay, but
Coyote shrugged her off. “This isn’t going to be easy,” he told her sternly,
“and it isn’t possible at all except in certain circumstances. We need to wait
for some reinforcements to arrive, and we need to wait on the weather. This is
something Spencer and Sax himself helped me to set up, and it is very clever,
but the initial conditions have to be right.”
He returned to his screens, ignoring them all, talking to himself
or to the screens, his dark thin face flickering in their light. Alchemist
indeed, Michel thought, muttering as if over alembic or crucible, working his
transmutations on the planet... a great power. And now focused on the weather.
Apparently he had discovered some prevailing patterns in the jet stream, tied
to certain anchoring points in the landscape. “It’s a question of the vertical
scale,” he said brusquely to Maya, who with all her questions was beginning to
sound like Art Randolph. “This planet has a thirty-k span top to bottom. Thirty
thousand meters! So there are strong winds.”
“Like the mistral,” Michel offered.
“Yes. Katabatic winds. And one of the strongest of them drops off
the Great Escarpment here.”
The prevailing winds in the region, however, were westerlies. When
these hit the Echus cliff, towering updrafts resulted, and flyers living in
Echus Overlook took advantage of them for sport, flying all day in gliders or
birdsuits. But fairly frequently cyclonic systems came by, bringing winds from
the east, and when that happened cold air ran over the snow-covered Lunae
plateau, scouring snow and becoming denser and colder, until the entire
drainage area was funneled out through notches in the great cliffs edge, and the
winds then fell like an avalanche.
Coyote had studied these katabatic winds for some time, and his
calculations had led him to believe that when conditions were right—sharp
temperature contrasts, a developed storm track east to west across the
plateau—then very slight interventions in certain places would cause the
downdrafts to turn into vertical typhoons, smashing down into Echus Chasma and
blasting north and south with immense power. When Spencer had identified for
them the nature and purpose of the new settlement in Kasei Vallis, Coyote had
immediately decided to try to create the means to effect these interventions.
“Those idiots built their prison in a wind tunnel,” he muttered at
one point, in answer to Maya’s inquisition. “So we built a fan. Or rather a
switch to turn the fan on. We dug in some silver nitrate dispensers at the top
of the cliff. Big monster jet hoses. Then some lasers to burn the air just over
the flow zone. That creates an unfavorable pressure gradient, damming up the
normal outflow so that it’s stronger when it finally breaks through. And
explosives installed all down the cliff face, to push dust into the wind and
make it heavier. See, wind heats up as it falls, and that would slow it down
some if it weren’t so full of snow and dust. I climbed down that cliff five
times to set it all up, you should have seen it. Set some fans as well. Of
course the power of the whole apparatus is negligible compared to the total
wind force, but sensitive dependence is the whole key to weather, you see, and
our computer modeling located the spots to push the initial conditions the way
we want. Or so we hope.”
“You haven’t tried it?” Maya asked.
Coyote stared at her. “We tried it in the computer. It works fine.
If we get initial conditions of hundred-and-fifty kilometer cyclonic winds over
Lunae, you’ll see.”
“They must know about these katabatic winds in Kasei,” Randolph
pointed out.
“They do. But what they calculated as once-a-millennium winds, we
think we can create any time the initial conditions are there on top.”
“Guerrilla climatology,” Randolph said, eyes bugged out. “What do
you call that, climatage? Attack meteorology?”
Coyote pretended to ignore him, although Michel saw a brief grin
through the dreadlocks.
But his system would only work with the proper initial conditions.
There was nothing to do but sit and wait, and hope they developed.
During these long hours it seemed to Michel that Coyote was trying
to project himself through his screen, out into the sky. “Come on,” the wiry
little man urged under his breath, nose against glass. “Push, push, push. Come
over that hill, you bastard wind. Tuck and turn, spiral tight. Come on!”
He wandered the darkened car when the rest of them were trying to
sleep, muttering, “Look, yes, look,” and pointing at features of satellite
photos that none of the rest of them could see. He sat brooding over scrolling
meteorological data, chewing on bread and cursing, whistling like a wind.
Michel lay on his narrow cot, head propped on his hand, watching in fascination
as the wild man prowled through the dimness of the car, a small, shadowy,
secretive, shamanesque figure. And the bearish lump of their prisoner, one eye
agleam, was likewise awake to witness this nocturnal scene, rubbing his scruffy
jaw with an audible rasping, glancing at Michel as the whispering continued.
“Come on, damn you, come on. Shoooooooooo ... Blow like an October hurricane
...”
Finally, at sunset on their second day of waiting, Coyote stood
and stretched like a cat. “The winds have come.”
During the long wait some Reds had driven from Mareotis to aid in
the rescue, and Coyote had worked out a plan of attack with them, based on
information Spencer had sent out. They were going to split up, and come on the
town from several angles. Michel and Maya were to drive one car onto the
cracked terrain of the outer bank, where they could hide at the foot of a small
mesa within sight of the outer-bank tents. One of these tents contained a
medical clinic where Sax was being taken some of the time, a fairly low-security
place according to Spencer, at least compared to the holding compound on the
inner bank, where Sax was being kept between sessions in the clinic. His
schedule was staggered, and Spencer could not be sure which location he would
be in at any given time. So when the wind hit, Michel and Maya were going to
enter the outer-bank tent and meet Spencer, who would be there ready to guide
them to the clinic. The bigger car, with Coyote, Kasei, Nirgal, and Art
Randolph, was going to converge, with some of the Reds from Mareotis, on the
inner bank. Other Red cars would be doing their best to make the raid look like
a full-scale attack from all directions, particularly the east. “We will make
the rescue,” Coyote said, frowning at his screens. “The wind will make the
attack.”
So the next morning Maya and Michel sat in their car, waiting for
the winds to arrive. They had a view down the slope of the outer bank to the
big lemniscate ridge. Through the day they could see into the green bubble
worlds under the tents on the outer bank and the ridge—little terrariums,
overlooking the red sandy sweep of the valley, connected by clear transit tubes
and one or two arching bridge tubes. It looked like Burroughs some forty years
before, patches of a city growing to fill a big desert arroyo.
Michel and Maya slept; ate; sat; watched. Maya paced the car. She
had been getting more nervous every day, and now she padded about like a caged
tigress that has smelled the blood of a meal. Static electricity jumped off her
fingertips as she caressed Michel’s neck, making her touch painful. It was
impossible to calm her down; Michel stood behind her when she sat in the
pilot’s chair, massaging her neck and shoulders as she had his, but it was like
trying to knead blocks of wood, and he could feel his arms getting tense from
the contact.
Their talk was disconnected and desultory, wandering in random
jumps of free association. In the afternoon they found themselves talking for
an hour about the days in Underhill—about Sax, and Hiroko, and even Frank and
John.
“Do you remember when one of the vaulted chambers collapsed?”
“No,” she said irritably. “I don’t. Do you remember the time Ann
and Sax had that big argument about the terraforming?”
“No,” Michel said with a sigh, “I can’t say I do.” They could go
back and forth like that for a long time, until it seemed they had lived in
completely different Underhills. When they both remembered an event, it was
cause for cheer. All the First Hundred’s memories were growing spotty, Michel
had noticed, and it seemed to him that most of them recalled their childhoods
on Earth better than they did their first years on Mars. Oh, they remembered
their own biggest events, and the general shape of the story; but the little
incidents that somehow stuck in mind were different for everyone. Memory
retention and recollection were getting to be big clinical and theoretical
problems in psychology, exacerbated by the unprecedented longevities now being
achieved. Michel had read some of the literature on it from time to time, and
though he had long ago given up the clinical practice of therapy, he still
asked questions of his old comrades in a kind of informal experiment, as he did
now with Maya: Do you remember this, do you remember that? No, no, no. What do
you remember?
The way Nadia bossed us around, Maya said, which made him smile.
The way the bamboo floors felt underfoot. And do you remember the time she
screamed at the alchemists? Why no! he said. On and on it went, until it seemed
that the private Underhills they inhabited were separate universes, Riemannian
spaces that intersected each other only at the plane at infinity, each of them
meanwhile wandering in the long reach of his or her own idiocosmos. “I hardly
remember any of it,” Maya said at last, darkly. “I can still barely stand to
think of John. And Frank too. I try not to: And then something will trigger
something, and I’ll be lost to everything else while I remember it. Those kinds
of memories are as intense as if what you remember only happened an hour before!
Or as if it were happening again.” She shuddered under his hands. “I hate them.
Do you know what I mean?”
“Of course. Memoire involuntaire. But I remember also that the
very same thing happened to me when we were living in Underhill. So it isn’t
just getting old.”
“No. It’s life. What we can’t forget. Still, I can .hardly look at
Kasei ...”
“I know. Those children are strange. Hiroko is strange.” “She is.
But were you happy, then? After you left with her?” “Yes.” Michel thought back
on it, working hard to recall. Recollection was certainly the weak link in the
chain. ... “I was, certainly. It was a matter of admitting things I had tried
to suppress in Underbill. That we are animals. That we are sexual creatures.”
He kneaded her shoulders harder than ever, and she rolled them under his hands.
“I didn’t need reminding of that,” she said with a short laugh.
“And did Hiroko give that back to you?”
“Yes. But not just Hiroko. Evgenia, Rya—all of them, really. Not
directly, you know. Well, sometimes directly. But just in admitting that we had
bodies, that we were bodies. Working together, seeing and touching each other.
I needed that. I was really having trouble. And they managed to connect it to
Mars as well. You never seemed to have trouble with that part either, but I
did, I really did. I was sick. Hiroko saved me. For her it was a sensuous
matter to make our home and food out of Mars. A kind of making love to it, or
impregnating it, or midwifing it—in any case, a sensuous act. It was this that
saved me.”
“This and their bodies, Hiroko’s and Evgenia’s and Rya’s.” She
looked over her shoulder at him with a wicked grin, and he laughed. “That you
remember well enough, I bet.”
“Well enough.”
It was midday, but to the south, up the long throat of Echus
Chasma, the sky was darkening. “Maybe the wind is coming at last,” Michel said.
Clouds topped the Great Escarpment, a tall mass of highly
turbulent cumulonimbus clouds, their black bottoms flickering with lightning,
striking the top of the cliff. The air in the chasm was hazy, and the tents of
Kasei Vallis were defined sharply under this haze, little blisters of clear air
standing over the buildings and curiously still trees, like glass paperweights
dropped on the windy desert. It was only just past noon. They would have to
wait until dark even if the winds did come. Maya stood and paced again,
radiating energy, muttering to herself in Russian, ducking down to take looks
out of their low windows. Gusts were picking up and striking the car, whistling
and keening over the broken rock at the foot of the little mesa behind them.
Maya’s impatience made Michel nervous. It really was like being
trapped with a wild beast. He slumped down in one of the drivers’ seats,
looking up at the clouds rolling off the Escarpment. Martian gravity allowed
thunderheads to tower tremendous heights into the sky, and these immense white
anvil-topped masses, along with the stupendous cliff face under them, made the
world seem surrealistically big. They were ants in such a landscape, they were
the little red people themselves.
Certainly they would make the rescue attempt that night; they had
had to wait too long as it was. On one of her restless turns Maya stopped
behind him again, and took the muscles between his shoulders and neck and
squeezed them. The squeezes sent great shocks of sensation down his back and
flanks, and then along the insides of his thighs. He flexed in her clutches,
and turned in the rotating seat so that he could put his arms around her waist,
and his ear against her sternum. She continued to work his shoulders, and he
felt his pulse pumping in him, and his breath grow short. She leaned over and
kissed the top of his head. They worked their way against each other until they
were tightly wrapped together, Maya kneading his shoulders all the while. For a
long time they stayed like that.
Then they moved back into the living compartment of the car, and
made love. Tight with apprehension as they both were, they fell into it with
intensity. No doubt the talk of Underhill had started this; Michel recalled
vividly his illicit lusts for Maya in those years, and buried his face in her
silvery hair, and tried his best to merge with her, to climb right into her.
Such a big feline animal she was, pushing back in an equally wild attempt to
take him in, which effort carried him completely away. It was good to be by
themselves, to be free to disappear into surprised ravishment, nothing but a
series of moans and yelps and electric rushes of sensation.
Afterward he lay on her, still inside her, and she held his face
and stared at him. “In Underhill I loved you,” he said.
“In Underhill,” she said slowly, “I loved you too. Truly. I never
did anything about it because I would have felt foolish, what with John and
Frank. But I loved you. That was why I was so angry at you when you left. You
were my only friend. You were the only one I could talk with honestly. You were
the only one who really listened to me.”
Michel shook his head, remembering. “I didn’t do a very good job
of that.”
“Maybe not. But you cared about me, didn’t you? It wasn’t just
your job?”
“Oh no! I loved you, yes. It is never just a job with you, Maya.
Not for anyone or anything.”
“Flatterer,” she said, pushing him. “You always did that. You
tried to put the best interpretation on all the horrible things I did.” She
laughed shortly.
“Yes. But they weren’t so horrible.”
“They were.” She pursed her mouth. “But then you disappeared!” She
slapped his face lightly. “You left me!”
“I left, anyway. I had to.”
Her mouth tightened unhappily, and she looked past him, into the
deep chasm of all their years. Sliding back down the sine curve of her moods,
into something darker and deeper. Michel watched it happen with a sweet
resignation. He had been happy for a very long time; and just in that
expression on her face, he could see that he would, if he stayed with this, be
trading his happiness—at least that particular happiness—for her. His “optimism
by policy” was going to become more of an effort, and he would now have another
antinomy to reconcile in his life, as centrifugal as Provence and Mars—which
was simply Maya and Maya.
They lay side by side, each in his or her own thoughts, looking
outside and feeling the rover bounce on its shock absorbers. The wind was still
rising, the dust now pouring down Echus Chasma and then Kasei Vallis, in a
ghostly mimicry of the great outflow that had first carved the channel. Michel
pushed up to check the screens. “Up to two hundred kilometers per hour.” Maya
grunted. Winds had been far faster in the old days, but with the atmosphere so
much thicker, these slower speeds were deceptive; present-day gales were much
more forceful than the old insubstantial screamers.
Clearly they would go in tonight, it was only a matter of getting
Coyote’s bursted signal. So they lay back down together and waited, tense and
relaxed at the same time, giving each other thorough massages to pass the time
and relieve the tension, Michel marveling throughout at the catlike grace of
Maya’s long muscular body, ancient by the dates, but in most respects the same
as ever. As beautiful as ever.
Then finally sunset stained the hazy air, and the monumental
clouds to the east, clouds which now covered the cliff face. They got up and
sponged down, and ate a meal, and dressed and sat in the drivers’ seats, getting
nervous again as the quartz sun disappeared and the stormy twilight fell away.
In file dark
the wind was sheer
noise, and an irregular trembling of the rover on its stiff shock absorbers.
Gusts buffeted the car so hard.that it was sometimes held down against the full
crush of the shocks for seconds at a time, the car struggling to rise on the
springs and failing, like an animal fighting to free itself from the bottom of
a stream. Then the gust would let off and the car would jerk up wildly. “Are we
going to be able to walk in this?” Maya asked.
“Hmm.” Michel had been out in some hard blows before, but in the
dark one couldn’t be sure if this was worse than those or not. It certainly
seemed like it, and the rover anemometer was now registering gusts of 230
kilometers per hour, but in the lee of their little mesa it was unclear whether
these represented true maxi-mums or not.
He checked the fines gauge, and was not surprised to find it was
now a full-blown dust storm as well. “Let’s drive down closer,” Maya said. “It
will get us there quicker, and make it easier to relocate the car as well.”
“Good idea.”
They sat in the drivers’ seats and took off. Out of the shelter of
the mesa, the wind was ferocious. At one point the bouncing grew so severe it felt
as if they might be flipped over, and if they had been side-on to the wind,
they might have been; as it was, with the wind behind them, they rolled on at
fifteen kilometers per hour when they should have been going ten, and the motor
hummed unhappily as it braked the car from going even faster. “This is too much
wind, isn’t it?” Maya asked.
“ I don’t think Coyote has much control over it.”
“Guerrilla climatology,” Maya said with a snort. “That man is a
spy, I’m sure of it.”
“I don’t think so.”
The cameras showed nothing but a starless black rush. The car’s AI
was guiding them by dead reckoning, and on the screen’s map they were shown
within two kilometers from the outer bank’s southernmost tent. “We’d better
walk from here,” Michel said.
“How will we find the car again?”
“We’ll have to get out the Ariadne thread.”
They suited up and got in the. lock. When the outer door slid open
the air sucked out instantly, pulling them hard. The wind keened across the
doorway.
They stepped out of the lock and were slammed by great blows to
the back. One knocked Michel to his hands and knees, and he could just see
through the dust to Maya, in the same position beside him. He reached back into
the lock and took the thread reel in one hand, Maya’s hand in the other. He clipped
the reel to his forearm.
By careful experiment they found they could stand if they stayed
crouched forward, helmets at waist level and hands up and ready to catch
themselves if they were knocked down. They stumbled ahead slowly, crashing down
when strong gusts made it impossible to stand. The ground under them was just
barely visible, and a knee striking a rock was all too possible. Coyote’s wind
had indeed come down too strong. But there was nothing to be done about it. And
clearly the inhabitants of the Kasei tents were not going to be out wandering
around.
A gust knocked them down again, and Michel let the wind pour over
him. It was hard to keep from being rolled. His wristpad was connected to
Maya’s by a phone cord, and he said, “Maya, are you all right?”
“Yes. And you?”
“I’m okay.”
Though there seemed to be a small tear in his glove, over the ball
of his thumb. He bunched his fist, felt the cold seeping up his wrist. Well, it
wouldn’t be instant frostbite the way it used to be, nor pressure bruising. He
took a suit patch from his wristpad compartment, stuck it on. “I think we’d
better stay down like this.”
“We can’t crawl two kilometers!”
“We can if we have to.”
“But I don’t think we do. Just stay low, and be ready to go down.”
“Okay.”
They stood again, bent double, and shuffled cautiously forward.
Black dust flew past them with amazing rapidity. Michel’s navigation display
lit his faceplate, down in front of his mouth: the first bubble tent was still
a kilometer away, and to his astonishment the green numbers of the clock showed
11:15:16—they had been out an hour. The howl of the wind made it hard to hear
Maya, even with his intercom right against his ear. Over on the inner bank
Coyote and the others, and the Red groups as well, were presumably making their
raid on the living quarters—but there was no way of telling. They had to take
it on faith that the shocking wind had not halted that part of the action, or
slowed it down too much.
It was hard work to shuffle forward doubled over, connected by the
telephone cord. On and on it went, until Michel’s thighs burned and his lower
back hurt. Finally his navigation display indicated they were very close to the
southernmost tent. They could see nothing of it. The wind became stronger than
ever, and they crawled the final few hundred meters, over painfully hard
bedrock. The clock numerals froze at 12:00:00. Sometime soon thereafter they
banged into the concrete coping of the tent’s foundation. “Swiss timing,”
Michel whispered. Spencer was expecting them in the timeslip, and they had
thought they would have to wait at the wall until it came. He reached up and
put a hand gently on the tent’s outermost layer. It was very taut, pulsing in
time with the onslaught of air. “Ready?”
“Yes,” Maya said, her voice tight.
Michel took a small air gun from his thigh pocket. He could feel
Maya doing the same. The guns were used with a variety of attachments, for
everything from driving nails to giving inoculations; now they hoped to use
them to break the tough and elastic fabrics of the tent.
They disconnected the phone cord between them, and put their two
guns against the taut vibrating invisible wall. With a tap of the elbows they
shot together.
Nothing happened. Maya plugged the phone cord back into her wrist.
“Maybe we’ll have to slash it.”
“Maybe. Let’s put the two guns together, and try again. This
material is strong, but still, with the wind ...”
They disconnected, got set, tried it again—their arms were jerked
over the coping, and they slammed into the concrete wall. A loud boom was
followed by a lesser one, then a cascading roar, and a series of explosions.
All four layers of the tent were peeling away, between two of the buttresses
and maybe all across the south side, which would surely explode the whole
thing. Dust was flying among the dimly lit buildings ahead of them. Windows
were going dark as buildings lost lights; some appeared to be losing their
windows to the sudden depressurization, although this was nowhere near as
severe as it once would have been.
“You okay?” Michel said over the intercom. He could heard Maya’s
breath sucking through her teeth. “Hurt my arm,” she said. Over the roar of the
wind they could hear the high ringing of alarms. “Let’s find Spencer,” she said
harshly. She pushed up and was blown violently over the coping, and Michel
quickly followed, falling hard inside and rolling into her. “Come on,” she
said. They stumbled into the prison city of Mars.
Inside the tent it was chaos. Dust made the air into a kind of
black gel, pouring through the street in a fantastically fast torrent,
shrieking so that Michel and Maya could just barely hear each other, even when
they reconnected their phone line. Decompression had blown out some windows and
even a wall, so that the streets were littered with shards of glass and chunks
of concrete. They moved side by side, kicking ahead cautiously with every step,
hands often touching to confirm positions. “Try your 1R heads-up display,” Maya
recommended. .
Michel turned his on. The infrared display was nightmarish, the blown
buildings glowing like green fires.
They came to the large central building that Spencer had said
would contain Sax, and found it too was bright green all along one wall.
Hopefully there were bulkheads protecting the underground clinic where Spencer had
said Sax was being taken; if not their rescue attempt might already have killed
their friend. All too possible, Michel judged; the surface floors of the
building were wrecked.
And getting down onto the lower floors was going to be a problem.
There was presumably a stairwell that functioned as an emergency lock, but it
wasn’t going to be easy to locate it. Michel switched to the common band, and
eavesdropped on a frantic discussion of trouble across the valley; the tent
over the smaller of the two craters on the inner bank had blown away, and there
were calls for help. Over the phone Maya said, “Let’s hide and see if someone
comes out.”
They lay down behind a wall and waited, protected somewhat from
the wind. Then before them a door banged open, and suited figures rushed down
the street and disappeared. When they were gone Maya and Michel went to the
door, and entered.
It was a hallway, still depressurized; but its lights were on, and
a panel in one wall was lit up with red lights. It was an emergency lock, and
quickly they closed the outer door and got the little space repressurized. They
stood before the inner door, looking at each other through dusty faceplates.
Michel wiped his clear with a glove and shrugged. Back in the rover they had
discussed this moment, the crux of the operation; but there hadn’t been all
that much they could foresee or plan, and now the moment was here, and the
blood was flying in Michel’s veins as if impelled by the wind outside.
They disconnected the phone cord between them, took laser pistols
that Coyote had given them from their thigh pockets. Michel hit the door pad,
and it opened with a hiss. They were met by three men in suits but without
helmets, looking scared. MicheJ and Maya shot them and they went down,
twitching. Thunderbolts from the fingertips indeed.
They dragged the three men into a side room, and shut them in.
Michel wondered if they had shot them too many times; cardiac arrhythmias were
common when that happened. His body seemed to have expanded until it was constricted
by his walker, and he was very hot, and breathing hard, and ferociously jumpy.
Maya apparently felt the same, and she led the way down a hall, almost running.
The hallway suddenly went dark. Maya turned on her headlamp, and they followed
its dusty cone of light to the third door on the right, where Spencer had said
Sax would be. It was locked.
Maya took a small explosive charge from her thigh pocket and
placed it over the handle and lock, and they went back down the hall several
meters. When she blew the charge the door slammed outward, propelled by air
bursting out from inside. They ran in and found two men struggling to latch
helmets onto their suits; when they saw Michel and Maya one reached for a waist
holster while the other went for a desk console, but hampered by the necessity
of getting their helmets secured, they accomplished neither of these tasks
before the two intruders shot them. The men went down.
Maya went back and closed the door they had come through. They
walked down another hall, the final one. They came to the door of another room,
and Michel pointed. Maya held out her pistol in both hands, nodded her
readiness. Michel kicked the door in and Maya rushed through with Michel close
after her. There was a figure in suit and helmet standing by what looked like a
surgical gurney, working over the head of a recumbent body. Maya shot the
standing figure several times and it crashed down as if struck by fists, then
rolled over the floor, contorted by muscular spasms.
They rushed to the man on the gurney. It was Sax, although Michel
recognized him by his body rather than his face, which was a deathmask
apparition, with two blackened eyes, and a mashed nose between them. He
appeared unconscious at best. They worked to detach him from body restraints.
There were electrodes stuck to several places on his shaved head, and Michel
winced as Maya simply tore them all away. Michel pulled a thin emergency suit
from his thigh pocket, and set about pulling it up over Sax’s inert legs and
torso, manhandling him in his haste; but Sax didn’t even groan. Maya came back
and took an emergency fabric headpiece and small tank out of Michel’s backpack,
and they hooked them to Sax’s suit, and turned the suit on.
Maya’s hand was clutching Michel’s wrist so hard that he feared
the bones would crack. She plugged her phone line back into his wrist. “Is he
alive?”
“I think so. Let’s get him out of here, we can find out later.”
“Look what they’ve done to his face, those fascist murderers.”
The person on the floor, a woman, was stirring, and Maya stalked
over and kicked her hard in the gut. She leaned over and looked in the
faceplate, cursed in a surprised voice. “It’s Phyllis.”
Michel pulled Sax out of the room and down the hall. Maya caught
up with them. Someone appeared before them and Maya aimed her gun, but Michel
knocked her hand aside—it was Spencer Jackson, he recognized him by the eyes.
Spencer spoke, but with their helmets’ on they couldn’t hear him. He saw that,
and shouted: “Thank God you came! They were done with him—they were going to
kill him!”
Maya said something in Russian and ran back to the room and threw
something inside, then ran back toward them. An explosion shot smoke and debris
out of the room, peppering the wall opposite the door.
“No!” Spencer cried. “That was Phyllis!”
“I know,” Maya shouted viciously; but Spencer couldn’t hear her.
“Come on,” Michel insisted, picking up Sax in his arms. He
gestured at Spencer to get helmeted. “Let’s go while we can.” No one seemed to
hear him, but Spencer got on a helmet, and then helped Michel carry Sax along
the hall and up the stairs to the ground floor.
Outside it was louder than ever, and just as black. Objects were
rolling along the ground, even flying through the air. Michel took a shot to
the faceplate that knocked him down.
After that he was two steps behind everything that happened. Maya
plugged a phone jack into Spencer’s wristpad and hissed orders at both of them,
her voice hard and precise. They hauled Sax bodily to the tent wall and over
it, and crawled back and forth until they found the iron spool anchoring their
Ariadne thread.
It was immediately clear that they could not walk into the wind.
They had to crawl on hands and knees, the middle person with Sax draped over
his or her back, the other two supporting on each side. They crawled on,
following the thread; without it they wouldn’t have had a hope of relocating
the rover. With it they could crawl on, straight toward their goal, their hands
and knees going numb with the cold. Michel stared down at a black flow of dust
and sand under his faceplate. At some point he realized that the faceplate was
badly scarred.
They stopped to rest when shifting Sax to the next carrier. When
his turn was done Michel knelt, panting and resting his faceplate right on the
ground, so that the dust flew over him. He could taste red grit on his tongue,
bitter and salty and sulphuric—the taste of Martian fear, of Martian death—or
just of his own blood; he couldn’t say. It was too loud to think, his neck
hurt, there was a ringing in his ears, and red worms in his eyes, the little
red people finally coming out of his peripheral vision to dance right in front
of him. He felt he was on the verge of blacking out. Once he thought he was
going to vomit, which was dangerous in a helmet, and his whole body clenched in
the effort to hold it down, a sweaty gross pain in every muscle, every cell of
him. After a long struggle the urge passed.
They crawled on. An hour of violent and wordless exertion passed,
and then another. Michel’s knees were losing their numbness to sharp stabbing
pains, going raw. Sometimes they just lay on the ground, waiting for a
particularly maniacal gust to pass. It was striking how even at hurricane
speeds the wind came in individual buffets; the wind was not a steady pressure,
but a series of shocking blows. They had to lie prone for so long waiting out
these hammerstrokes that there was time to get bored, to have one’s mind
wander, to doze. It seemed they might be caught out by dawn. But then he saw
the shattered numerals of his faceplate clock—it was actually only 3:30 A.M.
They crawled on.
And then the thread lifted, and they nosed right into the lock
door of the rover, where the Ariadne thread was tied. They cut it free and
blindly hauled Sax into the lock, then climbed in wearily after him. They got
the outer door closed, and pumped the chamber. The floor of the lock was deep
in sand, and fines swirled away from the pump ventilator, staining the
overbright air. Blinking, Michel stared into the small faceplate of Sax’s
emergency headpiece; it was like looking into a diving mask, and he saw no sign
of life.
When the inner door opened, they stripped off helmets and boots
and suits, and limped into the rover and closed the door quickly on the dust.
Michel’s face was wet, and when he wiped it he discovered it was blood, bright
red in the overlit compartment. He had had a bloody nose. Though the lights
were bright it was dim in his peripheral vision, and the room was strangely
still and silent. Maya had a bad cut across one thigh, and the skin around it
was white with frostnip. Spencer seemed exhausted, unhurt but obviously very
shaken. He pulled off Sax’s headpiece, gabbling at them as he did. “You can’t
just yank people out of those probes, you’re very likely to damage them! You
should have waited until I got there, you didn’t know what you were doing!”
“We didn’t know whether you would come,” Maya said. “You were
late.”
“Not by much! You didn’t have to panic like that!”
“We didn’t panic!”
“Then why did you just tear him out of there? And why did you kill
Phyllis?”
“She was a torturer, a murderer!”
Spencer shook his head violently. “She was just as much a prisoner
as Sax.”
“She was not!”
“You don’t know. You killed her just because of how it looked!
You’re no better than they are.”
“Fuck that! They’re the ones torturing us! You didn’t stop them
and so we had to!”
Cursing in Russian, Maya stalked to one of the drivers’ seats and
started the rover. “Send the message to Coyote,” she snapped at Michel.
Michel struggled to recall how to operate the radio. His hand
tapped out the release for the bursted message that they had Sax. Then he went
back to Sax, who was lying on the couch breathing shallowly. In shock. Patches
of his scalp had been shaved. He too had had a bloody nose. Spencer gently
wiped it, shaking his head. “They use MRI, and focused ultrasound,” he said
dully. “Taking him out like that could have ...” He shook his head.
Sax’s pulse was weak and irregular. Michel went to work getting
the suit off him, watching his own hands move like floating starfish; they were
disconnected from his own volition, it was as if he were trying to work a
damaged teleoperator. I’ve been stunned, he thought. I’m concussed. He felt
nauseated. Spencer and Maya were shouting at each other angrily, really getting
furious, and he couldn’t follow why.
“She was a bitch!”
“If people were killed for being bitches you never would have made
it off the Ares!”
“Stop it,” he said to them weakly “Both of you.” He
did not quite understand what they were saying, but it was clearly a fight, and
he knew had to mediate. Maya was incandescent with rage and pain, crying and
shouting. Spencer was shouting back, his whole body trembling. Sax was still
comatose. I’m going to have to start doing psychotherapy again, Michel thought,
and giggled. He navigated his way to a driver’s seat and tried to comprehend
the driver’s controls, which pulsed blurrily under the flying black dust
outside the windshield. “Drive,” he said desperately to Maya. She was in the
seat next to him weeping furiously, both handsclenching the steering wheel.
Michel put a hand to her shoulder and she knocked it aside; it flew away as if
on a string rather than the end of his arm, and he almost fell out of his
chair. “Talk later,” he said. “What’s done is done. Now we have to get home.”
“We have no home,” Maya snarled.
------------
----------Tariqat
-----------
Big Man came
from a big planet. He was just as much a visitor to Mars as Paul Bunyan, only
passing “by when he spotted it and stopped to look around, and he was still
there when Paul Bunyan dropped in, and that’s why they had the fight. Big Man
won that fight, as you know. But after Paul Bunyan and his big blue ox Babe
were dead, there was no one else around to talk to, and Mars for Big Man was
like trying to live on a basketball. So he wandered around for a while tearing
things apart, trying to make them fit, and then he gave up and left.
After that, all the bacteria inside Paul Bunyan and his ox Babe
left their bodies, and circulated in the warm water lying on the bedrock, deep
underground. They ate methane and hydrogen sulfide, and withstood the weight of
billions of tons of rock, as if they were living on some neutron planet. Their
chromosomes began to break, mutation after mutation, and at the reproduction
rate of ten generations per day, it didn’t take long for good old survival of
the fittest to make its natural selections. And billions of years passed. And
before long there was an entire sub-martian evolutionary history, moving up
through the cracks in the reg-olith and the spaces between sand grains, right
up into the cold desert sunshine. All kinds of creatures, the whole spread—but
everything was tiny. That’s all there was room for underground, see, and by the
time they hit the surface certain patterns were set. And there wasn’t much to
encourage growth up there anyway. So a whole chasmoendolithic biosphere’
developed, in which everything was small. Their whales were the size of
first-day tadpoles, their sequoias were like antler lichen, and so on down the
line. It was as if the two-magnitude ratio, which always has things on Mars a
hundred times bigger than their counterparts on Earth, had finally gone the
other way, and piled it on.
And so their evolution produced the little red people. They’re
like us—or they look kind of like us when we see them. But that’s because we
only ever see them out of the comer of our eyes. If you get a clear look at one
you will see that it looks like a very tiny standing salamander, dark red,
although the skin apparently does have some chameleon abilities, and they are
usually the same color as the rocks they are standing among. If you see one
really clearly you’ll notice that its skin resembles plate lichen mixed with
sand grains, and its eyes are rubies. It’s fascinating, but don’t get too
excited because the truth is you’re not ever going to see one of them that
clearly. It’s just too hard. When they hold still we flat can’t see them. We
would never see them at all, except that some of them when they get in a mood
are so confident that they can freeze and disappear that they will jump around
when they’re in your peripheral vision, just to blow your mind. So you see
that, but then they stop moving when you turn your eye to look, and you never
can spot them again.
They live everywhere, including all our rooms. Usually there’s a
few in every pile of dust in the comers. And how many can say their rooms don’t
have some dust in their corners? I thought not. It makes a good abrasive when you
get around to swiping down, doesn’t it. Yes, on those days the little red
people all have to run like hell. Disasters for them. They figure we’re crazy
huge idiots that every once in a while have fits and go on a rampage.
Yes, it is true that the first human to see the little red people
was John Boone. What else would you expect? He saw them within hours of his
landing. Later he learned to see them even when they were still, and then he
began talking to the ones he spotted in his rooms, until they finally cracked
and talked back. John and them taught each other their languages, and you can
still hear the little red people use all kinds of John Booneisms in their
English. Eventually a whole crowd of them traveled with Boone wherever he went.
They liked it, and John wasn’t a very neat person, so they had their spots.
Yes, there were several hundred of them in Nicosia the night he was killed.
That’s what actually got those Arabs who died later that night—a whole gang of
the little ones went after them. Gruesome.
Anyway, they were John Boone’s friends, and they were just as sad
as the rest of us when he was hilled. There’s no human since who has learned
their language, or gotten to know them anywhere near as close. Yes, John was
also the first to tell stories about them. A lot of what we know about them
comes from him, because of that special relationship. Yes, it is said that
excessive use of omegendorph causes faint red crawling dots in the abuser’s
peripheral vision. But why do you ask?
Anyway, since John’s death the little red people have been living
with us and laying low, watching us with their ruby eyes and trying to find out
what we’re like, and why we do what we do. And how they can deal with us, and
get what they want—which is people they can talk to and befriends with, who
won’t sweep them out every few months or wreck the planet either. So they’re
watching us. Whole caravan cities are carrying the little red people around
with us. And they’re getting ready to talk to us again. They’re figuring out who
they should talk to. They’re asking themselves, which of these giant idiots
knows about Ka?
That’s their name for Mars, yes. They call it Ka. The Arabs love
that fact because the Arabic for Mars is Qahira, and the Japanese like it too
because their name for it is Kasei. But actually a whole lot of Earth names for
Mars have the sound ka in them somewhere—and some little red dialects have it
as m’kah, which adds a sound that’s in a lot of other Terran names for it too.
It’s possible that the little red people had a space program in earlier times,
and came to Earth and were our fairies, elves and little people generally, and
at that time told some humans where they came from, and gave us the name. On
the other hand it may be that the planet itself suggests the sound in some
hypnotic way that affects all conscious observers, whether standing right on it
or seeing it as a red star in the sky. I don’t know,, maybe it’s the color that
does it. Ka.
And so the ka watch us and they ask, who knows Ka? Who spends time with Ka, and learns Ka, and likes to touch Ka, and walks around on Ka, and lets Ka seep into them, and leaves the dust in their rooms alone? Those are the humans we’re going to talk to. Pretty soon we’re going to introduce ourselves, they say, to just as many of you as we can find who seem like Ka. And when we do, you’d better be ready. We’re going to have a plan. It’ll be time to drop everything and walk right out on the streets into a new world. It’ll be time to free Ka.
They drove
South in Silence, the car
hobbling under the wind’s onslaughts. Hour followed hour, and there was no word
from Michel and Maya; they had arranged for bursted radio signals that sounded
very similar to the static caused by lightning, one for success and one for
failure. But the radio only hissed, barely audible over the roaring wind.
Nirgal got more and more frightened the longer they waited; it seemed that some
kind of disaster had overtaken their companions on the outer bank, and given
how extreme their own night had been—the desperate crawling through the howling
blackness, the hurtling debris, the wild firing by some of the people inside
the broken tents—the possibilities were grim. The whole plan now looked crazy,
and Nirgal wondered at Coyote’s judgment, Coyote who was studying his AI screen
muttering to himself and rocking over his hurt shins ... of course the others
had agreed to the plan, as had Nirgal, and Maya and Spencer had helped to
formulate it, along with the Mareotis Reds. And no one had expected the
katabatic hurricane to become this severe. But Coyote had been the leader, no
doubt about it. And now he was looking as distraught as Nirgal had ever seen
him, angry, worried, frightened.
Then the radio crackled just as if a pair of lightning bolts had
struck nearby, and the decryption of the message followed immediately. Success.
Success. They had found Sax on the outer bank, and got him out.
The mood in the car went from gloom to elation as if launched from
a slingshot. They shouted incoherently, they laughed, they embraced each other;
Nirgal and Kasei wiped tears of joy and relief from their eyes, and Art, who
had stayed in the car during the raid, and then taken it on himself to drive
around picking them up out of the black wind, gave them slaps on the back that
knocked them all over the compartment, shouting, “Good job! Good job!”
Coyote, dosed thoroughly with painkillers, laughed his crazed
laugh. Nirgal felt physically light, as if the gravity in his chest had
lessened. Such extremes of exertion, fear, anxiety—now joy—giddily he
understood that these were the moments that etched themselves on one’s mind
forever, when one was struck by the shocking reality of reality, so seldom
felt, now igniting in him like a fuse. And he could see the same stark glory
lighting all his companions’ faces, wild animals glowing with spirit.
The Reds took off north for their refuge in Mareotis. Coyote drove
south hard, to the rendezvous with Maya-and Michel. They met in a dim chocolate
dawn, far up Echus Chasma. The group from the inner-bank car hurried over into
Michel and Maya’s car, ready to renew the celebration. Nirgal tumbled through
the lock and shook hands with Spencer, a short round-faced drawn-looking man,
whose hands were trembling. Nevertheless he inspected Nirgal closely. “Good to
meet you,” he said. “I’ve heard about you.”
“It went really well,” Coyote was saying, to a chorus of shouted
protest from Kasei and Art and Nirgal. In fact they had barely escaped with
their lives, crawling around on the inner bank trying to survive the typhoon
and the panicked police inside the tent, trying to find the car while Art tried
to find them... .
Maya’s glare cut short their merriment. In fact with the initial
joy of the rendezvous over, it was becoming clear that things were not right in
her car. Sax had been saved, but a bit too late. He had been tortured, Maya
told them curtly. It was not clear how much damage had been done to him, as he
was unconscious.
Nirgal went to the back of the compartment to see him. He lay on
the couch senselessly, his smashed face a shocking sight. Michel came back and
sat down, woozy from a blow to the head. And Maya and Spencer appeared to be
having some kind of disagreement, they weren’t explaining but they did not look
at each other, or speak to each other. Maya was clearly in a foul mood, Nirgal
recognized the look from childhood, although this one was worse, her face hard
and her mouth set in a downturned sickle.
“I killed Phyllis,” she told Coyote.
There was silence. Nirgal’s hands went cold. Suddenly, looking
around at the others, he saw that they all felt awkward. It was the sole woman
among them who was the killer, and for a second there was something strange in
that which they all felt, including Maya— who drew herself up, scornful of
their cowardice. None of this was rational or even conscious in them, Nirgal
saw as he read their faces, but rather something primal, instinctive,
biological. And so Maya only stared them down the more, contemptuous of their
horror, glaring at them with an eagle’s alien hostility.
Coyote stepped to her side and went on his toes to peck her on the
cheek with a kiss, meeting her glare foursquare. “You did good,” he said,
putting a hand to her arm. “You saved Sax.”
Maya shrugged him off and said, “We blew up the machine they had Sax
hooked into. I don’t know if we managed to wreck any records. Probably not. And
they know they had him, and that someone took him back. So there’s no reason to
celebrate. They’ll come after us now with everything they’ve got.”
“I don’t think they’re that well organized,” Art offered.
“You shut up,” Maya told him.
“Well, okay, but look, now that they know about you, you won’t
have to hide so much, right?”
“Back in business,” Coyote muttered.
They drove south together through that day, as the dust torn up by
the katabatic storm was enough to hide them from satellite cameras. Tension
remained high; Maya was in a black fury, and could not be spoken to. Michel
handled her like an unexploded bomb, trying always to get her focused on the
practical matters of the moment, so that she might forget their terrible night
out. But with Sax lying on a couch in the living compartment of their car,
unconscious and looking like a racoon with all his bruises, this was no easy
thing to forget. Nirgal sat beside Sax for hours on end, a hand placed flat on
his ribs, or the top of his head. Other than that there was nothing to be done.
Even without the black eyes he wouldn’t have looked much like the Sax Russell
whom Nirgal had known as a child. It was a visceral shock to see the signs of
physical abuse on him, proof positive that they had deadly enemies in the
world. This was something Nirgal had been wondering about in recent years, so
that the sight of Sax was an ugly, sickening thing— not just that they had
enemies, but that there were people who would do this kind of thing, had always
been doing it all through history, just as the unbelievable accounts had it.
They were real after all. And Sax only one of millions of victims.
As Sax slept, his head rolled from side to side. “I’m going to
give him a shot of pandorph,” Michel said. “Him and then me.”
“There’s something wrong with his lungs,” Nirgal said.
“Is there?” Michel put his ear to Sax’s chest, listened for a
time, hissed. “Some fluid in there, you’re right.”
“What were they doing to him?” Nirgal asked Spencer.
“They were talking to him while they had him under. You know, they
have located several memory centers in the hippocampus very precisely, and with
drugs and a very minute ultrasound stimulation, and fast MRI to track what
they’re doing ... well, people just answer whatever questions they are asked,
often at great length. They were doing that to Sax when the wind hit and they
lost power. The emergency generator kicked in right away, but—” He gestured at
Sax. “Then, or when we took him out of the apparatus ...”
This was why Maya had killed Phyllis Boyle, then. The end of the
collaborator. Murder among the First Hundred. ...
Well, Kasei muttered under his breath in the other car, it
wouldn’t be the first time. There were people who suspected Maya of arranging
the assassination of John Boone, and Nirgal had heard of people who suspected
that Frank Chalmers’s disappearance might also have been her doing. The Black
Widow, they called her. Nirgal had discounted these stories as malicious
gossip, spread by people who obviously hated Maya, like Jackie. But certainly
Maya now looked poisonously dangerous, sitting in her car glaring at the radio,
as if considering breaking their silence to send word to the south:
white-haired, hawk-nosed, mouth like a wound ... it made Nirgal nervous just to
get in the same car with her, though he fought against the sensation. She was
one of his most important teachers after all, he had spent hours and hours
absorbing her impatient instruction in math and history and Russian, learning
her more than any of the subject material; and he knew very well that she did
not want to be a murderer, that under her moods both bold and bleak (both manic
and depressive) there writhed a lonely soul, proud and hungry. So that in yet
another way this affair had become a disaster, despite their ostensible
success.
Maya was adamant that they should all get down immediately into
the southern polar region, to tell the underground what had happened.
“It is not so easy,” Coyote said. “They know we were in Kasei
Vallis, and since they had time to get Sax to talk, they probably know we’ll be
trying to get back south. They can look at a map as well as we can, and see
that the equator is basically blocked, from west Tharsis all the way to the
east of the chaoses.”
“There’s the gap between Pavonis and Noctis,” Maya said.
“Yes, but there’s several pistes and pipelines crossing that, and
two wraps of the elevator. I’ve got tunnels built under all those, but if
they’re looking they might find some of them, or see our cars.”
“So what are you saying?”
“I think we have to go around, north of Tharsis and Olympus Mons,
and then down Amazonis, and cross the equator there.”
Maya shook her head. “We need to get south fast, to let them know
they’ve been found out.”
Coyote thought about it. “We can split up,” he said. “I’ve got a
little ultralight plane stashed in a hideout near the foot of Echus Overlook.
Kasei can lead you and Michel to it, and fly you back south. We’ll follow by
way of Amazonis.”
“What about Sax?”
“We’ll take him straight to Tharsis Tholus, there’s a Bogdanovist
med clinic there. That’s only two nights away.”
Maya talked it over with Michel and Kasei, never even glancing at
Spencer. Michel and Kasei were agreeable, and finally she nodded. “All right.
We’re off south. Come down as quickly as you
They drove by night and slept by day, in their old pattern, and in
two nights made their way across Echus Chasma to Tharsis Tholus, a volcanic
cone on the northern edge of the Tharsis bulge.
There a Nicosia-class tent town called Tharsis Tholus was located
on the black flank of its namesake. The town was part of the demimonde: most of
its citizens were living ordinary lives in the surface net, but many of them
were Bogdanovists, who helped support Bogdanovist refuges in the area, as well
as Red sanctuaries in Mareotis and on the Great Escarpment; and they helped
other people in the town who had left the net, or been off it since birth. The
biggest med clinic in town was Bogdanovist, and served many of the underground.
So they drove right up to the tent, and plugged into its garage,
and got out. And soon a little ambulance car came and rushed Sax to the clinic,
near the center of town. The rest of them walked down the grassy main street
after him, feeling the roominess after all those days in the cars. Art goggled
at their open behavior, and Nirgal briefly explained the demimonde to him as
they walked to a cafe with some safe rooms upstairs, across from the clinic.
At the clinic itself they were already at work on Sax. A few hours
after their arrival, Nirgal was allowed to clean up and change into sterile
clothes, and then to go in to sit with him.
They had him on a ventilator, which was circulating a liquid
through his lungs. One could see it in the clear tubes and the mask covering
his face, looking like clouded water. It was an awful thing to see, as if they
were drowning him. But the liquid was a perfluo-rocarbon-based mixture, and it
transferred to Sax three times as much oxygen as air would have, and flushed
out the gunk that had been accumulating in his lungs, and reinflated collapsed
airways, and was spiked with a variety of drugs and medicines. The med tech
working on Sax explained all this to Nirgal as she worked. “He had a bit of edema,
so it’s kind of a paradoxical treatment, but it works.”
And so Nirgal sat, his hand on Sax’s arm, watching the fluid
inside the mask that was taped to Sax’s lower face, swirling in and out of him.
“It’s like he’s back in an ectogene tank,” Nirgal said.
“Or,” the med tech said, looking at him curiously, “in the womb.”
“Yes. Being reborn. He doesn’t even look the same.”
“Keep that hand on him,” the tech advised, and went away. Nirgal
sat and tried to feel how Sax was doing, tried to feel that vitality struggling
in its own processes, swimming back up into the world. Sax’s temperature
fluctuated in alarming little swoops and dives. Other medical people came in
and held instruments against Sax’s head and face, talking among themselves in
low voices. “Some damage. Anterior, left side. We’ll see.”
The same tech came in a few nights later when Nirgal was there,
and said, “Hold his head, Nirgal. Left side, around the ear. Just above it,
yeah. Hold it there and ... yeah, like that. Now do what you do.”
“What?”
“You know. Send heat into him.” And she left hastily, as if
embarrassed to have made such a suggestion, or frightened.
Nirgal sat and collected himself. He located the fire within, and
tried running some of it into his hand, and across into Sax. Heat, heat, a tentative
jolt of whiteness, sent into the injured green ... then feeling again, trying
to read the heat of Sax’s head.
Days passed, and Nirgal spent most of them at the clinic. One
night he was coming back from the kitchens when the young tech came running
down the hall to him, grabbing him by the arm and saying, “Come on, come on,”
and the next thing he knew he was down in the room, holding Sax’s head, his
breath short and all his muscles like wires. There were three doctors in there
and some more techs. One doctor put out an arm toward Nirgal, and the young
tech stepped in between them.
He felt something inside Sax stir, as if going away, or coming
back—some passage. He poured into Sax every bit of viriditas he could muster,
suddenly terrified, stricken with memories of the clinic in Zygote, of sitting
with Simon. That look on Simon’s face, the night he died. The perfluorocarbon
liquid swirled in and out of Sax, a quick shallow tide. Nirgal watched it,
thinking about Simon. His hand lost its heat, and he couldn’t bring it back.
Sax would know who it was with hands so warm. If it mattered. But as it was all
he could do ... he exerted himself, pushed as if the world were freezing, as if
he could pull back not only Sax but also Simon, if he pushed hard enough. “Why,
Sax?” he said softly into the ear by his hand. “But why? Why, Sax? But why?
Why, Sax? But why? Why, Sax? But why?”
The perfluorocarbon swirled. The overlit room hummed. The doctors
worked at the machines and over Sax’s body, glancing at each other, at Nirgal.
The word why became nothing but a sound, a kind of prayer. An hour passed and
then more hours, slow and anxious, until they fell into a kind of timeless
state, and Nirgal couldn’t have said whether it was day or night. Payment for
our bodies, he thought. We pay.
* * *
One evening, about a week after their arrival, they pumped Sax’s
lungs clear, and took the ventilator off. Sax gasped loudly, then breathed. He
was an air-breather again, a mammal. They had repaired his nose, although it
was now a different shape, almost as flat as it had been before his cosmetic
surgery. His bruises were still spectacular.
About an hour after they took the ventilator off, he regained
consciousness. He blinked and blinked. He looked around the room, then looked
very closely at Nirgal, clutching his hand hard. But he did not speak. And soon
he was asleep.
Nirgal went out into the green streets of the small town,
dominated by the cone of Tharsis Tholus, rising in black and rust majesty to
the north, like a squat Fuji. He ran in his rhythmic way, around and around the
tent wall as he burned off some of his excess energy. Sax and his great
unexplainable ...
In rooms over the cafe across the street, he found Coyote hobbling
restlessly from window to window, muttering and singing wordless calypso tunes.
“What’s wrong?” Nirgal said.
Coyote waggled both hands. “Now that Sax is stabilized, we should
get out of here. You and Spencer can tend to Sax in the car, while we drive
west around Olympus.”
“Okay,” Nirgal said. “When they say Sax is ready.”
Coyote stared at him. “They say you saved him. That you brought
him back from the dead.”
Nirgal shook his head, frightened at the very thought. “He never
died.”
“I figured. But that’s what they’re saying.” Coyote regarded him
thoughtfully. “You’ll have to be careful.
They drove all
night, contouring
around the slope of north Tharsis, Sax propped on the couch in the compartment
behind the drivers. Within hours of their departure Coyote said, “I want to hit
one of the mining camps run by Subarashii in Ceraunius.” He looked at Sax.
“It’s okay with you?”
Sax nodded. His raccoon bruises were now green and purple.
“Why can’t you talk?” Art asked him.
Sax shrugged, croaked once or twice.
They rolled on.
From the bottom of the northern side of the Tharsis bulge there
extends an array of parallel canyons called the Ceraunius Fossae. There are as
many as forty of these fractures, depending on how you count them, as some of
the indentations are canyons, while others are only isolated ridges, or deep
cracks, or simply corrugations in the plain—all running north and south, and
all cutting into a metallogenic province of great richness, a basalt mass
rifted with all kinds of ore intrusions’ from below. So there were a lot of
mining settlements and mobile rigs in these canyons, and now, as he
contemplated them on his maps, Coyote rubbed his hands together. “Your capture
set me free, Sax. Since they know we’re out here anyway, there’s no reason we
shouldn’t put some of them out of business, and grab some uranium while we’re
at it.”
So he stopped one night at the southern end of Tractus Catena, the
longest and deepest of the canyons. Its beginning was a strange sight—the
relatively smooth plain was disrupted by what looked like a ramp that cut into
the ground, making a trench about three kilometers wide, and eventually about
three hundred meters deep, running right over the horizon to the north in a
perfectly straight line.
They slept through the morning, and then spent the afternoon
sitting in the living compartment nervously, looking at satellite photos and
listening to Coyote’s instructions.
“Is there a chance we’ll kill these miners?” Art asked, pulling at
his big whiskery jaw.
Coyote shrugged. “It might happen.”
Sax shook his head back and forth vehemently.
“Not so rough with your head,” Nirgal said to him.
“I agree with Sax,” Art said quickly. “I mean, even setting aside
moral considerations, which I don’t, it’s still stupid just as a practical
matter. It’s stupid because it makes the assumption that your enemies are
weaker than you, and will do what you want if you murder a few of them. But
people aren’t like that. I mean, think about how it will fall out. You go down
that canyon and kill a bunch of people doing their jobs, and later other people
come along and find the bodies. They’ll hate you forever. Even if you do take
over Mars someday they’ll still hate you, and do anything they can to screw
things up. And that’s all you will have accomplished, because they’ll replace
those miners quick as that.”
Art glanced at Sax, who was sitting up on the couch, watching him
closely. “On the other hand, say you go down there and do something that causes
those miners to run into their emergency shelter and then you lock them in the
shelter and wreck their machines. They call for help, they hang out there, and
in a day or two somebody comes to rescue them. They’re mad but also they’re
thinking we could be dead, those Reds wrecked our stuff and were gone in a
flash, we never even saw them. They could have killed us but they didn’t. And
the people who rescued them will be thinking the same. And then later on, when
you’ve taken over Mars or when you’re trying to, they remember and they all
dive off into hostage syndrome and start rooting for you. Or working with you.”
Sax was nodding. Spencer was looking at Nirgal. And then they all
were, all but Coyote, who was looking down at the palms of his hands, as if
reading them. And then he looked up, and he too was looking at Nirgal.
For Nirgal it was simple, and he regarded Coyote with some
concern. “Art’s right. Hiroko will never forgive us if we start killing people
for no reason.”
Coyote’s face twisted, as if in disgust for their softness. “We
just killed a bunch of people in Kasei Vallis,” he said.
“But that was different!” Nirgal said.
“How so?”
Nirgal hesitated, unsure, and Art said quickly, “Those were a
bunch of police torturers who had your buddy and were micro-waving his brain.
They got what was coming to them. But these guys down this canyon are just
digging up rocks.”
Sax nodded. He was staring at them all with the utmost intensity,
and it seemed certain that he understood everything, and was deeply engaged in
it; but mute as he was, it was hard to be sure.
Coyote stared hard at Art. “Is this a Praxis mine?”
“I don’t know. I don’t care, either.”
“Hmm. Well—” Coyote looked at Sax; then at Spencer; then at
Nirgal, who could feel his cheeks burning. “All right then. We’ll try it your
way.”
And so at the end of the day Nirgal climbed out of the rover with
Coyote and Art. The sky above was dark and starry, the western quadrant still
purple, casting a florid light in which everything was quite visible but at the
same time unfamiliar. Coyote led the way, and Art and Nirgal followed him
closely. Through his faceplate Nirgal could see that Art’s eyes were pressing
glass.
The floor of Tractus Catena was broken at one point by a
transverse fault system called Tractus Traction, and the trellis fracturing in
this zone had formed a system of crevasses impenetrable to vehicles. The
Tractus miners reached their camp from the canyon wall above it, descending in
elevators. But Coyote said it was possible to walk through Tractus Traction,
following a path of connecting crevasses he had marked for himself. Many of his
resistance actions involved crossing “impassable” terrain like this, making
possible some of his more legendary impossible visitations, and sending him
through badlands no one else had ever even approached. And with Nirgal to run
some of the raids, they had performed some truly miraculous-seeming
ventures—-just by getting out and traveling on foot.
So they jogged down the canyon floor, in the steady Martian lope
that Nirgal had perfected, and had tried with partial success to teach to
Coyote. Art was not graceful—his stride was too short, and he stumbled
frequently—but he kept up. Nirgal began to feel the loose joy of running, the
boulder ballet of it, the rapid crossing of long stretches of land under his
own power. Also the rhythmic breathing, the bounce of his air tank on his back,
the trancelike state that he had learned over the years, with help from the
issei Nanao, who had been taught lung-gom on Earth by a Tibetan adept. Nanao
claimed that some of the old lung-gom-pas had had to carry weights to keep from
flying away, and on Mars it seemed entirely possible. The way he could fly over
rocks was exhilarating, a kind of rapture.
He had to restrain himself. Neither Coyote nor Art knew lung-gom,
and they couldn’t keep up, though they were both pretty good, Coyote for his
age, Art for his recent arrival on Mars. Coyote knew the land, and ran in short
mincing dance steps, efficient and clean. Art bombed over the landscape like a
badly programmed robot, staggering often as he hit wrong in the starlight, but
keeping up a pretty good head of steam nevertheless. Nirgal ranged in front of
them like a dog. Twice Art went down in a cloud of dust and Nirgal ran over to
check on him, but both times Art got up jogging, and in their intercom silence
he only waved to Nirgal and ran on.
After half an hour’s run down the canyon, which was so straight
that it seemed cut by design, cracks appeared on the ground, and quickly
deepened and connected up with one another, until progress over the canyon
floor proper would have been impossible, as it was now the plateau tops of a
collection of islands. The deep slots separating these islands were in places
only two or three meters wide, but thirty or forty meters deep.
Walking through these generally flat-floored alleys was a strange
business, but Coyote led the way through the maze without delaying at any of
the many forks, following a path only he knew, turning left and right a score
of times. One slot was so narrow they could touch both walls at once, and they
had to scrape through a turn.
When they came out the northern side of the crevasse maze,
emerging from a draw in the riven steep escarpment which was the end of the
plateau islands, a small tent stood before them against the western canyon
wall. Its arc of fabric glowed like the bulb of a dusty lamp. Within the tent
were mobile trailers, rovers, drills, earthmovers, and other mining equipment.
It was a uranium mine, called Pitchblende Alley, because this lower section of
the canyon was floored with a pegmatite extremely rich in uraninite. It was a
very productive mine, and Coyote had heard that the processed uranium
stockpiled at it during the years between elevators had not yet been shipped
out.
Now Coyote ran over the canyon floor toward the tent, and Nirgal
and Art followed. There was no one visible inside the tent; the only
illumination was provided by a few night lights, and the lit windows of a big
trailer set near the center of things.
Coyote walked right up to the tent’s nearest lock gate, and the
other two followed him. He plugged his wristpad jack into the keyhole by the
lock gate, and began to tap on his wristpad. The outer lock door opened. No
alarms seemed to go off; no figures appeared out of the door of the trailer.
They got in the lock, closed the outer door, waited for the lock to suck and
pump, then opened the inner door. Coyote ran toward the settlement’s little
physical plant, beside the trailer; Nirgal went for the living quarters,
hopping up the steps to the trailer’s door. He held one of Coyote’s “locking
bars” under the door handle, turned the dial that released the fixative, and
pushed the bar against the door and wall of the trailer. The trailer was made
of a magnesium-based alloy, and the polymer fixative would make what was in
effect a ceramic bond between the locking bar and the trailer, so that the door
would be stuck. He ran around the trailer and did the same to the other door,
then dashed back toward the gate, feeling his blood fly through him as if it
were pure adrenaline. It was so much like a prank that he had to consciously
remember the explosive charges that Coyote and Art were distributing through
the settlement, in warehouses, against the tent fabric, and in the parking lot
for the mining behemoths. Nirgal joined them in running from vehicle to
vehicle, climbing the stairs on their sides, opening doors manually or
electronically, tossing small boxes Coyote had provided into the cabs or
cabins.
But there were also hundreds of tons of processed uranium that
Coyote wanted to haul away. This was impossible, unfortunately. They did run
over to a warehouse, however, where they filled a number of the mine’s own
robot trucks with loads, and programmed them with instructions to head off into
the canyonlands to the north, burying loads in regions where the apatite
concentrations might be high enough to disguise the boxed uranium’s
radioactivity, and make the loads hard to relocate. Spencer had doubted this
strategy would work, but Coyote said it beat leaving the uranium at the mine,
and all of them were happy to help in any plan that would keep him from putting
tons of uranium in the storage hold of their boulder car, radproof containers
or not.
When that was done they ran back to the gate, and got back
outside, and ran hard. Halfway to the escarpment they heard a series of pops
and booms from the tent, and Nirgal glanced over his shoulder, but saw nothing
different—the tent was still mostly d ^.rk, the trailer windows lit.
He turned and ran on, feeling as if he were flying, and was
astonished to see Art racing over the canyon floor ahead of him, every stride a
huge wild leap, bounding like some cheetah-bear all the way to the escarpment,
where he had to wait for Coyote to catch up and lead them back through the
crevasse maze. Once out of it he took off again, so fast that Nirgal decided to
try to catch him, just to feel how fast it was. He got into the rhythm of the
sprint, pressing harder and harder, and as he passed Art he saw that his own
springbok strides were almost twice as long as Art’s even in sprint mode, where
both their legs were pumping as fast as possible.
They got to the boulder car long before Coyote, and waited for him
in the lock, catching their breath, grinning through their faceplates at each
other. A few minutes later Coyote was there and in with them, and Spencer had
the rover moving, with the timeslip just past, and six more hours of night to
drive in.
Inside they laughed hard at Art’s mad run, but he only grinned and
waved them off. “I wasn’t scared, it’s this Martian gravity I tell you, I was
just running the way I usually would but my legs were leaping along like a
tiger! Amazing.”
They rested through the day, and after dark they were off again.
They passed the mouth of a long canyon that ran from Ceraunius to Jovis Tholus;
it was an oddity in that it was neither straight nor sinuous, and was called
Crooked Canyon. When the sun rose they were hidden on the apron of Crater Qr,
just north of Jovis Tholus. Jovis Tholus was a bigger volcano than Tharsis
Tholus, bigger in fact than any volcano on Earth, but it was located on the
high saddle between Ascraeus Mons and Olympus Mons, and both were visible on
skysills to east and west, bulking like vast plateau continents, and making
Jovis seem compact, friendly, comprehensible—a hill you could walk up if you
wanted to.
That day Sax sat and stared silently at his screen, tapping at it
tentatively and getting a random assortment of texts, maps, diagrams, pictures,
equations. He tilted his head at each, with no sign of recognition. Nirgal sat
down beside him. “Sax, can you hear what I’m saying?”
Sax looked at him.
“Can you understand my words? Nod if you understand.”
Sax tilted his head to the side. Nirgal sighed, held by that
inquisitive look. Sax nodded, hesitantly.
That night Coyote drove west again, toward Olympus, and near dawn
he directed the rover right up to a wall of pocked and riven black basalt. This
was the edge of a tableland cut by innumerable narrow twisting ravines, like
Tractus Traction only on a much larger scale, creating a badlands like an
immense expansion of the Traction’s maze. The tableland was a fan of broken
ancient lava, the remnant of one of the earliest flows from Olympus Mons,
capping softer tuff and ash from even earlier eruptions. Where the wind-cut
ravines had worn deep enough, their bottoms broke through into the layer of
softer tuff, so that some ravines were narrow slots with tunnels at their
bottoms, rounded by eons of wind. “Like upside-down keyholes,” Coyote said,
though Nirgal had never seen a keyhole remotely like these shapes.
Coyote drove the rover right into one of the black-and-gray tunnel
ravines. Several kilometers up the tunnel he stopped the car, beside a wall of
tenting that cut off a kind of embolism in the tunnel, a widened outer curve.
This was the first hidden sanctuary that Art had ever seen, and he
looked suitably startled. The tent was perhaps twenty meters tall, containing a
section of the curve a hundred meters long; Art exclaimed over the size of it
until Nirgal had to laugh. “Someone else is already here using it,” Coyote
said, “so be quiet for a second.”
Art nodded quickly, and leaned over Coyote’s shoulder to hear what
he was saying over the intercom. Parked before the tent lock was another car,
just as lumpish and rocky as their own. “Ah,” said Coyote, pushing Art back.
“It’s Vijjika. They’ll have oranges, and maybe some kava. We’ll have a party
this morning for sure.”
They rolled up to the tent lock, and a coupler tube reached out
and clamped around their exterior door. When all the lock doors were opened
they made their way into the tent, bending and shuffling to carry Sax through
the tube with them.
They were met inside by eight tall, dark-skinned people, five
women and three men—a loud group, happy to have company. Coyote introduced them
all, although Nirgal knew Vijjika from the university in Sabishii, and gave her
a big hug. She was pleased to see him again, and led them all back to the
smooth curve of the cliff wall, into a clearing between trailers, under a
skylight provided by a vertical crack in the old lava. Under this shaft of
diffuse daylight, and the even more diffuse light from the deep ravine outside
the tent, the visitors sat on broad flat pillows around low tables, while
several of their hosts went to work at a clutch of round-bellied samovars.
Coyote was talking with acquaintances, catching up on the news. Sax looked
around, blinking, and Spencer, beside him, did not look much less confused; he
had been living in the surface world since ‘61, and his knowledge of the
sanctuaries must have been almost entirely secondhand. Forty years of a double
life; it was no wonder he looked stunned.
Coyote went to the samovars, and began handing out tiny cups from
a freestanding cabinet. Nirgal sat next to Vijjika, an arm around her waist,
soaking in her warmth and buzzing with the long contact of her leg against his.
Art sat down on her other side, his broad face thrust into the conversation
like a dog’s. Vijjika introduced herself to him, and shook his hand; he clasped
her long delicate fingers in his big paw as if he wanted to kiss them. “These
are Bogdanovists,” Nirgal explained to Art, laughing at. his expression and
handing him one of the little ceramic cups from Coyote. “Their parents were
prisoners in Korolyov before the war.”
“Ah,” Art said. “We’re a long way from there, right?”
Vijjika said, “Yes, well, our parents took the Transmarineris
Highway north, just before it was flooded, and eventually they came here. Here,
take that tray from Coyote and go pass out cups, and introduce yourself to
everyone.”
So Art made the rounds, and Nirgal caught up on news with Vijjika.
“You won’t believe what we’ve found in one of these tuff tunnels,” she told
him. “We’ve become most fantastically rich.” Everyone had their cup, so they
all paused for a moment and took their first sips together, then after some
whoops and a general smacking of the lips they went back to their
conversations. Art returned to Nirgal’s side.
“Here, have some yourself,” Nirgal told him. “Everyone needs to
join the toast, that’s the way they do it.”
Art took a sip from his cup, looking dubious at the liquid, which
was blacker than coffee, and foul-smelling. He shuddered. “It’s like coffee
with licorice mixed into it. Poisoned licorice.”
Vijjika laughed. “It’s kavajava,” she said, “a mixture of kava and
coffee. Very strong, and it tastes like hell. And hard to come by. But don’t
give up on it. If you can get a cup down you’ll find it’s worth it.”
“If you say so.” Manfully he downed another swallow, shuddering
again. “Horrible!”
“Yes. But we like it. Some people just extract the kavain from the
kava, but I don’t think that’s right. Rituals should have some unpleasantness,
or you don’t appreciate them properly.”
“Hmm,” Art said. Nirgal and Vijjika watched him. “I’m in a refuge
of the Martian underground,” he said after a while, “Getting high on some weird
awful drug, in the company of some of the most famous lost members of the First
Hundred. As well as young natives never known to Earth.”
“It’s working,” Vijjika observed.
Coyote was talking to a woman, who, though sitting in the lotus
position on one of the pillows, was just below his eye level as he stood before
her. “Sure I’d like to have romaine lettuce seeds,” the woman said. “But you
have to take fair for something so valuable.”
“They’re not that valuable,” Coyote said in his plausible style.
“You’re already giving us more nitrogen than we can burn.”
“Sure, but you have to get nitrogen before you can give it.”
“I know that.”
“Get before you give, and give before you burn. And here we’ve
found this enormous vein of sodium nitrate, it’s pure caliche blanco, and these
badlands are stuffed with it. It looks like there’s a band of it between the
tuff and the lava, about three meters thick and extending, well, we don’t even
know how far yet. It’s a huge amount of nitrogen, and we’ve got to get rid of
it.”
“Fine, fine,” Coyote said, “but that’s no reason to start
potlatch-ing on us.”
“We’re not potlatching. You’re going to bum eighty percent of what
we give you—”
“Seventy.”
“Oh yeah, seventy, and then we’ll have these seeds, and we’ll
finally be able to eat decent salads with our meals.”
“If you can get them to grow. Lettuce is delicate.”
“We’ll have all the fertilizer we need.”
Coyote laughed. “I guess so. But it’s still out of whack. Tell you
what, we’ll give you the coordinates for one of those trucks of uranium we sent
off into Ceraunius.”
“Talk about potlatching!”
“No no, because there’s no guarantee that you’ll be able to
recover the stuff. But you’ll know where it is, and if you do recover it, then
you can just burn another picobar of nitrogen, and we’ll be even. How about
that?”
“It still seems like too much to me.”
“You’re going to be feeling like that all the time with this
caliche blanco you’ve found. There’s really that much of it?”
“Tons of it. Millions of tons of it. These badlands are layered
through and through with it.”
“All right, maybe we can get some hydrogen peroxide from you too.
We’re going to need the fuel for the trip south.” ~~~Art leaned toward them as
if pulled by a magnet. “What’s caliche blancol”
“It’s nearly pure sodium nitrate,” the woman said. She described
the areology of the region. Rhyolitic tuff—the light-colored rock surrounding
them—had been overlaid by the dark andesite lava that roofed the tableland.
Erosion had carved the tuff wherever bracks in the andesite exposed it, forming
the tunnel-bottomed ravines, and also revealing great seams of caliche, trapped
between the two layers. “The caliche is loose rock and dust, cemented together
with salts and the sodium nitrates.”
“Microorganisms must have laid that layer down,” a man beyond the
woman said, but she instantly disagreed:
“It could have been areothermal, or lightning attracted ,by the
quartz in the tuff.”
They argued in the way people do when they are repeating a debate
for the thousandth time. Art interrupted to ask again about the caliche blanco.
The woman explained that blanco was a very pure caliche, up to eighty percent
pure sodium nitrate, and thus, on this nitrogen-poor world, extremely valuable.
A block of it sat on the table, and she passed it over to Art and went back to
arguing with her friend, while Coyote bartered on with another man, talking
about teeter-totters and pots, kilograms and calories, equivalence and
overburden, cubic meters per second and picobars, haggling expertly and getting
a lot of laughs from the people listening.
At one point the woman interrupted Coyote with a cry: “Look, we
can’t just take an unknown pot of uranium that we can’t be sure we’ll get or
not! That’s either gross potlatching or else ripping us off, depending on
whether we can find the truck or not! What kind of a deal is that, I mean it’s
a lousy deal either way!”
Coyote wagged his head mischievously. “I had to bring it in, or
else otherwise you were going to bury me in caliche blanco, weren’t you. We’re
out here on the road, we’ve got some seeds but not much else—certainly not
millions of tons of new caliche deposits! And we actually need the hydrogen
peroxide and the pasta too, it’s not just a luxury like lettuce seeds. Tell you
what, if you find the truck you can burn its equivalent, and you’ll still have
given us fair. If you don’t find it, then you’ll owe us one, I admit it, but in
that case you can burn a gift, and then we’ll have given you fair!”
“It’ll take us a week’s work and a bunch of fuel to recover the
truck.”
“All right, we’ll take another ten picobars, and burn six of it.”
“Done.” The woman shook her head, baffled. “You’re a hard
bastard.”
Coyote nodded and got up to go refill their cups.
Art swung his head around and stared at Nirgal, his mouth hanging
open. “Explain to me what just went on there.”
“Well,” said Nirgal, feeling the benevolence of the kava flowing
through him, “they were trading. We need food and fuel, so we were at a
disadvantage, but Coyote did pretty well.”
Art hefted the white block. “But what’s this get nitrogen, and
give nitrogen, and burn nitrogen? What, do you torch your money when you get
it?”
“Well, some of it, yeah.”
“So both of them were trying to lose?”
“To lose?”
“To come out short in the deal?”
“Short?”
“To give more than they got?”
“Well, sure. Of course.”
“Oh, of course!” Art rolled his eyes. “But you ... you can’t give
too much more than you get, did I understand that?”
“Right. That would be potlatching.”
Nirgal watched his new friend mull this over.
“But if you always give more than you get, how do you get anything
to give, if you see what I mean?”
Nirgal shrugged, glanced at Vijjika, hugged her waist
suggestively. “You have to find it, I guess. Or make it.”
“Ah.”
“It’s the gift economy,” Vijjika told him.
“The gift economy?”
“It’s part of how we run things out here. There’s a money economy
for the old buy-and-pay system, using units of hydrogen peroxide as the money.
But most people try to do as much as they can by the nitrogen standard, which
is the gift economy. The Sufis started that, and the people in Nirgal’s home.”
“And Coyote,” Nirgal added. Although, as he glanced over at his
father, he could see that Art might find it hard to envision Coyote as any sort
of economic theorist. At the moment Coyote was tapping madly at a keyboard
beside another man, and when he lost the game they were playing he shoved the
man off his pillow, explaining to everyone that his hand had slipped. “I’ll arm
wrestle you double or nothing,” he said, and he and the man plonked their
elbows on the table and tensed their forearms, and went at it.
“Arm wrestling!” Art said. “Now that’s something I can
understand.”
Coyote lost in seconds, and Art sat down to challenge the winner.
He won in seconds, and it quickly became obvious that no one could resist him;
the Bogdanovists even clustered across from him, and got three and then four
hands clasping his hand and wrist, but he smacked every combination of them
down onto the table. “Okay I win,” he said at last, and flopped back on his
pillow. “How much do I owe you?”
To avoid the aureoles of shattered terrain clustered north of Olympus Mons, they had
to circle far to the north. They drove by night, and slept by day.
Art and Nirgal spent many hours of these nights driving the car
and talking. Art asked questions by the hundred, and Nirgal asked just as many
back, as fascinated by Earth as Art was by Mars. They were a matched pair, each
very interested in the other, which as always made a fertile ground for
friendship.
Nirgal had been frightened by the idea of contacting Terrans on
his own, when it first occurred to him in his student years. It was clearly a
dangerous notion, which had come to him one night in Sabishii and never let go.
He had spent many hours over many months thinking about the idea, and doing
research to figure out who he should contact, if he decided to act on the
thought. The more he learned, the stronger grew his sense that it was a good
idea, that having an alliance with a Terran power was critical to their hopes.
And yet he was sure that all the members of the First Hundred he knew would not
want to risk contact. If he did it, he would have to do it on his own. The
risk, the stakes... .
He tried Praxis because of what he had read about it. It was a
shot in the dark, as most critical acts are. An instinctive act: the trip to
Burroughs, the walk into the Praxis offices in Hunt Mesa, the repeated requests
for a line to William Fort.
He got the line, although that in itself meant nothing. But later,
in the first moment he had approached Art on the street in Sheffield, he knew
that he had done well. That Praxis had done well. There had been, just in the
look of the big man, some quality that Nirgal had found instantly
reassuring—some openness, an easy, friendly ability. To use his childhood
vocabulary, a balance of the two worlds. A man he trusted.
One sign of a good action is that in retrospect it appears
inevitable. Now, as the long rolling nights of their journey passed in the
light of the IR imagers, the two men spoke to each other as if they too saw
each other in the infrared. Their dialogue went on and on and on, and they got
to know each other—to become friends. Nirgal’s impulsive reach to Earth was
going to work out, he could see it right there in front of him hour after hour,
just in the look on Art’s face, the curiosity, the interest.
They talked about everything, in the way people will. Their pasts,
their opinions, their hopes. Nirgal spent most of his time trying to explain
Zygote, and Sabishii. “I spent some years in Sabishii. The issei there run an
open university. There’s no records kept. You just attend the classes you want,
and deal with your teacher and no one else. A lot of Sabishii operates off the
record. It’s the capital of the demimonde, like Tharsis Tholus only much
bigger. A great city. I met a lot of people there, from all over Mars.”
The romance of Sabishii poured through his mind, memories flooding
speech in all their profusion of incident, of feeling—all the individual
emotions of that time, contradictory and incompatible though they were,
experienced again simultaneously,’in. a dense polyphonic chord.
“That must have been quite an experience,” Art remarked, “after
growing up in a place like Zygote.”
“Oh it was. It was wonderful.”
“Tell me about it.”
Nirgal crouched forward in his chair, shivering a bit, and tried
to convey some of what it had been like.
At first it had been so strange. The issei had done incredible
things; while the First Hundred had squabbled, fought, fissioned all over the
planet, started a war, and were now dead or in hiding, the first group of
Japanese settlers, the 240 who had founded Sa-bishii just seven years after the
First Hundred had arrived, had stayed right next to their landing site, and
built a city. They had absorbed all the changes that had followed, including
the location of a mohole right next to their town; they had simply taken over
the dig, and used the tailings for construction materials. When the thickening
atmsophere made it possible they had gardened the surrounding terrain, which
was rocky and high, not at all easy land, until they lived in the midst of a
diffuse dwarfish forest, a bonsai krummholz, with alpine basins in the
highlands above it. In the catastrophes of 206I they had never moved, and,
considered neutral, had been left alone by the transnats. In that solitude they
had taken the excavated rock from their mohole and built it into long snaking
mounds, all shot through with tunnels and rooms, ready to hide people from the
south.
Thus they had invented the demimonde, the most sophisticated and
complex society on Mars, full of people who passed each other on the street
like strangers but met at night in rooms, to talk, and make music, and make
love. And even the people not part of the underworld were interesting, because
the issei had started a university, the University of Mars, where many of the
students, perhaps a third of the total, were young and Martian-born. And
whether these young natives were surface-world or underground in origin, they
recognized each other without the slightest difficulty, as people at home in a
million subtle ways, in ways no Terran-born ever could be. And so they talked,
and made music, and made love, and naturally quite a few of the surface natives
were thus initiated into knowledge of the underground, until it began to seem
as if all the natives knew all, and were natural allies.
The professors included many of the Sabishiian issei and nisei, as
well as distinguished visitors from all over Mars, and even from Terra. The
students came from everywhere as well. There in the large handsome town they
lived and studied and played, in streets and gardens and open pavilions, by
ponds and in cafes, and on broad streetgrass boulevards, in a kind of Martian
Kyoto.
Nirgal had first seen the city on a brief visit with Coyote. He
had found it too big, too crowded, too many strangers. But months later, tired
of wandering the south with Coyote, so solitary for so much of the time, he had
recalled the place as if it were the only destination possible. Sabishii!
He had gone there and moved into a room under a roof, smaller than
his bamboo room in Zygote, barely bigger than his bed. He joined classes, runs,
calypso bands, cafe groups. He learned just how much his lectern held. He found
out just how incredibly provincial and ignorant he was. Coyote gave him blocks
of hydrogen peroxide, which he sold to the issei for what money he needed.
Every day was an adventure, almost entirely unscheduled, just a tumble of
encounters from hour to hour, on and on until he dropped, often wherever he
was. During the days he studied areology and ecological engineering, giving
these disciplines he had begun to learn in Zygote a mathematical underpinning,
and finding in the tutorials with Etsu, and in the work itself, that he had
inherited some of his mother’s gift for seeing clearly the interplay of all the
components of a system. The days were devoted to this extraordinarily
fascinating work. So many human lives, given over to the gaining of this body
of knowledge! So varied, the powers this knowledge gave them in the world!
Then at night he might crash on the floor at a friend’s, after
talking to a 140-year-old Bedouin about the Transcaucasus War, and the next
night be playing bass steel drum or marimbas till dawn with twenty other
kavajavaed Latin Americans and Polynesians, the next after that be in bed with
one of the dusky beauties from the band, women as cheerful as Jackie at her
best, and much less complicated. The following night he might go with friends
to a performance of Shakespeare’s King John, and observe the great X that the
play’s structure made, with John’s fortunes starting high and ending low, and
the bastard’s starting low and ending high—and sit shaking as he watched the
critical scene at the crossing of the X, in which John orders the death of
young Arthur. And afterward walk with his friends all through the night city,
talking about the play and what it said about the fortunes of certain of the
issei, or about the various forces on Mars, or the Mars-Earth situation itself.
And then the night after that, after some of them had spent the day out fell
running, exploring high basins in his quest to see as much of the land as he
could, they might stay out to sleep in a little survival tent, camping in one
of the high cirques east of the city, heating a meal in the dusk as stars
popped out everywhere in the purple sky, and the alpine flowers faded away into
the basin of rock that held them all, as if in the palm of a giant hand.
Day after day of this ceaseless interaction with strangers taught
him at least as much as he learned in the classes. Not that Zygote had left him
completely ignorant; its inhabitants had included such a great variety of human
behavior as to have left few surprises for Nirgal on that score. In fact, as he
began to understand, he had been raised in something like an asylum of
eccentrics, people bent hard by those first overpressured years on Mars.
But there still were some surprises, nevertheless. The natives
from the northern cities, for instance—and not only them, but almost everyone
not from Zygote—were much less physical with each other than Nirgal was used to
being. They did not touch or hug or caress each other as much, or shove or
strike—nor did they bathe together, although some learned to in Sabishii’s
public baths. So Nirgal was always surprising people by his touch. He said odd
things; he liked to run all day; whatever the reasons, as the months passed and
he got involved in endlessly connected groups, bands, cells, and gangs, he was
aware that he stuck out somehow, that he was the focal point of some
groups—that a party was following him from cafe to cafe, from day to day. That
there was such a thing as “Nirgal’s crowd.” Quickly he learned to deflect this
attention if he didn’t want it. But sometimes he found he did.
Often it was when Jackie was there.
“Jackie again!” Art observed. It was not the first time she had
come up, or the tenth.
Nirgal nodded, feeling his pulse jump.
Jackie too had moved to Sabishii, soon after Nirgal. She had taken
rooms nearby, and attended some of the same classes. And in the fluctuating
group of their peers, they sometimes showed off to each other—especially in the
very common situation in which one or the other of them was involved in seducing
someone or in being seduced.
But they soon learned that they could not indulge themselves in
that, if they did not want to drive away other partners. Which neither did. So
they left each other alone, except if one actively disliked the other’s choice of
partner. So that in a way they were judging each other’s partners, and’
acquiescing to each other’s influence. And all this without a word, with this
rare behavior the only visible sign of their power over each other. They were
both fooling around with a lot of other people, making new relationships,
friendships, having affairs. Sometimes they didn’t see each other for weeks.
And yet at some deeper level (Nirgal shook his head unhappily as he tried to
express this to Art) they “belonged to each other.”
If one of them ever needed to confirm that bond, the other
responded to the seduction in a blaze of excitement, and off they went. That
had only happened three times in the three years they were in Sabishii, and yet
Nirgal knew by those meetings that the two of them were linked—by their shared
childhood and all that had happened in it, certainly, but also by something
more. Everything they did together was different than when they did it with
other people, more intense.
With the rest of his acquaintances, there was nothing so fraught
with significance, or danger. He had friends—a score, a hundred, five hundred.
He always said yes. He asked questions and listened, and rarely slept. He went
to the meetings of fifty different political organizations, and agreed with
them all, and spent many a night talking, deciding the fate of Mars, and then
of the human race. Some people he hit it off with better than others. He might
talk to a native from the north and feel an immediate empathy, starting a
friendship that would endure forever. Much of the time it happened that way.
But then once in a while he would be utterly surprised by some action totally
foreign to his understanding, and be reminded yet again what a cloistered, even
claustrophobic upbringing he had had in Zygote—leaving him as innocent, in some
ways, as a fairy brought up under an abalone shell.
“No, it’s not Zygote that made me,” he said to Art, looking behind
them to make sure that Coyote was really sleeping. “You can’t choose your
childhood, it’s just what happens to you. But after that you choose. I chose
Sabishii. And that’s really what made me.”
“Maybe,” Art said, rubbing his jaw. “But childhood isn’t just
those years. It’s also the opinions you form about them afterward. That’s why
our childhoods are so long.”
One dawn the deep plum color of the sky illuminated the
spectacular fin ridge of Acheron to the north, looming like a Manhattan of
solid rock, as yet uncut into individual skyscrapers. The can-yonland
underneath the fin was particolored, giving the fractured land a painted look.
“That’s a lot of lichen,” Coyote said. Sax climbed into the seat beside him and
leaned almost nose to windshield, showing as much animation as he had since the
rescue.
Under the very top of the Acheron fin, there was a line of mirror
windows like a diamond necklace, and on top of the ridge itself, a long tuft of
green, under the ephemeral glint of tenting. Coyote exclaimed, “It looks like
it’s been reoccupied!”
Sax nodded.
Spencer, looking over their shoulders, said, “I wonder who’s in
there.”
“No one is,” Art said. They stared at him, and he went on: “I
heard about it in my orientation in Sheffield. It’s a Praxis project. They
rebuilt it, and got everything ready. And now they’re just waiting.”
“Waiting for what?”
“For Sax Russell, basically. For Taneev, Kohl, Tokareva, Russell
...” He looked at Sax, shrugging almost apologetically.
Sax croaked something wordlike.
“Hey!” Coyote said.
Sax cleared his throat hard, tried again. His mouth pursed to a
little O, and a horrible noise started deep in his throat: “W-w-w-w-w-” He
looked over at Nirgal, gestured as if Nirgal would know.
“Why?” Nirgal said.
Sax nodded.
Nirgal felt his cheeks burn as an electric flush of acute relief
ran through his skin, and he leaped up and gave the little man a hard hug. “You
do understand!”
“Well,” Art was saying, “they did it as a kind of gesture. It was
Fort’s idea, the guy who founded Praxis. ‘Maybe they’ll come back,’ he
supposedly said to the Praxis people in Sheffield. I don’t know if he thought out
the practicalities or not.”
“This Fort is strange,” Coyote said, and Sax nodded again.
“True,” Art said. “But I wish you could meet him. He reminds me of
the stories you tell about Hiroko.”
“Does he know we’re out here?” Spencer asked.
Nirgal’s pulse leapt, but Art showed no sign of discomfort. “I
don’t know. He suspects. He wants you to be out here.”
“Where does he live?” Nirgal asked.
“I don’t know.” Art described his visit to Fort. “So I don’t know
exactly where he is. Somewhere on the Pacific. But if I could get word to him
...”
No one responded.
“Well, maybe later,” Art said.
Sax was looking out the rover’s low windshield at the distant rock
fin, at the tiny line of lit windows marking the labs behind them, empty and
silent. Coyote reached out and squeezed his neck. “You want it back, don’t
you.” Sax croaked something.
On the empty plain of Amazonis there were few settlements of any
kind. This was the back country, and they rolled rapidly south through it,
night after night, and slept in the darkened cabin of the car through the days.
Their biggest problem was finding adequate hiding places. On flat open plains
the boulder car stood out like a glacial erratic, and Amazonis was almost
nothing but flat open plain. They usually tucked into the apron of ejecta
around one of the few craters they passed. After the dawn meals Sax sometimes
exercised his voice, croaking incomprehensible words, trying to communicate
with them and failing. This upset Nirgal even more than it seemed to bother Sax
himself, who, though clearly frustrated, did not seem pained. But then he had
not tried to talk to Simon in those last weeks... .
Coyote and Spencer were pleased with even this much progress, and
they spent hours asking Sax questions, and running him through tests they got
out of the AI lectern, trying to figure out just what the problem was.
“Aphasia, obviously,” Spencer said. “I’m afraid his interrogation caused a
stroke. And some strokes cause what they call nonfluent aphasia.”
“There’s such a thing as fluent aphasia?” Coyote said.
“Apparently. Nonfluent is where the subject can’t read or write,
and has difficulty speaking or finding the right words, and is very aware of
the problem.”
Sax nodded, as if to confirm the description.
“In fluent aphasia the subjects talk at great length, but are
unaware that what they’re saying makes no sense.”
Art said, “I know a lot of people with that problem.”
Spencer ignored him. “We’ve got to get Sax down to Vlad and Ursula
and Michel.”
“That’s what we’re doing.” Coyote gave Sax a squeeze on the arm
before retiring to his mat.
On the fifth night after leaving the Bogdanovists, they approached
the equator, and the double barrier of the fallen elevator cable. Coyote had
passed the barrier in this region before, using a glacier formed by one of the
aquifer outbursts of 2061, in Mangala Vallis. During the unrest water and ice
had poured down the old arroyo for a hundred and fifty kilometers, and the
glacier left behind when the flood froze had buried both passes of the fallen
cable, at 152° longitude. Coyote had located a route over an unusually smooth
stretch of this glacier, which had taken him across the two passes of the
cable.
Unfortunately, when they approached Mangala Glacier—a long tumbled
mass of gravel-covered brown ice, filling the bottom of a narrow valley—they
found that it had changed since Coyote had last been there. “Where’s that
rampway?” he kept demanding. “It was right here.”
Sax croaked, then made kneading motions with his hands, staring
all the while through the windshield at the glacier.
Nirgal had a difficult time comprehending the glacier’s surface;
it was a kind of visual static, all patches of dirty white and gray and black
and tan, tumbled together until it was hard to distinguish size, shape, or
distance. “Maybe it isn’t the same place,” he suggested.
“I can tell,” Coyote said.
“Are you sure?”
“I left markers. See, there’s one there. That trail duck on the
lateral moraine. But beyond it should be a rampway up onto smooth ice, and it’s
nothing but a wall of icebergs. Shit. I’ve been using this trail for ten
years.”
“You’re lucky you had it that long,” Spencer said. “They’re slower
than Terran glaciers, but they still flow downhill.”
Coyote only grunted. Sax croaked, then tapped at the inner lock
door. He wanted to go outside.
“Might as well,” Coyote muttered, looking at a map on the screen.
“We’ll have to spend the day here anyway.”
So in the predawn light Sax wandered the rubble plowed up by the
glacier’s passage: a little upright creature with a light shining out of his
helmet, like some deep-sea fish poking about for food. Something in the sight
made Nirgal’s throat tighten, and he suited up and went outside to keep the old
man company.
He wandered through the lovely chill gray morning, stepping from
rock to rock, following Sax in his winding course through the moraine.
Illuminated one by one in the cone of Sax’s headlamp were eldritch little
worlds, the dunes and boulders interspersed with spiky low plants, filling
cracks and hollows under rocks. Everything was gray, but the grays of the
plants were shaded olive or khaki or brown, with occasional light spots, which
were flowers—no doubt colorful in the sun, but now light luminous grays,
glowing among thick furry leaves. Over his intercom Nirgal could hear Sax
clearing his throat, and the little figure pointed at a rock. Nirgal crouched
to inspect it. In cracks on the rock were growths like dried mushrooms, with
black dots all over their shriveled cups, and sprinkled with what looked like a
layer of salt. Sax croaked as Nirgal touched one, but he could not say what he
wanted. “R-r-r ...”
They stared at each other. “It’s okay,” Nirgal said, stricken
again by the memory of Simon.
They moved to another patch of foliage. The areas that supported
plants appeared like little outdoor rooms, separated by zones of dry rock and
sand. Sax spent about fifteen minutes in each frosty fellfield, stumbling
around awkwardly. There were a lot of different kinds of plants, and only after
they had visited several glens did Nirgal begin to see some that appeared again
and again. None of them resembled the plants he had grown up with in Zy-gote,
nor were they like anything in the arboretums of Sabishii. Only the
first-generation plants, the lichens, mosses, and grasses, looked at all
familiar, like the ground cover in the high basins above Sabishii.
Sax didn’t try to speak again, but his headlamp was like a pointed
finger, and Nirgal often trained his headlamp on the same area, doubling the
illumination. The sky turned rosy, and it began to feel like they were in the
planet’s shadow, with sunlight just overhead.
Then Sax said, “Dr—!” and aimed his headlamp at a steep slope of
gravel, over which a network of woody branches grew, like a mesh put there to
hold the rubble in place. “Dr—/”
“Dryad,” Nirgal said, recognizing it.
Sax nodded emphatically. The rocks under their feet were covered
with light green patches of lichen, and he pointed at a patch, and said,
“Ap-ple. Red. Map. Moss.”
“Hey,” Nirgal said. “You said that really well.”
The sun rose, throwing their shadows over the gravel slope.
Suddenly the dryad’s little flowers were picked out by the light, the ivory
petals cupping gold stamens. “Dry-ad,” Sax croaked. Their headlamp beams were
now invisible, and the flowers blazed with daylight color. Nirgal heard a sound
over the intercom and looked into Sax’s helmet, and saw that the old man was
crying, the tears streaming down his cheeks.
Nirgal pored
over maps and photos of
the region. “I have an idea,” he said to Coyote. And that night they drove to
Nicholson Crater, four hundred kilometers to the west. The falling cable had to
have landed across this large crater, at least on its first pass, and it seemed
to Nirgal that there might be some kind of break or gap near the rim.
Sure enough, when they rolled up the low flat-topped hill that was
the crater’s north apron, they came to the eroded rim and saw the weird vision
of a black line, crossing the middle of the crater some forty kilometers away,
looking like an artifact of some long-forgotten race of giants. “Big Man’s ...”
Coyote began.
“Hair strand,” Spencer suggested.
“Or black dental floss,” Art said.
The inner wall of the crater was much steeper than the outer
apron, but there were a number of rim passes to choose from, and they drove
without trouble down the stabilized slope of an ancient landslide, then crossed
the crater floor, following the curve of the western inner wall. As they
approached the cable, they saw that it emerged from a depression it had crushed
in the rim, and drooped gracefully to the crater floor, like the suspension
cable of a buried bridge.
They drove slowly under it. Where it left the rim, it was nearly
seventy meters off the crater floor, and it didn’t touch down until it was over
a kilometer out. They pointed the boulder car’s cameras up, and watched the
view on the screen curiously; but the black cylinder was featureless against
the stars, and they could only speculate about what the burn of the descent had
done to the carbon.
“That’s nifty,” Coyote remarked as they drove up a smooth slope of
eolian deposit, over another rim pass and out of the crater. “Now let’s hope
there’s a way over the next pass.”
From the southern flank of Nicholson they could see south for many
kilometers, and midway to the horizon was the black line of the cable’s second
time around. This section had impacted many times harder than the first pass,
and two swaths of ejecta paralleled the cable like henge mounds. It appeared
that the cable just barely stuck out of the trench it had smashed into the
plain.
As they got closer to it, weaving between ejecta boulders, they
could see that the cable was a shattered mass of black rubble, a mound of
carbon three to five meters higher than the plain, and steep on its sides, so
that it did not look like it would be possible to drive over it in the boulder
car.
Off to the east, however, was a dip in the mound of wreckage, and
when they drove down the line to investigate, they found that a meteor impact
subsequent to the cable’s fall had landed on the wreckage itself, smashing the
cable and the ejecta swaths on both sides, and creating a new low crater that
was all flecked and studded with black cable fragments, and occasional chunks
of the diamond matrix that had spiraled inside the cable. It was a disordered mess
of a crater, with no well-defined rim to block their way; and it looked like it
would be possible to find a route through.
“Incredible,” said Coyote.
Sax shook his head vigorously. “Dei—Dei—”
“Phobos,” Nirgal said, and Sax nodded.
“Do you think so?” Spencer exclaimed.
Sax shrugged, but Spencer and Coyote discussed the possibility
enthusiastically. The crater appeared oval, a so-called bathtub crater, which
would support the idea of a low-angle impact. And while a random meteor hitting
the cable in the forty years since its fall would be quite a coincidence, the
fragments of Phobos had fallen entirely in the equatorial zone, and so a piece
of it hitting the cable was much less surprising. “Very useful,” Coyote noted
after he had negotiated their way over the little crater, and gotten the car
south of the ejecta zone.
They parked next to one of the last big chunks of ejecta, and
suited up and went back to have a look at the site.
There were brecciated chunks of rock everywhere, so that it was
not obvious which were pieces of the meteor and which ejecta excavated by the
cable’s fall. But Spencer was pretty good at rock ID, and he collected several
samples that he said were exotic carbonaceous chondrite, very likely to be
pieces of the impact rock. It would take a chemical analysis to be sure, but
back in the car he looked at them under magnification, and declared himself
confident that these were pieces of Phobos. “Arkady showed me a piece just like
it, the first time he came down.” They passed around a heavy burned-looking
black chunk. “Impact brecciation has metamorphosed it,” Spencer said,
inspecting the stone when it came back to him. “I suppose it has to be called
phobosite.”
“Not the rarest rock on Mars, either,” Coyote said.
To the southeast of Nicholson Crater, the two big parallel canyons
of the Medusae Fossae ran for over three hundred kilometers, into the fteart of
the southern highlands. Coyote decided to drive up East Medusa, the bigger of
the two fractures. “I like to go through canyons when I can, see if the walls
have any overhangs or caves. That’s how I’ve found most of my cache sites.”
“What if you run into a transverse scarp that crosses the whole
canyon?” Nirgal asked.
“I backtrack. I’ve done an inhuman lot of backtracking, no doubt
about that.”
So they drove up the canyon, which proved mostly flat-floored, for
the rest of the night. The following night, as they continued south, the floor
of the canyon began to rise, in steps that they were always able to negotiate.
Then they reached a new and higher level of flat floor, and Nirgal, who was
driving, braked the car. “There’s buildings up there!”
They all crowded around to look through the windshield. On the
horizon, under the eastern wall of the canyon, a cluster of small white stone
buildings stood silently.
After a half hour’s examination .with the car’s various imagers
and scopes, Coyote shrugged. “No obvious electricity or warmth. Doesn’t look
like anyone’s home. Let’s go have a look.”
So they drove toward the structures, and stopped beside a massive
chunk of the cliff wall, which had rolled well out on the floor. From this
distance they could see that the buildings were freestanding, with no tent
around them; they appeared to be solid blocks of whitish rock, like the caliche
blanco in the badlands north of Olympus. Small white figures stood motionlessly
between these buildings, on white plazas ringed by white trees. It was all made
of stone.
“A statue,” Spencer said. “A town of stone!”
“Mud,” Sax croaked, then pounded the dashboard angrily, giving it
four sharp slams that startled them all. “Muh!—du!—sa!”
Spencer and Art and Coyote laughed. They clapped Sax on the
shoulders as if they were trying to pile-drive him into the floor. Then they
all suited up again, and went out to have a closer look.
The white walls of the buildings glowed eerily in the starlight,
like giant soap carvings. There were some twenty buildings, and many trees, and
a couple of hundred people—and also a few score lions, mixed freely among the
people. All carved from white stone, which Spencer identified as alabaster. The
central plaza seemed to have been petrified during an active morning; there was
a crowded farmers’ market, and a group clustered around two men playing chess,
with waist-high pieces on a large board. The black chess pieces and the black
squares of the chessboard stood out dramatically in their surroundings—onyx, in
an alabaster world.
Another group of statues watched a juggler, who looked up at
invisible balls. Several of the lions were watching this exhibition closely, as
if ready to bat something out of the air if the juggler came too close. All the
faces of the statues, human or feline, were rounded and almost featureless, but
every one of them somehow expressed an attitude.
“Look at the circular arrangement of the buildings,” Spencer said
over the intercom. “It’s Bogdanovist architecture, or something like.”
“No Bogdanovist ever mentioned this to me,” Coyote said. “I don’t
think any of them have ever been in this region. I don’t know anyone who has.
This is pretty remote.” He looked around, a grin showing through his faceplate.
“Someone spent a bit of time at this!”
“It’s strange what people will do,” Spencer said.
Nirgal wandered around the edges of the construct, ignoring the
talk on the intercom, looking into one blurred face after another, looking into
white stone doorways and white stone windows, his blood stirring. It was as if
the sculptor had made the place in order to speak to him, to strike him with
his own vision. The white world of his childhood, thrusting right out into the
green—or, out here, into the red... .
And there was something in the peace of the place. Not just the
stillness, but the marvelous relaxation in all the figures, the flowing calm of
their stances. Mars could be this way. No more hiding, no more strife, the
children racing around the market, the lions walking among them like cats... .
After an extended tour of the alabaster town, they returned to the
car and drove on. About fifteen minutes later Nirgal spotted another statue, a
white bas-relief face only, emerging from the cliff face opposite the town.
“The Medusa herself,” Spencer said, pausing in his nightly drink. The basilisk
glare of the Gorgon was directed back at the town, and the stone snakes of her
hair twisted away from her head and back into the cliffside, as if the rock had
only just seized her by a serpentine ponytail, preventing her from emerging
completely from the planet.
“Beautiful,” Coyote said. “Remember that face—if that’s not a
self-portrait of the sculptor, I’m much mistaken.” He drove on without
stopping, and Nirgal stared at the stone face curiously. It seemed to be Asian,
although perhaps that was only the effect of having the snake hair pulled back.
He tried to memorize the features, feeling it was someone he already knew.
They came out of the Medusa’s canyon before dawn, and stopped to
hide through the day, and chart their next move. Beyond Burton Crater, which
lay before them, the Memnonia Fossae cut the land east to west for hundreds of
kilometers, blocking their way south. They had to go west, toward Williams and
Ejriksson craters, then south again toward Columbus Crater, and after that
weave through a narrow gap in the Sirenum Fossae farther south— and so on.
Doing a continuous dance around craters, cracks, escarpments, and hollows. The
southern highlands were extremely rough compared to the smooth long vistas of
the north—Art commented on the difference, and Coyote said irritably, “It’s a
planet, man. There’s all kind of land.”
Every day they woke to an alarm set for an hour before sunset, and
spent the last light of day eating a spare breakfast, and watching the garish
alpenglow colors spread with the shadows over the rugged landscape. Then every
night they drove, without ever being able to use the autopilot, navigating the
broken terrain kilometer by kilometer. Nirgal and Art took the graveyard shift
together on most nights, and continued their long conversations. Then as the
stars faded, and dawn’s pure violet light stained the eastern sky, they found places
where the boulder car would be inconspicuous—in this latitude the work of a
moment, almost just a matter of stopping, as Art said—and ate a leisurely
supper, watching the sharp blast of sunrise and its sudden creation of great
fields of shadow. A couple of hours later, after a planning session, and
occasional trips out, they would darken the windshield, and sleep through the
day.
At the end of another long night’s conversation about their
respective childhoods, Nirgal said, “I suppose it wasn’t until Sabishii that I
realized that Zygote was ...”
“Unusual?” Coyote said from his sleeping mat behind them. “Unique?
Bizarre? Hirokolike?”
Nirgal was not surprised to discover that Coyote was awake; the
old man slept poorly, and often muttered a dreamy commentary to Nirgal and
Art’s narrative, which they generally ignored, as he was mostly asleep. But now
Nirgal said, “Zygote reflects Hiroko, I think. She’s very inward.”
“Ha,” Coyote said. “She didn’t use to be.”
“When was that?” Art pounced, swiveling in his chair to include
Coyote in their little circle of talk.
“Oh, back before the beginning,” Coyote said. “In prehistoric
times, back on Earth.”
“Is that when you met her?”
Coyote grunted affirmatively.
This was where he always stopped, when he was talking to Nirgal.
But now with Art there, with just the three of them awake in all the world, in
a little circle lit by the infrared imager, Coyote’s thin crooked face had a
different expression than its usual mulish dismissal, and Art leaned over him
and said firmly, “So just how did you get to Mars, anyway?”
“Oh God,” Coyote said, and rolled onto his side, propping his head
up on one hand. “It’s hard to remember something that long ago. It’s almost
like an epic poem I memorized once, and can barely recite anyniore.”
He glanced up at them, then closed his eyes, as if recalling the
opening lines. The two younger men stared down at him, waiting.
“It was all due to Hiroko, of course. She and I were friends. We
met young, when we were students at Cambridge. We were both cold in England, so
we warmed each other. This was before she met Iwao, and long before she became
the great mother goddess of the world. And back theft we shared a lot of
things. We were outsiders at Cambridge, and we were good at the work. And so we
lived together for a couple of years there. Very much like what Nirgal has been
saying about Sabishii. Even what he said about Jackie. Although Hiroko ...”
He closed his eyes, as if trying to see it in his mind.
“You stayed together?” Art asked.
“No. She went back to Japan, and I went with her for a while, but
I had to go back to Tobago when my father died. So things changed. But she and
I stayed in touch, and met at scientific conferences, and when we met we
fought, or promised to love each other forever. Or both. We didn’t know what we
wanted. Or how we could get it, if we admitted what we wanted. And then the
selection of the First Hundred began. But I was in jail in Trinidad, for
objecting to the flag-of-convenience laws. And even if I had been free, I wouldn’t
have had a chance of being selected anyway. I’m not even sure I wanted to go.
But Hiroko either remembered our promises, or thought I would be useful to her,
I have never decided which. So she contacted me, and told me that if I wanted
she would hide me in the farm on the Ares, and then in the colony on Mars. She
has always been a bold thinker, I give her that.”
“Didn’t it strike you as a crazy plan?” Art asked, his eyes round.
“Yes it did!” Coyote laughed. “But all the good plans are crazy,
aren’t they. And at that time my prospects were dim. And if I hadn’t gone for
it, I would never have seen Hiroko again.” He looked at Nirgal, smiled
crookedly. “So I agreed to try it. I was still in prison, but Hiroko had some
unusual friends in Japan, and one night I found myself being led out of my cell
by a trio of masked men, and every guard in the jail sedated. We took a
helicopter to a tanker ship, and I sailed on that to Japan. The Japanese were
building the space station that the Russians and Americans were using for the
construction of the Ares, and I was flown up in one of the new Earth-to-space
planes, and slipped into the Ares just as construction was ending. They popped
me in with some of the farm equipment Hiroko had ordered, and after that it was
up to me. I lived by my wits from that moment on, all the way to this very
moment! Which meant I was pretty hungry at times, until the Ares began its
flight. After that, Hiroko took care of me. I slept in a storage compartment
behind the pigs, and stayed out of sight. It was easier than you might think,
because the Ares was big. And when Hiroko got confident in the farm crew, she
introduced me to them, and it was easier yet. Where it got hard was on the
ground, in those first weeks after we landed. I went down in a lander filled
with only the farm crew, and they helped me get settled in a closet in one of
the trailers. Hiroko got the greenhouses built fast mostly to get me out of
that closet, or so she would tell me.”
“You lived in a closet?”
“For a couple of months. It was worse than jail. But after that I
lived in the greenhouse, and started work on stockpiling the materials we
needed to take off on our own. Iwao had hidden the contents of a couple of
freight boxes, right from the start. And after we built a rover out of spare
parts I spent most of my time away from Underbill, exploring the chaotic
terrain and finding a good place for our hidden shelter, and moving stuff out
there. I was out on the surface more than anyone, even Ann. By the time the
farm team moved out there to it, I was used to spending a lot of time on my
own. Just me and Big Man, out wandering the planet. I tell you, it was like
heaven. No, not heaven—it was Mars, pure Mars. I guess I lost my mind in a way.
But I loved it so ... I can’t really talk about it.”
“You must have taken a lot of radiation.”
Coyote laughed. “Oh yes! Between those journeys and the solar
storm on the Ares, I took on more rems than anyone in the First Hundred, except
maybe for John. Maybe that’s what did it. Anyway”— he shrugged, looked up at
Art and Nirgal—”here 1 am. The stowaway.”
“Amazing,” Art said.
Nirgal nodded; he had never gotten his father to reveal even a
tenth as much information about his past, and now he looked from Art to Coyote
and back again, wondering how Art had done it. And done it to him as well—for
Nirgal had tried to tell not only what had happened to him, but what it had
meant, which was much more difficult. Apparently this was a talent Art had,
though it was very hard to pin down what it consisted of; just the look on his
face, somehow, that cross-eyed intensity of interest, those bald bold
questions, trampling on the niceties and going right to the heart of
things—assuming that every person wanted to talk, to shape the meaning of their
life. Even secretive weird old hermits like Coyote.
“Well, it was not that hard,” Coyote was saying now. “Concealment
is never as hard as people think, you must understand that. It’s action while
hiding that is the hard part.”
At that thought he frowned, then pointed a finger at Nirgal. “This
is why we will have to come out eventually, and fight in the open. This is why
I got you to go to Sabishii.”
“What? You told me I shouldn’t go! You said it would ruin me!”
“That was how I got you to go.”
They kept up this nocturnal, conversational life for the better
part of a week, and at the end of it they approached a small settled region
surrounding the mohole that had been dug in the midst of craters Hipparchus,
Eudoxus, Ptolemaeus, and Li Fan. There were some uranium mines on the aprons of
these craters, but Coyote did not suggest any sabotage attempts, and they drove
hard past the Ptolemaic mohole, getting away from the region as quickly as
possible. Soon they came to the Thaumasia Fossae, the fifth or sixth big
fracture system they had encountered on their trip. Art found this curious, but
Spencer explained to him that the Tharsis bulge was surrounded by fracture
systems caused by its uplift, and as they were in effect circumnavigating the
bulge, they kept running into them. Thaumasia was one of the biggest of these
systems, and the location of the large town of Senzeni Na, which had been
founded next to another of the 40° latitude moholes, one of the first moholes
to be dug, and still one of the deepest. At this point they had been traveling
for over two weeks, and they needed to restock at one of Coyote’s caches.
They drove south of Senzeni Na, and near dawn were weaving between
rocky ancient hillocks. But when they came to the bottom end of a landslide
coming off a low broken scarp, Coyote started cursing. The ground was marked by
rover tracks, and a scattering of crushed gas cylinders, food boxes and fuel
containers.
They stared at the sight. “Your cache?” Art asked, which provoked
another outburst of swearing.
“Who were they?” Art asked. “Police?”
No one answered immediately. Sax went to one of the drivers’ seats
to check supply gauges. Coyote continued cursing furiously, plopping meanwhile
into the other driver’s seat. Finally he said to Art, “It wasn’t police. Not
unless they’ve started using Vishniac rovers. No. These thieves were from the
underground, damn them. Probably an outfit I know based in Argyre. I can’t
think of anyone else who would do it. But this crowd knows where some of my old
caches were, and they’ve been mad at me ever since I sabotaged a mining
settlement in the Charitums, because it closed down after that, and they lost
their main source of supplies.”
“You folks should try to stay on the same side,” Art said.
“Fuck off,” Coyote advised him.
Coyote started up the boulder car and drove away. “It’s the same
old story,” he said bitterly. “The resistance begins fighting itself, because
that’s the only thing it can beat. Happens every time. You can’t get any
movement larger than five people without including at least one fucking idiot.”
He went on in that vein for quite some time. Finally Sax tapped at
one of the gauges, and Coyote said roughly, “I know!”
It was full daylight, and he stopped the car in a cleft between
two of the ancient hillocks, and they blacked the windows, and lay in the dark
on their narrow mattresses.
“So how many underground groups are there?” Art asked.
“No one knows,” Coyote said.
“You’re kidding.”
Nirgal answered before Coyote started in again. “There’s about
forty in the southern hemisphere. And some long-standing disagreements among
them are getting nasty. There are some tough groups out there. Radical Reds,
Schnelling splinter groups, different kinds of fundamentalists ... it’s causing
trouble.”
“But aren’t you all working for the same thing?”
“I don’t know.” Nirgal recalled all-night arguments in Sabishii,
sometimes quite violent, among students who were basically friends. “Maybe
not.”
“But haven’t you talked it over?”
“Not in any formal way, no.”
Art looked surprised. “You should do that,” he said.
“Do what?” Nirgal asked.
“You should convene some kind of meeting of all the underground
groups, and see if you can’t agree about what you’re all trying to do. How to
settle disputes, and like that.”
Aside from a skeptical snort from Coyote, there was no response to
this. After a long time Nirgal said, “My impression is that some of these
groups are wary of Gamete, because of the First Hundred in it. No one wants to
give up any autonomy to what’s already perceived as the most powerful sanctuary.”
“But they could work on that at a meeting,” Art said. “That’s part
of what it would be for. Among other things. You all need to work together,
especially if the transnat police get more active after what they found out
from Sax.”
Sax nodded at this. The rest of them considered it in silence.
Somewhere in the consideration Art started to snore, but Nirgal was awake for
hours, thinking about it.
They approached Senzeni Na in some need. Their food supplies were
adequate if they rationed them, and the car’s water and gases were recycling so
efficiently that there was little loss there. But they were simply short of
fuel to run the car. “We need around fifty kilos of hydrogen peroxide,” Coyote
said.
He drove up to the rim of Thaumasia’s biggest canyon; and there in
the far wall was Senzeni Na, behind great sheets of glass, the arcades all full
of tall trees. The canyon floor in front of it was covered with walktubes,
small tents, the great factory apparatus of the mo hole, the mohole itself,
which was a giant black hole at the south end of the complex, and the tailings
mound, which ran up the canyon far to the north. This was reputed to be the
deepest mohole on Mars, so deep that the rock was getting a bit plastic at the
bottom, “squishing in,” as Coyote put it—eighteen kilometers deep, with the
lithosphere in the area about twenty-five.
The mohole operation was almost completely automated, and the
majority of the town’s population never went near it. And many of the robot
trucks hauling rock out of the hole used hydrogen peroxide for fuel, so the
warehouses down on the canyon floor next to the mohole would have what they
needed. And security down there dated from before the unrest, and had been
designed in part by John Boone himself, so it was woefully inadequate to
withstand Coyote’s methods, particularly since he had all of John’s old
programs in his AI.
The canyon was exceptionally long, however, and Coyote’s best way
down to the canyon floor from the rim was a climbing trail, some ten kilometers
downcanyon from the mohole. “That’s fine,” Nirgal said. “I’ll get it on foot.”
“Fifty kilos?” Coyote said.
“I’ll go with him,” said Art. “I may not be able to do mystic
levitation, but I can run.”
Coyote thought it over, nodded. “I’ll lead you down the cliff.”
So he did that, and in the timeslip Nirgal and Art took off with
empty backpacks draped over their air tanks, running along easily over the
smooth canyon floor, north to Senzeni Na. It seemed to Nirgal that it was going
to be a simple operation. They came up on the mohole complex without a problem,
the starlight now augmented by the diffuse light of the town shining out of the
glass, and reflecting off the far wall. Coyote’s program got them through a
garage lock and into the warehouse area as quickly as if they had every right
to be there, with no sign that they had tripped any alarms. But then when they
were in the warehouse itself, stuffing small hydrogen peroxide containers in
their backpacks, all the lights in the place went on at once, and emergency
doors slid shut.
Art ran immediately to the wall away from the door, and set a
charge and moved aside. The charge exploded with a loud bang, blowing a sizable
hole in the thin warehouse wall, and then the two of them were outside and
skulking between gigantic draglines to the perimeter wall. Suited figures came
racing out of the walk-tube lock from the town, and the two intruders had to
dive behind one of the draglines, a structure so big that they could stand in
the crack between individual tractor treads. Nirgal felt his heart pounding
against the metal. The suited figures went into the warehouse, and Art ran out
and set another charge; the flash of light from this one blinded Nirgal, and he
ducked through the gap in the fence and ran for it without seeing a thing, without
feeling the thirty kilograms of fuel packets bouncing on his back and crushing
the air tanks into his spine. Art was ahead of him again, badly out of control
in the Martian g but nonetheless bounding along with those great surging
strides. Nirgal almost laughed as he worked to catch up with him, hitting his
rhythm and then, as he drew abreast of him, trying to show him by example how
to use his arms properly, in a sort of swimming motion, rather than the rapid
pumping that was throwing Art off balance so often. Despite the dark and their
speed it seemed to Nirgal that Art’s arms began to slow down.
And they ran. Nirgal took the lead, and tried to pick the cleanest
route over the canyon floor, the one least littered with rocks. The starlight
seemed moje than sufficient to illuminate their way. Art kept pounding up to
his right, pressing him to hurry. It almost became a kind of race, and Nirgal
ran much faster than he would have on his own, or in any normal circumstances.
So much of it was rhythm, and breath, and the dispersal of heat from the torso
out into the skin and then the walker. It was surprising to see how well Art
could keep up with, him, without the advantage of any of the disciplines. He
was a powerful animal.
They almost ran right by Coyote, who leaped out from behind a rock
and scared them enough to knock them down like ninepins. Then they clambered up
the rocky trail he had marked on the cliff wall, and were on the rim, under the
full dome of the stars again, the bright lights of Senzeni Na like a spaceship
that had dived into the opposite cliff.
Back in the boulder car Art gasped for air, still out of breath
from the run down the canyon. “You’re going to have to—teach me that lung-gom,”
he said to Nirgal. “My Lord you run fast.”
“Well, you too. I don’t know how you do it.”
“Fear.” He shook his head, sucked at the air. “This kind of thing
is dangerous,” he complained to Coyote.
“It wasn’t my idea,” Coyote snapped. “If those bastards hadn’t
stolen my supplies, we wouldn’t have had to do it.”
“Yeah, but you do stuff kind of like this all the time, right? And
it’s dangerous. I mean, you need to be doing something other than sabotage in
the outback. Something systemic.”
It turned out that fifty kilos was the absolute minimum they
needed to get home, so they limped south with all noncritical systems shut off,
so that the interior of the car was dark, and fairly cold. It was cold outside
as well; through the lengthening nights of the early southern winter they began
to encounter frost on the ground, and snowdrifts. Salt crystals on top of the
drifts served as the seed points for ice flakes, which grew into thickets of
ice flowers. They navigated between these white crystalline fields, dimly
glowing in the starlight, until the fields merged into one great white blanket
of snow, frost, rime, and ice flowers. Slowly they drove . over it, until one
night the hydrogen peroxide ran out. “We could have got more,” Art said. “Shut
up,” Coyote replied.
They ran on battery power, which would not last long. In the dark
of the unlit car, the light cast by the white world outside was ghostly. None
of them talked, except to discuss the essentials of driving. Coyote was
confident that the distance the batteries would take them would be enough to
see them home, but they were cutting it awfully fine, and if anything failed,
if one of the ice-clogged wheels jammed in its well—they would have to try
walking, Nirgal thought. Running. But Spencer and Sax wouldn’t be able to run
far.
On the sixth night after the raid on Senzeni Na, however, around
the end of the timeslip, the frosty ground ahead became a pure white line,
which thickened on the horizon, and then came clear of it: the white cliffs of
the southern polar ice cap. “It looks like a wedding cake,” Art said, grinning.
They were almost out of battery power, to the point
that the car was slowing down. But Gamete was just a few kilometers clockwise
around the polar cap. And so just after dawn, Coyote guided the halting car
into the outlying garage in Nadia’s crater rim complex. They walked the last
stretch, crunching over new frost in the raw long-shadowed morning light, under
the great white overhang of dry ice.
Gamete gave
Nirgal the same
feeling it always did, that he was trying to fit into old clothes that were much
too small. But this time Art was there with him, and so the visit had the
interest of showing a new friend an old home. Every day Nirgal took him around,
explaining features of the place and introducing him to people. As he watched
the range of expressions plainly exposed on Art’s face, from surprise to
amazement to disbelief, the whole enterprise of Gamete began to strike Nirgal
as truly odd. The white ice dome; its winds, mists, birds; the lake; the
village, always freezing, weirdly shadowless, its white-and-blue buildings
dominated by the crescent of bamboo treehouses ... it was a strange place. And
Art found all of the issei equally amazing; he shook their hands, saying, “I’ve
seen you on the vids, very pleased to meet you.” After introductions to Vlad
and Ursula, Marina and Iwao, he muttered to Nirgal, “It’s like a wax museum.”
Nirgal took him down to meet Hiroko, and she was her usual benign,
distant self, treating Art with about the same reserved friendliness she gave
to Nirgal. Mother goddess of the world... . They were in her labs, and feeling
obscurely annoyed by her, Nirgal took Art by the ectogene tanks, and explained
what they were. Art’s eyes went perfectly round when he was surprised, and now
they were like big white-and-blue marbles. “They look like refrigerators,” he
said, and stared closely at Nirgal. “Was it lonesome?”
Nirgal shrugged, looked down at the small clear windows, like
portholes. Once he had floated in there, dreaming and kicking... . It was hard
to imagine the past, hard to believe in it. For billions of years he had not
existed, and then one day, inside this little black box ... a sudden
appearance, green in the white, white in the green.
“It’s so cold here,” Art remarked when they went back outside. He
was wearing a big borrowed fiberfill coat, with the hood over his head.
“We have to keep a water ice layer coating the dry ice, so the air
stays good. So it’s always a little under freezing, but not much. I like it
myself. It strikes me as the best temperature of all.”
“Childhood.”
“Yeah.”
They visited Sax every day, and he would croak “Hello” or
“Good-bye” in greeting, and try his best to talk. Michel was spending several
hours a day working with him. “It’s definitely aphasia,” he told them. “Vlad
and Ursula did a scan, and the damage is in the left anterior speech center.
Nonfluent aphasia, sometimes called Broca’s aphasia. He has trouble finding the
word, and sometimes he thinks he’s got it, but what comes out will be synonyms,
or antonyms, or taboo words. You should hear the way he can say Bad results.
It’s frustrating for him, but improvement from this particular injury is often
good. Slow, however. Essentially, other parts of the brain have to learn to
take over the functions of the damaged part. So—we work on it. It’s nice when
it goes well. And it could be worse, obviously.”
Sax, who had been staring at them through this, nodded
quizzically. He said, “I want to teach. To speech.”
Of all the people in Gamete to whom Nirgal introduced Art, the one
Art hit it off with best was Nadia. They were drawn to each other instantly, to
Nirgal’s surprise. But it pleased him to see it, and he watched his old teacher
fondly as she made her own kind of confession in response to Art’s question
barrage, her face looking very ancient except for her startling light brown
eyes, with the green flecks around the pupil—eyes that radiated friendly
interest and intelligence, and amusement at Art’s interrogation.
The three of them ended up spending hours together in Nirgal’s
room talking, looking down at the village, or out the other window to the lake.
Art walked around the little cylinder from window to door to window, fingering
the cuts in the glossy green wood. “Do you call it wood?” he asked, looking at
the bamboo. Nadia laughed. “I call it wood,” she said. “It’s Hiroko’s idea to
live in these things. And a good one; good insulation, incredible strength, no
carpentry but door and window installation ...”
“I guess you wish you had these bamboo in Underbill, eh?”
“The spaces we had were too small. Maybe in the arcades. Anyway
this species wasn’t developed until recently.”
She turned the interrogation on him, and asked him scores of
questions about Earth. What did they use for housing materials now? Were they
going to use fusion power commercially? Was the UN irrevocably damaged by the
war of ‘61? Were they trying to build a space elevator for Earth? How much of
the population had gotten the aging treatments? Which of the big transnational
were the most powerful? Were they fighting among themselves for preeminence?
Art answered these questions as fully as he could, and though he
shook his head at the inadequacy of his answers, Nirgal for one learned a lot
from them, and Nadia seemed to feel the same. And they both found themselves
laughing fairly often.
When Art asked Nadia questions in turn, her answers were friendly,
but varied greatly in length. Talking about her current projects she went on in
detail, happy to describe the scores of construction sites she was working on
in the southern hemisphere. But when he asked her questions about the early
years in Underbill, in that bold direct way of his, she usually just shrugged,
even if he asked about building details. “I don’t really remember it very
well,” she would say.
“Oh come on.”
“No, I’m telling the truth. It’s a problem, actually. How old are
you?”
“Fifty. Or fifty-one, I guess. I’ve lost track of the date.”
“Well, I am one hundred and twenty. Don’t look so shocked! With
the treatments it’s not so old—you’ll see! I just had the treatment again two
years ago, and I’m not exactly like a teenager, but I feel pretty good. Very
good in fact. But I think memory may be the weak link. It may be the brain just
won’t hold that much. Or maybe I just don’t try. But I’m not the only one
having the problem. Maya is even worse than me. And everyone my age complains
about it. Vlad and Ursula are getting concerned. I’m surprised they didn’t
think of this back when they developed the treatments.”
“Maybe they did and then forgot.”
Her laugh seemed to take her by surprise.
Later at dinner, after talking about her construction projects
again, Art said to her, “You really ought to try to convene a meeting of all
these underground groups.”
Maya was at their table, and she looked at Art as suspiciously as
she had in Echus Chasma. “It isn’t possible,” she declared. She looked much
better than she had when they had parted, Nirgal thought—rested, tall, rangy,
graceful, glamorous. She seemed to have shrugged off the guilt of murder as if
it were a coat she didn’t like.
“Why not?” Art asked her. “You’d be a lot better off if you could
live on the surface.”
“This is obvious: And we could move into the demimonde, if it were
just that simple. But there is a large police force on the surface and in
orbit, and the last time they saw us they were trying to kill us as quickly as
possible. And the way they treated Sax does not give me any confidence that
things have changed.”
“I’m not saying they have. But I think there are things you could
do to oppose them more effectively. Getting together, for instance, and making
a plan. Making contact with surface organizations that would help you. That
kind of thing.”
“We have such contacts,” Maya said coldly. But Nadia was nodding.
And Nirgal’s mind was racing with images of his years in Sabishii. A meeting of
the underground... .
“The Sabishiians would come for sure,” he said. “They’re already
doing stuff like this all the time. That’s what the demimonde is, in effect.”
Art said, “You should think about contacting Praxis as well. My
ex-boss William Fort would be very interested in such a meeting. And the whole
membership of Praxis is involved in innovations you would like.”
“Your ex-boss?” Maya said.
“Sure,” Art said with an easy smile. “I’m my own boss now.”
“You could say you are our prisoner,” Maya pointed out sharply.
“When you’re the prisoner of anarchists it’s the same thing,
right?”
Nadia and Nirgal laughed, but Maya scowled and turned away.
Nadia said, “I think a meeting would be a good idea. We’ve let
Coyote run the network for too long.”
“I heard that!” Coyote called from the next table.
“Don’t you like the idea?” Nadia asked him.
Coyote shrugged. “We have to do something, no doubt of that. They
know we’re down here now.”
This caused a thoughtful silence.
“I’m going north next week,” Nadia said to Art. “You can come with
me if you like—Nirgal, you too if you want. I’m going to drop in on a lot of
sanctuaries, and we can talk to them about a meeting.”
“Sure,” Art said, looking pleased. And Nirgal’s mind was still
racing as he thought of the possibilities. Being in Gamete again brought
dormant parts of his mind back alive, and he saw clearly the two worlds in one,
the white and the green, split into different dimensions, folded through each
other—like the underground and the surface world, joined clumsily in the
demimonde. A world out of focus... .
So the next week Art and Nirgal joined Nadia, and drove north.
Because of Sax’s arrest Nadia did not want to risk staying in any of the open
towns along their way, and she did not even seem to trust the other hidden
sanctuaries; she was one of the most conservative of the old ones in terms of
secrecy. Over the years of hiding she, like Coyote, had built a whole system of
small shelters of her own, and now they drove from one to the next, spending
the short days sleeping and waiting in relative comfort. They could not drive
during the winter days because the fog hood had been lessening in thickness and
area for several years now, and this year was often no more than a light mist,
or patchy low clouds, swirling over the rough lumpy land. Once they were
descending a rough drop in a foggy morning, after a 10 A.M. dawn, and Nadia was
explaining that Ann had identified it as the remnant qf an earlier Chasma
Australe—”She says there are literally scores of fossil Chasma Aus-trales down
here, cut at different angles during earlier points in the cycle of
precession”—and the fog swept away, and they could suddenly see for many
kilometers, all the way to the shaggy ice walls at the mouth of the present
Chasma Australe, gleaming in the distance. They were exposed—then the clouds
closed over them again, very swiftly, enveloping them in murky flowing white,
as if they were traveling in a snowstorm in which the snowflakes were so fine
that they defied gravity, and blew about in suspension forever.
Nadia hated that kind of exposure, no matter how brief, and so she
continued to hide through the days. They looked out the little windows of her
shelters onto swirling clouds, which sometimes caught the light in sparkling
arrays, so bright it hurt to look at them. Sunbeams cut through gaps between
clouds, striking the long ridges and scarps of the blindingly white land. Once
they even experienced a full whiteout, when all shadows disappeared, and
everything else: a pure white world, in which it was impossible to make out
even the horizon.
On other days icebows threw curves of pale pastel color against
the intense whites, and once when the sun broke through, low over the land, it
was surrounded by a ring of light as bright as it was. The landscape blazed
white under this display, not uniformly but in patches, all shifting rapidly in
the ceaseless winds. Art laughed to see it, and he never stopped exclaiming
over the ice flowers, now as large as shrubs, and studded with spikes and lacy
fans, and growing into each other at their edges, scr that in many areas the
ground itself completely disappeared, and they drove across a crackling surface
of shard blooms, crushing hundreds of them under their wheels. The long dark
nights were almost a comfort after days like that.
Days passed, one like the next. Nirgal found it very comfortable
to travel with Art and Nadia; they were both even-tempered, calm, funny; Art
was 51 and Nadia 120, and Nirgal only 12, which was around 25 Terran years; but
despite the discrepancies in age they interacted as equals. Nirgal could test
his ideas on them freely, and they never laughed or scoffed, even when they saw
problems and pointed them out. And in fact their ideas meshed fairly well, for
the most part. They were, in Martian political terms, moderate green
assimilationists—Booneans, Nadia called it. And they had similar temperaments,
which was something that Nirgal had never felt before about anyone, not for the
rest of his family in Gamete or his friends in Sabishii.
As they talked, night after night, they dropped in briefly on some
of the big sanctuaries of the south, introducing Art to the people there, and
broaching the idea of a meeting or congress. They took him to Bogdanov
Vishniac, and amazed him with the giant complex built deep into the mohole, so
much bigger than any other sanctuary. Art’s pop-eyed face was as eloquent as a
speech, and brought back to Nirgal most acutely the feeling he had had as a
child when he first visited it with Coyote.
The Bogdanovists were clearly interested in a meeting, but
Mik-hail Yangel, one of the only one of Arkady’s associates to survive ‘61,
asked Art what the long-range purpose of such a meeting would be.
“To retake the surface.”
“I see!” Mikhail’s eyes were wide. “Well, I’m sure you would have
our support for that! People have been afraid to even bring that subject up.”
“Very good,” Nadia told Art as they drove on north. “If the
Bogdanovists support a meeting, then it will probably happen. Most of the
hidden sanctuaries are either Bogdanovist or else heavily influenced by them.”
From Vishniac they visited the sanctuaries around Holmes Crater,
known as the “industrial heartland” of the underground. These colonies were
also mostly Bogdanovist, with any number of small social variations among them,
influenced by early Martian social philosophers such as the prisoner
Schnelling, or Hiroko, or Marina, or John Boone. The Francophone Utopians in
Prometheus, on the other hand, had structured their settlement on ideas taken
from sources ranging from Rousseau and Fourier to Foucault and Nemy, subtleties
Nirgal had not been aware of when he had first visited. Currently they were
being strongly influenced by the Polynesians who had recently arrived on Mars,
and their big warm chambers sported palm trees and shallow pools, so that Art
said it seemed more like Tahiti than Paris.
In Prometheus they were joined by Jackie Boone herself, who had
been left there by friends traveling through. She wanted to go directly on to
Gamete, but she was willing to travel with Nadia rather than wait longer, and
Nadia was willing to take her. So when they took off again, they had Jackie
with them.
The easy camaraderie of the first part of their journey
disappeared. Jackie and Nirgal had parted in Sabishii with their relationship
in its usual unsettled undefined state, and Nirgal was displeased to have the
growth of his new friendships interrupted. Art was obviously agog at her
physical presence—she was actually taller than he was, and heavier than Nirgal,
and Art watched her in a way he thought surreptitious, but which the others
were all aware of, including Jackie of course. It made Nadia roll her eyes, and
she and Jackie quarreled over little things like sisters. Once after they did,
and Jackie and Nadia were elsewhere in one of Na-dia’s shelters, Art whispered
to Nirgal, “She’s just like Maya! Doesn’t she remind you? The voice, the
mannerisms—”
Nirgal laughed. “Tell her that and she’ll kill you.”
“Ah,” Art said. He regarded Nirgal with a sidelong glance, “So you
two are still... ?”
Nirgal shrugged. In a way it was interesting; he had told Art
enough about his relationship with Jackie that the older man knew there was
something fundamental between the two. Now Jackie was almost certain to come on
to Art, to add him to her minions as she routinely did with men she liked or
thought important. At this point she had not figured out how important Art was,
but when she did she would act in her usual way, and then what would Art do?
So their voyage was no longer the same, Jackie imparting her usual
spin to things. She argued with Nirgal and Nadia; she casually rubbed up to
Art, charming him at the same time she judged him, just as an automatic part of
acquaintanceship. She would pull off her shirt to sponge down in Nadia’s
shelters, or put a hand to his arm when asking questions about Terra—then at
other times ignore him completely, veering off into worlds of her own. It was
like living with a big cat in the rover, a panther that might purr in your lap
or bat you across the compartment, but either way stalk about in a perfect
nervous grace.
Ah, but that was Jackie. And there was her laugh, ringing through
the car at things Art or Nadia said; and her beauty; and her intense enthusiasm
for discussing the Martian situation, so that when she discovered what they
were doing on this trip, she immediately fell into it. Life was heightened with
her around, no doubt about it. And Art, though he goggled at her when she
bathed, had what Nirgal suspected was a sly edge to his smile as he enjoyed her
mesmerizing attentions; and once Nirgal caught him giving a look to Nadia that
was positively amused. So though he liked her well enough, and liked looking at
her, he did not seem hopelessly smitten. This was possibly a matter of his
friendship with Nirgal; Nirgal couldn’t be sure, but he liked the idea, which
had not been a common one in either Zygote or Sabishii.
For her part, Jackie seemed inclined to dismiss Art as a factor in
the organizing of a general meeting, as if she would take it over herself. But
then they visited a small neomarxist sanctuary in the Mountains of Mitchel
(which were no more mountainous than the rest of the southern highlands, the
name being an artifact of the telescope era) and these neomarxists proved to be
in communication with the city of Bologna in Italy, and with the Indian
province of Kerala—and with Praxis offices in both these places. So they had a
lot to talk about with Art, and they obviously enjoyed it and at the end of the
visit one of them said to him, “It’s wonderful what you’re doing, you’re just
like John Boone.”
Jackie jerked her head around to stare at Art, who was sheepishly
shaking his head. “No he’s not,” she said automatically.
But after that she treated him more seriously. Nirgal could only
laugh. Any mention of the name John Boone was like a magic spell to Jackie.
When she and Nadia discussed John’s theories, he could understand a little why
she felt that way; much of what Boone had wanted for Mars made excellent sense,
and it seemed to him that Sabishii in particular was a kind of Boonean space.
For Jackie, however, it went beyond a rational response—it had to do with Kasei
and Esther, and Hiroko, even Peter—with some complex of feelings that touched
her on a level that nothing else did.
They continued north, into lands even more violently disarranged
than those they had left behind. This was volcanic country, where the harsh
sublimity of the southern highland was augmented by the ancient craggy peaks of
Australis Tholus and Amphitrites Patera. The two volcanoes bracketed a region
of lava flows, where the blackish rock of the land was frozen in weird lumps,
waves, and rivers. Once these flows had poured over the surface in streams of
white-hot fluid, and even now, hard and black and shattered by the ages, and
covered with dust and ice flowers, the liquid origins were completely evident.
The most prominent of these lava remnants were long low ridges,
like dragon tails now fossilized to solid black rock. These ridges snaked
across the land for many kilometers, often disappearing over the horizon in
both directions, forcing the travelers to make long detours. These dorsa were
ancient lava channels; the rock they were made of had proved harder than the
countryside they had originally flowed over, and in the eons since, the
countryside had been worn away, leaving the black mounds lying on the surface
somewhat like the fallen elevator cable only very much larger.
One of the dorsa, in the Dorsa Brevia region, had recently been
turned into a hidden sanctuary. So Nadia drove their rover on a tortuous path
through outlying lava ridges, and then into a capacious garage in the side of
the largest black mound they had seen. They got out of their car, and were
greeted by a small group of friendly strangers, several of whom Jackie had met
before. There was no indication in the garage that the chamber beyond it was
going to be any different from any other they had visited, and so when they
walked into a big cylindrical lock and out the other door, it was a great shock
to find before them an open space that clearly occupied the whole interior of
the ridge. The ridge was hollow; the empty space inside it was roughly
cylindrical, a tube perhaps two hundred meters floor to ceiling, three hundred
meters wall to wall, and extending for as far as they could see in both
directions. Art’s mouth was like a cross-section model of the tunnel: “Wow!” he
kept exclaiming. “Wow, look at this! Wow!”
Quite a few dorsa were hollow, their hosts told them. Lava
tunnels. There were many of them on Terra, but the usual two-magnitude scale
jump obtained, and this tube was in fact a hundred times bigger than the
biggest Terran tube. When the lava streams had flowed, a young woman named
Ariadne explained to Art, they had cooled and hardened at their edges, and then
on their surfaces—after which hot lava had continued to run through the sleeve,
until the flows had stopped, and the remaining lava had emptied out onto some
lake of fire, leaving behind cylindrical caves that were sometimes fifty kilometers
long.
The floor of this particular tunnel was approximately flat, and
now it was covered by rooftops and grassy parks, ponds, and hundreds of young
trees, planted in groves of mixed bamboo and pine. Long cracks in the roof of
the tunnel had served as the basis for filtered skylights, made of layered
materials which gave off the same visual and thermal signals as the rest of the
ridge, but let into the tunnel long curtains of sunny brown air, so that even
the dimmest sections of the tunnel were only as dim as a cloudy day.
Dorsa Brevia’s tunnel was forty kilometers long, Ariadne informed
them as they walked down a staircase, although there were places where the roof
had caved in, or plugs of lava almost filled the cavity. “We haven’t closed off
the whole thing, of course. It’s more than we need, and more than we could keep
warm and pumped anyway. But we’ve closed off about twelve kilometers now, in
kilometer-long segments, with tent-fabric bulkheads between them.”
“Wow,” Art said again. Nirgal felt just as impressed, and Nadia
was clearly delighted. Even Vishniac was nothing compared to this.
Jackie was already near the bottom of the long staircase that led
from the garage lock to a park below them. As they followed her Art said,
“Every colony you’ve taken me to I’ve figured has to be the biggest one, and
I’m always wrong. Why don’t you just tell me now if the next one is going to be
like all of Hellas Basin or something.”
Nadia laughed. “This is the biggest one I know of. Bigger!”
“So why do you all stay in Gamete, when it’s so cold and small and
dim? Couldn’t the people from all the sanctuaries fit into this space?”
“We don’t want to all be in one place,” she replied. “As for this
one, it wasn’t even here a few years ago.”
Down on the floor of the tunnel they appeared to be in a forest,
under a black stone sky rent by long jagged bright cracks. The four travelers
followed a group of their hosts to a complex of buildings with thin wooden
walls and steep roofs upturned at the corners. In one of these they were
introduced to a group of elderly women and men in colorful baggy clothing, and
invited to share a meal.
As they ate they learned more about the sanctuary, mostly from
Ariadne, who sat beside them. It had been built and occupied by the descendants
of people who had come to Mars and joined the disappeared in the 2050s, leaving
the cities and occupying small refuges in this region, aided in their efforts
by the Sabishiians. They had been heavily influenced by Hiroko’s areophany, and
their society was described by some as a matriarchy. They had studied some
ancient matriarchal cultures, and based some of their customs on the ancient
Minoan civilization and the Hopi of North America. Thus they worshipped a
goddess who represented life on Mars, something like a personification of
Hiroko’s viriditas, or a deification of Hiroko herself. And in daily life the
women owned the households, and would pass them on to their youngest daughters:
ultimogeniture, Ariadne called it, a custom of the Hopi. And as with the Hopi,
men moved into their wives’ houses on marriage.
“Do the men like it?” Art asked curiously.
Ariadne laughed at his expression. “There’s nothing like happy
women for making happy men, that’s what we say.” And she gave Art a look that
seemed to pull him right over the bench toward her.
“Makes sense to me,” Art said.
“We all share the work—extending the tunnel segments, farming,
raising the children, whatever needs doing. Everybody tries to get good at more
than just their specialty, which is a custom that comes from the First Hundred,
I think, and the Sabishiians.”
Art nodded. “And how many of you are there?”
“About four thousand now.”
Art whistled his surprise.
That afternoon they were taken down the tunnel through several
kilometers of transformed segments, many of them forested, and all containing a
large stream that ran down the floor of the tunnel, widening in some segments
to form big ponds. When Ariadne brought them back up to the first chamber,
called Zakros, almost a thousand people showed up for an open-air meal in the
largest park. Nirgal and Art wandered around talking to people, enjoying a
plain meal of bread and salad and broiled fish. The people there appeared
receptive to the idea of a congress of the underground. They had tried
something like it years before, but had not gotten many takers at the time—had
lists of the sanctuaries in their region—and one of the older women said, with
authority, that they would be happy to host it, as they had a space large
enough to handle a great number of guests.
“Oh, that would be marvelous,” Art said, glancing at Ariadne.
Later Nadia agreed. “It will help a lot,” she said. “A lot of
people will be resistant to the idea of a meeting, because they suspect the
First Hundred of trying to take charge of the underground. But if it’s held
here, and the Bogdanovists are behind it...”
When Jackie came over and heard of the offer, she gave Art a hug.
“Oh, it’s going to happen! And it’s just what John Boone would have done. It’s
like the meeting he called on Olympus Mons.”
They left Dorsa
Brevia and headed
north again, on the east side of the Hellas Basin. During the nights of this
drive Jackie often brought out John Boone’s AT, Pauline, which she had studied
and cataloged. She played back selections from his thoughts about an
independent state, thoughts disorganized and rambling, the reflections of a man
with more enthusiasm (and omegendorph) than analytic ability; but sometimes he
would get on a roll, and ad-lib in the manner of the famous speeches, and that
could be fascinating. He had had a knack for free association which made his
ideas sound like logical progression even when they weren’t.
“See how often he talks about the Swiss,” Jackie said. She sounded
like John, Nirgal noticed suddenly. She had been working with Pauline
extensively for a long time, and her manner had been affected by it. John’s
voice, Maya’s manner; in such ways they carried the past with them. “We have to
make sure some Swiss are at the congress.”
“We’ve got Jurgen and the group at Overhangs,” Nadia said.
“But they’re not really so Swiss, are they?”
“You’ll have to ask them,” Nadia said. “But if you mean Swiss
officials, there are a lot of them in Burroughs, and they’ve been helping us
there, without ever even talking to us about it. About fifty of us have Swiss
passports now. They’re a big part of the demimonde.”
“As is Praxis,” Art put in.
“Yes yes. Anyway, we’ll talk to the group at Overhangs. They’ll
have contacts with the surface Swiss, I’m sure.”
Northeast of the volcano Hadriaca Patera, they visited a town that
had been founded by Sufis. The original structure was built into the side of a
canyon cliff, in a kind of high-tech Mesa Verde— a thin line of buildings,
inserted into the break point where the cliffs imposing overhang began to slope
back out and down to the canyon floor. Steep staircases in walktubes ran down
the lower slope to a small concrete garage, and around the garage had sprung up
a number of blister tents and greenhouses. These tents were occupied by people
who wished to study with the Sufis. Some came from the sanctuaries, some from
the cities of the north; many were natives, but quite a few were newcomers from
Earth. Together they hoped to roof the entire canyon, using materials developed
for the new cable to support an immense spread of tent fabric. Nadia was
immediately drawn into discussions of the construction problems such a project
would encounter, which she happily told them would be various and severe.
Ironically, the thickening atmosphere made all dome projects more difficult,
because the domes could not be floated by the air pressures underneath them to
the extent they once had been; and though the tensile and load-bearing
strengths of the new carbon configurations were more than they would need,
anchoring points that would hold such weights as they had in mind would be
almost impossible to find. But the local engineers were confident that lighter
tent fabrics and new anchoring techniques might serve, and the walls of the
canyon, they said, were solid. They were in the very upper reach of Reull
Vallis, and ancient sapping had cut back into very hard material. Good
anchoring points should be everywhere.
No attempt was being made to hide any of this activity from
satellite observation. The Sufis’ circular mesa dwelling in Margar-itifer, and
their main settlement in the south, Rumi, were similarly unconcealed. Yet they
had never been harassed in any way by anybody, or even contacted by the
Transitional Authority. This made one of their leaders, a small black man named
Dhu el-Nun, think the fears of the underground were exaggerated. Nadia politely
disagreed, and when Nirgal pressed her on the point, curious about it, she
looked at him steadily. “They hunt the First Hundred.”
He thought it over, watching the Sufis lead the way up the
walktube staircases to their cliff dwelling. They had arrived well before dawn,
and Dhu had invited everyone up to the cliff for a brunch to welcome the
visitors. So they followed the Sufis up to the dwelling, and sat at a great
long table, in a long room with its outer wall a continuous great window,
overlooking the canyon. The Sufis dressed in white, while the people from the
tents in the canyon wore ordinary jumpers, most of them rust-colored. People
poured each other’s water, and talked as they ate. “You are on your tariqa(,”
Dhu el-Nun said to Nirgal. This was one’s spiritual path, he explained, one’s
road to reality. Nirgal nodded, struck by the aptness of the description—it was
just how his life had always felt to him. “You must feel lucky,” Dhu said. “You
must pay attention.”
After a meal of bread and strawberries and yogurt, and then
mud-thick coffee, the tables and chairs were cleared, and the Sufis danced a
sema or whirling dance, spinning and chanting to the music of a harpist and
several drummers, and the chanting of the canyon dwellers. As the dancers
passed their guests, they placed their palms very briefly to the guests’
cheeks, their touches as light as the brush of a wing. Nirgal glanced at Art,
expecting him to be as goggle-eyed as he usually was at the various phenomena
of Martian life, but in fact he was smiling in a knowing way, and tapping his
forefinger and thumb together in time to the beat, and chanting with the rest.
And at the end of the dance he stepped out and recited something in a foreign
language, which caused the Sufis to smile and, when he was done, to applaud
loudly.
“Some of my professors in Tehran were Sufis,” he explained to
Nirgal and Nadia and Jackie. “They were a big part of what people call the
Persian Renaissance.”
“And what did you recite?” Nirgal asked.
“It’s a Farsi poem by Jalaluddin Rumi, the master of the whirling
dervishes. I never learned the English version very well—
‘I died from a mineral and plant became,
Died from the plant, took a sentient frame;
Died from the beast, donned a human dress—
When by my dying did I ever grow less ...’
“Ah, I can’t remember the rest. But some of those Sufis were very
good engineers.”
“They’d better be here too,” Nadia said, glancing at the people
she had been talking to about doming the canyon.
In any case the Sufis here proved to be very enthusiastic about
the idea of an underground congress. As they pointed out, theirs was a
syncretic religion, which had taken some of its elements not only from the
various types and nationalities of Islam, but also from the older religions of
Asia that Islam had encountered, and also newer ones such as Baha’i. Something
similarly flexible was going to be needed here, they said. Meanwhile, their
concept of the gift had already been influential throughout the underground,
and some of their theoreticians were working with Vlad and Marina on the
specifics of eco-economics. So as the morning passed and they waited for the
late winter sunrise, standing at the great window and looking across the dark
canyon to the east, they were quick to make very practical suggestions about
the meeting. “You should go talk to the Bedouin and the other Arabs as quickly
as possible,” Dhu told them. “They won’t like being late in the list of those
consulted.”
Then the eastern sky lightened, very slowly, from dark plum to
lavender. The opposite cliff was lower than the one they were on, and they
could see over the dark plateau to the east for a few kilometers, to a low
range of hills that formed the horizon. The Sufis pointed out the cleft in the
hills where the sun would rise, and some began to chant again. “There is a
group of Sufis in Elysium,” Dhu told them, “who are exploring backwards to our
roots in Mithraism and Zoroastrianism. Some say there are Mithraists on Mars
now, worshipping the sun, Ahura Mazda. They consider the soletta to be
religious art, like a stained glass window in a cathedral.”
When the sky was an intense clear pink the Sufis gathered around
their four guests and gently pushed them into a pattern against the windows:
Nirgal next to Jackie, Nadia and Art behind them. “Today you are our stained
glass,” Dhu said quietly. Hands lifted Nirgal’s forearm until his hand was
touching Jackie’s, and he took it. They exchanged a quick glance and then
stared forward to the hills on the horizon. Art and Nadia were likewise holding
hands, and their outside hands were placed on Nirgal’s and Jackie’s shoulders.
The chanting around them got louder, the chorus of voices intoning words in
Farsi, the long and liquid vowels stretching out for minutes on end. And then
the sun cracked the horizon and the fountain of light exploded over the land,
pouring in the wide window and over them so that they had to squint, and their
eyes watered. Between the soletta and the thickening atmosphere the sun was
visibly larger than it had been in the past, bronze and oblate and shimmering
up through the horizontal slicing of distant inversion layers. Jackie squeezed
Nirgal’s hand hard, and on an impulse he looked behind them; there on the white
wall all their shadows made a kind of linked tapestry, black on white, and in
the intensity of the light, the white nearest their shadows was the brightest
white of all, tinged just barely by the colors of the rainbow glory, embracing
them all.
They took the Sufis’ advice when they left, and headed for the
Lyell mohole, one of the four 70° south latitude moholes. In this region the
Bedouin from western Egypt had located a number of caravanserai, and Nadia was
acquainted with one of their leaders. So they decided to try and find him.
As they drove Nirgal thought hard about the Sufis, and what their
influential presence said about the underground and the demimonde. People had
left the surface world for many different reasons, and that was important to
remember. All of them had thrown everything away, and risked their lives, but
they had done so intent on very different goals. Some hoped to establish
radically new cultures, as in Zygote, or Dorsa Brevia, or in the Bogdanovist
sanctuaries. Others, like the Sufis, wanted to hold on to ancient cultures they
felt were under assault in the Terran global order. Now all these parts of the
resistance were scattered in the southern highlands, mixed but still separate.
There was no obvious reason why they should all want to become one single
thing. Many of them had been trying specifically to get away from dominant
powers—transnational, the West, America, capitalism—all the totalizing systems
of power. A central system was just what they had gone to great lengths to get
away from. That did not bode well for Art’s plan, and when Nirgal expressed
this worry, Nadia agreed. “You are American, this is trouble for us.” Which
made Art go cross-eyed. But then Nadia added, “Well, America also stands for
the melting pot. The idea of the melting pot. It was the place where people
could come from anywhere and be a part of it. Such was the theory. There are
lessons there for us.”
Jackie said, “What Boone finally concluded was that it wasn’t
possible to invent a Martian culture from scratch. He said it should be a mix
of the best of everyone that came here. That’s the difference between Booneans
and Bogdanovists.”
“Yes,” Nadia said, frowning, “but I think they were both wrong. I
don’t think we can invent it from scratch, and I don’t think there will be a
mix. At least not for a very long time. In the meantime, it will be a matter of
a lot of different cultures coexisting, I think. But whether such a thing is
possible ...” She shrugged.
The problems they were going to face in any congress were made
flesh during their visit to the Bedouin caravanserai. These Bedouin were mining
the region of the far South between Dana Crater, Lyell Crater, the Sisyphi
Cavi, and Dorsa Argentea. They were traveling about in mobile mining rigs, in
the style honed on the Great Escarpment, now traditional—harvesting surface
deposits, and then moving on. The caravanserai was just a small tent, left in
place like an oasis, for people to use in emergencies, or when they wanted to
stretch out a little.
Nobody could have made more of a contrast with the ethereal Sufis
than the Bedouin; these reserved unsentimental Arabs dressed in modern jumpers,
and seemed to be mostly male. When the travelers arrived there was a mining
caravan about to leave, and when they heard what the travelers wanted to
discuss, they frowned and left anyway. “More Booneism. We don’t want anything
to do with it.”
The travelers ate a meal with a group of men in the largest rover
left in the caravanserai, with women appearing from a tube from the car next
door to serve the dishes. Jackie glowered at this, with a dark expression that
was straight off Maya’s face. When one of the younger Arab men sitting beside
her tried to strike up a conversation, he found it hard going indeed. Nirgal suppressed
a smile at this, and attended to Nadia and an old Bedu named Zeyk, the leader
of this group, and the one Nadia had known from before. “Ah, the Sufis,” he
said genially. “No one bothers them because they are clearly harmless. Like
birds.”
Later in the meal Jackie warmed to the young Arab, of course, as
he was a strikingly handsome man, with long dark eyelashes framing liquid brown
eyes, an aquiline nose, full red lips, a sharp jaw, and an easy confident
manner that appeared unintimidated by Jackie’s own beauty, which was similar in
some ways to his own. His name was Antar, and he came from an important Bedu
family. Art, sitting across the low table from them, looked shocked at this
developing friendship, but after their years in Sabishii Nirgal had seen it
coming even before Jackie had, and in a strange way it was almost a pleasure to
watch her at work. Quite a sight, in fact— she the proud daughter of the
greatest matriarchy since Atlantis, Antar the proud heir of the most extreme
patriarchy on Mars, a young man with a grace and ease of manner so pure it was
as if he were king of the world.
After the meal the two of them disappeared. Nirgal settled back
with scarcely a twinge, and talked with Nadia and Art and Zeyk, and Zeyk’s
wife, Nazik, who came out to join them. Zeyk and Nazik were Mars old-timers,
who had met John Boone, and been friends of Frank Chalmers. Contrary to the
Sufis’ prediction, they were very friendly to the idea of a congress, and they
agreed that Dorsa Brevia would be a good place to hold it.
“What we need is equality without conformity,” Zeyk said at one
point, squinting seriously as he chose his words. This was close enough to what
Nadia had been saying on the drive there that it caught Nirgal’s attention even
more than it otherwise would have. “This is not an easy thing to establish, but
clearly we have to try, to avoid fighting. I’ll spread the word through the
Arab community. Or at least the Bedu. I must say, there are Arabs in the north
who are very much involved with the transnational, with Amexx especially. All
the African Arab countries are falling into Amexx, one after the next. A very
odd pairing. But money ...” He rubbed his fingers together. “You know. Anyway,
we will contact our friends. And the Sufis will help us. They are becoming the
mullahs down here, and the mullahs don’t like it, but I do.”
Other developments worried him. “Armscor has taken on the Black
Sea Group, and that’s a very bad combination—old Afrikaa-ner leadership, and
security from all the member states, most of them police states—Ukraine,
Georgia, Moldova, Azerbaijan, Armenia, Bulgaria, Turkey, Romania.” He ticked
them off on his fingers, wrinkling his nose. “Think about those histories for a
while! And they have been building bases on the Great Escarpment, a band around
Mars, in effect. And they’re in tight with the Transitional Authority.” He
shook his head. “They will crush us if they can.
Nadia nodded her agreement, and Art, looking surprised at this
assessment, pumped Zeyk with a hundred questions. “But you don’t hide,” he
noted at one point.
“We have sanctuaries if we need them,” Zeyk said. “And we are
ready to fight.”
“Do you think it will come to that?” Art asked.
“I am sure of it.”
Much later, after several more tiny cups of mudlike coffee, Zeyk and
Nazik and Nadia talked to each other about Frank Chalmers, all three of them
smiling peculiar fond smiles. Nirgal and Art listened, but it was hard to get a
sense of that man, dead long before Nirgal had been born. In fact it was a
shocking reminder of just how old the issei were, that they had known such a
figure from the videotapes. Finally Art blurted out, “But what was he like!”
The three old ones thought it over.
Slowly Zeyk said, “He was an angry man. He listened to Arabs,
though, and respected us. He lived with us for a time and learned our language,
and truthfully there are few Americans who have ever done that. And so we loved
him. But he was no very easy man to know. And he was angry. I don’t know why.
Something in his years on Earth, I suppose. He never spoke of them. In fact he
never spoke about himself at all. But there was a gyroscope in him, spinning
like a pulsar. And he had black moods. Very black. We sent him out in scouting
rovers, to see if he could help himself. It didn’t always work. He would rip us
from time to time, even though he was our guest.” Zeyk smiled, remembering.
“Once he called us all slaveowners, right to our faces over coffee.”
“Slaveowners?”
Zeyk waved a hand. “He was angry.”
“He saved us, there at the end,” Nadia told Zeyk, stirring from
deep in her own thoughts. “In sixty-one.” She told them of a long drive down
Valles Marineris, accomplished at the very same time that the Compton Aquifer
outbreak was flooding the great canyon; and how when they were almost clear of
it, the flood had caught Frank and swept him away. “He was out getting the car
off a rock, and if he hadn’t acted so quickly, the whole car would have gone.”
“Ah,” said Zeyk. “A happy death.”
“I don’t think he thought so.”
The issei all laughed, briefly, then reached together for their
empty cups, and made a small toast to their late friend. “I miss him,” Nadia
said as she put her cup down. “I never thought I would say that.”
She went silent, and watching her Nirgal felt the night cosseting
them, hiding them. He had never heard her speak of Frank Chal-mers. A lot of
her friends had died in the revolt. And her partner too, Bogdanov, whom so many
people still followed.
“Angry to the last,” Zeyk said. “For Frank, a happy death.”
From Lyell they continued counterclockwise around the South Pole,
stopping at sanctuaries or tent towns, and exchanging news and goods.
Christianopolis was the largest tent town in the region, center of trade for
all the smaller settlements south of Argyre. The sanctuaries in the area were
mostly occupied by Reds. Nadia asked all the Reds they met to convey news of
the congress to Ann Clay-borne. “We’re supposed to have a phone link, but she’s
not answering me.” A lot of the Reds clearly thought a meeting was a bad idea,
or at least a waste of time. South of Schmidt Crater they stopped at a
settlement of Bologna communists who lived in a hollowed-out hill, lost in one
of the wildest zones of the southern highlands, a region very hard to travel in
because of the many wandering scarps and dikes, which rovers could not
negotiate. The Bolognese gave them a map marking some tunnels and elevators
they had installed in the area, to allow passage through dikes, and up or down
scarps. “If we didn’t have them our trips would be nothing but detours.”
Located next to one of their hidden dike tunnels was a small
colony of Polynesians, living in a short lava tunnel, which they had floored
with water and three islands. The dike was piled high with ice and snow on its
southern flank, but the Polynesians, most of whom were from the island of
Vanuatu, kept the interior of their refuge at homey temperatures, and Nirgal
found the air so hot and humid that it was hard to breathe, even when just
sitting on a sand beach, between a black lake and a line of tilting palm trees.
Clearly, he thought as he looked around, the Polynesians could be counted among
those trying to build a culture incorporating some aspects of their archaic
ancestors. They also proved to be scholars of primitive government everywhere
in Earth’s history, and they were excited at the idea of sharing what they had
learned in these studies at the congress, so it was no problem getting them to
agree to come.
To celebrate the idea of the congress they had gathered for a
feast on the beach. Art, seated between Jackie and a Polynesian beauty named
Tanna, beamed blissfully as he sipped from a half coconut shell filled with
kava. Nirgal lay stretched out on the sand before them, listening as Jackie and
Tanna talked animatedly about the indigenous movement, as Tanna called it. This
was not any simple back-to-the-past nostalgia, she -said, but rather an attempt
to invent new cultures, which incorporated aspects of early civilizations into
high-tech Martian forms. “The underground itself is a kind of Polynesia,” Tanna
said. “Little islands in a great stone ocean, some on the maps, some not. And
someday it will be a real ocean, and we’ll be out on the islands, flourishing
under the sky.”
“I’ll drink to that,” Art said, and did. Clearly one part of the
archaic Polynesian culture that Art hoped they were incorporating was their
renowned sexual friendliness. But Jackie was mischievously complicating things
by leaning on Art’s arm, either to tease him or to compete with Tanna. Art was
looking happy but concerned; he had drunk his cup of the noxious kava fairly
quickly, and between that and the women, appeared lost in a blissful confusion.
Nirgal nearly laughed out loud. It seemed possible that some of the other young
women at the feast might also be interested in sharing the archaic wisdom,
judging by their glances his way. On the other hand Jackie might leave off
teasing Art. It did not matter; it was going to be a long night, and’New
Vanuatu’s little tunnel ocean was kept as warm as the old Zygote baths. Nadia
was already out there, swimming in the shallows with some men a quarter her
age. Nirgal stood and pulled off his clothes, walked out into the water.
It was getting to be late enough in the winter that even at 80°
latitude the sun rose for an hour or two around noon, and during these brief
intervals the shifting fogs glowed in tones pastel or metallic—on some days
violet and rose and pink, on others copper and bronze and gold. And in all
cases the delicate shades of color were captured and reflected by the frost on the
ground, so that it looked sometimes as if they traversed a world made entirely
of jewels, of amethysts, rubies, sapphires.
On other days the wind would roar, throwing a weight of frost that
coated the rover, and gave the world a flowing, underwater look. In the brief
hours of sunlight they worked at clearing the rover’s wheels, the sun in the
fog like a patch of yellow lichen.
Once, after one of these windstorms had cleared, the fog hood was
gone as well, and the land to every horizon was a spectacular complexity of ice
flowers. And over the northern horizon of this rumpled diamond field stood a
tall dark cloud, pouring up into the sky from some source that appeared to be
not far over the horizon.
They stopped and dug out one of Nadia’s little shelters. Nirgal
stared out at the dark cloud and looked at the map. “I think it might be the
Rayleigh mohole,” he said. “Coyote started up the robot excavators in that one,
during that first trip I took with him. I wonder if something’s come of it.”
“I’ve got a little scout rover stashed in the garage here,” Nadia
said. “You can take that over and have a look if you want. I’d go too but I
need to get back to Gamete. I’m supposed to meet Ann there day after tomorrow.
Apparently she’s heard about the congress, and wants to ask me some questions.”
Art expressed an interest in meeting Ann Clayborne; he had been
impressed by a video about her he had seen on the flight to Mars. “It would be
like meeting Jeremiah.”
Jackie said to Nirgal, “I’ll come with you.”
So they agreed to meet in Gamete, and Art and Nadia headed there
directly in the big rover, while Nirgal took off with Jackie in Nadia’s scout
car. The tall cloud still stood over the icescape ahead of them, a dense pillar
of dark gray lobes, torn flat in the stratosphere, in different directions at
different times. As they got closer, it seemed more and more certain that the
cloud was pouring up out of the silent planet. And then as they rolled to the
edge of one low scarp, they saw that the land in the distance was clear of ice,
the ground as rocky as it would be in high summer, but blacker, a nearly pure
black rock that was smoking from long orange fissures in its bulbous, pillowy
surface. And just beyond the horizon, which here was six or seven kilometers
off, the dark cloud was roiling up, like a mohole thermal cloud gone nova, the
hot gaseous smoke exploding outward and then tumbling up hastily.
Jackie drove their car to the top of the highest hill in the
region. From there they could see all the way to the source of the cloud, and
it was just as Nirgal had guessed the moment he had seen it: the Rayleigh
mohole was now a low hill, black except for its pattern of angry orange cracks.
The cloud poured out of a hole in this hill, the smoke dark and dense and
roiling. A tongue of rough black rock stretched downhill to the south, in their
direction and then off to their right.
As they sat in the car, silently watching, a big part of the low
black hill covering the mohole tipped over and broke apart, and liquid orange
rock ran quickly between the black chunks, sparking and splashing yellow. The
intense yellow quickly turned orange, and then darkened further.
After that nothing moved but the column of smoke. Over the
ventilator and engine hums they could hear a rumbling basso continue,
punctuated by booms that were timed to sudden explosions of smoke from the
vent. The car trembled slightly on its shock absorbers.
They stayed on the hill watching, Nirgal rapt, Jackie excited and
talkative, commenting at length, then going silent as chunks of lava broke away
from the hill, releasing more spills of melted rock. When they looked through
the car’s IR viewer the hill was a brilliant emerald with blazing white cracks
in it, and the tongue of lava licking the plain was bright green. It took about
an hour for orange rock to turn black in visible light, but through the IR the
emerald went dark green in about ten minutes. Green pouring up into the world,
with the white bursting through it.
They ate a meal, and as they cleaned their plates Jackie moved
Nirgal around the cramped kitchen with her hands, friendly in the way she had
been in New Vanuatu, her eyes bright, a small smile on her lips. Nirgal knew
these signs, and he caressed her as she passed in the small space behind the
drivers’ seats, happy at the renewed intimacy, so rare and so precious: “I’ll
bet it’s warm outside,” he said.
And her head snapped around as she looked at him, her eyes wide.
Without another word they dressed and got into the lock, and held
gloved hands as they waited for it to suck and open. When it did they stepped
out of the car, and walked across the dry rust* rubble, holding hands and
squeezing hard, winding around bumps and hollows and chest-high boulders toward
the new lava. They carried thinsulate pads in their outside hands. They could
have talked but they didn’t. The air pushed at them from time to time, and even
through the layers of his walker Nirgal could feel that it was warm. The ground
trembled slightly underfoot, and the rumble was distinct, vibrating in his
stomach; it was punctuated every few seconds by a dull boom, or a sharper
cracking noise. No doubt it was dangerous to be out here. There was a small
rounded hill, very like the one their car was parked on, overlooking the tongue
of hot lava from a somewhat closer distance, and without consultation they
headed for it, climbing its final slope with big steps, always holding hands,
gripping hard.
From the top of the little hill they could see far over the new
black flow and its shifting network of fiery orange cracks. The noise was
considerable. It seemed clear that any new lava would run off the other side of
the black mass, the downhill side. They were on a high point in the bank of a
stream, with an obvious watercourse running left to right as they looked down
on it. Of course a sudden great flood might overwhelm them, but it seemed
unlikely, and in, any case they were in no more danger here than they had been
in the car.
All such calculations disappeared as Jackie pulled her hand free
of his and began to take off her glove. Nirgal did the same, rolling the
stretching fabric up until the wrist was exposed and his thumb free. The glove
popped off his fingertips. It was about 278 degrees, he reckoned, brisk but not
particularly cold. And then a wave of warm air buffeted him, followed by a wave
of hot air, perhaps 315°K, which quickly passed and was followed by the
jostling cool air his hand had been exposed to first. As he peeled off his
other glove it became clear that the temperature was all over the place, each
knock of the wind distinctly different. Jackie had already unzipped her jacket
from her helmet, and down the front, and now as Nirgal watched she pulled it
off, baring her upper body. The air struck her and goose-pimples ran over her
skin like cat’s paws over water. She leaned over to get off her boots, and her
air tank lay in the hollow of her spine, her ribs standing out under her skin.
Nirgal stepped over and pulled her pants down over her bottom. She reached back
and pulled him to her and wrestled him to the ground, and they went down
together in a tangle, twisting fast to get onto the thinsulate pads; the ground
was very chill. They got their clothes off, and she lay back with her air tank
above her right shoulder. He lay on her; in the chill air her body was
amazingly warm, radiating heat like the lava, buffets of heat pushing him from
below and from the side, the wind airy and cooked, her body pink and muscular,
wrapping him hard with arms and legs, startlingly tangible in the sunlight. They
bonked faceplates. Their helmets were pumping out air hard, to compensate for
the leaks around shoulders, backs, chests, collarbones. For a time they looked
each other in the eye, separated by the double layer of glass, which seemed the
only thing keeping them from fusing into one being. The sensation was so
powerful it felt dangerous—they bonked and bonked, expressing the desire to
fuse, but knowing they were safe. Jackie’s eyes had a strange vibrant border
between iris and pupil. The little black round windows were deeper than any
mohole, a drop to the center of the universe. He had to look away, he had to!
He lifted off her to look at her long body, which, stunning as it was, was
still less stunning than the depths of her eyes. Wide rangy shoulders, oval
navel, the so-feminine length of her thighs— he closed his eyes, he had to. The
ground trembled under them, moving with Jackie so that it felt as if he were
plunging into the planet itself, a wild muscular female body—he could lie
perfectly still, they both lay perfectly still, and still the world vibrated
them, in a gentle but intense seismic ravishment. This living rock. As his
nerves and skin began to thrum and sing he turned his head to look out at the
flowing magma and then everything was coming together.
They left the Rayleigh volcano, and rolled back down into the fog
hood’s darkness. On the second night after leaving Rayleigh they approached
Gamete. In the dark gray of an especially thick noon twilight they came up and
under the great overhang of ice, and suddenly Jackie leaned forward with a cry
and slapped off the autopilot, then kicked down the brake.
Nirgal had been dozing, and he caught himself on his steering
wheel, staring out to see what the trouble was.
The cliff where the garage had been was shattered—a great ice fall
spilled away from the cliff, covering where the garage had been. The ice at the
top of the break was heavily starred, as by explosion. “Oh,” Jackie cried,
“they’ve blown it up! They’ve killed them all!”
Nirgal felt as if he had been punched in the stomach; he was
amazed to find what a physical blow fear could wield. In his mind he was numb,
and seemed to feel nothing—no anguish, no despair, nothing. He reached out and
squeezed Jackie’s shoulder—she was shaking—and peered anxiously through the
thick blowing mist.
“There’s the bolt-hole,” he said. “They wouldn’t have been caught
unawares.” The tunnel led through an arm of the polar cap to Chasma Australe,
where there was a shelter in the ice wall.
“But—” Jackie said, and
swallowed. “But if they didn’t get any warning!”
“Let’s get around to the shelter in Australe,” Nirgal said, taking
over the controls.
He bounced them over the ice flowers at the car’s top speed,
concentrating on the terrain and trying not to think. He did not want to get to
the other shelter—get there and find it empty, taking away his last hope, the
only way he had of staving off this disaster. He wanted never to arrive, to
keep driving clockwise around the polar cap forever, no matter the torque of
apprehension that was causing Jackie to hiss as she breathed, and to moan from
time to time. In Nirgal it was only a numbness, an inability to think. I don’t
feel a thing, he thought wonderingly. But unbidden images of Hi-roko kept
flashing before him as if projected on the windshield, or standing ghostlike
out in the driving mists. There was a chance that the assault had come from
space, or by missile from the north, in which case there might not have been
any warning. Wiping the green world out of the universe, and leaving only the
white world of death. The colors drained from everything, as in this gray-fog
winter world.
He pursed his lips and concentrated on the icescape, driving with
a ruthless touch he had not known he had. The hours passed and he did his best
not to think of Hiroko or Nadia or Art or Sax or Maya or Dao or any of the
rest: his family, neighborhood, town, and nation, all under that one small
dome. He bent over his twisted stomach and focused on the world of driving, on
each little bump and hollow to be dodged in the vain attempt to make it a less
rattled ride.
They had to go clockwise for three hundred kilometers, and then
most of the way up the length of Chasma Australe, which in late winter narrowed
and became so choked with ice blocks that there was only a single route
through, marked by weak little directional transponders. There he was forced to
slow down, but under the dark mist they could drive at all hours, and they did
so until they reached the low wall that marked the refuge. It was just fourteen
hours after their departure from the gate of Gamete—an accomplishment, over
such jagged frosty terrain—but Nirgal didn’t even note it. If the refuge was
empty—
If it was empty ... The numbness in him was eroding fast as they
approached the low wall at the head of the chasm; there was no sign of anyone
or anything there, and his fear was breaking through the numbness like orange
magma out of the cracks in black lava, it gushed out and billowed through him,
became an unbearable ripping tension in every cell of him... .
Then a light flickered from low on the wall, and Jackie cried
“Ah!” as if stuck with a pin. Nirgal accelerated and the car bounded toward the
ice wall, he almost crashed the car right into it; he slammed on the brakes and
the big wire wheels of the car skidded very briefly, then ground to a halt.
Jackie popped on her helmet and dashed into the lock, and Nirgal followed, and
after an agonizing suck and pump they dropped out of. the lock onto the ground,
and hurried to the lock door in a shallow recess in the ice. The door opened
and four suited figures leaped out holding guns; Jackie cried out over the
common band, and in a second the four were hugging them; so far so good,
although it was conceivable that they were just comforting them, and Nirgal was
still in an agony of suspense, when he saw Nadia’s face behind one of the
faceplates. She gave him the thumbs-up sign, and he realized that he had been
holding his breath for what seemed like the last fifteen hours entire, though
no doubt it was only since he had jumped out of the car. Jackie was crying with
relief and Nirgal felt that he wanted to cry too, but the sudden disintegration
of the numbness and then the fear had left him merely shattered, exhausted,
beyond tears. Nadia led him into the refuge lock by hand, as if she understood
this, and when the lock was closed and pumping up Nirgal began to understand
the voices on the common band: “I was so -scared, I thought you were dead.” “We
got out the escape tunnel, we saw them coming—”
Inside the shelter they took off their helmets and went through a
hundred rounds of embracing. Art slapped him on the back, his eyes popping out
like eggs: “So glad to see you two!” He pulled Jackie into a rough hug, then
held her out at arm’s length and looked at her wet snotty red-eyed girlish face
with approval and admiration, as if just this moment accepting that she was
human too, and not some feline goddess.
As they staggered down the narrow tunnel to the refuge’s rooms,
Nadia told them the story, scowling as she recalled it. “We saw them coming and
got way up the back tunnel, and then brought down both domes, and all the
tunnels. So we may have killed a good number of them, but I don’t know—I don’t
know how many they sent in, or how far they got. Coyote’s out shadowing them to
see if he can tell. Anyway, it’s done.”
At the end of the tunnel
was a crowded refuge of several little chambers, roughly walled, floored and
ceilinged by insulation panels, set right against cavities in the ice. Every
room radiated from a larger central chamber that served as kitchen and dining
hall. Jackie hugged everyone in there but Maya, ending with Nirgal. They held
each other hard, and Nirgal felt her trembling, and realized he was trembling
as well, in a kind of synchronic vibration. The silent, desperate, fearful
drive would strengthen the bond as much as their lovemaking by the volcano, or
more—it was hard to tell—he was too tired to be able to read the powerful vague
emotions sloshing through him. He disengaged from Jackie and sat, feeling
suddenly exhausted to tears. Hiroko sat beside him, and he listened to her as
she told him what had happened in more detail. The attack had started with the
sudden appearance of several space planes, dropping onto the flat outside the
hangar in a group. So they had had very little warning inside, and the people
at the hangar had reacted in confusion, telephoning in to warn the others, but
failing to activate Coyote’s defense system, which apparently they had simply
forgotten. Coyote was disgusted about this, Hiroko said, and Nirgal could well
believe it. “You have to stop paratrooper attacks at the very moment of
landing,” he said. Instead the people at the hangar had retreated into the
dome. After some confusion they had gotten everyone up into the escape tunnel,
and once they were past the blast point Hiroko had ordered them to use the
Swiss defense and bring down the dome, and Kasei and Dao had obeyed her, and so
the whole dome had been blown down, killing whatever part of the attack force was
inside, burying them in million of tons of dry ice. Radiation readings seemed
to indicate that the Rick-over had not suffered a meltdown, although it
certainly had been crushed along with everything else. Coyote had disappeared
down a side tunnel with Peter, out a bolt-hole of his own, and Hiroko didn’t
know exactly where they had gone. “But I think those space planes may be in
trouble.”
So Gamete was gone, and the shell of Zygote too. In some future
age the polar cap would sublime away and reveal their flattened remnants,
Nirgal thought absently; but for now it was buried, utterly unreachable.
And here they were. They had gotten out with only some AIs, and
the walkers on their backs. And now they were at war with the Transitional
Authority (presumably), with some part of the force that had assaulted them
still out there.
“Who were they?” Nirgal asked.
Hiroko shook her head. “We don’t know. Transitional Authority,
Coyote said. But there are a lot of different units in UNTA security, and we
need to find out if this is the full Transitional Authority’s new policy, or if
some unit has gone on a rampage.”
“What will we do?” Art asked.
At first no one answered.
Finally Hiroko said, “We’ll have to ask for shelter. I think Dorsa
Brevia has the most room.”
“What about the congress?” Art asked, reminded of it by the
mention of Dorsa Brevia.
“I think we need it now more than ever,” Hiroko said.
Maya was frowning. “It could be dangerous to congregate,” she
pointed out. “You’ve told a lot of people about this.”
“We had to,” Hiroko said. “That’s the point of it.”
She looked around at them all, and even Maya did not dare contradict her. “Now
we have to take the risk.”
PART
7
What
Is to Be
-----------------Done?
----------
The few big buildings in Sabishii were faced with polished stone,
picked for colors that were unusual on Mars: alabaster, jade, malachite, yellow
jasper, turquoise, onyx, lapis lazuli. The smaller buildings were wooden. After
traveling by night and hiding by day, the visitors found it a pleasure to walk
in the sunlight between low wooden buildings, under plane trees and fire
maples, through stone gardens and across wide boulevards of streetgrass, past
canals lined by cypress, which occasionally widened into lily-covered ponds, crossed
by high arching bridges. They were almost on the equator here, and winter meant
nothing; even at aphelion hibiscus and rhododendron were flowering, and pine
trees and many varieties of bamboo shot high into the warm breezy air.
The ancient Japanese greeted their visitors as old and valued
friends. The Sabishii issei dressed in copper jumpsuits, went barefoot, and
wore long ponytails, and many earrings and necklaces. One of them, bald, with a
wispy white beard and a deeply wrinkled face, took the visitors on a walk, to
stretch their legs after their long drives. His name was Kenji, and he had been
the first Japanese to step on Mars, though no one remembered that anymore.
At the city wall they looked out at enormous boulders balancing on
nearby hilltops, carved into one fantastic .shape after another.
“Have you ever been to the Medusae Fossae?”
Kenji only smiled and shook his head. The kami stones on the hills
were honeycombed with rooms and storage spaces, he told them, and along with
the mohole mound maze they now could house a very great number of people, as
many as twenty thousand, for as long as a year. The visitors nodded. It seemed
possible it might become necessary.
Kenji took them back to the oldest part of town, where the
visitors had been given rooms in the original compound. The rooms were smaller
and more spare than most of the town’s student apartments, and had a patina of
age and use that made them more like nests than rooms. The issei still slept in
some of them.
As the visitors walked through these rooms, they did not look at
each other. The contrast between their history and those of the Sabishiians was
too stark. They stared at the furniture, disturbed, distracted, withdrawn. And
after that evening’s meal, after a lot of sake had gone down the hatches, one
said, “If only we had done something like this.”
Nanao began to play a bamboo flute.
“It was easier for us,” Kenji said. “We were all Japanese
together. We had a model.”
“It doesn’t seem much like the Japan I remember.”
“No. But that isn’t the true Japan.”
They took their cups and a few bottles, and climbed up stairs to a
pavilion on top of a wooden tower next to their compound. Up there they could
see the trees and rooftops of the city, and the jagged array of boulders
standing on the black skysill It was the last hour of twilight, and except for
a wedge of lavender in the west the sky was a rich midnight blue, liberally
flecked with stars. A string of paper lanterns hung in a grove of fire maples
below.
“We are the true Japanese. What you see in Tokyo today is
transnational. There is another Japan. We can never go back to that, of course.
It was a feudal culture in any case, and had features we cannot accept. But
what we do here has its roots in that culture. We are trying to find a new way,
a way which rediscovers the old one, or reinvents it, for this new place.”
“Kasei Nippon.”
“Yes, but not just for Mars! For Japan also. As a model for them,
you see? An example of what they can become.”
And so they drank rice wine under the stars. Nanao played his
flute, and down in the park under the paper lanterns someone laughed. The
visitors sat leaning against each other, thinking. They talked for a while
about all the sanctuaries, how different they were and yet hew much they had in
common.
“This congress is a good idea.”
The visitors nodded, in various degrees of assent.
“It’s just what we need. I mean, we have been getting together to
celebrate John’s jestival for how many years now? And it’s been good. Very
pleasant. Very important. We have needed it, for our own sakes. But now things
are changing fast. We can’t pretend to be a cabal. We have to deal with the
rest of them.”
They talhed specifics for a while: attendants at the congress,
security measures, problem issues.
“Who attacked the egg—the egg?”
“A security team from Burroughs. Subarashii and Armscor have
organized what they call a sabotage investigation unit, and they’ve gotten the
Transitional Authority to bless the operation. They’ll be coming south again,
no doubt of that. We have almost waited too long.”
“They got the institution—the information—-from me?”
A snort. “You should resist thinking you are so important.”
“It doesn’t matter anyway. It’s the return of the elevator driving
all this.”
“And they are building one for Earth as well And so ...”
“We had better act.”
Then as the stone sake bottles kept going around, and emptying,
they gave up on such seriousness, and talked about the past year, things they
had seen in the outback, gossip about mutual acquaintances, new jokes heard.
Nanao got out a packet of balloons, and they filled them and tossed them out
into the city’s night breeze, and watched them float down onto the trees and
the old habitats. They passed around a canister of nitrous oxide, took breaths
and laughed. The stars made a thick net overhead. One told stories of space, of
the asteroid belt. They tried to nick exposed bits of wood with their pocket
knives and failed. “This congress will be what we call nema-washi. Preparing
the ground.”
Two stood, arms around each other, and swayed until they had
caught their balance, then held out their little cups in a toast.
“Next year on Olympus.”
“Next year on Olympus,” the others repeated, and drank.
It was Ls 180, M-year 40, when they began to
arrive at Dorsa Brevia, in small cars and planes from all over the south. A
group of Reds and caravan Arabs checked people’s credentials in the wasteland
approaches, and more Reds and Bogdanovists were stationed in bunkers located
all around the dorsa, armed, in case there was any trouble. The Sabishiian
intelligence experts, however, thought that the conference was unknown in
Burroughs or Hellas or Sheffield, and when they explained why they thought so,
people tended to relax, for clearly they had penetrated far into the halls of
UNTA, and indeed throughout the whole structure of transnational power on Mars.
That was another advantage to the demimonde; they could work in both
directions.
When Nadia arrived, with Art and Nirgal, they were led to their
guest quarters in Zakros, the southernmost segment of the tunnel. Nadia dropped
her pack in a little wooden room, and wandered the big park, and then through
the segments farther north, finding old friends and meeting strangers, feeling
in a mood of good hope. It was encouraging to see all these people milling
about the green parks and pavilions, representing so many different groups. She
looked around at the crowd thronging the canalside park, perhaps three hundred
people in view at that moment, and laughed.
The Swiss from Overhangs arrived on the day before the conference
was supposed to begin; people said they had been camped outside in their
rovers, waiting for the date specified. They brought with them a whole set of
procedures and protocols for the meeting, and as Nadia and Art listened to a Swiss
woman describing their plans, Art elbowed Nadia and whispered, “We’ve created a
monster.”
“No no,” Nadia whispered back, happy as she looked over the big
central park in the third-from-the-south segment of the tunnel, called Lato.
The skylight overhead was a long bronze crack in the dark roof, and morning
light filled the giant cylindrical chamber with the kind of photon rain she had
been craving all winter, brown light everywhere, the bamboo and pine and
cypress rising over the tile rooftops and blazing like green water. “We need a
structure, or it would be a free-for-all. The Swiss are form without content,
if you see what I mean.”
Art nodded. He was very quick, sometimes even hard to understand,
because he jumped five or six steps at a time and assumed she had followed him.
“Just get them to drink kava with the anarchists,” he muttered, and got up to
walk around the edges of the meeting.
And in fact that night, on her way with Maya through Gournia to a
canalside row of open-air kitchens, Nadia passed by Art and saw that he was
doing just that, dragging Mikhail and some of the other Bogdanovist hard-liners
over to a table of Swiss, where Jurgen and Max and Sibilla and Priska were
chatting happily with a group standing around them, switching languages as if
they were translation AIs, but in every language exhibiting the same buoyant
guttural Swiss accent. “Art is an optimist,” Nadia said to Maya as they walked
on.
“Art is an idiot,” Maya replied.
By now there were about five hundred visitors in the long sanctuary,
representing about fifty groups. The congress was to begin the following
morning, so on this night the partying was loud, from Zakros to Falasarna, the
timeslip filled with wild shouting and singing, Arab ululations harmonizing
with yodels, the strains of “Waltzing Matilda” forming a descant to “The
Marseillaise.”
* * *
Nadia got up early the next morning. She found Art already out at
the pavilion in the Zakros park, rearranging chairs into a circular formation,
in classic Bogdanovist style. Nadia felt a prick of pain and regret, as if
Arkady’s ghost had walked through her; he would have loved this meeting, it was
just what he had often called for. She went to help Art. “You’re up early.”
“I woke up and couldn’t fall back asleep.” He needed a shave. “I’m
nervous!”
She laughed. “This is going to take weeks, Art, you know that.”
“Yes, but starts are important.”
By ten all the seats were filled, and behind the chairs the
pavilion was crowded with standing observers. Nadia stood at the back of the
Zygote wedge of the circle, watching curiously. There appeared to be slightly
more men than women in attendance, and slightly more natives than emigrants.
Most people wore standard one-piece jumpers—the Reds’ were rust-colored—but a
significant number were dressed in a colorful array of ceremonial styles:
robes, dresses, pantaloons, suits, embroidered shirts, bare chests, a lot of
necklaces and earrings and other jewelry. All the Bogdanovists wore jewelry
containing pieces of phobosite, the black chunks shining where they had been
cut flat and polished.
The Swiss stood in the center, somber in gray bankers’ suits,
Sibilla and Priska in dark green dresses. Sibilla called the meeting to order,
and she and the rest of the Swiss alternated as they explained in excruciating
detail the program they had worked out, pausing to answer questions, and asking
for comments at every change of speaker. As they did this a group of Sufis in
pure white shirts and pantaloons worked their way around the outer perimeter of
the circle, passing out jugs of water and bamboo cups, moving with their
customary dancelike grace. When everyone had cups, the delegates at the front
of each group poured water for the party on their left, and then they all
drank. Out in the crowd of spectators the Vanuatuans were at a table filling
tiny cups of kava or coffee or tea, and Art was passing these out to those who
wanted them. Nadia smiled at the sight of him, shambling through the crowds
like a Sufi in slow motion, sipping from the cups of kava he was distributing.
The Swiss’s program was to begin with a series of workshops on
specific topics and problems, working in open rooms scattered through Zakros,
Gournia, Lato, and Malta. All of the workshops were to be recorded.
Conclusions, recommendations, and questions from the workshops were to serve as
the basis for a subsequent day’s discussion at one of the two general ongoing
meetings. One of these would focus roughly on the problems of achieving
independence, the other on what came after—the means and ends meetings, as Art
noted when he stopped briefly at Nadia’s side.
When the Swiss were done describing the program, they were ready
to start; it had not occurred to them to have any ceremonial opening. Werner,
speaking last, reminded people that the first workshops would begin in an hour,
and that was that. They were done.
But before the crowd dispersed, Hiroko stood at the back of the
Zygote crowd, and walked slowly into the center of the circle. She wore a
bamboo-green jumper, and no jewelry—a tall slight figure, white-haired,
unprepossessing—and yet every eye there was locked onto her. And when she
lifted her hands, everyone seated got to their feet. In the silence that
followed, Nadia’s breath caught in her throat. We should stop now, she thought.
No meetings— this is it right here, our presence together, our shared reverence
for this single person.
“We are children of Earth,” Hiroko said, loud enough for all to
hear. “And yet here we stand, in a lava tunnel on the planet Mars. We should
not forget how strange a fate that is. Life anywhere is an enigma and a
precious miracle, but here we see even better its sacred power. Let’s remember
that now, and make our work our worship.”
She spread her hands wide, and her closest associates walked
humming into the center of the circle. Others followed suit, until the space
around the Swiss was full of a milling horde of friends, acquaintances,
strangers.
The workshops were held in gazebos scattered through the parks, or
in three-walled rooms in the public buildings that edged these parks. The Swiss
had assigned small groups to run the workshops, and the rest of the conferees
attended whichever meetings interested them the most, so that some involved
five people, others fifty.
Nadia spent the first day wandering from workshop to workshop, up
and down the four southernmost segments of the tunnel.
She found that quite a few people were doing the same, none more
so than Art, who appeared to be trying to observe all the workshops, so that he
caught only a sentence or two at each site.
She dropped in on a workshop discussing the events of 2061. She
was interested, although not surprised, to find in attendance Maya, Ann, Sax,
Spencer, and even Coyote, as well as Jackie Boone and Nirgal, and many others.
The room was packed. First things first, she supposed, and there were so many
nagging questions about ‘61: What had happened? What had gone wrong, and why?
Ten minutes’ listening, however, arid her heart sank. People were
upset, their recriminations heartfelt and bitter. Nadia’s stomach knotted in a
way it hadn’t in years, as memories of the failed revolt flooded into her.
She looked around the room, trying to concentrate on the faces, to
distract herself from the ghosts within. Sax was watching birdlike as he sat
next to Spencer; he nodded as Spencer asserted that 2061 taught them that they
needed a complete assessment of all the military forces in the Martian system.
“This is a necessary precondition for any successful action,” Spencer said.
But this bit of common sense was shouted down by someone who
seemed to consider it an excuse to avoid action—a Marsfirster, apparently, who
advocated immediate mass ecotage, and armed assault on the cities.
Quite vividly Nadia recalled an argument with Arkady about this
very matter, and suddenly she couldn’t stand it. She walked down to the center
of the room.
After a while everyone went silent, stilled by the sight of her.
“I’m tired of this matter being discussed in purely military terms,” she said.
“The whole model of revolution has to be rethought. This is what Arkady failed
to do in sixty-one, and this is why sixty-one was such a bloody mess. Listen to
me, now—there can be no such thing as a successful armed revolution on Mars.
The life-support systems are too vulnerable.”
Sax croaked, “But if the surface is vivable—is viable—then the
support systems not so—so ...”
Nadia shook her head. “The surface is not viable, and won’t be for
many years. And even when it is, revolution has to be rethought. Look, even
when ‘revolutions have been successful, they have caused so much destruction
and hatred that there is always some kind of horrible backlash. It’s inherent
in the method. If you choose violence, then you create enemies who will resist
you forever. And ruthless men become your revolutionary leaders, so when the
war is over they’re in power, and likely to be as bad as what they replaced.”
“Not in—American,” Sax said, cross-eyed with the effort to force
the right words out in a timely manner.
“I don’t know about that. But mostly it’s been true. Violence
breeds hatred, and eventually there is a backlash. It’s unavoidable.”
“Yes,” said Nirgal with his usual intent look, not all that
different from Sax’s grimace. “But if people are attacking the sanctuaries and
destroying them, then we don’t have much choice.”
Nadia said, “The question is, who’s sending those forces out? And
who are the people actually in these forces? I doubt that those individuals
bear us any ill will. At this point they might just as easily be on our side as
against us. It’s their commanders and owners we should focus on.”
“De-cap-i-ta-tion,” Sax said.
“I don’t like the sound of that. You need a different term.”
“Mandatory retirement?” Maya suggested acidly. People laughed, and
Nadia glared at her old friend.
“Forced disemployment,” Art said loudly from the back, where he
had just appeared.
“You mean a coup,” Maya said. “Not to fight the entire population
on the surface, but just the leadership and their bodyguards.”
“And maybe their armies,” Nirgal insisted. “We have no sign that they
are disaffected, or even apathetic.”
“No. But would they fight without orders from their leaders?”
“Some might. It’s their job, after all.”
“Yes, but they have no great stake beyond that,” Nadia said,
thinking it out as she spoke. “Without nationalism or ethnicity, or some other
kind of home feeling involved, I don’t think these people will fight to the
death. They know they’re being ordered around to protect the powerful. Some
more egalitarian system makes an appearance, and they might feel a conflict of
loyalties.”
“Retirement benefits,” Maya mocked, and people laughed again.
But from the back Art said, “Why not put it in those terms? If you
don’t want revolution conceptualized as war, you need something else to replace
it, so why not economics? Call it a change in practice. This is what the people
in Praxis are doing when they talk about human capital, or
bioinfrastructure—modeling everything in economic terms. It’s ludicrous in a
way, but it does speak to those for whom economics is the most important
paradigm. That certainly includes the transnational.”
“So,” Nirgal said with a grin, “we disemploy the local leadership,
and give their police a raise while job-retraining them.”
“Yeah, like that.”
Sax was shaking his head. “Can’t reach them,” he said. “Need
force.”
“Something has to be changed to avoid another sixty-one!” Nadia
insisted. “It has to be rethought. Maybe there are historical models, but not
the ones you’ve been mentioning. Something more like the velvet revolutions
that ended the Soviet era, for instance.”
“But those involved unhappy populations,” Coyote said from the
back, “and took place in a system that was falling apart. The same conditions
don’t obtain here. People are pretty well off. They feel lucky to be here.”
“But Earth—in trouble,” Sax pointed out. “Falling apart.”
“Hmm,” Coyote said, and he sat down by Sax to talk about it.
Talking with Sax was still frustrating, but as a result of all his work with
Michel, it could be done. It made Nadia happy to see Coyote conferring with
him.
The discussion went on around them. People argued theories of
revolution, and when they tried to talk about ‘61 itself, they were hampered by
old grievances, and a basic lack of understanding of what had happened in those
nightmare months. At one point this became especially clear, as Mikhail and
some ex-Korolyov inmates began arguing about who had murdered the guards.
Sax stood and waved his AI over his head.
“Need facts—first,” he croaked. “Then the dialysis—the analysis.”
“Good idea,” Art said instantly. “If this group can put together a
brief history of the war to give to the congress at large, that would be really
useful. We can save the discussion of revolutionary methodology for the general
meetings, okay?”
Sax nodded and sat down. Quite a few people left the meeting, and
the rest calmed down, and gathered around Sax and Spencer. Now they were mostly
veterans of the war, Nadia noticed, but there also were Jackie and Nirgal and
some other natives. Nadia had seen some of the work Sax had done in Burroughs
on the question of ‘61, and she was hopeful that with eyewitness accounts from
other veterans, they could come to some basic understanding of the war and its
ultimate causes—nearly half a century after it was over, but as Art said when
she mentioned this to him, that was not atypical. He walked with a hand on her
shoulder, looking unconcerned by what he had seen that morning, in his first
full exposure to the fractious nature of the underground. “They don’t agree
about much,” he admitted. “But it always starts that way.”
Late on the second afternoon Nadia dropped in on the workshop
devoted to the terraforming question. This was probably the most divisive issue
facing them, Nadia judged, and attendance at the workshop reflected it; the
room on the border of Lato’s park was packed, and before the meeting began the
moderator moved it out into the park, on the grass overlooking the canal.
The Reds in attendance insisted that terraforming itself was an
obstruction to their hopes. If the Martian surface became human-viable, they
argued, then it would represent an entire Earth’s worth of land, and given the
acute population and environmental problems on Earth, and the space elevator
currently being constructed there to match the one already on Mars, the gravity
wells could be surmounted and mass emigration would certainly follow, and with
it the disappearance of any possibility of Martian independence.
People in favor of terraforming, called greens, or just green, as
they were not a party as such—argued that with a human-viable surface it would
be possible to live anywhere, and at that point the underground would be on the
surface, and infinitely less vulnerable to control or attack, and thus in a
much better position to take over.
These two views were argued in every possible combination and
variation. And Ann Clayborne and Sax Russell were both there, in the center of
the meeting, making points more and more frequently—until the others in
attendance stopped speaking, silenced by the authority of those two ancient antagonists.
Watching them go at it yet again.
Nadia observed this slow-developing collision unhappily, anxious
for her two friends. And she wasn’t the only one who found the sight
unsettling. Most of the people there had seen the famous videotape of Ann and
Sax’s argument in Underbill, and certainly their story was well known, one of
the great myths of the First Hundred—a myth from a time when things had been
simpler, and distinct personalities could stand for clear-cut issues. Now
nothing was simple anymore, and as the old enemies faced off again in the
middle of this new hodgepodge group, there was an odd electricity in the air, a
mix of nostalgia and tension and collective deja vu, and a wish (perhaps just
in herself, Nadia thought bitterly) that the two of them could somehow effect a
reconciliation, for their own sakes and for all of them.
But there they were, standing in the center of the crowd. Ann had
already lost this argument in the world itself, and. her manner seemed to
reflect this; she was subdued, disinterested, almost uninterested; the fiery
Ann of the famous tapes was nowhere to be seen. “When the surface is viable,”
she said—when, Nadia noted, not if—”they’ll be here by the billions. As long as
we have to live in shelters, logistics will keep the population in the
millions. And that’s the size it needs to be if you want a successful
revolution.” She shrugged. “You could do it today if you wanted. Our shelters
are hidden, and theirs aren’t. Break theirs open, they have no one to shoot
back at—they die, you take over. Terraforming just takes away that leverage.”
“I won’t be a part of that,” Nadia said promptly, unable to help
herself. “You know what it was like in the cities in sixty-one.”
Hiroko was there, sitting at the back observing, and now she spoke
out for the first time. “A nation founded in genocide is not what we want.”
Ann shrugged. “You want a bloodless revolution, but it’s not
possible.”
“It is,” Hiroko said. “A silk revolution. An aerogel revolution.
An integral part of the areophany. That is what I want.”
“Okay,” Ann said. No one could argue with Hiroko, it was
impossible. “But even so, it would be easier if you didn’t have a viable
surface. This coup you’re talking about—I mean, think about it. If you take
over the power plants in the major cities and say, ‘We’re in control now,’ then
the population is likely to agree, out of necessity. If there are billions of
people here, however, on a viable surface, and you disemploy some people and
declare yourself in control, then they’re likely to say, Tn control of what?’
and ignore you.”
“This,” Sax said slowly. “This suggests—take over—while surface
nonvivable. Then continue process—as independent.”
“They’ll want you,” Ann said. “When they see the surface open up,
they’ll come get you.”
“Not if they collapse,” Sax said.
“The transnational are in firm control,” Ann said. “Don’t think
they’re not.”
Sax was watching Ann most intently, and instead of dismissing her
points, as he had in the debates of old, he seemed on the contrary hyperfocused
on them, observing her every move, blinking as he considered her words, and
then replying with even more hesitation than his speech problems would explain.
With his altered face it sometimes seemed to Nadia that someone else was
arguing with her this time, not Sax but some brother of his, a dance instructor
or ex-boxer with a broken nose and a speech impediment, struggling patiently to
choose the right words, and often failing.
And yet the effect was the same. “Terraforming—irreversible,” he
croaked. “Would be tactically hard—technically hard—to start—to stop. Effort
equal to one—made. And might not—. And—environment can be a—a weapon in our
case—in our cause. At any stage.”
“How so?” several people asked, but Sax did not elaborate. He was
concentrating on Ann, who was looking back at him with a curious expression, as
if exasperated.
“If we’re on course to viability,” she said to him, “then Mars
represents an incredible prize to the transnational. Maybe even their
salvation, if things go really wrong down there. They can come here and take
over and have their own new world, and let Earth go to hell. That being the
case, we’re out of luck. You saw what happened in sixty-one. They have giant
militaries at their disposal, and that’s how they’ll keep their power here.”
She shrugged. Sax blinked as he considered this; he even nodded.
Looking at them, Nadia felt her heart wrench; they were so dispassionate it was
almost as if they didn’t care, or as if the parts of them that cared just
barely outweighed the parts that didn’t, and tipped the balance to speech. Ann
like a w^atherbeaten sodbuster from the early daguerreotypes, Sax incongruously
charming—they both appeared to be in their early seventies, so that seeing
them, and feeling her own nervous pulse, it was hard for Nadia to believe that
they were over 120 now, inhumanly ancient, and so ... changed, somehow—worn
down, overexperienced, jaded, used up—or at the very least, long past getting
too passionate about any mere exchange of words. They knew now how little importance
words had in the world. And so they fell silent, still looking into each
other’s eyes, locked in a dialectic nearly drained of anger.
But others more than compensated for their thoughtfulness, and the
younger hotheads went at it hammer and tongs. The younger Reds regarded
terraforming as nothing more than part of the imperial process; Ann was a
moderate compared to them, they raged even at Hiroko in their fury—”Don’t call
it areoforming,” one of them shouted at her, and Hiroko stared nonplussed at this
tall young woman, a blond Valkyrie made nearly rabid by the use of the
word—”it’s terraforming you mean and terraforming you’re doing. Calling it
areoforming is a sickening lie.”
“We terraform the planet,” Jackie said to the’woman, “but the
planet areoforms us.”
“And that’s a lie too!”
Ann stared grimly at Jackie. “Your grandfather said that to me,”
she said, “a long time ago. As you may know. But I’m still waiting to see what
areoforming is supposed to mean.” ‘
“It’s happened to everyone born here,” Jackie said confidently.
“How so? You were born on Mars—how are you any different?”
Jackie glowered. “Like the rest of the natives, Mars is all I
know, and all I care about. I was brought up in a culture made of strands from
many different Terran predecessors, mixed to a new Martian thing.”
Ann shrugged. “I don’t see how you’re so different. You remind me
of Maya.”
“To hell with you!”
“As Maya would say. And that’s your areoforming. We’re human and
human we remain, no matter what John Boone said. He said a lot of things, but
none of them ever came true.”
“Not yet,” Jackie said. “But the process is slowed when it’s in
the hands of people who haven’t had a new thought for fifty years.” A lot of
the younger ones laughed at this. “And who are in the habit of introducing
gratuitous personal insults into a political argument.”
And she stood there watching Ann, looking calm and relaxed, except
for the flash in her eye, which reminded Nadia again of what a power Jackie
was. Almost all the natives there were behind her, no doubt about it.
“If we have not changed here,” Hiroko said to Ann, “how do you
explain your Reds? How do you explain the areophany?”
Ann shrugged. “They are the exceptions.”
Hiroko shook her head. “There is a spirit of place in us.
Landscape has profound effects on the human psyche. You are a student of
landscapes, and a Red. You must acknowledge this to be true.”
“True for some,” Ann replied, “but not for all. Most people
obviously don’t feel that spirit of place. One city is much like another—in
fact they’re interchangeable in all the important ways. So people come to a
city on Mars, and what’s the difference? There isn’t any. So they think no more
of destroying the land outside the city than they did back on Earth.”
“These people can be taught to think differently.”
“No, I don’t think they can. You’ve caught them too late. At best
you can order them to act differently. But that’s not being areoformed by the
planet, that’s indoctrination, reeducation camps, what have you. Fascist
areophany.”
“Persuasion,” Hiroko countered. “Advocacy, argument by example,
argument by argument. It need not be coercive.”
“The aerogel revolution,” Ann said sarcastically. “But aerogel has
very little effect on missiles.”
Several people spoke at once, and for a moment the thread of
discourse was lost; the discussion immediately fissioned into a hundred smaller
debates, as many there had something to say which they had been holding back.
It was obvious they could go on like this for hour after hour, day after day.
Ann and Sax sat back down. Nadia made her way out of the crowd,
shaking her head. On the edge of the meeting she ran into Art, who shook his
head soberly. “Unbelievable,” he said.
“Believe it.”
The days of the
congress unfolded much
as the first few had, with workshops good or bad leading to dinner, and then
long evenings of talk or partying. Nadia noticed that while the old emigrants
were likely to go back to work after dinner, the young natives tended to regard
the conferences as daytime work only, with the nights given over to
celebration, often around the big warm pond in Phaistos. Once again this was
only a matter of tendencies, with many exceptions either way, but she found it
interesting.
She herself spent most of her evenings on the Zakros dining
patios, making notes on the day’s meetings, talking to people, thinking things
over. Nirgal often worked with her, and Art too, when he was not getting people
who had been arguing during the day to drink kava together, and then go up to
party in Phaistos.
In the second week she got in the habit of taking an evening walk
up the tube, often all the way to Falasarna, after which she would walk back
and join Nirgal and Art for their final postmortem on the day, which they
convened on a patio set on a little lava knob in Lato. The two men had become
good friends during their long trek home from Kasei Vallis, and under the
pressure of the congress they were becoming like brothers, talking over
everything, comparing impressions, testing theories, laying out plans for
Nadia’s judgment, and deciding to take on the task of writing some kincT of
congress document. She was part of it—the elder sister perhaps, or maybe just
the babushka—and once when they shut down and staggered off to bed Art spoke of
“the triumvirate.” With her as Pompey, no doubt. But she did her best to sway
them with her analyses of the larger picture.
There were many different kinds of disagreements among the groups
there, she told them, but some were basic. There were those for and against
terraforming. There were those for and against revolutionary violence. There
were those who had gone underground to hold on to cultures under assault, and
those who had disappeared in order to create radical new social orders. And it
seemed more and more evident to Nadia that there were also significant
differences between those who had immigrated from Earth, and those who had been
born on Mars.
There were all kinds of disagreements, then, and no obvious
alignments to be found among them. One night Michel Duval joined the three of
them for a drink, and as Nadia described to him the problem he got out his AI,
and began to make diagrams based on what he called the “semantic rectangle.”
Using this schema they made a hundred different sketches of the various
dichotomies, trying to find a mapping that would help them to understand what
alignments and oppositions might exist among them. They made some interesting
patterns, but it could not be said that any blinding insights jumped off the
screen at them—although one particularly messy semantic rectangle seemed
suggestive, at least to Michel: violence and nonviolence, terraforming and
antiterraforming formed the initial four corners, and in the secondary
combination around this first rectangle he had located Bogdanovists, Reds,
Hi-roko’s areophany, and the Muslims and other cultural conservatives. But what
this combinatoire indicated in terms of action was not clear.
Nadia began to attend the daily meetings devoted to general
questions concerning a possible Martian government. These were just as
disorganized as the discussions of revolutionary methods, but less emotional,
and often more substantive. They took place every day in a small amphitheater
which the Minoans had cut into the side of the tunnel in Malia. From this
rising arc of benches the participants looked out over bamboo and pine trees
and terra-cotta rooftops all the way up and down the tunnel, from Zakros to
Falasarna.
The talks were attended by a somewhat different crowd than the
revolutionary debates. A report would come in from the smaller workshops for
discussion, and then most of the people who had attended that workshop would
join the larger meeting, to see what comments were made on the report. The
Swiss had set up workshops for all aspects of politics, economics, and culture
generally, and so the general discussions were very wide-ranging indeed.
Vlad and Marina sent over frequent reports from their workshop on
finances, each report sharpening and expanding their evolving concept of
eco-economics. “It’s very interesting,” Nadia reported to Nirgal and Art in
their nightly gathering on the knob patio. “A lot of people are critiquing Vlad
and Marina’s original system, including the Swiss and the Bolognese, and
they’re basically coming around to the conclusion that the gift system that we
first used in the underground is not sufficient by itself, because it’s too
hard to keep balanced. There are problems of scarcity and hoarding, and when
you start to set standards it’s like compelling gifts from people, which is a
contradiction. This is what Coyote always said, and why he set up his barter
network. So they’re working toward a more rationalized system, in which basic
necessities are distributed in a regulated hydrogen peroxide economy, where
things are priced by calculations of their caloric value. Then when you get
past the necessities, the gift economy comes into play, using a nitrogen
standard. So there are two planes, the need and the gift, or what the Sufis in
the workshop call the animal and the human, expressed by the different
standards.”
“The green and the white,” Nirgal said to himself.
“And are the Sufis pleased with this dual system?” Art asked.
Nadia nodded. “Today after Marina described the relationship of
the two planes, Dhu el-Nun said to her, The Mevlana could not have put it any
better.’ “
“A good sign,” Art said cheerfully.
Other workshops were less specific, and therefore less fruitful.
One, working on a prospective bill of rights, was surprisingly ill-natured; but
Nadia quickly saw that this topic tapped into a huge well of cultural concerns.
Many obviously considered the topic an opportunity for one culture to dominate
the rest. “I’ve said it ever since Boone,” Zeyk exclaimed. “An attempt to
impose one set of values on all of us is nothing but Ataturkism. Everyone must
be allowed their own way.”
“But this can only be true up to a point,” said Ariadne. “What if
one group here asserts its right to own slaves?”
Zeyk shrugged. “This would be beyond the pale.”
“So you agree there should be some basic bill of human rights?”
“This is obvious,” Zeyk replied coldly.
Mikhail spoke for the Bogdanovists: “All social hierarchy is a
kind of slavery,” he said. “Everyone should be completely equal under the law.”
“Hierarchy is a natural fact,” Zeyk said. “It cannot be avoided.”
“Spoken like an Arab man,” Ariadne said. “But we are not natural
here, we are Martian. And where hierarchy leads to oppression, it must be
abolished.”
“The hierarchy of the right-minded,” Zeyk said.
“Or the primacy of equality and freedom.”
“Enforced if necessary.”
“Yes!”
“Enforced freedom, then.” Zeyk waved a hand, disgusted.
Art rolled a drink cart onto the stage. “Maybe we should focus on
some actual rights,” he suggested. “Maybe look at the various declarations of
human rights from Earth, and see if they can be adapted to suit us here.”
Nadia moved on to check out some of the other meetings. Land use,
property law, criminal law, inheritance ... the Swiss had broken down the
matter of government into an amazing number of subcategories. The anarchists
were irritated, Mikhail chief among them: “Do we really have to go through all
this?” he asked again and again. “None of this should obtain, none of it!”
Nadia would have expected Coyote to be among those arguing with
him, but in fact he said, “We have to argue all of it! Even if you want no
state, or a minimal state, then you still have to argue it point by point.
Especially since most minimalists want to keep exactly the economic and police
system that keeps them privileged. That’s libertarians for you—anarchists who
want police protection from their sla\es. No! If you want to make the
minimum-state case, you have to argue it from the ground up.”
“But,” Mikhail said, “I mean, inheritance law?”
“Sure, why not? This is critical stuff! I say there should be no
inheritance at all, except for a few personal objects passed on, perhaps. But
all the rest should go back to Mars. It’s part of the gift, right?”
“All the rest?” Vlad inquired with interest. “But what would that
consist of, exactly? No one will own any of the land, water, air, the
infrastructure, the gene stock, the information pool—what’s left to pass on?”
Coyote shrugged. “Your house? Your savings account? I mean, won’t
we have money? And won’t people stockpile surpluses of it if they can?”
“You have to come to the finance sessions,” Marina said to Coyote.
“We are hoping to base money on units of hydrogen peroxide, and price things by
energy values.”
“But money will still exist, right?”
“Yes, but we are considering reverse interest on savings accounts,
for instance, so that if you don’t put what you’ve earned back into use, it
will be released to the atmosphere as nitrogen. You’d be surprised how hard it
is to keep a positive personal balance in this system.”
“But if you did it?”
“Well, then I agree with you—on death it should pass back to Mars,
be used for some public purpose.”
Sax haltingly objected that this contradicted the bioethical
theory that human beings, like all animals, were powerfully motivated to
provide for their own offspring. This urge could be observed throughout nature
and in all human cultures, explaining much behavior both self-interested and
altruistic. “Try to change the baby logical—the biological—basis of culture—by
decree ... Asking for trouble.”
“Maybe there should be a minimal inheritance allowed,” Coyote
said. “Enough to satisfy that animal instinct, but not enough to perpetuate a
wealthy elite.”
Marina and Vlad clearly found this intriguing, and they began to
tap new formulas into their AIs. But Mikhail, sitting by Nadia and flipping
through his program for the day, was still frustrated. “Is this really part of
a constitutional process?” he said, looking at the list. “Zoning codes, energy
production, waste disposal, transport systems—pest management, property law,
grievance systems, criminal law—arbitration—health codes?”
Nadia sighed. “I guess so. Remember how Arkady worked so hard on
architecture.”
“School schedules? I mean I’ve heard of micropolitics, but this is
ridiculous!”
“Nanopolitics,” Art said.
“No, picopolitics! Femtopolitics!”
Nadia got up to help Art push the drink cart to the workshops in
the village below the amphitheater. Art was still running from one meeting to
the next, wheeling in food and drink, then catching a few minutes of the talk
before moving on. There were eight to ten meetings per day, and Art was still
dropping in on all of them. In the evenings, while more and more of the
delegates spent their time partying, or going for walks up and down the tunnel,
Art continued to meet with Nirgal, and they watched tapes at a, moderate fast
forward so that everyone spoke like a bird, only slowing them down to take
notes, or talk over some point or other. Getting up in the middle of the night
to go to the bathroom, Nadia would pass the dim lounge where the two of them worked
on their write-ups, and see the two of them asleep in their chairs, their slack
open-mouthed faces flickering under the light of the Keystone Kops debate on
the screen.
But in the mornings Art was up with the Swiss, getting things
started. Nadia tried to keep pace with him for a few days, but found that the
breakfast workshops were chancy. Sometimes people sat around tables sipping
coffee and eating fruit and muffins, staring at each other like zombies: Who
are you? their bleary gazes said. What am I doing here? Where are we? Why
aren’t I asleep in my bed?
But it could be just the opposite: some mornings people came in
showered and refreshed, alert with coffee or kavajava, full of new ideas and
ready to work hard, to make progress. If the others there were of like mind,
things could really fly. One of the sessions on property went like that, and
for an hour it seemed as though they had solved all the problems of reconciling
self and society, private opportunity and the common good, selfishness and altruism.
... At the end of the session, however, their notes looked just about as vague
and contradictory as those taken at any of the more fractious meetings. “It’s
the tape of the whole session that will have to represent it,” Art said, after
trying to write down a summary.
The majority of the meetings, however, were not as successful. In
fact most of them were merely protracted arguments. One morning Nadia came in
on Antar, the young Arab whom Jackie had spent time with during their tour,
saying to Vlad, “You will only repeat the socialist catastrophe!”
Vlad shrugged. “Don’t be too hasty to judge that period. The
socialist countries were under assault from capitalism without and corruption
within, and no system could survive that. We must not throw the baby socialism
out with the Stalinist bathwater, or we lose many concepts of obvious fairness
that we need. Earth is in the grip of the system that defeated socialism, and
it is clearly an irrational and destructive hierarchy. So how can we deal with
it without being crushed? We have to look everywhere for answers to this,
including the systems that the current order defeated.”
Art was pulling a food cart to the next room, and Nadia left with
him.
“Man, I wish Fort was here,” Art muttered. “He should be, I really
think he should.”
In the next meeting they were arguing about the limits to
tolerance, the things that simply wouldn’t be allowed no matter what religious
meaning anyone gave them, and someone shouted, “Tell that to the Muslims!”
Jurgen came out of the room, looking disgusted. He took a roll
from the cart and walked with them, talking through his food: “Liberal
democracy says that cultural tolerance is.essential, but you don’t have to get
very far away from liberal democracy for liberal democrats to get very
intolerant.”
“How do the Swiss solve that?” Art asked.
Jurgen shrugged. “I don’t think we do.”
“Man, I wish Fort were here!” Art said. “I tried to reach him a
while back and tell him about this, I even used the Swiss government lines, but
I never got any reply.”
The congress went on for almost a month. Sleep deprivation, and
perhaps an overreliance on kava, made Art and Nirgal increasingly haggard and
groggy, until Nadia started coming by at night and putting them to bed, pushing
them onto couches and promising to write summaries of the tapes they had not
reviewed. They would sleep right there in the room, muttering as they rolled
over on the narrow foam-and-bamboo couches. One night Art sat up suddenly from
his couch: “I’m losing the content of things,” he said to Nadia seriously,
still half dreaming. “I’m just seeing forms now.”
“Becoming Swiss, eh? Go back to sleep.”
He flopped back down. “It was crazy to think you folks could do
anything together,” he murmured.
“Go back to sleep.”
Probably it was crazy, she thought as he snuffed and snored. She
stood up, went to the door. She felt the mental whirr in her head that told her
she was not going to be able to sleep, and walked outside, into the park’.
The air was still warm, the black skylights stuffed with stars.
The length of the tunnel suddenly reminded her of one of the full rooms on the
Ares, here vastly enlarged, but with the same aesthetics employed: dimly lit
pavilions, the dark furry clumps of little forests. ... A world-building game.
But now there was a real world at stake. At first the attendants of the
congress had been almost giddy with the enormous potential of it, and some,
like Jackie and other natives, were young and irrepressible enough to feel that
way still. But for a lot of the older representatives, the intractable problems
were beginning to reveal themselves, like knobby bones under shrinking flesh.
The remnant of the First Hundred, the old Japanese from Sabishii—they s.at
around these days, watching, thinking hard, with attitudes ranging from Maya’s
cynicism to Marina’s anxious irritation.
And then there was the Coyote, down below her in the park,
strolling tipsily out of the woods with a young woman holding him by the waist.
“Ah, love,” he shouted down the long tunnel, throwing his arms wide, “could
thou and I with fate conspire—to grasp this sorry scheme of things entire—would
we not shatter it to bits, and then—remold it nearer to the heart’s desire!”
Indeed, Nadia thought, smiling, and went back to her room.
There were some reasons for hope. For one thing Hiroko persevered,
attending meetings all day long, adding her thoughts and giving people the
sense that they had chosen the most important meeting going on at that moment.
And Ann worked—though she seemed critical of everything, Nadia thought, blacker
than ever— and Spencer, and Sax, and Maya and Michel, and Vlad and Ursula and
Marina. Indeed the First Hundred seemed to Nadia more united in this effort
than in anything they had done since setting up Underbill—as if this were their
last chance to get things right, to recover from the damage done. To make
something for their dead friends’ sake.
And they weren’t the only ones to work. As the meetings went on
people got a sense of who wanted the congress to achieve something tangible, and
these people got in the habit of attending the same meetings, working hard on
finding compromises and getting results onto screens, in the form of
recommendations and the like. They had to tolerate visits by those who were
more interested in grandstanding than results, but they kept hammering away.
Nadia focused on these signs of progress, and worked to keep
Nirgal and Art informed, also fed and rested. People dropped by their suite:
“We were told to bring this over to the big three.” Many of the serious workers
were interesting; one of the women from Dorsa Brevia, .named Charlotte, was a
constitutional scholar of some note, and she was building a kind of framework
for them, a Swisslike thing in which topics to be dealt with were ordered
without being filled in. “Cheer up,” she told the three of them one morning,
when they were sitting around looking glum. “A clash of doctrines is an
opportunity. The American constitutional congress was one of the most
successful ever, and they went into it with several very strong antagonisms.
The shape of the government they made reflects the distrust these groups had
for each other. Small states came in afraid they were going to be overwhelmed
by large states, and so there’s a Senate where all states are equals, and a House
where the larger states have their greater numbers represented. The structure
is a response to a specific problem, see? Same with the three-way checks and
balances. It’s an institutionalized distrust of authority. The Swiss
constitution has a lot of that too. And we can do it here.”
So out they went, ready to work, two sharp young men and one blunt
old woman. It was strange, Nadia thought, to see who emerged as leaders in
situations like these. It wasn’t necessarily the most brilliant or
well-informed, as Marina or Coyote would serve to show, though both qualities
helped, and those two people were important. But the leaders were the ones
people would listen to. The magnetic ones. And in a crowd of such powerful
intellects and personalities, such magnetism was very rare, very elusive. Very
powerful…
* * *
She attended a meeting devoted to a discussion of Mars-Earth
relations in the postindependence period. Coyote was in there, exclaiming, “Let
them go to hell! It’s their own doing! Let them pull together if they can, and
if they do, we can visit and be neighbors. But without that, if we try to help
them it will only destroy us.”
Many of the Reds and Marsfirsters in there nodded emphatically,
Kasei prominent among them. Kasei had been coming into his own recently, as a
leader of the Marsfirst group, a separatist wing of the Reds, whose members
wanted nothing to do with Earth, who were willing to back sabotage, ecotage,
terrorism, armed revolt—any means necessary to get what they wanted. One of the
least tractable groups there, in fact, and Nadia found it sad to see Kasei
seizing their cause, and even leading it.
Now Maya stood to reply to Coyote. “Nice theory,” she said, “but
it’s impossible. It’s like Ann’s redness. We’re going to have to deal with
Earth, so we might as well figure out how, and not just hide from it.”
“As long as they’re in chaos, we’re in danger,” Nadia said. “We
have to do what we can to help. To exert influence in the direction we want
them to go.”
Someone else said, “The two planets are one system.”
“What do you mean by that?” Coyote demanded. “They’re different
worlds, they could certainly be two systems!”
“Information exchange.”
Maya said, “We exist for Earth as a model or experiment. A thought
experiment for humanity to learn from.”
“A real experiment,” Nadia said. “This is no longer a game, we
can’t afford to take attractively pure theoretical positions.” She was looking
at Kasei and Dao and their comrades as she said this; but it made no impact,
she could see.
More meetings, more talk, a quick meal, and another meeting with
the Sabishii issei, to discuss the demimonde as a springboard for their
efforts. Then it was off to the nightly conference with Art and Nirgal; but the
men were beat, and she sent them to bed. “We’ll talk over breakfast.”
She too was tired, but very far from sleepy. So she took her night
walk, north from Zakros through the tunnel. She had recently discovered a high
trail running along the west wall of the tunnel, cut into the basalt where the
curve of the cylinder made the wall about a forty-five-degree slope. From this
trail she could look out over the treetops, down into the parks. And where the
trail veered out onto a little spur in Knossos, she could see up and down the
length of the tunnel all the way to both horizons, the entire lengthy narrow
world dimly lit, by streetlights surrounded by irregular green globes of
leaves, and by the few windows with lights still on inside, and by a string of
paper lanterns hung in the pines of Gbur-nia’s park. It was such an elegant
piece of construction, it hurt her slightly to think of the long years spent in
Zygote, under ice, in frigid air and artificial light. If only they had known
about these lava tunnels. ...
The next segment, Phaistos, had its floor nearly filled by a long
shallow pond, where the canal that coursed slowly down from Zakros widened.
Underwater lights at one end of the pond turned its water into a strange
sparkling dark crystal, and she could see a group of people splashing about in
it, their bodies gleaming in the lit water, disappearing into the dark.
Amphibious creatures, salamanders... . Once, very long ago on Earth, there had
been water animals that had crawled up gasping onto the shore. They must have
had some pretty serious policy debates, Nadia thought sleepily, down in that
ocean. To emerge or not to emerge, how to emerge, when to emerge... . Sound of
distant laughter, the stars packing the jagged skylights... .
She turned and walked down a staircase to the tunnel floor, then
back to Zakros, on the paths and streetgrass, following the canal, thinking in
scattered darting images. Back at their suite she lay on her bed and fell
asleep instantly, dreaming at dawn of dolphins swimming through the air.
But in the midst of that dream she was awakened roughly by Maya, who said in Russian, “There’s
some Terrans here. Americans.”
“Terrans,” Nadia repeated. And was afraid.
She dressed and went out to see. It was true; Art was standing
with a small group of Terrans, men and women her own size, and apparently about
her own age, unsteady on their feet as they craned their necks, looking at the
great cylindrical chamber in amazement. Art was trying to introduce them and
explain them at the same time, which was giving even his motor-mouth some
difficulty. “I invited them, yes, well, I didn’t know—hi, Nadia—this is my old
boss, William Fort.”
“Speak of the devil,” Nadia said, and shook the man’s hand. He had
a strong grip; a bald snub-nosed man, tanned and wrinkled, with a pleasant
vague expression.
“—They just arrived, the Bogdanovists brought them in. I invited
Mr. Fort some while ago, but never heard back from him and didn’t know he was
going to come. I’m quite surprised and pleased of course.”
“You invited him?” Maya said.
“Yes you see he’s very
interested in helping us that’s the thing.”
Maya was glaring, not at Art but at Nadia. “I told you he was a
spy,” she said in Russian.
“Yes you did,” Nadia said, then spoke to Fort in English. “Welcome
to Mars.”
“I’m happy to be here,” Fort said. And it looked like he meant it;
he was grinning goofily, as if too pleased to keep a straight face. His
companions did not seem as sure; there were about a dozen of them, both young
and old, and some were smiling, but many looked disoriented and cautious.
After an awkward few minutes Nadia took Fort and his little group
of associates over to the Zakros guest quarters, and when Ariadne arrived, they
assigned the visitors rooms. What else could they do? The news had already gone
the length of Dorsa Brevia and back, and as people came down to Zakros their
faces expressed displeasure as much as curiosity—but there the visitors were,
after all, leaders of one of the biggest transnationals, and apparently alone,
and without tracking devices on them, or so the Sabishiians had declared. One
had to do something with them.
Nadia got the Swiss to call a general meeting at the lunch hour,
and then she invited the new guests to freshen up in their rooms and afterward
speak at the meeting. The Terrans accepted the invitation gratefully, the uncertain
ones among them looking reassured. Fort himself seemed to be already composing
a speech in his mind.
Back outside the Zakros guest quarters, Art was facing a whole
crowd of upset people. “What makes you think you can make decisions like that
for us?” Maya demanded, speaking for many of them. “You, who don’t even belong!
You, a kind of spy among us! Making friends with us, and then betraying us
behind our backs!”
Art spread his hands, red-faced with embarrassment, shifting his
shoulders as if dodging abuse, or sliding through it to make an appeal to the
people behind Maya, the ones who might just be curious. “We need help,” he
said. “We can’t accomplish what we want all by ourselves. Praxis is different,
they’re more like us than them, I’m telling you.”
“It is not your right to tell us!” Maya said. “You are our
prisoner!”
Art squinted, waggled his hands. “You can’t be a prisoner and a
spy at the same time, can you?”
“You can be every kind of
treacherous thing at once!” Maya exclaimed.
Jackie walked up to Art and looked down on him, her face stern and
intent. “You know this Praxis group may have to become permanent Martians now,
whether they want to be or not. Just like you.”
Art nodded-. “I told them that might happen. Obviously they didn’t
care. They want to help, I’m telling you. They represent the only transnational
that’s doing things differently, that has goals similar to ours. They’ve come
here by themselves to see if they can help. They’re interested. Why should you
be so upset by that? It’s an opportunity.”
“Let’s see what Fort says,” Nadia said.
The Swiss had convened the special meeting in the Malia
amphitheater, and as the crowd of delegates gathered, Nadia helped guide the
newcomers through the segment gates to the site. They were still obviously
awestruck at the size of Dorsa Rrevia’s tunnel. Art was scurrying around them
with his eyes bugged out, wiping sweat from his brow with his sleeve, intensely
nervous. It made Nadia laugh. Somehow Fort’s arrival had put her in a good
mood; she did not see how they could lose from it.
So she sat down in the front row with the Praxis group, and
watched as Art led Fort onto the stage and introduced him. Fort nodded and
spoke a sentence, then tilted his head and looked up at the back row of the
amphitheater, realizing that he was unam-plified. He took a breath and started
again, and his usually quiet voice floated out with the assurance of a veteran
actor, carrying nicely to everyone there.
“I’d like to thank the people of Subarashii for bringing me south
to this conference.”
Art cringed as he returned to his seat, and turned and cupped a
hand by his mouth: “That’s Sabishii,” he said in an undertone to Fort.
“What’s that?”
“Sabishii. You said Subarashii, which is the transnational. The
settlement you went through to get here is called Sabishii. Sabishii means
lonely.’ Subarashii means ‘wonderful.’ “
“Wonderful,” Fort said, staring curiously at Art. Then he shrugged
and was off and running, an old Terran with a quiet but penetrating voice, and
a somewhat wandering style. He described Praxis, how it had begun and how it
operated now. When he explained the relationship of Praxis to the other
transnationals, Nadia i thought there were similarities to the relationship on
Mars between , the underground and the surface worlds, no doubt cleverly high-|
lighted by Fort’s description. And it seemed to her from the silence behind her
that Fort was doing pretty well at capturing the crowd’s I interest. But then
he said something about ecocapitalism, and re-| garding Earth as a full world
while Mars was still an empty one; and three or four Reds popped to their feet.
“What do you mean by that?” one of them called out. Nadia saw
Art’s hands clench in his lap, and soon she could see why; Fort’s answer was
long and strange, describing what he called ecocapitalism, in which nature was
referred to as the bioinfrastructure, while people were referred to as human
capital. Looking back Nadia saw many people frowning; Vlad and Marina had their
heads together, and Marina was tapping away at her wrist. Suddenly Art popped
to his feet, and interrupted to ask Fort what Praxis was doing now, and what he
thought Praxis’s role might be on Mars. Fort stared at Art as if he didn’t
recognize him. “We’ve been working with the World Court. The UN never recovered
from 2061, and is now widely regarded as an artifact of World War Two, just as
the League of Nations was an artifact of World War One. So we’ve lost our best
arbitrator of international disputes, and meanwhile conflicts have been
ongoing, and some are serious. More and more of these conflicts have been
brought before the World Court by one party or another, and Praxis has started
a Friends of the Court organization, which tries to give it aid in every way
possible. We abide by its rulings, give it money, people, try to work out
arbitration techniques, and so on. We’ve been part of a new technique, where if
two international bodies of any kind have a disagreement and decide to submit
to arbitration, they enter into a yearlong program with the World Court, and
its arbitrators try to find a course of action that satisfies both sides. At
the end of the year the World Court rules on any outstanding problems, and if
it works, a treaty is signed, and we try to support the treaties any way we
can. India has been interested, and went through the program with Sikhs in the
Punjab, and it’s working so far. Other cases have proved more difficult, but
it’s been instructive. The concept of semiautonomy is receiving a lot of
attention. At Praxis we believe nations were never truly sovereign, but were
always semi-autonomous in relation to the rest of the world. Metanationals are
semiautonomous, individuals are semiautonomous, culture is semiautonomous in
relation to the economy, values are’semiautonomous in relation to prices ...
there’s a new branch of math that is trying to describe semiautonomy in formal
logical terms.”
Vlad and Marina and Coyote were trying to listen to Fort and
confer among themselves and write down notes all at once. Nadia stood and waved
at Fort.
“Do the other transnationals support the World Court as well?” she
asked.
“No. The metanationals avoid the World Court, and use the UN as a
rubber stamp. I’m afraid they still believe in the myth of sovereignty.”
“But this sounds like a system that only works when both sides
agree to it.”
“Yes. All I can tell you is that Praxis is very interested, and
we’re trying to build bridges between the World Court and all powers on Earth.”
“Why?” Nadia asked.
Fort raised his hands, in a gesture just like one of Art’s.
“Capitalism only works if there is growth. But growth is no longer growth, you
see. We need to grow inward, to recomplicate.”
Jackie stood. “But you could grow on Mars in classic capitalist
style, right?”
“I suppose, yes.”
“So maybe that’s all you want from us, right? A new market? This
empty world you spoke of earlier?”
“Well, in Praxis we’ve been coming to think that the market is
only a very small part of a community. And we’re interested in all of it.”
“So what do you want from us?” someone yelled from the back.
Fort smiled. “I want to watch.”
The meeting ended soon after that, and the afternoon’s regular
sessions took place. Of course in all of them the arrival of the Praxis group
dominated at least part of the discussion. Unfortunately for Art, it became
evident as they sat around that night reviewing the tapes that Fort and his
team affected the congress as a separator rather than a bonding agent. Many
could not accept a Terran transnational as a valid member of the congress, and
that was that. Coyote came by and said to Art, “Don’t tell me about how
different Praxis is. That’s the oldest dodge in the book. If only the rich
would behave decently, then the system would be okay. That’s crap. The system
overdeterfnines everything, and it’s the system that has to change.”
“Fort’s talking about changing it,” Art objected. But here Fort
was his own worst enemy, with his habit of using classic economic terms to
describe his new ideas. The only ones interested in that approach were Vlad and
Marina. For the Bogdanovists, and Reds, and Marsfirsters—for most of the
natives, and many of the immigrants—it represented Terran business as usual,
and they wanted no part of it. No dealing with a transnat, Kasei exclaimed on
one tape to applause, no dealing with Terra however they phrased it! Fort was
beyond the pale! The only question for this crowd was whether he and his group
were going to be allowed to leave or not; some felt that they, like Art, were
now prisoners of the underground.
Jackie, however, stood up in that same meeting, to take the
Boonean position that everything ought to be put to use in the cause. She was
contemptuous of those rejecting Fort on principle. “Since you’re going to take
visitors hostage,” she said sharply to her father, “why not put them to use?
Why not talk to them?”
So in effect they had a new split to add to all their others:
isolationists and two-worlders.
In the next few days Fort handled the controversy surrounding him
by ignoring it, to the extent that it seemed to Nadia that he might not even be
aware of it. The Swiss asked him to run a workshop on the current Terran
situation, and this was packed, with Fort and his companions answering
questions at length in every session. In these sessions Fort seemed content to
accept whatever they told him about Mars, and regarding it he advocated
nothing. He stuck to Terra, and he only described. “The transnationals have
collapsed down into the couple dozen largest of them,” he said in response to
one question, “all of which have entered into development contracts with more
than one national government. We call those the metanationals. The biggest are
Subarashii, Mitsubishi, Consolidated, Amexx, Armscor, Mahjari, and Praxis. The
next ten or fifteen are also quite big, and after that you’re back down to
transnat size, but these are being quickly incorporated into the metanats. The
big metanats are now the major world powers, insofar as they control the IMF,
the World Bank, the Group of Eleven, and all their client countries.”
Sax asked him to define a metanational in more detail.
“About a decade ago we at Praxis were asked by Sri Lanka to come
into their country and take over the economy and work on arbitration between
the Tamils and the Singhalese. We did that and the results were good, but during
the time of the arrangement it was clear that our relationship with a national
government was a new kind of thing. It got noticed in certain circles. Then
some years ago Amexx got into a disagreement with the Group of Eleven, and
pulled all of its assets out of the Eleven and relocated them in the
Philippines. The mismatch between Amexx and the Philippines, estimated in gross
yearly product to be on the order of a hundred to one, resulted in a situation
where Amexx in effect took that country over. That was the first real
metanational, though it wasn’t clear that it was a new thing until their
arrangement was imitated by Subarashii, when they shifted many of their
operations into Brazil. It became clear that this was something new, not like
the old flag-of-convenience relationship. A metanational takes over the foreign
debt and the internal economy of its client countries, kind of like the UN did
in Cambodia, or Praxis in Sri Lanka, but much more comprehensively. In these
arrangements the client government becomes the enforcement agency of the
metanational’s economic policies. In general they enforce what are called
austerity measures, but all government employees are paid much more than they
were before, including the army and police and intelligence operations. So at
that point, the country is bought. And every metanational has the resources to
buy several countries. Amexx has that kind of relationship with the
Philippines, the North African countries, Portugal, Venezuela, and five or six
smaller countries.”
“Has Praxis done this as well?” Marina asked.
Fort shook his head. “In a way yes, but we’ve tried to give the
relationships a different nature. We’ve dealt with countries large enough to
make the partnership more balanced. We’ve had dealings with India, China, and
Indonesia. These were all countries that were shortchanged on Mars by the
treaty of 2057, and so they encouraged us to come here and make inquiries like
this one. We’ve also initiated dealings with some other countries that are
still independent. But we haven’t moved into these countries exclusively, and
we haven’t tried to dictate their economic policies.
We’ve tried to stick to our version of the transnational format,
but on the scale of the metanationals. We hope to function for the countries we
deal with as alternatives to metanationalism. A resource, to go along with the
World Court, Switzerland, and some other bodies outside the emerging
metanational order.”
“Praxis is different,” Art declared.
“But the system is the system,” Coyote insisted from the back of
the room.
Fort shrugged. “We make the system, I think.”
Coyote only shook his head.
Sax said, “We have to steal it—to deal with it.”
And he started asking Fort questions. “Which is the boggest— the
biggest?” They were halting, ragged, croaking questions—but Fort ignored his
difficulties, and answered in great detail, so that most of three consecutive
Praxis workshops consisted of an interrogation of Fort by Sax, in which
everyone learned a great deal about the other metanationals, their leaders,
their internal structures, their client countries, their attitudes toward each
other, and their history, particularly the roles taken by their predecessor
organizations in the chaos surrounding 2061. “Why respond—why crack the
eggs—no, I mean the domes’?”
Fort was weak on historical detail, and sighed unhappily at the
failures of his personal memory of that period; but his account of the current
Terran situation was fuller than any they had gotten before, and it helped
clarify questions about metanational activity on Mars that all of them had
wondered about. The metanets used the Transitional Authority as a way to
mediate their own disagreements. They disagreed over territories. They left the
demimonde alone because they felt its underground aspects were negligible and
easily monitored. And so on. Nadia could have kissed Sax—she did kiss him—and
she kissed Spencer and Michel too for their support of Sax during these
sessions, because although Sax doggedly pushed through his speech difficulties,
he was often red-faced with frustration, and often hit tables with his fist.
Near the end he said to Fort, “What does Praxis want from men—” Bam! “—from
Mars, then?”
Fort said, “We feel that what happens here will have effects back
home. At this point we’ve identified an emerging coalition of progressive
elements on Earth, the biggest of which are China, Praxis, and Switzerland.
After that there are scores of smaller elements, but they are less powerful.
Which way India goes in this situation could be critical. Most of the metanats
seem to regard it as a development sink, meaning that no matter how much they
pour into it, nothing there will change. We don’t agree with that. And we think
Mars is critical as well, in a different way, as an emergent power. So we wanted
to find the progressive elements here too, you see, and show you what we’re
doing. And see what you think of it.”
“Interesting,” Sax said.
And so it was. But many people remained adamantly opposed to
dealing with a Terran metanational. And meanwhile all the other arguments about
all the other issues continued unabated, often becoming more polarized the
longer they talked about them.
That night at their patio meeting Nadia shook her head, marveling
at the capacity people had for ignoring what they had in common, and fighting
bitterly over whatever small differences existed between them. She said to Art
and Nirgal, “Maybe the world is simply too complex for any one plan to work.
Maybe we shouldn’t be trying for a global plan, but just something to suit us.
And then hope Mars can get along using several different systems.”
Art said, “I don’t think that will work either.”
“But what will?”
He shrugged. “Don’t know yet.” And he and Nirgal went off to
review tapes, pursuing what suddenly seemed to Nadia an ever-receding mirage.
Nadia went to bed. If it were a construction project, she thought
as she lay falling asleep, she would tear it down and start over again.
The hypnogogic image of a falling building jerked her awake. After
a while, sighing, she gave up on sleep, and went out for another night walk.
Art and Nirgal were asleep in the tape room, their faces squashed on the
tabletop, flickering under the fast-forward light from the screen. Outside the
air whooshed north through the gates into Gournia, and she followed it, taking
the high trail. Clicking bamboo leaves, stars in the skylights overhead ...
then the faint sounds of laughter, pealing down the tunnel from Phaistos pond.
The pond’s underwater lights were on, and a crowd was bathing
again. But now on the far side of the tunnel, about as high on the curved wall
as she was on her side, there was a lit platform with perhaps eight people
jammed onto it. One of them was getting onto a board of some kind, crouching
down; then he dropped away from the platform, crouching down and holding the
front of the board, which clearly had very little friction—a naked man with wet
hair whipping behind him, flying down the curving black side of the tunnel,
accelerating until he shot up a lip of rock and flew out over the pond,
cartwheeling, crashing into the water with a great splash, shooting back up
with a whoop, to cheers all around.
Nadia walked down to have a look. Someone else was running the
board back up a staircase to the platform, and the man who had ridden it down was
standing in the shallows, pulling his hair back. Nadia didn’t recognize him
until she was at the edge of the pond and he sloshed into the liquid light from
below. It was William Fort.
Nadia shed her clothes and walked out into the water, which was
very warm, body temperature or a bit higher. With a shout another figure came
shooting down the incline, like a surfer on an immense rock wave. “The drop
looks severe,” Fort was saying to one of his companions, “but with the gravity
so light you can just handle it.”
The woman riding the board was projected out over the water; she
arched back in a perfect swan dive until making a final tuck and splash into
the pond, and was cheered loudly on emergence. Another woman had retrieved the
board and was climbing out of the pond, near the foot of the stairs cut into
the slope.
Fort greeted Nadia with a nod, standing waist-deep in the water,
his body wiry under ancient wrinkled skin. On his face was the same look of
vague pleasure it had worn in the workshops. “Want to try it?” he asked her.
“Maybe later,” she said, looking around at the people in the
water, trying to sort out who was there and what parties at the congress they
represented. When she realized what she was doing she snorted in disgust, at
herself and at the pervasiveness of politics—how it could infect everything if
you let it.
But still, she noted that the people in the water were mostly
young natives, from Zygote, Sabishii, New Vanuatu, Dorsa Brevia, Vishniac
mohole, Christianopolis. Hardly any of them were active speaking delegates, and
their power was something Nadia couldn’t gauge. Probably it didn’t signify all
that much that they were gathering together here at night, naked in warm water,
partying—most of them came from places where public baths were the norm,
so they were used to splashing with
someone they might fight elsewhere.
Another rider came screaming’ down the slope, then flying out into
the depths of the pond. People swam to her like sharks to blood. Nadia ducked
under the water, which tasted slightly salty; opening her eyes she saw crystal
bubbles exploding everywhere, then swimming bodies twisting like dolphins over
the smooth dark surface of the pond bottom. An unearthly sight... .
She came back up, squeezed her hair dry. Fort stood among the
youngsters like a decrepit Neptune, surveying them with his curious impassive
relaxation. Perhaps, Nadia thought, these natives were in fact the new Martian
culture that John Boone had talked about, springing’ up among them without
their actually noticing. Generational transmission of information always
contained a lot of error; that was how evolution happened. And even though
people had gone underground on Mars for very different reasons, still, they all
seemed to be converging here, in a kind of life that had certain paleolithic
aspects to it, harking back perhaps to some ur-culture behind all their
differences, or forward to some new synthesis—it did not matter which—it could
be both at once. So that there was a possible bond there.
Or so Fort’s mild expression of pleasure seemed to say to Nadia,
somehow, as Jackie Boone in all her Valkyrie glory came shooting down the
“tunnel wall, and flew out over them as if shot from a circus cannon.
The program devised by the Swiss came to its end. The organizers quickly
called for a three-day rest, to be followed by a general meeting.
Art and Nirgal spent these days in their little conference room,
going over videotapes twenty hours a days, talking endlessly and typing at
their AIs in a kind of hammering desperation. Nadia kept them going, and broke
ties when they disagreed, and wrote the sections they deemed too hard. Often
when she walked in one of them would be asleep in his chair, the other staring
transfixed by his screen. “Look,” he would croak, “what do you think of this?”
Nadia would read the screen and make comments while putting food under their
noses, which often woke the sleeping one. “Looks promising. Let’s get back to
work.”
* * *
And so on the morning of the general meeting Art and Nirgal and
Nadia walked out onto the stage of the amphitheater together, and Art took his
Al with him to the proscenium. He stood looking out at the assembled crowd, as
if stunned by the sight of it, and after a long pause said, “We actually agree
on many things.”
This got a laugh. But Art held his AI overhead like the stone
tablets, then read aloud from the screen: “Work points for a Martian
government!”
He peered over the screen at the crowd, and they subsided into an
attentive silence.
“One. Martian society will be composed of many different cultures.
It is better to think of it as a world rather than a nation. Freedom of
religion and cultural practice must be guaranteed. No one culture or group of
cultures should be able to dominate the rest.
“Two. Within this framework of diversity, it still must be
guaranteed that all individuals on Mars have certain inalienable rights,
including the material basics of existence, health care, education, and legal
equality.
“Three. The land, air, and water of Mars are in the common stewardship
of the human family, and cannot be owned by any individual or group.
“Four. The fruits of an individual’s labor belong to the
individual, and cannot be appropriated by another individual or group. At the
same time, human labor on Mars is part of a communal enterprise, given to the
common good. The Martian economic system must reflect both these facts,
balancing self-interest with the interests of society at large.
“Five. The metanational order ruling Earth is currently incapable
of incorporating the previous two principles, and cannot be applied here. In
its place we must enact an economics based on ecologic science. The goal of
Martian economics is not ‘sustainable development’ but a sustainable prosperity
for its entire biosphere.
“Six. The Martian landscape itself has certain ‘rights of place’
which must be honored. The goal of our environmental alterations should
therefore be minimalist and ecopoetic, reflecting the values of the areophany.
It is suggested that the goal of environmental alterations be to make only that
portion of Mars lower than the five-kilometer contour human-viable. Higher
elevations, constituting some thirty percent of the planet, would then remain
in something resembling their primeval conditions, existing as natural
wilderness zones.
“Seven. The habitation of Mars is a unique historical process, as
it is the first inhabitation of another planet by humanity. As such it should
be undertaken in a spirit of reverence for this planet and for the scarcity of
life ;.n the universe. What we do here will set precedents for further human
habitation of the solar system, and will suggest models for the human
relationship to Earth’s environment as well. Thus Mars occupies a special place
in history, and this should be remembered when we make the necessary decisions
concerning life here.”
Art let his AI fall to his side, and stared out at the crowd. They
looked down at him in silence. “Well,” he said, and cleared his throat. He
gestured at Nirgal, who came up and stood beside him. *Nirgal said, “That’s all
that we could pick out from the workshops that it seemed to us everyone here
might agree to. There’s lots more that we feel would be accepted by a majority
of the groups here, but not by all. We’ve made lists of those partial consensus
points as well, and we’ll post them all for your inspection. We feel very
strongly that if we can come away from here with even a very general kind of
document, then we will have accomplished something significant. The tendency in
a congress like this is to become more and more aware of our differences, and I
think this tendency is exaggerated in our situation, because at this point a
Martian government remains a kind of theoretical exercise. But when it becomes
a practical problem—when we have to act—then we’ll be looking for common
ground, and a document like this will help us find it.
“We have a lot of specific notes for each of the main points of
the document. We’ve talked with Jurgen and Priska about them, and they suggest
setting up a week of meetings with a day devoted to each of the seven main
points, so that everyone can make comments and revisions. Then at the end we
can see if we have anything left.”
There was a weak laugh. A lot of people were nodding.
“What about gaining independence in the first place?” Coyote
called from the back.
Art said, “We couldn’t figure out any similar points of agreement
to write down. Maybe there can also be a workshop that tries to do that.”
“Maybe there should!” Coyote exclaimed. “Anyone can agree things
should be fair, and the world just. The way to get there is always the real
problem.”
“Well, yes and no,” Art said. “What we’ve got here is more than a
wish that things be fair. As for the methods, maybe if we go at it again with
these goals in mind, things will suggest themselves. That is to say, what will
get us to these goals most surely? What kind of means do these ends imply?”
He looked around at the crowd, and shrugged. “Look, we’ve tried to
compile a composite of what you’ve all been saying here in your different ways,
so if there is a lack of specific suggestions for means of achieving
independence, it’s perhaps because you’ve all gotten stuck at the level of
general philosophies of action, where many of you disagree. The only thing I
can think to suggest is that you try to identify the various forces on the
planet, and rate how resistant to independence they might be, and tailor your
actions to match the resistance. Nadia talked about reconceptualizing the whole
methodology of revolution, and some have suggested economic models, the idea of
a leveraged buyout or something, but when I was thinking about this notion of a
tailored response, it reminded me of integrated pest management, you know—the
system in agriculture where a variety of methods of varying severity are used
to deal with the pests you have.”
People laughed at this, but Art didn’t seem to notice; he looked
taken aback by the lack of approval of the general document. Disappointed. And
Nirgal looked angry.
Nadia turned and said loudly, “How about a round of applause for
our friends here, for managing to synthesize anything at all out of this!”
People clapped. A few cheered. For a moment it sounded quite
enthusiastic. But -quickly it ended, and they filed out of the amphitheater,
talking among themselves, arguing again already.
So the debates continued, now structured around Art and Nir-gal’s
document. Reviewing the tapes, Nadia saw that there was a fair amount of
agreement over the substance of all the points except for number six,
concerning the level of terraforming. Most of the Reds would not accept the
low-elevation viability concept, pointing out that most of the planet lay under
the five-kilometer contour, and that the higher elevations would be
significantly contaminated if the lower elevations were viable. They spoke of
dismantling the industrial terraforming processes that were now under way, of
returning to the very slowest biological methods called for in the radical
ecopoesis model. Some advocated the growth of a thin CO2 atmospshere,
supporting plants but not animals, as being a situation more natural to Mars’s
volatile inventory and its past history. Other advocated leaving the surface as
close to how they had found it as possible, and keeping a very small population
in tented valleys. These people decried the rapid destruction of the surface by
the industrial terraforming in outraged tones, condemning particularly tl e
inundation of Vastitas Borealis, and the outright melting of the landscape by
use of the soletta and the aerial lens.
But as the seven days passed, it became more and more obvious that
this point of the draft declaration was the only one being really debated,
while the others were for the most part being subjected to fine-tuning only. A
lot of people were pleasantly surprised to find even this much assent to the
draft statement, and more than once Nirgal said irritably, “Why be surprised?
We didn’t make those points up, we just wrote down what people were saying.”
And people would nod at this, interested, and go back to the
meetings, and work on the points again. And it began to seem to Nadia that
agreement Was popping up everywhere, called out of chaos by Art and Nirgal’s
assertion that it existed. Several of the sessions that week ended in a kind of
kavajava high of political consensus, the various aspects of a state finally
hammered into a shape to which many of the parties could agree.
But the argument over methods only got more vehement. Back and
forth it would go, Nadia against Coyote, Kasei, the Reds, the Marsfirsters, and
many of the Bogdanovists. “You can’t get to what we want by murder!” “They
won’t give this planet up! Political power begins at the end of a gun!”
One night after one of these donnybrooks, a big gathering of them
floated in the shallows of the Phaistos pond, trying to relax. Sax sat on an
underwater bench and shook his head. “Classic problem of punishment—no—of
violence,” he said. “Radical, liberal. Who never managed to agree again.
Before.” . Art plunged his head in the water, and pulled it out spluttering.
Weary, frustrated, he said, “What about integrated pest management? What about
that mandatory retirement idea?”
“Forced disemployment,” Nadia corrected.
“Decapitation,” Maya said
“Whatever!” Art said, splashing them. “Velvet revolution. Silk
revolution.”
“Aerogel,” Sax said. “Light, strong. Invisible.”
“It’s worth a try!” Art said.
Ann shook her head. “It will never work.”
“It’s better than another sixty-one,” Nadia said.
Sax said, “Better if we agree on a play. On a plan.”
“But we can’t,” Maya said.
“The front is broad,” Art insisted. “Let’s go out there and do
what we’re comfortable with.”
Sax and Nadia and Maya all shook their heads at once; seeing it,
Ann unexpectedly laughed out loud. And then they were all sitting in the pond
together, giggling at they knew not what.
The final general meeting took place in the late afternoon, in the
Zakros park where it had all begun. It had a strangely confused air, Nadia
felt, with most people only grudgingly satisfied with the Dorsia Brevia
Declaration, now several times longer than Art and Nirgal’s original draft.
Each point was read aloud by Priska, and each was cheered in a consensual vote
of approval; but different groups cheered more loudly for some points than for
others, and when the reading was done, the general applause was brief and
perfunctory. No one could be happy with that, and Art and Nirgal looked
exhausted.
The applause ended, and for a moment everyone just sat there. No
one knew what to do next; the lack of agreement on the matter of methods seem
to extend right into that very moment. What next? What now? Did they just go
home? Did they have a home? The moment stretched out, uncomfortable, even
vaguely painful (how they needed John!), so that Nadia was relieved when
someone shouted something—an exclamation that seemed to break a malign spell.
She looked around as people pointed.
There on a staircase, high on the black tunnel wall, stood a green
woman. She was unclothed, green-skinned, glowing in a shaft of afternoon sun
that shot down from a skylight—gray-haired, barefoot, without
jewelry—completely naked, except for a coat of green paint. And what was common
at night in the pond was, in this vivid daylight, dangerous and provocative—a
shock to the senses, a challenge to their notion of what a political congress
was, or could be.
It was Hiroko. She began to step down the staircase, in a steady
measured pace. Ariadne and Charlotte and several other Minoan women stood at
the bottom of the stairs waiting for her, along with Hiroko’s closest followers
from the hidden colony—Iwao, Rya, Ev-genia, Michel, all the rest of that little
band. As Hiroko descended they started to sing. When she reached them, they
draped her with strings of bright red flowers. A fertility rite, Nadia thought,
reaching directly into some paleolithic part of their minds, and intermingling
there with Hiroko’s areophany.
When Hiroko left the foot of the stairs she had a little train of
followers, singing the names of Mars, “Al-Qahira, Ares, Auqakuh, Bahram,” and
so on, a great melange of archaic syllables, into which some of them were
interjecting “Ka ... ka ... ka ...”
She led them down the path, through trees; out again onto the
grass, into the meeting in the park. She walked right through the middle of the
crowd, with a solemn, distant expression on her green face. Many stood as she
passed. Jackie Boone came out of the crowd and joined the group of followers,
and her green grandmother took her by the hand. The two of them led the way
through the crowd, the old matriarch tall, proud, thoroughly ancient, gnarled
like a tree, and as green as a tree’s leaves; Jackie taller still, young and
graceful as a dancer, her black hair flowing halfway down her back. A rustle
went through the crowd, a sigh; and as the two and the group following them
walked down to the central path by the canal, people stood and followed, the
Sufis among them dancing a braid around their circumference. “Ana el-Haqq, ana
Al-Qahira, ana el-Haqq, ana Al-Qahira ...” And so a thousand people walked down
the canal path after the two women and their train, the Sufis singing, others
chanting pieces of Hiroko’s areophany, the rest content to follow.
Nadia walked along holding hands with Nirgal and Art, feeling
happy. They were animals, after all, no matter where they chose to live. She
felt something like worship, an emotion very rare in her experience—worship for
the divinity of life, which took such beautiful forms.
At the pond Jackie took off her rust jumper, and she and Hiroko
stood in ankle-deep water, facing each other and holding their clasped hands as
far overhead as they could reach. The other Minoan women joined this bridge.
Old and young, green and pink... .
The hidden colonists passed under the bridge first, among them
Maya herself, hand in hand with Michel. And then all kinds of people were
filing under the mother bridge, in what felt like the millionth repetition of a
million-year-old ritual, something everyone had coded in their genes and had
practiced all their life. The Sufis danced under the clasped hands still
wearing their white billowing clothes, and this gave a model to others, who
stayed clothed but surged right out into the water, ducking under the naked
women, Zeyk and Nazik leading the way, chanting, “Ana Al-Qahira, ana el-Haqq,
ana Al-Qahira, ana el-Haqq,” looking like Hindus in the Ganges, or Baptists in
the Jordan. So that in the end many shed their clothes, but all walked into the
water. And they stared around at this instinctive and yet highly conscious
rebirth, many drumming on the water surface, making rhythmic slapping splashes
to accompany the singing and chanting... . Nadia saw again and again how
beautiful humans were. Nakedness was dangerous to the social order, she
thought, because it revealed too much reality. They stood before each other
with all their imperfections and their sexual characteristics and their
intimations of mortality—but most of all with their astonishing beauty, which
in the ruddy light of the tunnel sunset could scarcely be believed, could
scarcely be comprehended or answered. Skin at sunset had a lot of red in it—but
not enough for some of the Reds, apparently, who were sponging one of their
women down with a red dye they had located, to make a counter figure to Hiroko,
apparently. Political bathing? Nadia groaned. Actually all the colors were
coming off in the pond, turning the water brown.
Maya swam through the shallows and knocked Nadia deeper into the
pond with an impetuous hug. “Hiroko is a genius,” she said in Russian. “She may
be a mad genius, but a genius she is.”
“Mother goddess of the world,” Nadia said, and switched to English
as she plowed through the warm water to a little knot of the First Hundred and
the Sabishii issei. There were Ann and Sax standing side by side, Ann tall and
thin, Sax short and round, looking just as they had in the old days in the
baths of Underbill, debating something or other, Sax talking with his face all
screwed up in concentration. Nadia laughed at the sight, splashing them.
Fort swam to her side. “Should have run the whole conference like
this,” he observed. “Ooh, he’s going to crash.” And indeed a board rider coming
down the curved wall slipped off his’plummeting board, and slid ignominiously
into the pond. “Look, I need to get back home to be able to help. Also a
great-great-great-granddaughter is getting married in four months.”
“Can you get back that fast?” Spencer asked.
“Yes, my ship is fast.” A Praxis space division built rockets that
used a modified Dyson propulsion to accelerate and then decelerate continuously
through the flight, which took a very direct line between the planets.
“Executive style,” Spencer said.
“They’re open for use by anyone in Praxis, if they’re in a hurry.
You might want to visit Earth yourself, see what conditions are like
firsthand.”
No one took him up on that, though it raised some eyebrows. But
there was no more talk of detaining him, either.
People drifted like jellyfish in a slow whirlpool, calmed at last
by the warmth, by the water and wine and kava being passed around in bamboo
cups, by the accomplishment of finishing what they had come to do. It was not
perfect, people said—definitely not perfect—but it was something, especially
the remarkable nature of point four, or three—quite a declaration, in fact—a
beginning, a real beginning—seriously flawed—especially point six— definitely
not perfect—but likely to be remembered. “Well, but this here is religion,”
someone sitting in the shallows was saying, “and I like all the pretty bodies,
but mixing state and religion is a dangerous business ...”
Nadia and Maya walked out into deeper water, arm in arm, talking
with everyone they knew. A group of the youngsters from Zygote saw them, Rachel
and Tiu and Frantz and, Steve and the rest, and they cried, “Hey, the two
witches!” and came over to squish them together with hugs and kisses. Kinetic
reality, Nadia thought, somatic reality, haptic reality—the power of the touch,
ah, my ... her ghost finger was throbbing, which hadn’t happened in ages.
They walked on, trailing the Zygote ectogenes, and came on Art,
who was standing with Nirgal and a few other men, all drawn as by magnet to
where Jackie still stood by the half-green Hiroko, her wet hair slicked over
her bare shoulders, her head thrown back laughing, the sunset glaring off her
and giving her a kind of hy-perreal, heraldic power. Art was looking happy
indeed, and when Nadia hugged him, he put an arm over her shoulder and left it
there. Her good friend, a very solid somatic reality.
“It was well done,” Maya told him. “It was like John Boone would
have done it.”
“It was not,” Jackie said automatically.
“I knew him,” Maya said, giving her a sharp look, “and you didn’t.
And I say it was like John would have done it.”
They stood staring at each other, the ancient white-haired beauty
and the young black-haired beauty—and it seemed to Nadia there was something
primal in the sight, primal, primeval, primate ... these are the two witches,
she wanted to say to Jackie’s sibs behind her. But then again they no doubt
knew that. “No one is like John was,” she said, trying to break the spell. She
squeezed Art’s waist. “But it was well done.”
Kasei came splashing up; he had been standing by silently, and
Nadia wondered at him a little, the man with the famous father, famous mother,
famous daughter... . And slowly becoming a power himself, among the Reds and
the radical Marsfirsters, out there on the “edge in a splinter movement, as the
congress had proved. No, it was hard to tell what Kasei thought of his life. He
gave Jackie a glance that was too complex to read—pride, jealousy, some sort of
rebuke—and said, “We could use John Boone now.” His father—the first man on
Mars—her cheery John, who used to love to swim the butterfly in Underbill, in
afternoons that had felt like this ceremony, except that it had been their
everyday reality, for a year or so there in the beginning... .
“And Arkady,” Nadia said, still trying to defuse things. “And
Frank.”
“We can do without Frank Chalmers,” Kasei said bitterly.
“Why do you say that?” Maya exclaimed. “We would be lucky to have
him here now! He would know how to handle Fort, and Praxis, and the Swiss and
you Reds and the greens, all of it. Frank, Arkady, John—we could use all three
of them now.” Her mouth was hard and downturned. She glared at Jackie and Kasei
as if daring them to speak; then her lip curled, and she looked away.
Nadia said, “This is why we must avoid another sixty-one.”
“We will,” Art said, and gave her another squeeze.
Nadia shook her head sadly. The peak always passed so fast. “It’s
not our choice,” she told him. “It’s not something that is entirely in our
hands. So we will see.”
“It will be different this time,” Kasei insisted.
“We will see.”
PART
8
--------------
---Social
Engineering
-------------
Where were you
born?
Denver.
Where did you grow up?
Rock. Boulder.
What were you like as a child?
I don’t know.
Give me your impressions.
I wanted to know why.
You were curious?
Very curious.
Did you play with science kits?
All of them.
And your friends?
I don’t remember.
Try for anything.
I don’t think I had many friends.
Were you ambidextrous as a child?
I don’t remember.
Think about your science experiments. Did you use both hands when
you did them?
I believe it was often necessary.
You wrote with your right hand?
I do now. I did then as well. Yes. As a child.
And did you do anything with your left hand? Brush your teeth,
comb your hair, eat, point at things, throw balls?
I did all those things with my right hand. Would it matter ifl
hadn’t?
Well, you see, in cases of aphasia, the strong right-handers all
conform pretty well to a certain profile. Activities are located, or it is
better to say coordinated, at certain places in the brain. When we determine
precisely the problems the aphasic is experiencing, we can tell pretty well
where the lesions in the brain are located. And vice versa. But with
left-handers and ambidextrous people there is no such pattern. One might say
that every left-handed and ambidextrous brain is organized differently.
You know most of Hiroko’s ectogene children are left-handed.
Yes, I know. I’ve spoken with her about it, but she claims she
doesn’t know why. She says it may be a result of being born on Mars.
Do you find this plausible?
Well, handedness is still poorly understood in any case, and the
effects of the lighter gravity ... we’ll be sorting those out for centuries,
won’t we.
I suppose so.
You don’t like the idea of that, do you?
I would rather get answers.
What if all your questions were answered? Would you be happy then?
I find it hard to imagine such a—state. A fairly small percentage
of my questions have answers.
But that’s rather wonderful, don’t you agree?
No. It wouldn’t be scientific to agree.
You conceive of science as nothing more than answers to questions?
As a system for generating answers.
And what is the purpose of that?
... To know.
And what will you do with your knowledge?
... Find out more.
But why?
I don’t know. It’s the way I am.
Shouldn’t some of your questions be directed that way—to finding
out why you are the way you are?
I don’t think you can get good answers to questions about—human
nature. Better to think of it as a black box. You can’t apply the scientific
method. Not well enough to be sure of your answers.
In psychology we believe we have scientifically identified a
certain pathology in which a person needs to know everything because he is
afraid of not knowing. It’s a pathology of monocausotaxophilia, as Poppel
called it, the love of single causes that explain everything. This can become
fear of a lack of causes. Because the lack might be dangerous. The
knowledge-seeking becomes primarily defensive, in that it is a way of denying
fear when one really is afraid. At its worst it isn’t even knowledge-seeking,
because when the answers arrive they cease to be of interest, as they are no
longer dangerous. So that reality itself doesn’t matter to such a person.
Everyone tries to avoid danger. But motivations are always
multiple. And different from action to action. Time to time. Any patterns are a
matter of—observer’s speculation.
Psychology is a science in which the observer becomes intimately
involved with the subject of observation.
That’s one of the reasons I don’t think it’s a science.
It is certainly a science. One of its tenets is, if you want to
know more, care more. Every astronomer loves the stars. Otherwise why study them
so?
Because they are mysteries.
What do you care about?
I care about truth.
The truth is not a very good lover.
It isn’t love I’m looking for.
Are you sure?
No surer than anyone else who thinks about—motivations.
You agree we have motivations?
Yes. But science cannot explain them.
So they are part of your great unexplainable.
Yes.
And so you focus your attention on other things.
Yes.
But the motivations are still there.
Oh yes.
What did you read when you were young?
All kinds of things.
What were some of your favorite books?
Sherlock Holmes. Other detective stories. The Thinking Machine.
Dr. Thorndyke.
Did your parents punish you if you got upset?
I don’t think so. They didn’t like me making a fuss. But I think
they were just ordinary in that respect.
Did you ever see them get upset?
I don’t remember.
Did you ever see them shout, or cry?
I never heard them shout. Sometimes.my mom cried, I think.
Did you know why?
No.
Did you wonder why?
I don’t remember. WouU it matter if I had?
What do you mean?
I mean, if I had had one kind of past. I could still have turned
into any kind of person. Depending on my reaction to the—events. And if I had
had another kind of past. The same variations would have followed. So that your
line of questioning is useless. In that it has no explanatory rigor. It’s an
imitation of the scientific method.
I consider your conception of science to be as parsimonious and
reductive as your scientific activities. Essentially you are saying we should
not study the human mind in a scientific manner because it is too complex to
make the study easy. That’s not very bold of you. The universe outside us is
complex too, but you don’t advise avoiding that. Why so with the universe
inside?
You can’t isolate factors, you can’t repeat conditions, you can’t
set up experiments with controls, you can’t makefalsifiable hypotheses. The
whole apparatus of science is unavailable to you.
Think about the first scientists for a while.
The Greeks?
Before that. Prehistory was not just a formless timeless round of
the seasons, you know. We tend to think of those people as if they resembled
our own unconscious minds, but they were not like that. For a hundred thousand
years at least we have been as intellectual as we are now. Probably more like
half a million years. And every age has its great scientists, and they all had
to work in the context of their times, like we_ do. For the early ones, there
were hardly explanations for anything— nature was as whole and complex and
mysterious as our own minds are to us now, but what could they do? They had to
begin somewhere, eh? This is what you must remember. And it took thousands of
years to learn the plants, the animals, the use of fire, rocks, axes, bows and
arrows, shelter, clothing. Then pottery, crops, metallurgy. All so slow!}’,
with such effort. And all passed along by word of mouth, from one scientist to
the next. And all the while there were no doubt people saying, it’s too complex
to be sure of anything. Why should we try at all? Galileo said, “The ancients
had good reason to think the first scientists among the gods, seeing that
common minds have so little curiosity. The small . hints that began the great
inventions were part of not a trivial but a superhuman spirit.” Superhuman! Or
merely the best parts of ourselves, the bold minds of each generation. The
scientists. And over the millennia we have pieced together a model of the
world, a paradigm that is quite precise and powerful, yes?
But haven’t we tried just as hard all these years—with little
success—to understand ourselves?
Say we have. Maybe it takes longer. But look, we have made quite a
bit of progress there too. And not just recently. By observation alone the
Greeks discovered the four temperaments, and only recently have we learned
enough about the brain to say what the neurological basis of this phenomenon
is.
You believe in the four temperaments?
Oh yes. They are confirmable by experiment, if you will. As are so
many, many things about the human mind. Perhaps it is not physics, perhaps it
will never be physics. It could be that we are simply more complex and
unpredictable than the universe.
That hardly seems likely. We are made of atoms after all.
But animated! Driven by the green force, alive with spirit, the
great unexplainable!
Chemical reactions ...
But why life? It’s more than reactions. There is a drive toward
com-plexification that is directly opposed to the physical law of entropy. Why
should that be?
I don’t know.
Why do you dislike it so when you can’t say why?
I don’t know.
This mystery of life is a holy thing. It is our freedom. We have
shot out of physical reality, we exist now in a kind of godlike freedom, and
the mystery is integral to it.
No. We are still physical reality. Atoms in their rounds.
Determined on most scales, random on some others.
Ah well. We disagree. But either way, the scientist’s job is to
explore everything. No matter the difficulties! To stay open, to accept
ambiguity. To attempt to fuse with the object of knowledge. To admit that there
are values shot through the whole enterprise. To love it. To work toward
discovering the values by which we should live. To work to enact those values
in the world. To explore—and more than that—to create!
I’ll have to think about that.
Observation is
never enough. Besides it
wasn’t their experiment anyway. Desmond came to Dorsa Brevia, and Sax went to
find him. “Is Peter still flying?”
“Why yes. He spends a fair amount of time in space, if that’s what
you mean.”
“Yes. Can you get me in’touch with him?”
“Sure I can.” Quizzical expression on Desmond’s cracked face.
“Your speech is getting better and better, Sax. What have they been doing to
you?”
“Gerontological treatments. Also growth hormone, L-dopa,
serotonin, other chemicals. Stuff out of starfish.”
“Grew you a new brain, did they?”
“Yes. Parts anyway. Synergic synaptic stimulus. Also a lot of
talking with Michel.”
“Uh-oh!”
“It’s still me.”
Desmond’s laugh was an animal noise. “I can see that. Listen, I’ll
be off again in a couple days, and I’ll take you to Peter’s airport.”
“Thanks.”
* * *
Grew a new brain. Not an accurate way of putting it. The lesion
had been sustained in the posterior third of the inferior frontal convolution.
Tissues dead as a result of interruption of focused ultrasound memory-speech
stimulation during interrogation. A stroke. Broca’s aphasia. Difficulty with
motor apparatus of speech, little melody, difficulty in initiating utterances,
reduction to tele-gramese, mostly nouns and simplest forms of verbs. A battery
of tests determined that most other cognitive functions were unimpaired. He
wasn’t so sure; he had understood people speaking to him, his thinking had been
much the same as far as he could tell, and he had had no trouble with the
spatial and other nonlinguistic tests. But when he tried to talk, sudden betrayal—in
the mouth and in the mind. Things lost their names.
Strangely enough, without names they were still things. He could
see them and think about them in terms of shapes, or numbers. Formula of
description. Various combinations of conic sections and the six surfaces of
revolution symmetrical around an axis, the plane, the sphere, the cylinder, the
catenoid, the unduloid, and the nodoid; shapes without the names, but the
shapes alone were like names. Spatializing language.
But it turned out that remembering without words was hard. A
method had to be borrowed, the palace-of-memory method, spatial to begin with.
A space in the mind was established to resemble the inside of the Echus
Overlook labs, which he recalled well enough to walk around in in his mind, names
or no. And in each place an object. Or another place. On one counter, all the
Acheron labs. On top of the refrigerator, Boulder, Colorado. And so he
remembered all the shapes he thought by their location in the mental lab.
And then sometimes the name would come. But when he knew the name
and tried to say it, it was very possible that the wrong one would come out of
his mouth. He had always had a tendency this way. After sessions of his best
thinking, when everything had been quite clear to him, it had sometimes been
difficult to translate his thoughts onto the plane of language, which did not
match well the kind of thinking he had been doing. So that talking had been
work. But nothing like this, this halting, erratic, treacherous groping, which
usually either failed or betrayed. Frustrating in the extreme. Painful.
Although preferable to Wernicke’s aphasia, certainly, in which one babbled
volubly, unaware that one was making no sense at all. Just as he had had a
premorbid tendency to lose the words for things, there were people who tended
towards Wernicke’s without the excuse of brain damage. As Art had noted. Sax
preferred his own problem.
Ursula and Vlad had come to him. “Aphasia is different for every
person,” Ursula said. “There are patterns, and clusters of symptoms that
usually go with certain lesion patterns in right-handed adults. But in
extraordinary minds there are a lot of exceptions. Already we see that your
cognitive functions have remained very high for someone with your degree of
language difficulties. Probably a lot of your thought in math and physics did
not take place using language.”
“That’s right.”
“And if it was geometrical thinking rather than analytical, it
probably took place in the right hemisphere of the brain rather than the left. And
your right hemisphere was spared.”
Sax nodded, not trusting himself to speak.
“So, prospects for recovery vary widely. There is almost always
improvement. Children in particular are very adaptable. When they have head
injuries even a circumscribed lesion may cause serious problems, but there is
almost always recovery. A whole hemisphere of the brain can be removed from a
child if a problem makes it necessary, and all the functions be releamed by the
remaining half. This is because of the incredible growth in the child’s brain.
For adults it is different. Specialization has occurred, so that circumscribed
lesions cause a specific limited damage. But once a skill has been destroyed in
a mature brain, you don’t often see significant improvement.”
“The treat. The treatment.”
“Exactly. But you see, the brain is precisely one of the places
where the gerontological treatment has the most trouble penetrating. We’ve been
working on that, however. We’ve designed a stimulus package to be used in
concert with the treatment, when faced with cases of brain damage. It may
become a regular part of the treatment, if the trials continue to have good
results. We haven’t done this in too many human trials yet, you see. The
injection increases brain plasticity by stimulating axon and dendritic spine
growth, and the sensitivity of Hebb synapses. The corpus callosurn is
particularly affected, and the hemisphere opposite to the lesioned side.
Learning can build whole new neural networks there.” “Do it,” Sax said.
Destruction is creation. Become as a little child. Language as
space, a kind of mathematical notation, geometric locations in the lab of
memory. Reading. Maps. Codes, substitutions, the secret names of things. The
glorious inrush of a word. The joy of chatter. Every color’s wavelength, by
number. That sand is orange, tan, blond, yellow, sienna, umber, burnt umber,
ochre. That sky is cerulean, cobalt, lavender, mauve, violet, Prussian, indigo,
egglant, midnight. Just to look at color charts with words, the rich intensity of
colors, the sounds of the words—he wanted more. A name for every wavelength of
the visible spectrum, why not? Why be so stingy? The .59-micron wavelength is
so much more blue than .6, and .61 is so much more red... . They needed more
words for purples, the way Eskimos needed more words for snow. People always
used that example, and Eskimos did have about twenty words for snow; but
scientists had over three hundred words for snow, and who ever gave scientists
credit for paying attention to their world? No two snowflakes alike. Thisness.
Buh, buh. Bean, bear, bun, burr, bent, bomb. Buh. That place where my arm bends
is my elbow! Mars looks like a pumpkin! The air is cold. And poisoned by carbon
dioxide.
There were parts of his inner speech which were composed entirely
of old cliches, coming no doubt from what Michel called “overlearned”
activities in his past, which had so permeated his mind that they had survived
the damage. Clean design, good data, parts per billion, bad results. Then
cutting through these comfortable formulations, as if from a separate language
entirely, were the new perceptions, and the new phrases groping to express
them. Synaptic synergies. Actual speech from either realm was still welcome.
The exhilaration of normality. How he had taken it for granted. Michel came by
to talk every day, helping him to build this new brain. Michel harbored some
very alarming beliefs for a man of science. The four elements, the four
temperaments, alchemical formulations of all kinds, philosophical positions parading
as science... . “Didn’t you once ask me if I could change lead to gold?”
“I don’t think so.”
“Why do you spend so much time talking to me, Michel?” “I like
talking to you, Sax. You say something new every day.” “I like this throwing
things with my left hand.” “I can see that. It’s possible you may end up a
left-hander. Or ambidextrous, because your left brain is so powerful, I can’t
imagine it will lag much, no matter the lesion.”
“Mars looks like an iron-cored ball of old planetesimals.”
Desmond flew him to the Red sanctuary in Wallace Crater, where
Peter often stayed. And Peter was there, Peter son of Mars, tall fast and
strong, graceful, friendly although impersonal, distant, absorbed in his own
work and his own life. Simonlike. Sax told him what he wanted to do, and why.
He still stumbled in his speech occasionally. But it was so much better than it
had been before that he hardly minded when he did. Forge on! Like talking in a
foreign language. All languages were foreign languages to him now. Except his
idiolect of shapes. But it was no aggravation—on the contrary, such a relief to
do even so well. To have the fog clearing away from the names, have the
mind-mouth connections restored. Even if in a new and chancy way. A chance to
learn. Sometimes he liked the new way. One’s reality might indeed depend on
one’s scientific paradigm, but it mostly definitely depended on one’s brain
structure. Change that and your paradigms might as well follow. You can’t fight
progress. Nor progressive differentiation. “Do you understand?”
“Oh, I understand,” Peter said, grinning widely. “I think it’s a
very good idea. Very important. It will take me a few days to get the plane
ready.”
- - Ann arrived at the shelter, looking tired and old. She greeted
Sax curtly, her old antipathy as strong as ever. Sax did not know what to say
to her. Was this a new problem?
He decided to wait until Peter had talked to her, and see if that
made any difference. He waited. Nowadays if he didn’t talk no one bothered him.
Advantages everywhere.
She came back from a talk with Peter, to eat a meal with the other
Reds in their little commons, and yes she stared at him curiously. Looking over
the heads of the others at him as if inspecting a new cliff on the Martian
landscape. Intent and objective. Evaluative. A status change in a dynamic
system is a data point that speaks to a theory. Supporting or troubling. What
are you? Why are you doing this?
He met her stare calmly, tried to field it, to turn it around. Yes
I am still Sax. I have changed. Who are you? Why haven’t you changed? Why do
you still look at me like that? I have experienced an injury. The premorbid
individual is not there anymore, not quite. I have been given an experimental
treatment, I feel fine, I am not the man you knew. And why haven’t you changed?
If enough data points trouble the theory, the theory may be wrong.
If the theory is basic, the paradigm may have to change.
She sat down to eat. It was doubtful she had read his mind in,
that much detail. But a great pleasure nevertheless, to be able to meet her
eye!
He got in the little cockpit with Peter and just after the
timeslip they bounced down the bedrock runway, accelerating hard and tilting up
at the black sky, the big streamlined space plane vibrating under them. Sax lay
back, crushed into his seat, and waited for the plane to curve over that
asymptotic hill at the top of its course, slowing as it rose less steeply,
until it was in a gentle rise through the high stratosphere, making the
transition from plane to rocket as the atmosphere thinned to its last
attenuated level, a hundred kilometers high, where the gases of the Russell
cocktail were annihilated daily by incoming UV rays. The plane’s skin was
glowing with heat. Through the filtered glass of the cockpit it was the color
of the sun at sunset. No doubt it was affecting their night vision. Below the
planet was all dark, except for very faint patches of starlit glaciers in
Hellas Basin. They were rising still. A widening gyre. Stars packed the
blackness of what looked like an enormous black hemisphere, standing on an
enormous black plane. Night sky, night Mars. They rose and rose again. The
incandescent rocket was translucent yellow, hallucinatorily bright and sleek.
The latest thing from Vishniac, designed in part by Spencer, and made of an
inter-metallic compound, chiefly gamma titanium aluminum, rendered superplastic
for the manufacture of heat-resistant engine parts as well as the exterior
skin, which dimmed a bit as they rose higher and it cooled. He could imagine the
beautiful latticework of the gamma titanium aluminum, patterned in a tapestry
of nodoids and catenoids like hooks and eyes, vibrating madly with the heat.
They were building such things these days. Ground-to-space planes. Walk out
into your backyard and fly to Mars in an aluminum can.
Sax described what he wanted to do next after this. Peter laughed.
“Do you think Vishniac can do it?”
“Oh yeah.”
“There are some design problems.”
“I know, I know. But they’ll solve them. I mean you don’t have to
be a rocket scientist to be a rocket scientist.”
“That’s very true.”
Peter sang to pass the hours. Sax joined in when he knew the
words—as in “Sixteen Tons,” a satisfying song. Peter told the story of how he
had escaped from the falling elevator. What it had been like to float in an,EVA
suit, alone for two days. “Somehow it gave me a taste for it, that’s all. I
know that sounds strange.”
“I understand.” The shapes out here were so big and pure. The
color of things.
“What was it like to learn to talk again?”
“I have to concentrate to do it. I have to think hard. Things
surprise me all the time. Things I used to know and forgot. Things I never
knew. Things I learned just before the injury. That period is usually occluded
forever. But it was so important. When I was working around the glacier. I have
to talk to your mom about that. It isn’t like she thinks. You know, the land.
The new plants out there. The yellow butterfly sun. It doesn’t have to be ...”
“You should talk to her.”
“She doesn’t like me.”
“Talk to her when we get back.”
The altimeter indicated 250 kilometers above the surface. The
plane plowed up toward Cassiopeia. Every star had a distinct color, different
from any other. Or there were at least fifty of them. Below them, on the
eastern edge of the black disk, the terminator appeared, zebra-banded sandy
ochre and shadowy black. The thin crescent of sunlit Mars gave him the sudden
clear perception of the disk as a great spheroid. A ball spinning through the
galaxy of stars. The great huge continent-mountain of Elysium bulked over the
horizon, its shape perfectly delineated by the horizontal’ shadows. They were
looking down the length of its long saddleback, Hecates Tholus almost hidden
behind the cone of Elysium Mons, Albor Tholus off to the side.
“There it is,” Peter said, and pointed up through the clear
cockpit. Above them, to the east, the eastern edge of the aerial lens was
silver in the morning light, the rest of it still in the planet’s shadow.
“Are we close enough yet?” Sax asked.
“Almost.”
Sax looked down again at the thickening crescent of the morning.
There on the dark rough highlands of Hesperia, a cloud of smoke was billowing
up from the dark surface just beyond the terminator, into the morning light.
Even at their height they were in that cloud still, in the part that was no
longer visible. The lens itself was surfing on that invisible thermal, using
its lift and the pressure of sunlight to hold its position over the burn zone.
Now the entire lens was in the sunlight, looking like an enormous
silver parachute with nothing underneath it. Its silver was also violet,
sky-colored. The cup was a section of a sphere, a thousand kilometers across,
its center some fifty kilometers above its rim. Spinning like a Frisbee. There
was a hole at the peak, where the sunlight poured straight through. Everywhere
else the circular mirror strips that made up the cup were reflecting the light
from the sun and the soletta, inward and down onto a moving point on the
surface below, bringing to bear so much light that it was igniting basalt. The
lens mirrors heated up to almost 900°K, and the liquefied rock down there was
reaching 5,000°K. Degassing vola-tiles.
Into Sax’s mind, as he considered the great object flying over
them, came the image of a magnifying glass, held over dry weeds and an aspen
branch. Smoke, flame, fire. The concentrated rays of the sun. Photon assault.
“Aren’t we close enough yet? It looks like it’s right over us.”
“No, we’re well out from under the edge. It wouldn’t do to get
under that thing, although I suppose the focus wouldn’t be right to fry us.
Anyway it’s moving over the burn zone at almost a thousand kilometers an hour.”
“Like jets when I was young.”
“Uh.” Green lights blinked on one of his consoles. “Okay, here we
go.”
He pulled back on the stick and the plane stood on its tail,
rising straight at the lens, which was still another hundred kilometers higher
than they were, and well to the west of them. Peter pushed a button on the
console. The whole plane jerked as a bank of fletched missiles appeared from
under the plane’s stubby wings, lofting with them and then igniting like
magnesium flares and shooting up and away, toward the lens. Pinpricks of yellow
fire against that huge silvery UFO, eventually disappearing from sight. Sax
waited, lips pursed, and tried to stop his blinking.
The front edge of the lens began to unravel. It was a flimsy
thing, nothing but a great spinning cup of solar sail bands, and it came apart
with startling rapidity, its front edge rolling under it until it was tumbling
forward and down, trailing long looping streamers which looked like the tangled
tails of several broken kites, all falling together. A billion and a half
kilograms of solar sail material, in fact, all unraveling as it fluttered down
in its long trajectory, looking slow because it was so big, though probably the
great mass of material was still moving at well above terminal velocity. A good
portion of it would burn up before it hit the surface. Silica rain.
Peter turned and followed it in its descent, keeping well to the
east of it. And so they could still see it below them, there in the violet
morning sky, as the main mass of it heated to an incandescent glare and caught
fire, like a great yellow comet with a hairy tangled silver tail, dropping down
to the tawny planet. All fall down.
“Good shot,” Sax said.
Back in Wallace Crater they were welcomed as heroes. Peter
deflected all congratulations: “It was Sax’s idea, the flight itself was no big
deal, just another reconnaissance except for the firing, I don’t know why we
didn’t think of it before.”
“They’ll just drop another one into position,” Ann said from the
edge of the crowd, staring at Sax with a very curious expression.
“But they’re so vulnerable,” Peter said.
“Surface-to-space missiles,” Sax said, feeling nervous. “Can you
invent—can you inventory all orbiting objects?”
“We already have,” Peter said. “Some of them we don’t have ID’d,
but most are obvious.”
“I’d like to see the list.”
“I’d like to talk to you,” Ann told him darkly.
And the rest quickly left the room, wagging their eyebrows at each
other like a bunch of Art Randolphs.
Sax sat down in a bamboo chair. It was a little room, without a
window. It could have been one of the barrel vaults in Underbill, back in the
beginning. The shape was right. The textures. Brick was such a stable staple.
Ann pulled a chair over and sat across from him, leaning forward to stare in
his face. She looked older. The vaunted Red leader, vaunted, gaunted, haunted.
He smiled. “Are you about due for a gerontological treatment?” his mouth said,
surprising them both.
Ann brushed the question off as an impertinence. “Why did you want
to bring down the lens?” she said, her gaze boring into him.
“I didn’t like it.”
“I know that,” she said. “But why?”
“It wasn’t necessary. Things are warming up fast enough. There’s
no reason to go faster. We don’t even need much more heat. And it was releasing
very large amounts of carbon dioxide. That will be hard to scrub. And it was
very nicely stuck—it’s hard to get CO2 out of carbonates. As long as one
doesn’t melt the rock, it stays.” He shook his head. “It was stupid. They were
just doing it because they could. Canals. I don’t believe in canals.”
“So it just wasn’t the right kind of terraforming for you.”
“That’s right.” He met her stare calmly. “I believe in the
terra-forming outlined in Dorsa Brevia. You signed off too. As I recall.”
She shook her head.
“No? But the Reds signed?”
She nodded.
“Well... it makes sense to me. I said this to you before.
Human-viable to a certain elevation. Above that, air too thin and cold. Go
slow. Ecopoesis. I don’t like any of the big new heavy-industry methods. Maybe
some nitrogen from Titan. But not any of the rest.”
“What about the oceans?”
“I don’t know. See what happens without pumping?”
“What about the soletta?”
“I don’t know. The extra insolation means less warming needed from
industrial gassing. Or other methods. But—we could have done without it. I
thought the dawn mirrors were enough.”
“But it’s not in your hands anymore.”
“No.”.
They sat in silence for a while. Ann appeared to be thinking. Sax
watched her weathered face, wondering when she had last had the treatment.
Ursula recommended repeating it every forty years, at a minimum.
“I was wrong,” his mouth said. As she stared at him, he tried to
follow the thought. It was a matter of shapes, geometries, mathematical
elegance. Cascading recombinant chaos. Beauty is the creation of a strange
attractor. “We should have waited before we started. A few decades of study of
the primal state. It would have told us how to proceed. I didn’t think things
would change so fast. My original idea was something more like ecopoesis.”
She pursed her lips. “But now it’s too late.”
“Yes. I’m sorry.” He turned a palm up, inspected it. All the lines
there were the same as always. “You ought to get the treatment.”
“I’m not taking the treatment anymore.”
“Oh, Ann. Don’t say that. Does Peter know? We need you. I mean—we
need you.”
She got up and left the room.
His next project was more complex. Although Peter was confident,
the Vishniac people were dubious. Sax explained as best he could. Peter helped.
Their objections turned to practicalities. Too large? Enlist more Bogdanovists.
Impossible to stealth? Interrupt the surveillance network. Science is creation,
he told them. This isn’t science, Peter replied. It’s engineering. Mikhail
agreed, but liked that part of it. Ecotage, a branch of ecological engineering.
But very difficult to arrange. Enlist the Swiss, Sax told them. Or at least let
them know. They don’t like surveillance anyway. Tell Praxis.
Things began to shape up. But it was a long time before he and
Peter took off in a space plane again. This time they rocketed out of the
stratosphere entirely, and then far above it. Twenty thousand kilometers above
it, until they were closing on Deimos. And then making a rendezvous with it.
The gravity of the little moon was so slight that it was more a
docking than a touchdown. Jackie Boone, who had helped on the project, mostly
to be close to Peter (the shape was clear), guided the plane in. As they
approached, Sax had an excellent view through the cockpit window. Deimos’s
black surface looked to be covered by a thick coat of dusty regolith—all the
craters were nearly buried in it, their rims soft round dimples in the blanket
of dust. The little oblong moon was not regular, but was rather composed of
several rounded facets. A triaxial ellipsoid, almost. An old robot lander sat
near the middle of Voltaire Crater, its landing pads buried, its coppery
articulated struts and boxes dimmed by a fine dark dust.
They had chosen their own landing site on one of the ridges
between facets, where lighter bare rock protruded from the blanket of dust. The
ridges were old spallation scars, marking where early impacts had knapped
pieces of the moonlet away. Jackie brought them down gently toward a ridge to
the west of Swift and Voltaire craters. Deimos was tidally fixed, as Phobos had
been, which was convenient for their project. The sub-Mars point served as 0°
for both longitude and latitude, a most sensible plan. Their touchdown ridge
was near the equator, at 90° longitude. About a ten-kilometer walk from the
sub-Mars point.
As they approached the ridge, the rim of Voltaire disappeared
under the black curved horizon. Dust blew away from the ridge as the plane’s
rockets shot exhaust over it. There was only a few centimeters of dust covering
the bedrock. Carbonaceous chondrite, five billion years old. They docked with a
hard thump, bounced away, slowly drifted down again. He could feel the pull
toward the floor of the plane, but it was very slight. Probably he didn’t weigh
more than a couple of kilograms, if that.
Other rockets began to land on the ridge to either side of them,
kicking clouds of dust into the vacuum, where they drifted slowly down. All the
planes bounced on impact, then came down gently through their dustclouds.
Within half an hour there were eight planes lined up on the ridge, running
along it to the tight horizons in both directions. Together they made a weird
sight, the inter-metallic compounds of their rounded surfaces gleaming like
chitin under the surgical glare of unfiltered sunlight, the clarity of the
vacuum making all their edges overfocused. Dreamlike.
Each plane carried a component of the system. Robot drillers and
tunnelers and stamps. Water-collection galleries, there to melt the veins of
ice in Deimos. A processing plant to separate out heavy water, about one part
in 6,000 of the ordinary water. Another plant to process deuterium from the
heavy water. A small tokamak, to be powered by a deuterium-deuterium fusion
reaction. Lastly guidance jets, though most of these were in planes that had
landed on the other sides of the moon.
The Bogdanovist technicians who had come up with the equipment
were doing most of the installation. Sax got suited up in one of the bulky
pressure suits on board, and went out the lock and onto the surface, thinking
to look and see if the plane carrying the guidance jet for the Swift-Voltaire
region had landed.
The big heated boots were weighted, and he was glad of it; escape
velocity was no more than twenty-five kilometers an hour, meaning that with a
running start one could jump right off the moon. It was quite difficult to keep
his balance. Millions of tiny motions carried one along. Every step kicked up a
healthy cloud of black dust, which slowly fell to the ground. There were rocks
scattered on top of the dust, usually in little pockets they had made on
landing. Ejecta which had no doubt circled the moonlet many times after
ejection, before dropping in again. He picked up one rock like a black
baseball. Throw it at the right speed, turn around, wait for it to go around
the world, catch it chest high. Out at first. A new sport.
The horizon was only a few hundred meters away, and it changed
markedly with every step—crater rims, spallation ridges, and boulders popping
up over the dusty edge as he trudged toward it. People back on the ridge,
between the planes, already stood at a different upright than he did, and were
tilted away from him. Like the Little Prince. The clarity was starting. His
footprints made a deep trail through the dust. The dustclouds hanging over the
footprints got lower the farther back they were, until they settled, four or
five steps back.
Peter came out of the lock and walked in his direction, and Jackie
followed. Peter was the only man Sax had ever seen Jackie really attracted to,
in that intense helpless manner of the orbiting object, the lovelorn, yearning
for orbital decay. Peter was also the only man Sax had ever seen who did not
respond to Jackie’s amorous attentions in any way. The perversity of the heart.
As in his attraction to Phyllis, a woman he had not liked. Or as in his desire
for the approval of Ann, a woman who had not liked him. A woman with crazy
views. But perhaps there was a rationality to it. If someone moons over you,
you have to wonder at their judgment. Something like that.
Now Jackie trailed Peter like a dog, and though their faceplates
were a copper color, Sax could tell just by her movements that she was talking
to him, cajoling him somehow. Sax turned to the common band and came in on
their conversation.
“—why they’re named Swift and Voltaire,” Jackie said.
“Both of them predicted the existence of the Martian moons,” Peter
said, “in books they wrote a century before the moons were seen. In Gulliver’s
Travels Swift even gives their distances from the planet and their orbit times,
and he wasn’t that far off.”
“You’re kidding!”
“No.”
“How in the world did he do that?”
“I don’t know. Blind luck, I guess.”
Sax cleared his throat. “Sequence.”
“What?” they said.
“Venus had no moon, Earth one, Jupiter four. Mars should have had
two. Since they couldn’t see them, they were probably small. And-close.
Therefore fast.”
Peter laughed. “Swift must have been a smart man.”
“Or his source. But it was still blind luck. The sequence being a
coincidence.”
They stopped on another spallation ridge, from which they could
see the rim of Swift Crater, as a nearly buried ridge on the next horizon. A
small gray rocket plane stood on the black dust like a miracle. Above them Mars
filled most of the sky, a vast orange world. Night was falling across the
eastern crescent. Isidis was directly above them, and though he could not make
out Burroughs, the plains to the north of it were patched with great white
splotches. Glaciers meeting up to become ice lakes, and the beginnings of an
ice sea. Oceanus Borealis. A corrugated layer of clouds lay pasted right
against the land, reminding him suddenly of what Earth had looked like from the
Ares. That was a cold front, coming down Syrtis Major. The pattern of white
clouds was just what it would have been on Terra. Spiraling waves of
condensation particles.
He left the ridge, walked back toward the planes. The tall stiff
boots were the only things that kept him upright, and his ankles hurt. Like
walking on the sea bottom, only with no resistances. Universe ocean. He reached
down and dug in the dust; no bedrock for ten centimeters, then twenty; it could
have been five or ten meters deep, or even more. The dustclouds he had kicked
up dropped back to the surface in about fifteen seconds. The dust was so fine
that in any kind of atmosphere they might have stayed in suspension
indefinitely. But in the vacuum they fell like anything else. Ejecta. There
simply wasn’t much to pull them back. One might be able to kick dust into
space. He crossed a low ridge and abruptly could see over the sloping plain of
the next facet. It was so obvious that the moonlet was shaped like some
paleolithic hand tool, with facets knapped off by ancient strikes. Triaxial
ellipsoid. Curious that it had such a circular orbit, one of the most circular
in all the solar system. Not what you would expect of a captured asteroid, nor
of ejecta flung up from Mars in one of the big impacts. Leaving what? Very old
capture. With other bodies in other orbits, to regularize it. Knapp, knapp.
Spall. Spallation. Language was so beautiful. Rocks striking rocks, in the
ocean of space. Knocking bits off and flying away. Until they all either fell
into the planet or skittered off. All but two. Two out of billions. Moon bomb.
Gun stand. Rotating just faster than Mars above, so that any point on the
Martian surface had it in the sky for sixty hours at a time. Convenient. The
known was more dangerous than the unknown. No matter what Michel said. Clomp,
clomp, on the virgin rock, of a virgin moon, with a virgin mind. The Little
Prince. The planes rising over the horizon looked absurd, like insects from a
dream, chitinous, articulated, colorful, tiny in the starry black, on the
dust-blanketed rock. He climbed back into the lock.
It was months later, and he was alone in Echus Chasma, when the
robots on Deimos finished their construction, and the starter deuterium ignited
the drive engine. One thousand tons of crushed rock were thrown out by the
engine every second, at a speed of 200 kilometers per second. All flying out
tangent to the orbit and in the orbit plane. In four months, when about a half
percent of the moon’s mass had been ejected, the engine would cut off. Deimos would
then be 614,287 kilometers away from Mars, according to Sax’s calculations, and
on its way completely out of Mars’s influence, to become a free asteroid again.
Now it flew in his night sky, an irregular gray potato, less
luminous than Venus or Terra, except that there was a new comet blazing out of
its side. Quite a sight. News all over both worlds. Scandalous! Controversial
even in the resistance, where people argued pro and con. All that squabbling.
Hiroko was going to get tired of it and light out for the territory, he could
feel the shape of it. Yes, no, what, where. Who did it? Why?
Ann came on the wrist to ask the same questions, looking furious.
“It was a perfect weapons platform,” Sax said. “If they made it
into a military base, like they did Phobos. We would have been helpless under
it.”
“So you did this on the off chance it might get turned into a
military base?”
“If Arkady and his crew hadn’t fixed Phobos on the off chance, we
couldn’t have dealt with it. We would have been killed. Anyway, the Swiss heard
it was going to happen.”
Ann was shaking her head, staring at him as if he were mad. A
crazed saboteur. Rather a case of the pot calling the kettle black, in his
opinion. Resolutely he met the look. When she cut the connection he shrugged
and called the Bogdanovists. “The Reds have a catalog of—all the objects in
orbit around Mars. Then we need surface-to-space delivery systems. Spencer will
help. Equatorial silos. Inactive moholes. Do you understand?”
They said they did. You didn’t have to be a rocket scientist. And
so if it ever came to it again, they would not be pounded from space.
Sometime later, he could not be sure how long, Peter appeared on
the little screen of the boulder car Sax had borrowed from Desmond. “Sax, I’m
in contact with some friends who work on the elevator, and with Deimos
accelerating, the cable oscillations to dodge it have been thrown off in their
timing. It looks like the next pass in its orbit might collide with the
elevator, but my friends can’t get the cable’s navigation AI to respond to
them. Apparently it’s really hardened to outside input, to prevent sabotage you
know, and the idea of Deimos changing speed is something they can’t get it to
accept. Do you have any suggestions?”
“Let it see for itself.”
“What?”
“Feed the data on Deimos into it. It must get that anyway. And
it’s programmed to avoid it. Direct its attention to the data. Explain what
happened. Trust it.”
“Trust it?”
“Well, talk to it.”
“We’re trying, Sax. But the antisabotage programming is real
strong.”
“It’s running the oscillations to avoid Deimos. As long as that’s
in its list of goals, you should be okay. Just give it the data.”
“Okay. We’ll try.”
It was night, and Sax went outside. Wandering in the darkness,
under the immense cliff of the Great Escarpment, in the region just north of
where Kasei Vallis broke through the wall. Sei meant star in Japanese, ka fire.
Fire star. It was the same in Chinese, in which huo was the syllable the
Japanese pronounced as ka, and hsing, sei. A Chinese word to start with, Huo
Hsing: fire star, burning in the sky. They said Ka was what the little red men
called it. We live on fire. Sax was distributing seeds in the ground, the hard
little nuts pushed just under the surface of the sand flooring the chasm.
Johnny Fireseed. There in the southern sky Deimos burned, slowly losing way
through the stars, rolling westward at its own slow pace. Now pushed by the
pinpoint comet burst on its eastern edge. The elevator rising over Tharsis was
invisible, the new Clarke perhaps one of the dimmer stars in the southwest sky,
it was impossible to say. He kicked a rock by accident, bent down and planted
another seed. After the seeds were all out, there were starter packets of a new
lichen to distribute. A chasmoendolithic strain, very hardy, very fast to
propagate, very quick to pump out oxygen. Very high surface-to-volume ratio.
Very dry.
A bip on the wrist. He switched the voice into his helmet intercom
as he continued to take the little nuts out of his thigh pocket and shove them
into the sand, careful to avoid damaging the roots of any of the sedges or
other ground cover that dotted the ground like furry black rocks.
It was Peter, sounding excited. “Sax, Deimos is coming up on them
now, and the AI seems to have acknowledged that it’s not in its usual spot in
its orbit. It’s been mulling it over, they say. The attitude jets all through
their sector have started a bit early, so we’re hopeful that the system is
responding.”
“Can’t you calculate the oscillation?”
“Yes, but the AI is proving recalcitrant. It’s a stubborn bastard,
the security programs are pretty watertight. We can just figure out enough from
independent calculations to see that it’s going to be a pretty close pass.”
Sax straightened up and tapped out calculations of his own on his
wristpad. Orbital period of Deimos had started at approximately 109,077
seconds. The drive engine had been on for some, he wasn’t sure, say a million
seconds, speeding the moonlet by a significant amount already, but also
expanding the radius of its orbit... . He tapped away in the great silence.
Usually when Dei-’ mos passed by the elevator cable, the cable was at the full
extension of its oscillation in that sector, some fifty kilometers or more
away, far enough away that the gravitational perturbation was so small it did
not have to be factored into the adjustments of the cable jets. This time the
acceleration and movement outward of Deimos would throw the timing off; the
cable would be moving back in toward Deimos’s orbital plane too soon. So it was
a matter of slowing the Clarke oscillation, and adjusting for that all up and
down the cable. Complicated stuff, and no wonder the AI was not able to display
what it was doing in much detail. It was likely to be busy linking up to other
AIs to gain the calculating capacity necessary to perform the operation. The
shapes of the situation—Mars, the cable, Clarke, Deimos—were beautiful to
contemplate.
“Okay, here it comes at them,” Peter said.
“Are your friends at the elevation of the orbit?” Sax asked,
surprised.
“They’re a couple hundred kilometers below it, but their elevator
car is on its way up. They’ve linked me up to their cameras, and hey, here it
comes ... Yes! Oh! Ka wow, Sax, it must have missed the cable by about three
kilometers! It just flashed right by their camera!”
“A miss is as good as a mile.”
“What’s that?”
“At least in a vacuum it is.” But now it was more than just a
passing rock. “What about the tail of ejecta from the drive engine?”
“I’ll ask... . They ended up crossing in front of Deimos, they
say.”
“Good.” Sax clicked off. Good foresight on the AI’s part. A few
more passes and Deimos would be above Clarke, and the cable would no longer
have to dodge it. Meanwhile, as long as the navigational AI believed in the
danger, as obviously it did now, they would be okay.
Sax was of two minds about this. Desmond had said he
would be happy to see the cable come down again. But there were few who seemed
to agree with him. Sax had decided against taking unilateral action on the
matter, since he was not sure what he felt about that tie to Earth. Best to
limit unilateral action to things he was sure about. And so he bent over and
planted another seed.
PART
9
The
Spur of
---------------the
Moment
----------
Inhabiting new
country is always a challenge. As soon as the tenting of Nirgal Vallis was
done, Separation de L’Atmosphere set up some of their largest mesocosm
aerators, and soon the tent was filled with 500 millibars of a
nitrogen-oxygen-argon mix that had been pulled and filtered out of the ambient
air, now at 240 millibars. And the settlers started moving in, from Cairo and
Senzeni Na, and everywhere else on the two worlds.
First people lived in mobile trailers, next to small portable
greenhouses, and while they worked on the soils of the canyon with bacteria and
plows, they used the greenhouses to grow their starter crops, and the trees and
bamboo they would use to build their houses, and the desert plants they would
spread outside the farms. The smectite clays on the canyon floor were a very
good base for a soil, though they had to add biota, nitrogen, potassium—there
was plenty of phosphorus, and more salts than they wanted, as usual.
So they spent their days augmenting the soil, and growing
greenhouse crops, and planting hardy salt-desert plants. They traded all up and
down the valley, and little market hamlets sprang up almost the day people
moved in, as well as trails between homesteads, and a trunk road running down
the middle of the valley, next to the stream. Nirgal Vallis had no aquifer at
its head, and so a pipeline from Marineris pumped enough water to the head to
start a small stream running. Its waters were collected at the Uzboi Gate and
piped back up to the top of the tent again.
The homesteads were about half a hectare each, and almost everyone
was trying to grow the bulk of their food on that space. Most divided their
land up into six miniature fields, rotating crops and pasturage each season.
Everyone had their own theories of cropping and soil augmentation. Most people
grew a small cash crop, nuts or fruits or lumber trees. Many kept chickens,
some kept sheep, goats, pigs, cows. The cows were almost all miniatures, no
bigger than pigs.
They tried to keep the farms down on the canyon floor by the
stream, leaving the higher rougher ground under the canyon walls to wild land.
They introduced an American Southwest community of desert animals, so that
lizards and turtles and jackrabbits began to live nearby, and coyotes, bobcats,
and hawks to make depredations among their chickens and sheep. They had an
infestation of alligator lizards, then one of toads. Populations slowly settled
into their sizes, but there were frequent sharp fluctuations. The plants began
to spread on their own. The land began to look as if its life belonged there.
The redrock walls stood unchanged, sheer and craggy over the new riverine
world.
Saturday morning was market day, and people drove down to the
market hamlets in full pickups. One morning in the early winter of ‘42 they
gathered in Playa Blanco under dark cloudy skies, to sell late vegetables, and
dairy products, and eggs. “You know how you can tell which eggs have live
chicks in them—you take them all, and put them in a tub of water, and wait
until it’s all gone completely still. Then the eggs that tremble just a little
bit are the ones with live chicks in them. You can put those back under the
hens, and eat the rest.”
“A cubic meter of hydrogen peroxide is like twelve hundred
kilowatt-hours! And besides it weighs a ton and a half. No way you’ll need that
much.”
“We’re trying to get it into the parts per billion range, but no
luck yet.”
“Centra de Educaciony Tecnologia in Chile, they’ve really done
some great work on rotation, you won’t believe it. Come over and see.”
“Storm coming.”
“We keep bees too.”
“Maja is Nepali, Bahram is Farsi, Mawrth is Welsh. Yeah, it does
sound like a lisp, but I’m probably not pronouncing it right. Welsh spelling is
bizarre. They probably pronounce it Moth, or Mart, or Mars.”
Then word spread through the marketplace, leaping from group to
group like a fire. “Nirgal is here! Nirgal is here! He’s going to talk at the
pavilion—”
And there he was, walking fast at the head of a growing crowd,
greeting old friends and shaking hands with people who approached him. Everyone
in the hamlet followed him, jamming into the pavilion and volleyball court at
the western end of the market. Wild howls rang out over the crowd buzz.
Nirgal stood on a bench and began to speak. He talked about their
valley, and the other new tented land on Mars, and what it meant. But as he was
getting to the larger situation of the two worlds, the storm overhead broke
big-time. Lightning began to stab all the lightning rods, and in quick
succession they saw rain, snow, sleet, and then mud.
The tenting over the valley was pitched as steep as a church roof,
and dust and fines were repelled by the static charge of its piezoelectric
outer layer; rain ran right off it, and snow slid down and piled up against the
bottom of the sides, forming drifts that were blown away by huge robotic
snowplows with long angled blower extensions, which rolled up and down the
foundation road during snowstorms. Mud, however, was a problem. Mixed with the
snow it formed cold, concrete-hard packs on the tenting just above the foundation,
and this dense pack could get heavy enough’to cause tent failure—it had
happened once before in the north.’
So when this storm turned ugly, and the light in the canyon was
like the color of a branch, Nirgal said, “We’d better get up there,” and they
all piled into the trucks and drove to the nearest elevator that ran up inside
the canyon wall to the rim. Up on top the people who knew how took over the
snowplows and drove them by hand, with the great blowers now spraying steam
over the drifts to wash them off the tenting. Everyone else teamed up and took
hand-pulled steam carts out, and worked on moving the piles of sludge brought
down by the snowplows away from the foundation. This was what Nirgal helped
with, running around with a steam hose like he was placing some strenuous new
sport. No one could keep up his pace, but quickly they were all thigh-deep in
cold swirling mud, with winds over J50, and solid low black clouds spitting
more mud down on them all the time. The winds surged to 180 kilometers an hour,
but no one minded; it helped clear the tent of the mud. They made sweep after
sweep, moving east with the wind, pushing rivers of mud over the drop into
uncovered Uzboi Vallis.
When the storm ended, the tenting was fairly clear, but the land
on both sides of Nirgal Vallis was deep in frozen mud, and the crews were
soaked. They piled back into elevators and dropped to the canyon
floor,exhausted and cold, and when they got out at the bottom they looked at
each other, entirely black figures except for their faceplates. Nirgal pulled
off his helmet and there he was, laughing hard, irrepressible, and when he
scooped mud off his helmet and threw it at them, the fight was on. Most found
it prudent to keep their helmets on, and it was a strange sight there on the
dark floor of that canyon, blind muddy figures throwing clumps of mud at each
other and running out into the stream, slipping around as they wrestled and
dove.
Maya Hatarina
Toitovna woke in a foul
mood, disturbed by a dream that she deliberately forgot as she rolled out of
bed. Like flushing the toilet after that first trip to the bathroom. Dreams
were dangerous. She dressed with her back to the little mirror over the sink,
then went downstairs to the dining common. All of Sabishii had been built in
its signature Martian/Japanese style, and her neighborhood had the look of a
Zen garden, all pine and moss scattered among polished pink boulders. It was
beautiful in a spare way that Maya found unpleasant, a kind of rebuke to her
wrinkles. She ignored it as best she could, and concentrated on breakfast. The
dead boredom of the daily necessities. At another table Vlad and Ursula and
Marina were eating with a group of the Sabishii issei. The Sabishiians had all
shaved their heads, and in their work jumpers looked like Zen monks. One of
them turned on a tiny screen over their table and a Terran news show began, a
metana-tional production from Moscow that had the same relationship to reality
that Pravda had once had. Some things never changed. This was the
English-language version, the speaker’s English better than her own, even after
all these years. “Now the latest on this fifth day of August, 2114.”
Maya stiffened in her chair. In Sabishii it was Ls 246, very near
perihelion—the fourth day of 2 November—the days short, the nights warmish for
this M-year 44. Maya had had no idea what the Terran date was, and hadn’t for
years. But back there it was her birthday. Her—she had to calculate ... her
130th birthday.
Feeling sick, she scowled and threw her half-eaten bagel on her
plate, stared at it. Thoughts burst in her head like birds scattering out of a
tree; she couldn’t track them; it was like being blank. What did it mean, this
horrible unnatural age? Why had they turned on the screen at just that moment?
She left the half-moon of bread, which had taken on an ominous
look, and walked outside into’the autumn morning light. Down the lovely main
boulevard of Sabishii’s old quarter, green with streetgrass, red with
broad-topped fire maples—there was one maple blocking the low sun, and flaring
scarlet. Across the plaza outside their dorm she saw Yeli Zudov, playing
skittlebowl with a young child, perhaps Mary Dunkel’s
great-great-granddaughter. There were a lot of the First Hundred in Sabishii
now, it was working well as their demimonde, all of them tucked into the local
economy and the old quarter, with false identities and Swiss
passports—everything amazingly solid, enabling them to live surface lives. And
all without the need for the kind of cosmetic surgery that had so altered Sax,
because age had done that surgery for them: they were unrecognizable just as
they were. She could walk the streets of Sabishii and people would see only one
ancient crone among many others. If Transitional Authority officials stopped
her they would identify one Ludmilla Novosibirskaya. But the truth was, they
would not stop her.
She walked through the city, trying to get away from herself. From
the north end of the tent she could see outside the town to the great mound of
rock that had been brought up out of Sabishii mohole. It formed a long sinuous
hill, running uphill to the horizon, across the high krummholz basins of
Tyrrhena. They had designed the mound so that from above it formed the image of
a dragon, clutching the egglike tents of the town in its talons. A shadowed
cleft crossing the mound marked where a talon left the scaled flesh of the
creature. The morning sun shone like the dragon’s silver eye, staring back over
its shoulder at them.
Her wristpad beeped, and irritably she took the call. It was .
Marina. “Saxifrage is here,” she said. “We’re going to meet out in the western
stone garden in an hour.”
“I’ll be there,” Maya said, and cut the connection. .
What a day it was turning out to be. She wandered west along the
city perimeter, abstracted and depressed. One hundred thirty years old. There
were Abkhasians down in Georgia, on the Black Sea, who were reputed to have
lived to such ages without the treatment. Presumably they were still doing
without—the gerontologi-cal treatments had been only partially distributed on
Earth, following the isobars of money and power, and the Abkhasians had always
been poor. Happy but poor. She tried to remember what it had been like in
Georgia, in the region where the Caucasus met the Black Sea. Sukhumi, the town
was called. She felt she had visited it in her youth, her father had been
Georgian. But she could call no image to mind, not a scrap. In fact she could
scarcely remember anything of any part of Earth—Moscow, Baikonur, the view from
Noyy Mir—none of it. Her mother’s, face across the kitchen table, laughing
blackly as she ironed or cooked. Maya knew that had happened because she
rehearsed the words of the memory from time to time, when she was feeling sad.
But the actual images ... Her mother had died only ten years before the
treatment became’ available, or she might be alive yet. She would be 150, not
at all unreasonable; the current age record was around 170, and rising all the
time, with no sign that it would ever stop. Nothing but accidents and rare
diseases and the occasional medical mistake were killing the treated these
days. Those and murder. And suicide.”
She came to the western rock gardens without having seen any of
the neat narrow streets of Sabishii’s old quarter. That was how the old ended
up not remembering recent events—by not seeing them in the first place. Memory
lost before it ever came to be, because one was focusing so intently on the
past.
Vlad and Ursula and Marina and Sax were seated on a park bench
across from Sabishii’s original habitats, which were still in use, at least by
geese and ducks. The pond and bridge, and banks of riprap and bamboo, were
straight out of an old woodblock or silk painting: a cliche. Beyond the tent
wall the great thermal cloud of the mohole billowed whitely, thicker than ever
as the hole got deeper, and the atmosphere more humid.
She sat down on the bench across from her old companions, stared
at them grimly. Mottled wrinkled codgers and crones. They looked almost like
strangers, people she had never met. Ah, but there were Marina’s sultry hooded
eyes, and Vlad’s little smile— not surprising on the face of a man who had
lived with two women, apparently in harmony and certainly in a completely
isolated intimacy, for eighty years. Although it was said that Marina and
Ursula were a lesbian couple, and Vlad only a sort of companion or pet. But no
one could say for sure. Ursula too looked content, as always. Everybody’s
favorite aunt. Yes—with concentration, one could see them. Only Sax looked utterly
different, a dapper man with a broken nose that he still had not had
straightened. It stood in the middle of his newly handsome face like an
accusation against her, as if she had done it to him and not Phyllis. He did
not meet her eye, but only stared mildly at the ducks clacking around his feet,
as if studying them. The scientist at work. Except he was a mad scientist now,
wreaking havoc with all their plans, completely beyond rational discourse.
Maya pursed her lips and looked at Vlad.
“Subarashii and Amexx are increasing the number of Transitional
Authority troops,” he said. “We got a message from Hiroko. They’ve bulked up
the unit that attacked Zygote into a kind of expeditionary force, and it’s now
moving south, between Argyre and Hellas. They don’t seem to know where most of
the hidden sanctuaries are, but they’re checking hot spots one by one, and they
entered Christianopolis, and took it over as a base of operations. There’s
about five hundred of them, heavily armed and protected from orbit. Hiroko says
she’s only just barely keeping Coyote and Kasei and Dao from leading the
Marsfirst guerrillas in an attack on them. If they find many more sanctuaries
the radicals are bound to call for an attack.”
Meaning the wild youngsters of Zygote, Maya thought bitterly. They
had brought them up poorly, the ectogenes and that whole sansei
generation—almost forty now, and itching for a fight. And Peter and Kasei and
the rest of the nisei generation were nearing seventy, and in the ordinary
course of things should have long since become the leaders of their world; and
yet here they were always in the shadow of their undying parents, and how did
that make them feel? How might they act on those feelings? Perhaps some of them
were figuring that another revolution would be just the thing to give them
their chance. Perhaps the only thing. Revolution was the empire of the young,
after all.
The old ones sat around watching the ducks in silence. A somber,
dispirited group. “What happened to the Christians?” Maya asked.
“Some went to Hiranyagarbha. The rest stayed.”
If the Transitional Authority forces took over the southern
highlands, then the underground might have infiltrated the cities, but to what
purpose? Scattered so thinly they couldn’t budge the two-world order, based as
it was on Earth. Suddenly Maya had the ugly feeling that the whole independence
project was no more than a dream, a compensatory fantasy for the decrepit
survivors of a losing cause.
“You know why this step-up in security has happened,” she said, glaring
at Sax. “Those big sabotages were what did it.”
Sax showed no sign of hearing her.
Vlad said, “It’s too bad we couldn’t have fixed on some sort of
plan of action at Dorsa Brevia.”
“Dorsa Brevia,” Maya said scornfully.
“It was a good idea,” Marina said.
“Maybe it was. But without a plan of action, agreed on by all, the
constitutional stuff was just—” Maya waved a hand. “Building sandcastles. A
game.”
“The notion was that each group would do what it thought best,”
Vlad said.
“That was the notion in sixty-one,” Maya pointed out. “And now, if
Coyote and the radicals start a guerrilla war and it touches things off, then
we’re right back in sixty-one all over again.”
“What do you think we should do?” Ursula asked her curiously.
“We should take over ourselves! We make the plan, we decide what
to do. We disseminate it through the underground. If we don’t take
responsibility for this, then whatever happens will be our fault.”
“That’s what Arkady tried to do,” Vlad pointed out.
“At least Arkady tried! We should build on what was good in his
work!” She laughed shortly. “I never thought I would hear myself say that. But
we should work with the Bogdanovists, and then everyone else who will join. We
have to take charge! We are the First Hundred, we are the only ones with the
authority to pull it off. The Sabishiians will help us, and the Bogdanovists
will come along.”
“We need Praxis too,” Vlad said. “Praxis, and the Swiss. It has to
be a coup rather than a general war.”
“Praxis wants to help,” Marina said. “But what about the
radicals?”
“We have to coerce them,” Maya said. “Cut off their supplies, take
away their members—”
“That way leads to civil war,” Ursula objected.
“Well, they must be stopped! If they start a revolt too soon and
the metanationals come down on us before we’re ready, then we’re doomed. All
these uncoordinated strikes at them ought to stop. They accomplish nothing,
they only increase the levels of security and make things more difficult for
us. Things like knocking Deimos out of its orbit only make them more aware of
our presence, without doing anything else.”
Sax, still observing the ducks, spoke in his odd lilting way:
“There are a hundred and fourteen Earth-to-Mars transit ships. Forty-seven
objects in Mars obit—Mars orbit. The new Clarke is a fully defended space
station. Deimos was available to become the same. A military base. A weapons
platform.”
“It was an empty moon,” Maya said. “As for the vehicles in orbit,
we will have to deal with those at the appropriate time.”
Again Sax did not appear to notice she had spoken. He stared at
the damned ducks, blinking mildly, glancing from time to time at Marina.
Marina said, “It has to be a matter of decapitation, like Nadia
and Nirgal and Art said in Dorsa Brevia.”
“We’ll see if we can find the neck,” Vlad said drily.
Maya, getting angrier and angrier at Sax, said, “We should each
take one of the major cities, and organize people there into a unified
resistance. I want to return to Hellas.”
“Nadia and Art are in South Fossa,” Marina said. “But we’ll need all
the First Hundred to join us, for this to work.”
“The first thirty-nine,” Sax said.
“We need Hiroko,” Vlad said, “and we need Hiroko to talk some
sense into Coyote.”
“No one can do that,” Marina said. “But we do need Hiroko. I’ll go
to Dorsa Brevia and talk to her, and we’ll try to hold the south in check.”
“ ‘Coyote’s not the problem,’ Maya said.
Sax jerked out of his reverie, blinked at Vlad. Still not a glance
for Maya, even though they were discussing her plan. “Integrated pest
management,” he said. “You grow tougher plants among the weeds. And then the
tougher plants push them out. I’ll take Burroughs.”
Furious at Sax’s snubbing of her, Maya got up and walked around
the little pond. She stopped on the opposite bank, gripped the railing by the
path in both hands. She glared at the group across the water, sitting on their
benches like retired pensioners chatting about food and the weather and ducks
and the last chess match. Damn Sax, damn him! Would he hold Phyllis against her
forever, that vile woman—
Suddenly she heard their voices, tiny but clear. There was a
curving ceramic wall behind the path, running almost all the way around the
pond, and she was almost precisely across the pond from them; apparently the
wall functioned as a sort of whispering gallery, she could hear them in perfect
miniature, the airy voices a fraction of a second behind their mouths’ little
movements.
“Too bad Arkady didn’t survive,” Vlad said. “The Bogdanovists
would come around a lot easier.”
“Yes,” said Ursula. “Him and John. And Frank.”
“Frank,” Marina said scornfully. “If he hadn’t killed John none of
this would have happened.”
Maya blinked. The railing was holding her up.
“What?” she shouted, without thinking. Across the pond .the little
figures jerked and looked at her. She detached herself from the railing one
hand at a time, and half ran around the pond, stumbling twice.
“What do you mean?” she shouted at Marina as she neared them, the
words bursting from her without volition.
Vlad and Ursula met her a few steps from the benches. Marina
remained seated, looking away sullenly. Vlad had his hands out and Maya tore
right through them to get at Marina. “What do you mean saying such foul
things?” she shouted, her voice painful in her own throat. “Why? Why? It was
Arabs who killed John, everyone knows that!”
Marina grimaced and shook her head, looking down.
“Well?” Maya cried.
“It was a manner of speaking,” Vlad said from behind. “Frank did a
lot to undermine John in those years, you know that’s true. Some say he
inflamed the Moslem Brotherhood against John, that’s all.”
“Pah!” Maya said, “We have all argued with each other, it means
nothing!”
Then she noticed that Sax was looking right at her—finally, now
that she was furious—staring at her with a peculiar expression,
cold and impossible to read—a glare of accusation, of revenge, of
_ what? She had shouted in Russian and the others had replied in
kind, and she didn’t think Sax spoke it. Perhaps he was just
curious about what had upset them so. But the antipathy in that steady stare—as
if he were confirming what Marina had said—hammering it into her like a nail!
Maya turned and fled.
She found herself in front of the door to her room with no memory
of crossing Sabishii, and threw herself inside as if into her mother’s arms;
but in the beautiful spare wooden chamber she drew up short of the bed, shocked
by the memory of some other room that had turned from womb to trap on her, in
some other moment of shock and fear ... no answers, no distraction, no
escape... . Over the little sink she caught sight of her face as if in a framed
portrait—haggard, ancient, eyes bright red around the rims, like the eyes of a
lizard. A nauseating image. That was it— the time she had caught sight of her
stowaway on the Ares, the face seen through an algae jar. Coyote: a shock which
had proved not hallucination, but reality.
And so it might be with this news of Frank and John.
She tried to remember. She tried with all her might to remember
Frank Chalmers, to really remember him. She had spoken with him that night in
Nicosia, in an encounter unremarkable for its awkwardness and tension, Frank as
always acting aggrieved and rejected... . They had been together at the very
moment John was being knocked unconscious, and dragged into the farm and left
to die. Frank couldn’t have ...
But of course there were surrogates. You could always pay people
to act for you. Not that the Arabs would have been interested in money per se.
But pride, honor—paid in honor, or in some political quid pro quo, the kind of
currency Frank had been so expert at printing... .
But she could remember so little of those years, so little of the
specifics. When she put her mind to it, and forced herself to remember, to
recollect, it was frightening how little came up. Fragments; moments, potsherds
of an entire civilization. Once she had been so angry she had knocked a coffee
cup off a table, the broken handle bare like a half-eaten bagel on a table. But
where had that been, and when, and with whom? She couldn’t be sure! “Aahh,” she
cried involuntarily, and the haggard antediluvian face in the mirror suddenly
disgusted her with its pathetic reptile pain. So ug|y. And once upon a time she
had been a beauty, she had been proud of that, she had used it like a scalpel.
Now ... her hair had gone from pure white to a dull gray in recent years,
changed somehow in the last treatment. And now it was thinning, for God’s sake,
and only in some places while not in others. Disgusting. And once a beauty,
once upon a time. That hawkish regal face—and now— As if the Baroness Blixen,
also a rare beauty in her youth, had crumbled into the syphilitic witch Isak
Dinesen and then lived on for centuries after that, like a vampire or a
zombie—a ravaged living lizard of a corpse, 130 years old, happy birthday to
you, happy birthday to you... .
She strode to the sink and yanked on the side of the mirror,
revealing a crowded medicine cabinet. Nail scissors on the top shelf. Somewhere
on Mars they made nail scissors, of magnesium no doubt. She took them down and
pulled a hank of hair out from her head till it hurt, and cut it off right
against her scalp. The blades were dull, but if she pulled hard enough they
worked. She had to be careful not to cut her scalp, some tiny remnant of her
vanity would not allow that. So it was a long, tedious, painstaking and
pain-giving job. But a comfort, somehow, to be so distracted, so methodical, so
destructive.
The initial cut was ragged enough to require a great deal of
trimming, which took a long time. An hour. But she could not make the hairs
come to the same length, and finally she got out the razor from the shower, and
finished by shaving, patting with toilet paper the cuts that bled copiously,
ignoring the old’scars revealed, the awful bumps and hollows of the bare skull,
so close under the skin. It was hard to do it all without ever looking at the
monstrous face hanging from the front of the skull.
When she was done she stared ruthlessly at the freak in the
mirror—androgynous, withered, insane. The eagle become vulture: skin head,
wattled neck, beady eyes, hook nose, and the lipless downturned little mouth.
Staring at this hideous face, there were long, long moments when she could not
remember a single thing about Maya Toitovna. She stood frozen in the present, a
stranger to everything.
A knock at the door made her jump, and released her. She
hesitated, suddenly ashamed, even frightened. Another part of her croaked,
“Come in.”
The door opened. It was Michel. He saw her and stopped in the
doorway. “Well?” she said, staring at him and feeling naked.
He swallowed, cocked his head. “Beautiful as ever.” With a crooked
grin.
She had to laugh. She sat on her bed and began to weep. She
sniffed and sniffed. “Sometimes,” she said, wiping her eyes, “sometimes I wish
I could stop being Toitovna. I get so tired of it, of everything that I’ve
done.”
Michel sat beside her. “We’re locked in our selves to the end.
This is the price one pays for thought. But which would you rather be—convict,
or idiot?”
Maya shook her head. “I was down in the park with Vlad and Ursula
and Marina and Sax who hates me, and looking at them all, and we have to do
something, we really do, but looking at them and remembering everything—trying
to remember—we suddenly all seemed such damaged people.”
“A lot has happened,” Michel said, and put his hand on hers.
“Do you have trouble remembering?” Maya shivered, and clasped his
hand like a life raft. “Sometimes I get so scared that I’ll forget everything.”
She sniffed a laugh. “I guess that means I’d rather be a convict than an idiot,
to answer your question. If you forget, you’re free of the past, but nothing
means anything. So there’s no escape”—she started to cry again—”remember or
forget, it hurts just as bad.”
“Memory problems are pretty common at our age,” Michel said
gently. “Especially events in the middle distance, so to speak. There are
exercises that help.”
“It’s not a muscle.”
“I know. But the power of recollection seems to strengthen with
use. And the act of remembering apparently strengthens the memories themselves.
It makes sense when you think about it. Synapses physically reinforced or
replaced, that sort of thing.”
“But then, if you can’t face what you remember—oh Michel—” She
took in a big unsteady breath. “They said—Marina said that Frank had murdered
John. She said it to the others when she thought I couldn’t hear, said it as if
it was something they all knew!” She clutched him by the shoulder, squeezed as
if she could rip the truth out of him with her claws. “Tell me the truth,
Michel! Is it true? Is that what you all think happened?”
Michel shook his head. “No one knows what happened.”
“I was there! I was in Nicosia that night and they weren’t! I was
with Frank when it happened! He had no idea, I swear!”
Michel squinted, uncertain, and she said, “Don’t look like that!”
“I’m not, Maya, I’m not. I don’t mean anything by it. I have to
tell you everything I’ve heard, and I’m trying to remember myself. There have
been rumors—all kinds of rumors!—about what happened that night. It’s true,
some say Frank was—involved. Or connected to the Saudis who killed John. That
he met with the one who died later the next day, and so on.”
Maya began to weep harder. She bent over her clenched stomach and
put her face on Michel’s shoulder, her ribs heaving. “I can’t stand it. If I
don’t know what happened ... how can I remember? How can I even think of them?”
Michel held her, soothed her with his embrace. He squeezed the
muscles of her back, over and over. “Ah, Maya.”
After a long time she sat up, went to the sink and washed her face
in cold water, avoiding the mirror’s gaze. She returned to the bed and sat,
utterly despondent, a seeping blackness in every muscle.
Michel took her hand again. “I wonder if it might not help to
know. Or at least, to know as much as you can. To investigate, you know. To
read about John and Frank. There are books now, of course. And to ask the other
people who were in Nicosia, particularly the Arabs who saw Selim el-Hayil
before he died. That kind of thing. It would give you a kind of control, you
see. It wouldn’t be remembering exactly, but it wouldn’t be forgetting either.
Those aren’t the only two alternatives, strange as it may seem. We have to
assume our past, you see? We have to make it a part of what we are now, by an
act of the imagination. It’s a creative thing, an active thing. It’s not a
simple process. But I know you, and you are always better when you are active,
when you have a little control.”
“I don’t know if I can,” she said. “I can’t stand not to know, but
I’m afraid to know. I don’t want to know. Especially if it’s true.”
“See how you feel about it,” Michel suggested. “Try it and see.
Given that both alternatives are painful, it might be you prefer action to the
alternative.”
“Well.” She sniffed, took a single glance across the room. From
the room on the other side of the mirror, an ax murderer stared out at her. “My
God I am so ugly,” she said, revulsion making her nauseated to the verge of
vomiting.
Michel stood, went to the mirror. “There is a thing called body
dysmorphic disorder,” he said. “It’s related to obsessive-compulsive disorders,
and to depression. I’ve noticed signs of it in you for a long time now.”
“It’s my birthday.”
“Ah. Well, it’s a treatable problem.”
“Birthdays?”
“Body dysmorphic disorder.”
“I won’t take drugs.”
He put a towel over the mirror, turned to look at her. “What do
you mean? It may be a simple lack of serotonin. A biochemical insufficiency. A
disease. Nothing to be ashamed of in that. We all take drugs. Clomipramine is
very helpful for this problem.”
“I’ll think about it.”
“And no mirrors.”
“I’m not a child!” she snarled. “I know what I look like!” She
leaped up and tore the towel off the mirror. Insane reptile vulture,
pterodactylic, ferocious—it was impressive, in a way.
Michel shrugged. He had a little smile on his face, which she
wanted to punch, or kiss. He liked lizards.
She shook her head to clear it. “Well. Take action, you say.” She
thought about it. “I certainly prefer action to the alternative, in the current
situation we’re in.” She told him about the news from the south, and her
proposal to the others. “They make me so angry. They’re just waiting for
disaster to strike again. All but Sax, and he is a loose cannon with all his
sabotages, consulting with no one but these fools he has—we have to do
something coordinated!”
“Good,” he said emphatically. “I agree. We need this.”
She regarded him. “Will you come to Hellas Basin with me?”
And he smiled, a spontaneous grin of pure pleasure. Of delight
that she had asked! It pierced her heart to see it.
“Yes,” he said. “I have some business to finish here, but I can do
that quickly. Just a few weeks.” And he smiled again. He loved her, she saw;
not just as a friend or therapist, but as a lover too. And yet with a certain
kind of distance, a Michel distance, some kind of therapist thing. So that she
could still breathe. Be loved and still breathe. Still have a friend.
“So you can still stand to be with me, even though I look like
this.”
“Oh Maya.” He laughed. “Yes, you are still beautiful, if you want
to know. Which you still do, thank God.” He gave her a hug, pulled back and
inspected her. “It is a trifle austere. But it will do.” She pushed him away.
“And no one will recognize me.” “No one who doesn’t know you.” He stood. “Come
on, are you hungry?”
“Yes. Let me change clothes.”
He sat on the bed and watched her as she did, soaking her up, the
old goat. Her body was still a human body, amazingly enough, demonstrably
female even at this ridiculous posthumous age. She could walk over and squash a
breast into his face and he would suckle it like a child. Instead she dressed,
feeling her spirits scrape off the bottom and begin their rise; the best moment
in the whole sine wave, like the winter solstice for the paleolithics, the
moment of relief when you know the sun will come back again, someday. “This is
good,” Michel said. “We need you to lead again, Maya. You have the authority,
you see. The natural authority. And it’s good to spread the work around, and
for you to concentrate on Hellas. A very good plan. But you know—it will take more
than afiger.”
She pulled a sweater over her head (her scalp felt funny, bare and
raw), then looked at him, surprised. He raised a finger ad-monishingly. “Your
anger will help, but it can’t be everything. Frank was nothing but anger,
remember? And you see where it got him. You have to fight not only against what
you hate, but for what you love, you see? And so you have to find what it is
you love. You have to remember it, or create it.”
“Yes yes,” she said, suddenly irritated. “I love you, but shut up
now.” She lifted her chin imperiously. “Let’s go eat.”
The train from
Sabishii out to the
Burroughs-Hellas piste was only four cars long, a little locomotive and three
passenger cars, none more than half full. Maya walked through them to the last
seats of the final car; people glanced at her, but only briefly. No one seemed
perturbed by her lack of hair: There were a lot of vulture women on Mars after
all, even some on this very train, also wearing work jumpers of cobalt or rust
or light green, also old and UV-weathered: a kind of cliche, the ancient Mars
veterans, here from the beginning, seen it all, ready to bore you to tears with
tales of dust storms and stuck lock doors.
Well, it was just as well. It would not have done to have people
nudging each other and exclaiming There’s Toitovna! Still she could not help
sitting down feeling ugly and forgotten. Which was stupid. She needed to be
forgotten. And ugliness helped that; the world wants to forget the ugly.
She plumped into her seat and stared forward. Apparently Sabishii
had been visited by a contingent of Terran Japanese tourists, all of them
clustered in facing seats at the front of the car, chattering and looking
around with their vid spectacles, no doubt recording every minute of their life
movies, recordings that no one would ever watch.
The train slid gently forward and they were off. Sabishii was
still a small tent town in the hills, but the hummocky land between the town
and the main piste was studded with carved peak boulders, and small shelters
cut into the cliffs. All north-facing slopes were caked with the snow of the
autumn’s first storms, and the sun bounced in blinding flashes off slick
mirrors of ice as they floated by frozen ponds. The low dark shrubs were all
based on ancestors from Hokkaido, and the vegetation gave the land a spiky
black-green texture; it was a collection of bonsai gardens, each of them an
island separated by a harsh sea of broken rock.
The Japanese tourists naturally found this landscape enchanting.
Although possibly they were from Burroughs, new emigrants down to visit the
Japanese first landing site, as if making a trip from Tokyo to Kyoto. Or
perhaps they were natives, and had never seen Japan. She would be able to tell
when she saw them walk; but it didn’t matter.
The piste ran just north of Jarry-Desloge’s Crater, which from
outside appeared to be a big round mesa. The apron was a broad fan of snowy
debris, dotted with ground-hugging trees and a piebald array of dark greens and
bright lichen and alpine flowers and heather, each species with its signature
color, and the whole field starred by the scattering of erratic boulders that
had fallen back from the sky when the crater was formed. The effect was of a
field of redrock, being drowned from below by a rainbow tide.
Maya stared out at the vivid hillside, feeling mildly stunned.
Snow, lichen, heather, pine: she knew that things had changed in the world
while she had hidden under the polar cap—that before it had been different, and
she had lived in a rock world and had experienced all the intense events of
those years, had had her heart smashed to stishovite under their impact. But it
was so hard to connect with any of that. Either to remember it, or to feel
anything about what she could remember. She sat back in her seat and closed her
eyes, and tried to relax, to let whatever would come to her come.
... It was not so much a specific memory of a specific event, but
rather a kind of composite: Frank Chalmers, angrily denouncing or deriding or
fulminating. Michel was right: Frank had been an angry man. And yet that was
not all he had been. She more than anyone knew that, perhaps, had seen him at
peace, or if not at peace—perhaps she had never seen that—at least happy. Or
something like. Scared of her, solicitous of her, in love with her—she had seen
all that. And shouting at her furiously for some small treachery, or for
nothing at all; she had certainly seen that too. Because he had loved her.
But what had he been like, really? Or rather, why had he been that
way? Was there ever any explaining why they were themselves? There was so
little she knew about him before they had met: a whole life back there in
America, an incarnation that she had not seen. The bulky dark man she had met
in Antarctica—even that person was almost lost to her, overlaid by everything
that had happened on the Ares, and on Mars. But before that nothing, or next to
nothing. He had headed NASA, got the Mars program off the ground, no doubt with
the same corrosive style he had exhibited in later years. He had been married
briefly, or so she seemed to recall. What had that been like? Poor woman. Maya
smiled. But then she heard Marina’s tiny voice again, saying, “If Frank hadn’t
killed John,” and she shuddered. She stared at the lectern in her lap. The Japanese
passengers at the front of the car were singing a song, a drinking song
apparently, as they had a flask out and were passing it around. Jarry-Desloges
was behind them now, and they were gliding along the northern rim of the
lapygia Sink, an oval depression that they could see a fair way across before
the horizon cut it off. The depression was saturated with craters, and now
inside each ring was a slightly separate ecology; it was like looking down into
a bombed florist’s shop, the baskets scattered everywhere and mostly broken,
but here a basket of yellow tapestry, there of pink palimpsest, of whitish or
bluish or green Persian carpets... .
She tapped on her lectern, and typed out Chalmers.
It was an immense bibliography: articles, interviews, books, videos,
a whole library of his communiques to Earth, another library of commentaries,
diplomatic, historical, biographical, psychological,
psychobiographical—histories, comedies, and tragedies, in every medium,
including, apparently, an opera. Meaning some villainous coloratura was down
there on Earth, singing her thoughts.
She clicked off the lectern, appalled. After a few minutes of deep
breathing she clicked it back on, and called up the file. She couldn’t bear to
look at any video or still images; she went for the shortest biographical
articles in print, from popular magazines, and called one up at random and
began to read.
* * *
He was born in Savannah, Georgia, in 1976, and grew up in
Jacksonville, Florida. His mother and father divorced when he was seven, and
after that he lived mostly with his father, in apartments near Jacksonville
Beach,, an area of cheap stucco beach property built in the 1940s, behind an
aging boardwalk of shrimp shacks and hamburger joints. Sometimes he lived with
an aunt and uncle near the downtown, which was dominated by big skyscrapers
built by insurance companies. His mother moved to Iowa when he was eight. His
father joined Alcoholics Anonymous three separate times. He was his high
school’s class president, and the captain of its football team, on which he
played center, and of its baseball team, on which he played catcher. He led a
project to clear the choking hyacinths from the St. Johns River. “His entry in
his senior yearbook is so long you just know something had to be wrong!” He was
accepted by Harvard and given a scholarship, then after one year transferred to
MIT, where he earned degrees in engineering and astronomy. For four years he
lived alone, in a room above a garage in Cambridge, and very little information
about him survived; few people seemed to have known him. “He went through
Boston like a ghost.”
After college he took a National Service Corps job in Fort Wal-ton
Beach, Florida, and here was where he burst onto the national scene. He ran one
of the most successful civilian works programs associated with the NSC,
building housing for Caribbean immigrants coming through Pensacola. Here
thousands of people knew him, at least in his work life. “They all agree he was
an inspirational leader, dedicated to the immigrants, working nonstop to help
their integration into American society.” It was in these years that he married
Priscilla Jones, the beautiful daughter of a prominent Pensacola family. People
spoke of a political career. “He was on top of the world!” - ‘
Then in 2004 the NSC was terminated, and in 2005 he joined the
astronaut program in Huntsville, Alabama. His marriage broke up that same year.
In 2007 he became an astronaut, and moved quickly into a “flying
administration” post. One of his longest space flights was six weeks on the
American space station, alone with fellow rising star John Boone. He became
head of NASA in 2015, while Boone became captain of the space station. Chalmers
and Boone together rode the “Mars Apollo” project through the American government,
and after Boone made the first landing in 2020, they both joined the First
Hundred, and went to Mars in 2027.
* * *
Maya stared at the clear black letters of the Roman alphabet. The
pop articles with their one-liners and exclamation points had their suggestive
moments, no doubt about it. A motherless boy with a father who drank; a
hardworking idealistic youth, riding high and then losing a job and a marriage
in the same year; that 2005 would be worth looking into in more detail. After
that, he seemed pretty clearly in it for himself. That was what being an
astronaut generally meant, in NASA or Glavkosmos; always trying to get more
space time, doing administration to get the power to get out more often... . By
that time in his life, the brief descriptions chimed with the Frank she had
known. No, it was the youth, the childhood; it was hard to see that, hard to
imagine it as Frank.
She called up the index again, and ran down the list of
biographical materials. There was an article called “Broken Promises: Frank
Chalmers and the National Service Corps.” Maya tapped out the calling code for
it and the text appeared. She scrolled down until she saw his name.
Like many people with basic structural problems in their lives,
Chalmers coped in his Pensacola years by filling the days with ceaseless
activity. If he had no time to rest, then he had no time to think. This had
been a successful strategy for him all the way back to high school, when in
addition to all his school activities, he had worked twenty hours a week in a
literacy program. And in Boston his academic load made him what one classmate
called an “invisible man.” We know less about this period of his life than any
other. There are reports that he lived out of his car through his first Boston
winter, using the bathrooms of a gym on campus. Only when he had secured the
transfer to MIT do we have an address for him—
Maya hit fast forward, dick dick.
The Florida panhandle was one of the poorest areas of the nation
at the beginning of the twenty-first century, with Caribbean immigration, the
closure of the local military bases, and Hurricane Dale combining to cause
great misery. “You felt like you were working in Africa,” one National Service
Corps worker said. In his three years there we get our fullest view of Chalmers
as a social creature, as he secured grants to expand a jobs program that made
an immense impact on the entire coast, helping thousands who had moved into
makeshift shelters after Dale. Training programs taught people to build their
homes, meanwhile learning skills that could be put to use elsewhere. The
programs were immensely popular among the recipients, but there was opposition
to them from the local development industry. Chalmers was therefore
controversial, and in the first years of the new century he appears often in
the local media, enthusiastically defending the program and advocating it as
part of a mass surge of grassroots social action. In a guest editorial for the
Fort Walton Beach journal he wrote, “The obvious solution is to turn all our
energies on the problem and work on it as a systemic thing. We need to build
schools to teach our children to read, and send them off to become doctors to
heal us, and lawyers to work the powers that be, so we get our fair share. We
need to build our own homes and our own farms, and feed ourselves.”
The results in Pensacola and Fort Walton Beach got the local NSC
larger grants from Washington, and matching grants from participating
corporations. At the high point, in 2004, the Pensacola Coast NSC employed
20,000 people, and was one of the main factors responsible for what was called
the “Gulf Renaissance.” Chalmers’s marriage to Priscilla Jones, daughter of one
of the old money families from Panama City, seemed to symbolize this new
synthesis of poverty and privilege in Florida, and the two were a prominent
couple in the society of the Gulf Coast for about two years.
The election of 2004 ended this period. The abrupt cancellation of
the NSC was one of the new administration’s first acts. Chalmers spent two
months in Washington testifying before House and Senate subcommittees, trying
to aid the passage of a bill reinstating the program. The bill passed, but the
two Democratic Florida senators and the congressman from the Pensacola district
did not support it, and Congress was unable to override the executive veto. The
NSC “threatened market forces,” the new administration said, and so it came to
an end. The indictment and conviction of 19 congressmen (including Pensacola’s
representative) for lobbying irregularities originating in the building
industry came eight years later, and by that time the NSC was a dead issue, its
veterans scattered.
For Frank Chalmers it was a watershed. He retreated into a privacy
from which in many respects he never emerged. The marriage did not survive the
move to Huntsville, and Priscilla soon remarried a friend of the family she had
known before Chalmers’s arrival in the area. In Washington, Chalmers led an
austere life in which NASA appeared to be his exclusive interest; he was famous
for his 18-hour days, and the enormous impact they had on NASA’s fortunes.
These successes made Chalmers nationally famous, but no one at NASA or
elsewhere in Washington claimed to know him well. The obsessive overscheduling
served again as a mask, behind which the idealistic social worker of the Gulf
Coast disappeared for good.
A disturbance at the front of the car caused Maya to look up. The
Japanese were standing, pulling down luggage, and it was clear now that they
were Burroughs natives; most of them were about two meters tall, gangly kids
with toothy laughs and uniformly brilliant black hair. Gravity, diet, whatever
it was, people born on Mars grew tall. This group of Japanese reminded Maya of
the ectogenes in Zygote, those strange kids who had grown like weeds... . Now
scattered over the planet, that whole little world gone, like all the others
before it.
Maya grimaced, and on an impulse fast-forwarded her lectern to the
article’s illustrations. There she found a photo of Frank at age twenty-three,
in the beginning of his work with the NSC: a dark-haired kid with a sharp
confident srnile, looking at the world as if he were ready to tell it something
it didn’t know. So young! So young and so knowing. At first glance Maya thought
it was the innocence of youth to look so knowing, but in fact the face did not
look innocent. His had not been an innocent childhood. But he was a fighter,
and he had found his method, and was prevailing. A power that couldn’t be
beaten, or so the smile seemed to say.
But kick the world, break your foot. As they said in Kamchatka.
The train slowed and glided to a smooth stop. They were in
Fournier Station, where the Sabishii branch met the main Bur-roughs-to-Hellas
piste.
The Burroughs Japanese filed out of the car, and Maya clicked off
her lectern and followed. The station was only a small tent, south of Fournier
Crater; its interior was simple, a T-shaped dome. Scores of people wandered the
three levels of the interior, in groups or singly, most of them in plain work
jumpers, but many in business suits or metanational uniforms, or in casual
clothes, which these days consisted of loose pantaloons, blouses, and
moccasins.
Maya found the sight of so many people a bit alarming, and she
moved awkwardly past the kiosk lines and the crowded cafes fronting the pistes.
No one met the eye of such a bald withered androgyne. Feeling the artificial
breeze on her scalp, she took her place at the front of the line to get on the
next train south, turning over in her mind the photo from the book. Had they
ever really been that young?
At one o’clock the train floated in from the north. Security
guards came out of a room by the cafes, and under their bored eye she put her
wrist to a portable checker, and boarded. A new procedure, and simple; but as
she found a seat her heart was racing. Clearly the Sabishiians, with the help
of the Swiss, had beaten the Transitional Authority’s new security system. But
still she had reason to be afraid—she was Maya Toitovna, one of the most famous
women in history, one of the most wanted criminals on Mars, with the passengers
in their seats looking up at her as she passed down the aisle, naked under a
blue cotton jumper.
Naked but invisible, by reason of unsightliness. And the truth was
that at least half the occupants of the car looked as old as her, Mars vets who
looked seventy and could have been twice that, wrinkled, gray-haired, balding,
irradiated and bespectacled, scattered among all the tall fresh young natives
like autumn leaves among evergreens. And there among them, what looked like
Spencer Jackson. As she flung her bag onto the overhead rack, she looked at the
seat three ahead; the man’s bald pate told her little, but she was pretty sure
it was him. Bad luck. On general principle the First Hundred (the First
Thirty-nine) tried never to travel together. But there was always the chance
that chance itself would screw them up.
She sat in the window seat, wondering what Spencer was doing. Last
she had heard, he and Sax had formed a technological team in Vishniac mohole,
doing weapons research that they weren’t telling anyone else about, or so Vlad
had said. So he was part of Sax’s crazy outlaw ecotage team, at least to some
extent. It didn’t seem like him, and she wondered if he had been the moderating
influence one recently noticed in Sax’s activities. Was Hellas his destination,
or was he returning to the southern sanctuaries? Well— she wouldn’t find out
until Hellas at best, as the protocol was to ignore each other until they were
in private.
So she ignored Spencer, if it was him, and she ignored the
passengers still filing into the car. The seat next to her remained empty.
Across from her were two fiftyish men in suits, emigrants by the look of them,
apparently traveling with the two just like them who were seated in front of
her. As the train pulled out of the station tent they discussed some game they
had all played together: “He hit it a mile! He was lucky to ever find it
again!” Golf, apparently. Americans, or something like. Metanational executives,
off to oversee something in Hellas, they didn’t mention what. Maya took out her
lectern and headphones and put the headphones on. She called up Noyy fravda and
watched the tiny images from Moscow. It was hard to concentrate on the voices,
and it made her drowsy. The train flew south. The reporter was deploring the
growing conflict between Armscor and Subarashii over the terms of the Siberian
development plan. This was a case of crocodile tears, as the Russian government
had been hoping for years to play the two giants off against each other and
create an auction situation for the Siberian oil fields, rather than be met by
a united metanat front dictating all terms. It was surprising in fact that the
two metanats had broken ranks like this. Maya did not expect that it would
last; it was in the metanats’ interest to hold together, to make sure it was
always a matter of parceling out the available resources and never fighting for
them. If they squabbled, the fragile balance of power might collapse on them, a
possibility of which they were surely aware. She put her head back drowsily and
looked out the window at the passing land. Now they were gliding down into the
lapygia Sink, and had a long view to the southwest. It looked like the Siberian
taiga/tundra border, as depicted on the news program she had just been
watching—a great frost-fractured jumble of a slope, all caked with snow and
ice, the bare rock coated with lichen and amorphous mounds of olive and khaki
mosses, the coral cacti and dwarf trees filling every low hollow. Pingoes
dotting one flat low valley looked like a rash of acne, smeared with a dirty
ointment. Maya dozed for a while.
The image of Frank at twenty-three jerked her awake. She thought
drowsily about what she had read, trying to piece it together. The father; what
had made him join Alcoholics Anonymous three times, and quit it twice (or three
times)? It had a bad sound. And after that, as if in response to it, the kind
of workaholic habits that were just like the Frank she had known, even if the
work seemed un-Frankishly idealistic. Social justice was not something that the
Frank she had known had believed in. He had been a political pessimist, engaged
in a constant rearguard action to keep the worse from coming to the worst. A
career of damage control— and, if some were to be believed, personal
aggrandizement. No doubt true. Although Maya felt he had always craved power in
order to effect more damage control. But no one could tease the strands of
those two motives apart; they were tangled like the moss and the rock out there
in the Sink. Power was a many-faceted thing.
If only Frank hadn’t killed John... . She stared at the lectern,
turned it on, tapped in John’s name. The bibliography was endless. She checked:
5,146 entries. And it was a selected list. Frank had had several hundred at
most. She switched to index mode, and looked up “Death of.”
Scores of entries, hundreds! Cold and yet sweating, Maya ran
swiftly down the list. The Bern connection, the Moslem Brotherhood, Marsfirst,
UNOMA, Frank, her, Helmut Bronski, Sax, Sa-mantha; by title alone she could see
that all theories of agency in his death would be advocated. Of course.
Conspiracy theory was tremendously popular, always and forever. People wanted
such catastrophes to mean something more than mere individual madness, and so
the hunt was on.
Disgust at the crackpot inclusiveness of the list almost caused
her to shut the file. But then again, perhaps she was just afraid? She opened
one of the many biographies, and there on the screen was a photo of John. A
ghost of her old pain passed through her, leaving a kind of bleached,
emotionless desolation. She clicked to the final chapter.
The Nicosia riot was an early manifestation of the tensions
informing Martian society which would later explode in 2061. There were already
a great number of Arab technicians living in minimal housing arrangements, in
close proximity to ethnic groups with whom they had historical grievances, also
to administration personnel whose better housing and travel and walker
privileges were obvious. A volatile mix of several groups descended on Nicosia
for its dedicatory celebration, and for several days the town was extremely
crowded.
click click
The violence has never been satisfactorily explained. )ensen’s
theory, that the intra-Arab conflict, stimulated by the Lebanese war of
liberation from Syria, sparked the Nicosia riot, is insufficient-there were
also documented attacks on the Swiss, as well as a high level of random
violence, all impossible to explain in terms of the Arab conflict alone.
The official depositions of the people in Nicosia that night still
leave the ignition of the conflict a mystery. A number of reports suggest the
presence of an agent provocateur, never identified
click click
At midnight, when the timeslip began, Saxifrage Russell was at a
cafe midtown, Samantha Hoyle was on a tour of the city wall, and Frank Chalmers
and Maya Toitovna had met in the western park where the speeches had been given
a few hours before. Fighting had already broken out in the medina. John Boone
went down the central boulevard to investigate the disturbance, as did Sax
Russell from another direction. At approximately ten minutes into the timeslip,
Boone was set upon by a group of between three and six young men, sometimes
identified as “Arab.” Boone was knocked down and whisked into the medina before
any witnesses could react, and an impromptu search turned up no sign of him. It
was not until 12:27 A.M. that he was located by a larger search party in the
town’s farm, and taken from there to the nearest hospital, on Boulevard of the
Cypresses. Russell, Chalmers, and Toitovna helped to carry him—
Again a disturbance in the car drew Maya out of the text. Her skin
was clammy, and she was shivering slightly. Some memories never really went
away, no matter how you suppressed them: despite herself Maya remembered
perfectly the glass on the street, a figure on its back on the grass, the
puzzled look on Frank’s face, the so different puzzlement on John’s.
But those were officials, there at the front of the car, standing
in the aisle and moving slowly down it. Checking IDs, travel documentation; and
there were another two stationed at the back of the car.
Maya tapped off her lectern. She watched the three policemen move
down the car, feeling her pulse knocking hard through her body. This was new;
she had never seen it before, and it seemed the others on board hadn’t either.
The car was hushed; everyone watched. Anyone in the car could have had
irregular ID, and that fact made for a kind of solidarity in their silence; all
eyes focused on the police; no one looked around to see who might be blanching.
The three policemen were oblivious to this observation, and almost
seemed oblivious to the very people they interviewed. They joked among
themselves as they discussed the restaurants of Odessa, and they moved from row
to row rapidly, like conductors, gesturing for people to put their wrists up to
the little reader, then cursorily checking the results, comparing for only a
few seconds people’s faces to the photos called up by their IDs.
They came to Spencer, and Maya’s heart rate picked up. Spencer (if
it was Spencer) merely held up a steady hand to the reader, apparently looking
straight at the seat back in front of him. Suddenly something about his hand
was deeply familiar—there under the veins and the liver spots was Spencer
Jackson, no doubt of it. She knew it by the bones. He was answering a question
now, in a low voice. The policeman with the voice-and-eye reader held it to
Spencer’s face briefly, and then they all waited. Finally they got a quick line
on the reader, and moved on. Two away from Maya. Even the exuberant businessmen
were subdued, eyeing each other with sardonic grimaces and raised eyebrows, as
if it were ludicrous to have such measures imported into the cars themselves.
No one liked this; it was a mistake to do it. Maya took heart from that, and
looked out the window. They were ascending the southern side of the Sink, the
train gliding up the gentle grade of the piste over low hills, each higher than
the next, the train always moving at the same speed, as if moving by magic
carpet, over the even-more-magic carpet of the millefleur landscape.
They stood over her. The one closest wore a belt over his rust
uniform jumper, with several instruments hanging from the belt, including a
stun gun. “ID wrist please.” He wore an ID tag, with photo and dosimeter, and a
label that said “United Nations Transitional Authority.” A thin-faced young
emigrant of about twenty-five, though it was easier to guess that from the
photo than the face itself, which looked tired. The man turned and said to the
woman officer behind him, “I like the veal parmesan they do there.”
The reader was warm on her wrist. The woman officer was observing
her closely. Maya ignored the look and stared at her wrist, wishing she had a
weapon. Then she was looking into the camera eye of the voice-and-eye reader.
“What is your destination?” the young man asked.
“Odessa.”
A moment’s suspended silence.
Then a high beep. “Enjoy your stay.” And they were off.
Maya tried to regulate her breathing, to slow it down. The wrist
readers took pulses, and if you were over 110 or so they notified the
applicator; it was a basic lie detector in that sense. Apparently she had
stayed under the line. But her voice, her retinas; those had never been
changed. The Swiss passport identity must be powerful indeed, overriding the
earlier IDs when they were consulted, at least in this security system. Had the
Swiss done that, or the Sabishiians, or Coyote, or Sax, or some force she
didn’t know? Had she actually been successfully identified and let go, to be
tracked so that she would lead them to more of the fugitive Hundred? It seemed
as likely as the idea of overmastering the big data banks— as likely or more.
But for the moment, she was left alone. The police were gone.
Maya’s finger knocked on the lectern, and without thinking about
it she called back what she had been reading. Michel was right; she felt tough
and hard, diving back into this stuff. Theories to explain the death of John
Boone. John had been killed, and now she was being checked by police while
traveling over Mars in an ordinary train. It was hard not to feel that there
was some sort of cause and effect there, that if John had lived, it wouldn’t be
this way.
All the principal figures in Nicosia that night have been accused
of being behind the assassination: Russell and Hoyle on the basis of sharp
disagreements in Marsfirst policy; Toitovna on the basis of a lovers’ quarrel;
and the various ethnic or national groups in town on the basis of political
quarrels either real or imaginary. But certainly the most suspicion over the
years has fallen on the figure of Frank Chalmers. Though he was observed to be
with Toitovna at the time of the attack (which in some theories gets Toitovna
called an accessory or coconspirator), his relationship with the Egyptians and
Saudis in Nicosia that night, and his long-standing conflict with Boone, make
it inevitable that he is often identified as the ultimate cause of Boone’s
murder. Few if any deny that Selim el-Hayil was the leader of the three Arabs
who eventually confessed before their suicide/ murders. But this only adds to
suspicion of Chalmers, as he was a known acquaintance of el-Hayil’s. Samizdat
and one-read documents are reputed to tell the story that “the stowaway” was in
Nicosia, and spotted Chalmers and el-Hayil in conversation that night. As “the
stowaway” is a myth mechanism by which people convey the anonymous perceptions
of the common Martian, it is quite possible that such a tale expresses the
observations of people who did not want to be identified as witnesses.
May a clicked to the end.
El-Hayil was in the late stages of a fatal paroxysm when he broke
into the hotel occupied by the Egyptians and confessed to the murder of Boone,
asserting that he had been the leader, but had been aided by Rashid Abou and
Buland Besseisso of the Ahad wing of the Moslem Brotherhood. The bodies of Abou
and Besseisso were found later that afternoon in a room in the medina, poisoned
by coagulants that appeared to be self-administered or given to each other. The
actual murderers of Boone were dead. Why they acted, and with whom they may
have acted, will never be known. Not the first time such a situation has existed,
and not the last; for we hide as much as we seek.
Scrolling through footnotes, Maya was struck again by what a Topic
this was, debated by historians and scholars and conspiracy nuts of every
persuasion. With a shudder of revulsion she tapped the lectern off, and faced
the double window and shut her eyes hard, trying to restore the Frank she had
known, and the Boone. For years she had scarcely ever thought of John, the pain
was so great; and in a different way she hadn’t wanted to think of Frank either.
Now she wanted them back. The pain had become the ghost of pain, and she needed
to have them back, for her own life’s sake. She needed to know.
The “mythical” stowaway ... She ground her teeth, feeling the
weightless hallucinatory fear of that first sight of him, his brown face
distorted and big-eyed through the glass ... did he know anything? Had he
really been in Nicosia? Desmond Hawkins, the stowaway, the Coyote—he was a
strange man. Maya had her own particular relationship with him, but she doubted
whether he would tell her much about that night.
What is it? she had asked Frank when they heard the shouting.
A hard shrug, a look away. Something done on the spur of the
moment. Where had she heard that before? He had looked away as he said it, as
if he could not bear her gaze. As if he had somehow said too much.
The mountain ranges ringing the Hellas Basin were widest in the
western crescent called the Hellespontus Montes, the range on Mars most
reminiscent of Terran mountains. To the north, where the piste- from Sabishii
and Burroughs crossed into the basin, the range was narrower and lower, not so
much a matter of mountainous terrain as of an uneven drop to the basin floor,
the land seemingly shoved to the north in low concentric waves. The piste
threaded its way down this hilly slope, and often it had to switchback down
long ramps cut into the sides of the rock waves, each new one lower than the
last. The train slowed greatly for the turns, and for many minutes at a time
Maya could look out her window either straight at the bare basalt of the wave
they were descending, or out over a big expanse of northwest Hellas, still
three thousand meters below them: a wide flat plain, ochre and olive and khaki
in the foreground, then, out on the horizon, a dirty jumble of white, winking
like a broken mirror. That was the glacier over Low Point, st’U mostly frozen,
but thawing more each year, with melt ponds on its surface, and deeper pods of
water far below—pods which teemed with life, and occasionally broke onto the surface
of the ice, or even the adjacent land—for this lobe of ice was growing fast.
They were pumping water out of aquifers below the surrounding mountains onto
the basin floor. The deep depression in the northwest part of the basin, where
Low Point and the mohole had been, was the center of this new sea, which was
over a thousand kilometers long, and at its widest, over Low Point, three
hundred kilometers across. And situated in the lowest point on Mars. A
situation rich with promise, as Maya had been maintaining from the very moment
they had landed.
The town Odessa had been established well up the north slope of
the basin, at the — 1-kilometer elevation, where they planned to stabilize the
final level of the sea. Thus it was a harbor town waiting for water, and with
that in mind the southern edge of the town was a long boardwalk or corniche, a
wide grassy esplanade that ran inside the tent, which was secured in the edge
of a tall seawall that now stood above bare land. The view of the seawall as
the train approached gave one the impression that it was a half-town, with a
southern part that had split off and disappeared.
Then the train was coasting into the town’s train station, and the
view was cut off. The train stopped and Maya pulled down her bag and walked
out, following Spencer. They did not look at each other, but once out of the
station they went with a loose group of people to a tram stop, and got on the
same little blue tram, which ran behind the corniche park bordering the
seawall. Near the west end of town they both got off at the same stop.
There, behind and above an open-air market shaded by plane trees,
was a three-story apartment complex inside a walled courtyard, with young
cypresses lining the side walls. Each floor of the building stepped back from
the one below, so that there were balconies for the two higher levels, sporting
potted trees and flower boxes hung on their railings. As she climbed the stairs
up to the gate of the courtyard, Maya found the architecture of the building
somewhat reminiscent of Nadia’s buried arcades; but up here in the late
afternoon sun behind the market, its walls whitewashed and its shutters blue,
it had the look of the Mediterranean or the Black Sea—not all that unlike some
fashionable seaside apartment blocks in Terra’s Odessa. At the gate she turned
to look back over the plane trees of the market; the sun was setting over the
Helles-pontus Mountains to the west, and out on the distant ice, blinks of
sunlight gleamed as yellow as butter.
She followed Spencer through the garden and into the building,
checked in with the concierge right after he did, got her key, and went to the
apartment that had been assigned to her. The whole building belonged to Praxis,
and some apartments functioned as safe houses, including hers, and no doubt
Spencer’s. They got in the elevator together and went to the third floor, not
speaking. Maya’s apartment was four doors down from Spencer’s. She went inside.
Two spacious rooms, one with a kitchen nook; a bathroom, an empty balcony. The view
from the kitchen window overlooked the balcony, and the distant ice.
She put her bag on the bed and went back out, down to the market
to buy dinner. She bought from vendors with carts and umbrellas, and sat on a
bench placed on the grass bordering the corniche, eating souvlakia and drinking
from a little bottle of ret-sina, watching the evening crowd make their
leisurely promenade up and down the corniche. The closest edge of the ice sea
looked to be about forty kilometers away, and now all but the easternmost part
of the ice was in the shadow of the Hellespontus, a dusky blue shading in the
east to alpenglow pink.
Spencer sat down beside her on the bench. “Nice view,” he
remarked.
She nodded and continued eating. She offered him the bottle of
retsina, and he said, “No thank you,” holding up a half-eaten tamale. She
nodded and swallowed.
“What are you working on?” she asked when she was done.
“Parts for Sax. Bioceramics, among other things.”
“For Biotique?”
“For a sister company. She Makes Seashells.”
“What?”
“It’s the name of the company. Another Praxis division.”
“Speaking of Praxis ...” She glanced at him.
“Yes. Sax wants these parts pretty bad.”
“For weapons?”
“Yes.”
She shook her head. “Can you keep him on a leash for a while?”
“I can try.”
They watched the sunlight drain out of the sky, flowing westward
like a liquid. Behind them lights flicked on in the trees over the market, and
the air began to chill. Maya felt grateful that there was an old friend sitting
beside her, in comfortable silence. Spencer’s behavior toward her made a
telling contrast to Sax; in his friendliness was his apology for his
recriminations in the car after Kasei Vallis, and his forgiveness for what she
had done to Phyllis. She appreciated it. And in any case he was one of the primal
family, and it was nice to have that during yet another move. A new start, a
new city, a new life—how many was it now?
“Did you know Frank very well?” she said.
“Not really. Not like you and John knew him.”
“Do you think ... do you think he could have been involved in
John’s murder?”
Spencer continued to look out at the blue ice on the black
horizon. Finally he took the retsina bottle from the bench beside her, drank.
He looked at her. “Does it matter anymore?”
She had spent
many of the early
years working in the Hellas Basin, convinced as she had been that its low
elevation was going to make it an obvious site for settlement. Now the land
just above the —1-kilometer contour was being settled in places all around the
basin, places she had been among the first to explore. She had her old notes on
them in her AI, and now, as Ludmilla Novosibir-skaya, she got to put them to
use.
Her job was in the administration of the hydrological company that
was flooding the basin. The team was part of a conglomerate of organizations
developing the basin, among them the Black Sea Economic Group’s oil companies,
the Russian company that had tried to resuscitate the Caspian and Aral seas,
and her company, Deep Waters, which was Praxis-owned. Maya’s job involved coordinating
the many hydrological operations in the region, so again she got to see the
heart of the Hellas project, just as in the old days when she had been the
driving force behind the entire thing. This was satisfying in various ways,
some of them strange—for instance her town Low Point (a mistaken siting, she
had to admit) was out there getting drowned deeper every day. That was fine:
drown the past, drown the past, drown the past... .
So she had her work, and her apartment, which she filled with used
furniture and hanging kitchen implements and potted plants. And Odessa proved
to be a pleasant town. It was built principally of yellow stone and brown tile,
and placed on a part of the slope of the basin rim that curved inward more than
usual, so that every part of town looked down on the center of the dry
waterfront, and every part had a great view over the basin to the south. The
lower districts were devoted to shops and business and parks, the higher ones
to residential neighborhoods and garden strips. The town lay just above 30°
latitude in the south, and so she had gone from autumn to spring, with the big
hot sun shining down the stepped streets of the upper town, and melting away
the winter’s snow from the ice mass’s edge, and the peaks of the Hellespontus
Mountains on their western horizon. A handsome little town.
And about a month after her arrival, Michel came down from
Sabishii, and took over the apartment right next door to hers. At her
suggestion he installed a connecting door between their two living rooms, and
after that they wandered between the two apartments as if in one, living their
lives in a conjugal domesticity which Maya had never experienced before, a
normality that she found very restful. She did not love Michel passionately,
but he was a good friend, a good lover, and a good therapist, and having him
around was like having an anchor inside her, keeping her from flying away into
exhilarations of hydrology or revolutionary fervor, also from sinking too deep
into terrible abysses of political despair or personal repugnance. Cycling up
and down the sine wave of her moods was a helpless oscillation that she hated,
and anything Michel did in the way of amplitude modulation she appreciated.
They kept no mirrors in the apartments, which along with clomi-pramine helped
to dampen the cycle. But the bottoms of pots, and the windows at night, gave
her the bad news if she cared to have it. As often enough she did.
With Spencer down the hall, the building had just the slightest
feeling of Underhill to it, reinforced occasionally by visitors from out of
town, using their apartment in its capacity as safe house. When others of the
First Hundred came through, they would go out and walk the waterless
waterfront, looking at the ice horizon and exchanging the news like old folks
anywhere. Marsfirst, led by Kasei and Dao, was becoming more and more radical.
Peter was working on the elevator, drawn like a moth back to its moon. Sax had
stopped his mad ecotage .campaign for the time being, thank God, and was concentrating
on his industrial effort in Vishniac mohole, building surface-to-space missiles
and the like. Maya shook her head at this news. It was not military might that
would do it for them; on that issue she sided with Nadia and Nirgal and Art.
They would need something else, something she could not yet visualize. And this
gap in her thinking was one of the things that would start her downward in the
sine wave of her moods, one of the things that made her mad.
Her work coordinating the various aspects of the flooding project
began to get interesting. She trammed or walked down to the offices in the
center of town, and there worked hard to process all the reports sent in by the
many dowsing crews and drilling operations—all full of glowing estimates of the
amounts of water they might put into the basin, and all accompanied by requests
for more equipment and personnel, until altogether they added up to much more
than Deep Waters could supply. Judging the competing claims was difficult from
the office, and her technical staff usually just rolled their eyes and
shrugged. “It’s like judging a liars’ contest,” one said.
And then also reports were coming in from all around the basin of
the new settlements under construction, and by no means all of the people
building these settlements came from the Black Sea Group, or the metanats
involved with them. A lot of them were simply unidentified—one of her dowsing
crews would note the presence of a tent town which had no official existence,
and leave it at that. And the two big canyon projects, in Dao Vallis and the
Dao-Reull system, were clearly populated by many more people than could be
accounted for in the official documentation—people who must therefore be living
under assumed identities, like her, or else living out of the net entirely.
Which was very interesting indeed.
A circumHellas piste had just been completed the year before, a
difficult piece of engineering as the rim of the basin was riven by cracks and
ridges, and cratered by a heavy dose of ejecta reentry. But now the piste was
in place, and Maya decided to satisfy her curiosity by taking a trip out to
inspect all the Deep Waters projects in person, and look into some of the new
settlements.
To accompany her on this trip she requested the company of one of
their areologists, a young woman named Diana, whose reports had been coming in
from the east basin. Her reports were terse and unremarkable, but Maya had
learned from Michel that she was the child of Esther’s son, Paul. Esther had
had Paul very soon after leaving Zygote, and as far as Maya knew, she had never
told anyone who Paul’s father was. So it could have been Esther’s husband
Kasei, in which case Diana was Jackie’s niece, and John and Hiroko’s
great-granddaughter—or else it could have been Peter, as many supposed, in
which case she was Jackie’s half-niece, and Ann and Simon’s
great-granddaughter. Either way Maya found it intriguing, and in any case the
young woman was one of the yonsei, a fourth-generation Martian, and as such
interesting to Maya no matter what her ancestry.
Interesting also in her own right, as it turned out when Maya met
her in the Odessa offices a few days before their trip. With her great size
(over two meters tall, and yet very rounded and muscular) and her fluid grace,
and her high-cheekboned Asiatic features, she seemed a member of a new race,
there to keep Maya company in this new corner of the world.
It turned out that Diana was completely obsessed with the Hellas
Basin and its hidden water, and she talked about it for hours, at such length
and in such detail that Maya became convinced that the mystery of parentage was
solved—such a marsmaniac must be related to Ann Clayborne, and so it followed
that Paul had been fathered by Peter. Maya sat in the train seat beside the big
young woman, watching her or looking out the window at the steep northern slope
of the basin, asking questions, observing as Diana shifted her knees against
the seat back in front of her. They did not make train seats big enough for the
natives.
One thing that fascinated Diana was that the Hellas Basin had
proved to be ringed by much more underground water than had been predicted by
the areological models. This discovery, made in the field over the last decade,
had inspired the current Hellas project, turning the hypothetical sea from a
nice idea into a tangible possibility. It had also forced the areologists to
reconsider their theoretical models of early Martian history, and caused people
to start looking around the rims of the other big impact basins on the planet;
reconnaissance expeditions were under way in the Chari-tum and Nereidum Monies
encircling Argyre, and in ihe hills ringing south Isidis.
Around Hellas itself they were near to completing the inventory,
and they had found perhaps thirty million cubic meters all told, though some
dowsers argued they were by no means finished. “Is there a way to know when
they’re finished?” Maya asked Diana, thinking about all the requests for
resources flooding her office.
Diana shrugged. “After a while you’ve just looked everywhere.”
“What about the basin floor itself? Might the flooding be
destroying our ability to get to some aquifers out there?”
“No.” Almost no water, she told Maya, was located under the basin
floor itself. The floor had been desiccated by the original impact, and now it
consisted of about a kilometer’s depth of eolian sediment, underlain by a hard
cake of brecciated rock, formed during the brief but stupendous pressures of
the impact. These same pressures had also caused deep fracturing all around the
rim of the basin, and it was this fracturing that had allowed unusually large
amounts of outgassing from the interior of the planet. Vola-tiles from below
had seeped up and cooled, and the water portion of the volatiles had pooled in
liquid aquifers, and in many zones of highly saturated permafrost.
“Quite an impact,” Maya observed.
“It was big all right.” As a general rule, Diana said, impactors
were about one-tenth the size of the crater or basin they made (like historical
figures, Maya thought); so the impacting planetesimal in this case had been a
body about two hundred kilometers in diameter, coming down on ancient cratered
highland terrain. Signature traces of it indicated it had probably been an
ordinary asteroid, carbonaceous chondrite for the most part, with lots of water
and some nickel-iron in it. It had had a speed on arrival of about 72,000
kilometers per hour, and had hit at a slightly eastward angle, which explained
the huge devastated region east of Hellas, as well as the high, relatively
well-organized concentric ridges of the Hellespontus Monies to the west.
Then Diana described another rule of thumb which caused Maya to
free-associate analogies to human history: the bigger an impactor, the less of
it survived the impact. Thus almost every bit of this one had vaporized in the
cataclysmic strike—though there was a small gravitational bolide under Gledhill
Crater, which some areologists claimed was almost certainly the buried
remainder of the planetesimal, perhaps one ten-thousandth of the original or
less, which they claimed would supply all the iron and nickel that they would
ever need if they cared to go digging for it.
“Is that feasible?” Maya asked.
“Not really. Cheaper just to mine the asteroids.”
Which they were doing, Maya thought darkly. That was what a prison
sentence meant now, under the latest UNTA regime— years in the asteroid belt,
operating the very strictly circumscribed mining ships and robots. Efficient,
the Transitional Authority said. Prisons that were both remote and profitable.
But Diana was still thinking about the basin’s awesome birth. The
impact had occurred about three and a half billion years before the present,
when the planet’s lithosphere had been thinner, and its interior hotter.
Energies released by the -impact were hard to imagine: the total energy created
by humanity through all history was as nothing to it. And so the resulting
volcanic activity had been considerable. Surrounding Hellas were a number of
ancient volcanoes, which just postdated the impact, including Australis Tho-lus
to the southwest, Amphitrites Patera to the south, and Hadriaca Patera and
Tyrrhene Patera to the northeast. All of these volcanic regions had been found
to have liquid water aquifers near them.
Two of these aquifers had burst onto the surface in ancient times,
leaving on the eastern slope of the basin two characteristic sinuous
water-carved valleys: Dao Vallis, originating on the corrugated slopes of
Hadriaca Patera; and farther south, a linked pair of valleys known as the
Harmakhis-Reull system, which extended for a full thousand kilometers. The
aquifers at the heads of these valleys had refilled over the eons since their
outbreaks, and now big construction crews had tented Dao and were working on
Harmakhis-Reull, and were letting the water from the aquifers run down the long
enclosed canyons, to outlets on the basin floor. Maya was extremely interested
in these big new additions to the habitable surface, and Diana, who knew them
well, was going to take her to visit some friends in Dao.
Their train glided along the northern rim of Hellas for all the
first day, with the ice in view on the basin floor almost continually. They
passed a little hillside town called Sebastopol, its stone walls Florentine
yellow in the afternoon, and after that came to Hell’s Gate, the town at the
bottom end of Dao Vallis. They walked out of the Hell’s Gate train station late
in the afternoon, and looked down into a big ‘new tent town, located under an
enormous suspension bridge. The bridge supported the train piste, spanning Dao
Vallis just up from the canyon’s mouth, so that its towers were over ten
kilometers apart. From the canyon rim by the bridge, where the train station
was, they could see down the widening mouth of the canyon onto the basin floor,
stretching out under a lattice of kinky sun-stained clouds. In the other
direction there was a view well up into the steep narrow world of the canyon
proper. As they walked down a staired and switchbacked street into the town,
the new tenting over the canyon was visible only as a certain red haze to the
color of the evening sky, the result of a dusting of fines on the tenting
materials. “We’ll go upstream tomorrow by way of the rim road,” Diana said,
“and get an overview. Then come back down on the canyon floor, so you can see
what it’s like down there.”
They descended the street, which had 700 numbered steps. In Hell’s
Gate’s downtown they walked around and had dinner, and then climbed back up to
the Deep Waters office, which was on the valley wall just under the bridge.
They stayed in rooms there, and next morning went to a garage by the train
station and borrowed a small company rover.
Diana took the wheel and drove them northeast, paralleling the
canyon rim on a road that ran next to the massive concrete foundation for the
canyon’s tenting. Even though the fabrics were diaphanous to the point of
vanishing, the sheer size of the roof made it a heavy weight to anchor. The
concrete bulk of the foundation blocked their view down into the canyon itself,
so that when they came to the first overlook, Maya had not seen into it since
Hell’s Gate. Diana drove into a little parking lot up on the broad foundation
itself, and they parked and put on helmets and got out of the car, and walked
up a wooden staircase that seemed to ascend freestanding into the sky, although
a closer look revealed first the clear aerogel beam supporting the staircase,
and then the layers of tenting, stretching away from their beam to others that
could not be seen. At the top of the stairs was a small railed viewing
platform, with a prospect that gave a view of the canyon for many kilometers
both upstream and downstream.
And there was indeed a stream; the floor of Dao Vallis had a river
in it. The canyon floor was dotted with green, or to be more precise, a
collection of greens. Maya identified tamarisk, cotton-wood, aspen, cypress,
sycamore, scrub oak, snow bamboo, sage— and then, on the steep talus and
boulder slopes footing the canyon walls, many varieties of shrubs and low
creepers, and of course sedge, and moss, and lichen. And running through this
exquisite arboretum, a river.
It was not a blue stream with white rapids. The water in the
slower stretches was opaque, and the color of rust. In the rapids and
waterfalls it foamed bright shades of pink. Classic Martian tones, caused,
Diana said, by the fines that were suspended in the water like glacial
silt—also by the reflected color of the sky, which was today a kind of hazy
mauve, going lavender around the veiled sun, as yellow as the iris of a tiger’s
eye.
But no matter the color of the water—it was a running river, in an
obviously riverine valley, placid in some places, agitated in others, with
gravel fords, sandbars, braided sections, crumbling lem-niscate islands, there
a big deep lazy oxbow, frequent rapids, and far upstream, a couple of small
falls. Under the tallest waterfall they could see the pink foam turn almost
white, and patches of white were then carried downstream, to catch on boulders
and snags sticking out from the bank.
“Dao River,” Diana said. “Also called the Ruby River by the people
who live down there.”
“How many are there?”
“A few thousand. Most live pretty close to Hell’s Gate. Upstream
there are family homesteads and the like. And of, course then the aquifer
station at the head of the canyon, where a few hundred of them work.”
“It’s one of the biggest aquifers?”
“Yes. About three million cubic meters of water. So we’re pumping
it out at a flow rate—well, you see it there. About a hundred thousand cubic
meters a year.”
“So in thirty years, no more river?”
“Right. Although they could pump some water back upstream in a
pipe, and let it out again. Or who knows, if the atmosphere gets humid enough,
the slopes of Hadriaca might collect a snow-pack big enough to serve as a
watershed. Then the river would fluctuate with the seasons, but that’s what
rivers do, don’t they.”
Maya stared down at the scene, which looked so much like something
from her youth, some river ... the upper Rioni, in Georgia? The Colorado, seen
once on a visit to America? She couldn’t recall. So fuzzy, all that life. “It’s
beautiful. And so ...” She shook her head; the sight had a quality she could
not recall ever seeing before, as if it were out of time, a prophetic glimpse
into a distant future.
“Here, let’s go up the road a bit farther and see Hadriaca.”
Maya nodded, and they returned to the car. Once or twice as they
continued uphill, the road rose far enough above the foundation to give them
another view down onto the canyon floor, and Maya saw that the little river
continued to cut through rocks and vegetation. But Diana did not pause, and
Maya saw no sign of settlements.
At the upper end of the tented canyon there was a big concrete
block of a physical plant, housing the gas exchange mechanisms, and the pumping
station. A forest of windmills stood on the rising slope to the north of this
station, the big props all facing west and slowly spinning. Above that array
rose the broad low cone of Hadriaca Patera, a volcano whose sides were
unusually furrowed by a dense crisscrossing network of lava channels, the later
ones cutting over the earlier ones. Now the winter’s snowpack had filled the
channels, but not the exposed black rock between them, which had been blown
clear by the strong winds accompanying the snowstorms. The result was an
enormous black cone sticking into the bruised sky, festooned with hundreds of
tangled white ribbons.
“Very handsome,” Maya said. “Can they see it from the canyon
floor?”
“No. But a lot of them at this end work up on the rim anyway, at
the well or the power station. So they see it every day.”
“These settlers—who are they?”
“Let’s go meet them and see,” Diana said. Maya nodded, enjoying
Diana’s style, which still reminded her a bit of Ann. The sansei and yonsei
were all strange to Maya, but Diana much less than most—a bit private perhaps,
but compared to her more exotic contemporaries, and the Zygote kids, welcomely
ordinary.
While Maya observed Diana, thinking this, Diana drove their rover
into the canyon, down a steep road laid over a giant ancient talus slope near
the head of Dao. This was where the original aquifer outburst had occurred, but
there was very little chaotic terrain—just titanic talus slopes, permanently
settled at the angle of repose.
The canyon floor itself was basically flat and unbroken. Soon they
were driving down it, on a regolith track sprayed with a fixative. The track
ran by the stream where it could. After about an hour’s driving they passed a
green meadow, tucked into the lazy curve of a fat oxbow. In the center of this meadow,
in a knot of pinon pine and aspen, huddled a gathering of low shingled roofs,
with faint smoke rising from a solitary chimney.
Maya stared at the settlement (corral and pasture, truck garden,
bam, bee boxes), marveling at its beauty, and its archaic wholeness, its
seeming detachment from the great redrock desert plateau above the
canyon—detachment from everything really, from history, from Time itself. A
mesocosm. What did they think in those little buildings of Mars and Earth, and
all their troubles? Why should they care?
Diana stopped the car, and a few people came out and crossed the
meadow to see who they were. Pressure under the tent was 500 millibars, which
helped to support the weight of the tenting, as the atmosphere at large was
averaging about 250 millibars now. So Maya popped the lock of the car, and got
out without her helmet on, feeling undressed and uncomfortable.
These settlers were all young natives. Most of them had come down
in the last few years from Burroughs and Elysium. Some Terrans lived in the
valley too, they said—not many, but there was a Praxis program that brought up
groups from smaller countries, and here in the valley they had recently
welcomed some Swiss, and Greeks, and Navajo. And there was a Russian settlement
down near Hell’s Gate. So they heard some different languages in the valley,
but English was the lingua franca, and the first tongue of almost all of the
natives. They had accents to their English that Maya had not heard before, and
made odd mistakes in grammar, at least to her ear; almost every verb after the
first one was in present tense, for instance. “We went downstream and see some
Swiss are working on the river. Stabilizing the banks in some places, with
plants or rocks. They say in a few years the streambed is flushed enough for
the water to clear.”
Maya said, “It will still be the color of the cliffs, and the
sky.”
“Yeah, of course. But clear water looks better than silty water,
somehow.”
“How do you know?” Maya enquired.
They squinted and frowned, thinking about it. “Just from the way
it looks in your hand, eh?”
Maya smiled. “It’s wonderful you have so much room. Unbelievable
what big spaces they can roof these days, isn’t it?”
They shrugged, as if they hadn’t thought of it that way. One said,
“We look forward to the day when we take the tenting off, actually. We miss the
rain, and the wind.”
“How do you know?”
But they knew.
She and Diana drove on, passing very small villages. Isolated
farms. A pasture of sheep. Vineyards. Orchards. Cultivated fields.
Big packed greenhouses, gleaming like labs. Once a coyote ran
across the track ahead of their car. Then on a high little lawn under a talus
slope Diana spotted a brown bear, and later some Dall sheep. In the little
villages people were trading food and tools in open marketplaces, and talking
over the day’s events. They did not monitor the news from Earth, and seemed to
Maya astonishingly ignorant of it. All but a little community of Russians, who
spoke a mongrel Russian which nevertheless brought tears to Maya’s eyes, and
who told her that things on Earth were falling apart. As usual. They were happy
to be in the canyon.
In one of the small villages there was an outdoor market in full
swing, and there in the middle of the crowd was Nirgal, chomping an apple and
nodding vigorously as someone spoke to him. He saw Maya and Diana get out of
the car and rushed over and hugged her, lifting her off the ground. “Maya, what
are you doing here?”
“On a tour from Odessa. This is Diana, Paul’s daughter. What are
you doing here?”
“Oh, visiting the valley. They’ve got some soil problems I’m
trying to help with.”
“Tell me about it.”
Nirgal was an ecological engineer, and seemed to have inherited
some of Hiroko’s talent. The valley mesocosm was relatively new, they were
still planting seedlings all up and down it, and though the soil had been
prepped, nitrogen and potassium deficiencies were causing many plants not to
thrive. As they walked around the marketplace Nirgal discussed this, and
pointed out local crops and imported goods, describing the economics of the
valley. “So they’re not self-sufficient?” Maya asked.
“No no. Not even close. But they do grow a lot of their own food,
and then trade other crops, or give them away.”
He was working on eco-economics as well, it seemed. And he already
had a lot of friends here; people kept coming up to hug him, and as he had his
arm over Maya’s shoulders, she got pulled into these embraces and then
introduced to one young native after another, all of them looking delighted to
see Nirgal again. He remembered all their names, asked how they were doing,
kept up the questions as they continued to circulate through the market, past
tables of bread and vegetables, and bags of barley and fertilizer, and baskets
of berries and plums, until there was a whole little crowd of them like a
mobile party, which finally settled around long pine tables outside a tavern.
Nirgal kept Maya at his side throughout the rest of the afternoon, and she
watched all the young faces, relaxed and happy, observing how much Nirgal was
like John—how people warmed to him, and then were warm to each other—every
occasion like a festival, touched by his grace. They poured each other’s
drinks, they fed Maya a big meal “all local, all local,” they talked with each
other in their quick Martian English, detailing gossip and explaining their
dreams. Oh, he was a special boy all right, as fey as Hiroko and yet utterly
normal, at one and the same time. Diana for instance was simply latched to his
other side, and a lot of the other young women there looked like they wished
they were in her place, or Maya’s. Perhaps had been in the past. Well, there
were some advantages to being an ancient babushka. She could mother him
shamelessly and he only grinned, and nothing they could do. Yes, there was
something charismatic about him: lean jaw, mobile humorous mouth, wide-set,
brown, slightly Asiatic eyes, thick eyebrows, unruly black hair, long graceful
body, though he was not as tall as most of them. Nothing exceptional. It was
mostly his manner, friendly and curious and prone to hilarity.
“What about politics?” she asked him late that night, as they
walked together from the village down to the stream. “What do you say to them?”
“I use the Dorsa Brevia document. My notion is that we should
enact it immediately, in our daily lives. Most of the people in this valley
have left the official network, you see, and are living in the alternative
economy.”
“I noticed. That’s one of the things that got me up here.”
“Yeah, well, you see what’s happening. The sansei and yonsei like
it. They think of it as a homegrown system.”
“The question is, what does UNTA think of it.”
“But what can they do? I don’t think they care, from what I can
see.” He was constantly traveling, and had been now for years, and had seen a
lot of Mars—much more than Maya had, she realized. “We’re hard to see, and we
don’t appear to be challenging them. So they don’t bother with us. They’re not
even aware how widespread we are.”
Maya shook her head dubiously. They stood on the bank of the
stream, which in this spot was noisily gurgling over shallows, the night-purple
surface scarcely reflecting the starlight. “It’s so silty,” Nirgal said.
“What do you call yourselves?” she asked.
“What do you mean?”
“It’s a kind of political party, Nirgal, or a social movement. You
must call it something.”
“Oh. Well, some say we’re Booneans, or a kind of Marsfirst wing. I
don’t think that’s right. I don’t name it, myself. Maybe Ka. Or Free Mars. We
say that, as a kind of greeting. Verb, noun, whatever. Free Mars.”
“Hmm,” Maya said, feeling the chill humid wind on her cheek,
Nirgal’s arm around her waist. An alternative economy, functioning without the
rule of law, was intriguing but dangerous; it could turn into a black economy
run by gangsters, and there was very little that any idealistic village could
do about it. So that as a solution to the Transitional Authority it was
somewhat illusory, she judged.
But when she expressed these reservations to Nirgal, he agreed. “I
don’t think of this as the final step. But I think it helps. It’s what we can
do now. And then, when the time comes ...”
Maya nodded in the darkness. It was another Creche Crescent, she
thought suddenly. They walked back up to the village together, where the party
was still going on. There five young women at least began jockeying to be the
last one at Nirgal’s side when the party ended, and with a laugh only slightly
edged (if she were young they would not have had a chance) Maya left them to it
and went to bed.
After two days’ driving downstream from the market village, still
forty kilometers from Hell’s Gate, they came around a bend in the canyon and
could see down the length of it, to the towers of the piste’s suspension
bridge. Like something out of a different world, Maya thought, with a different
technology entirely. The towers were six hundred meters high, and ten
kilometers apart—a truly immense bridge, dwarfing the town of Hell’s Gate
itself, which did not roll over the horizon for another hour, and then came
visible from the rim downward, its buildings spilling down the steep canyon
walls like some dramatic seafront village in Spain or Portugal—but all in the
shadow of the enormous bridge. Enormous, yes—and yet there were bridges twice
as big as it in Chryse, and with the continual improvements in materials, there
was no end in sight. The new elevator cable’s carbon nanotube filament had a
tensile strength that was overkill even for the elevator’s needs, and using it
you could build just about any surface bridge you could possibly imagine; people
spoke of bridging Marineris, and there were jokes about running cable car lines
between the prince volcanoes on Tharsis, to save people the fifteen-kilometer
vertical drops between the three peaks.
Back in Hell’s Gate Maya and Diana returned the car to the garage,
and had a big dinner in a restaurant about halfway up the wall of the valley,
under the bridge. After that Diana had friends she wanted to see, so Maya
excused herself and went to the Deep Waters offices, and her room. But outside
the glass doors of her room, above its little balcony, the great span of the
bridge arched through the stars, and remembering Dao Canyon and its people, and
black Hadriaca ribboned white with its snow-filled channels, she had great
difficulty getting to sleep. She went out and sat curled in a blanket, on a
chair on her balcony, for a good part of the night, watching the underside of
the giant bridge and thinking about Nirgal and the young natives, and what they
meant.
The next morning they were supposed to take the
next circumHellas train, but Maya asked Diana to drive her out onto the
basin floor instead, to see in person what happened to the water running down
the Dao River. Diana was happy to oblige.
At the lower end of the town, the stream poured into a narrow
reservoir, dammed by a thick concrete dam and pump, located right at the tent
wall. Outside the tent, water was carried off across the basin in a fat
insulated pipeline, set on three-meter pylons. The pipeline ran down the broad
gentle eastern slope of the basin, and they followed it in another company
rover, until the crumbled cliffs of Hell’s Gate disappeared over the low dunes
of the horizon behind them. An hour later the towers of the bridge were still
visible, poking up over the skyline.
A few kilometers farther on, the pipeline ran out over a reddish
plain of cracked ice—a kind of glacier, except that it fanned out right to left
over the plain for as far as they could see. It was the current shore of their
new sea, in fact, or at least one lobe of it, frozen in its place. The pipeline
ran out over the ice, then descended into it, disappearing a couple of
kilometers from shore.
A small, nearly submerged crater ring stuck out into the ice like
a curving double peninsula, and Diana followed tracks onto one peninsula and
drove until they were as far out in the ice as they could get. The visible
world before them was completely covered with ice; behind them lay the rising
slope of sand. “This lobe extends out a long way now,” Diana said. “Look
there—” She pointed at a silver twinkling on the western horizon.
Maya took a pair of binoculars from the dash. On the horizon she
could make out what appeared to be the northern edge of the lobe of ice, where
it gave way again to rising sand dunes. As she watched, a mass of ice at this
border toppled, looking like a Greenland glacier caving into the sea, except
that when it hit the sand it shattered into hundreds of white pieces. Then
there was a spill of water, running as dark as the Ruby River out over the
sand. Dust dashed up and away from this stream, and blew south on the wind. The
edges of the new flow began to whiten, but Maya saw that it was nothing like
the frightening speed with which the flood in Marineris had frozen in ‘61. It
stayed liquid, with hardly any frost steam, for minute after minute, right out
there in the open air! Oh the world was warmer, all right, and the atmosphere
thicker; up to 260 millibars sometimes down here in the basin, and the
temperature outside at the moment was 271°K. A very pleasant day! She surveyed
the surface of the ice lobe through the binoculars, and saw that it was
liberally dotted by the bright white sheens of meltwater ponds that had
refrozen clean and flat.
“Things are changing,” Maya said, although not to Diana; and Diana
did not reply.
Eventually the flood of new dark water whitened all over its
surface, and stopped moving. “It’s coming out somewhere else now,” Diana said.
“It works like sedimentation in a river delta. The main channel for this lobe
is actually well to the south of here.”
“I’m glad I saw this. Let’s get back.”
They drove back to Hell’s Gate, and that night had supper together
again, on the same restaurant terrace under the great bridge. Maya asked Diana
a great number of questions about Paul and Esther and Kasei and Nirgal and
Rachel and Emily and Reull and the rest of Hiroko’s brood, and their children
and their children’s children. What were they doing now? What were they going
to do? Did Nirgal have lots of followers?
“Oh yes, of course. You saw how it is. He travels all the time,
and there’s a whole network of natives in the northern cities who take care of
him. Friends, and friends of friends, and so on.”
“And you think these people will support a ...”
“Another revolution?”
“I was going to say independence movement.”
“Whatever you call it, they’ll support it. They’ll support Nirgal.
Earth looks like a nightmare to them, a nightmare trying to drag us down into
it. They don’t want that.”
“They?” Maya said, smiling. .
“Oh me too.” Diana smiled back. “Us.”
As they continued clockwise around Hellas, Maya had cause to
remember that conversation. A consortium from Elysium, without any metanat or
UNTA connections that Maya could discover, had just finished roofing over the
Harmakhis-Reull valleys, using the same method that had been used to roof Dao.
Now there were hundreds of people in those two linked canyons, outfitting the
aerators and working up soils, and seeding and planting the nascent biosphere
of the canyons’ mesocosm. Their on-site greenhouses and manufacturing plants
were producing much of what they needed for this work, and metals and gases
were being mined out of the badlands of Hesperia to the east, and brought into
the town at the mouth of Harmakhis Vallis called Sukhumi. These people had the
starter programs and the seeds, and they did not appear to put much stock in
the Transitional Authority; they had not asked permission from it to engage in
their project, and they actively disliked the official crews from the Black Sea
Group, who were usually Terran metanat representatives.
They were hungry for manpower, however, and were happy to get more
technicians.or generalists from Deep Waters, and any equipment they could cadge
from its headquarters. Practically every group Maya met in the Harmakhis-Reull
region made a pitch for aid, and most of them were young natives, who seemed to
think they had just as much chance at the equipment as anyone else, even though
they were not affiliated with Deep Waters or any other company.
And everywhere south of Harmakhis-Reull, in the ragged ejecta
hills behind the rim of the basin, there were dowsing crews’, out looking for
aquifers. As in the roofed canyons, most of these crews had been born on Mars,
and a .lot of them had been born on Mars since ‘61. And they were different,
profoundly different, sharing interests and enthusiasms perfectly
incommunicable to any other generation, as if genetic drift or disruptive
selection had produced a bimodal distribution, so that members of the old Homo
sapiens were now coinhabiting the planet with a new Homo ares, creatures tall
and slender and graceful and utterly at home, chattering to each other in a
profound self-absorption as they did the work that would make Hellas Basin into
a sea.
And this gigantic project was perfectly natural work to them.’ At
one stop on the piste Maya and Diana got out and drove with some friends of
Diana’s out onto one of the ridges of the Zea Dorsa, which ran out onto the
southeast quarter of the basin floor. Now most of these dorsa were peninsulas running
out under another ice lobe, and Maya looked down at the crevasse-riven glaciers
to each side and tried to imagine a time when the surface of the sea would in
fact lie hundreds of meters overhead, so that these craggy old basalt ridges
would be nothing but blips on some ship’s sonar, home to starfish and shrimp
and krill and extensive varieties of engineered bacteria. That time was not far
off, amazing though it was to realize it. But Diana and her friends, these in
particular of Greek ancestry, or was it Turkish—these young Martian dowsers
were not awed by this imminent future, nor by their project’s vast-ness. It was
their work, their life—to them it was human scale, there was nothing unnatural
about it. On Mars, simply enough, human work consisted of pharaonic projects
like this one. Creating oceans. Building bridges that made the Golden Gate look
like a toy. They weren’t even watching this ridge, which would only be visible
for a while longer—they were talking about other things, mutual friends in Sukhumi,
that sort of thing.
“This is a stupendous act!” Maya told them sharply. “This is
magnitudes bigger than anything people have been able to do before! This sea is
going to be the size of the Caribbean! There’s never been any project anything
like this on Earth—no project! Not even close!”
A pleasant oval-faced woman with beautiful skin laughed. “I don’t
give a damn about Earth,” she said.
The new piste curved around the southern rim, crossing
transversely some steep ridges and ravines which were called the Axius Valles.
These corrugations ran from the rim’s rough hills down into the basin, forcing
the piste viaduct to alternate between great arching bridges and deep cuts, or
tunnels. The train they had boarded after the Zea Dorsa was a short private one
belonging to the Odessa office, so Maya got it to stop at most of the small
stations along this stretch, and she got out to meet and talk with the dowsing
and construction crews. At one stop they were all Earthbom emigrants, and to
Maya much more comprehensible than the blithe natives—normal-sized people,
staggering around amazed and enthusiastic, or dismayed and complaining, in any
case aware of how strange their enterprise was. They took Maya down a tunnel in
a ridge, and it turned out that the ridge was a lava tunnel running down from
Am-phitrites Patera, its cylindrical cavity much the same size as Dorsa
Brevia’s, but tilted at a sharp angle. The engineers were pumping the
Amphitrites aquifer’s water into it, and using it as their pipeline to the basin
floor. So now, as the grinning Earthborn hydrologists showed her as she stepped
into an observation gallery cut into the side of the lava tube, black water was
racing down the bottom of the huge tunnel, barely covering its bottom even at
200 cubic meters a second, the roar of its splashing echoing in the empty
cylinder of basalt. “Isn’t it great?” the emigrants demanded, and Maya nodded,
happy to be with people whose reactions she could understand. “Just like a damn
big storm dram, isn’t it?”
But back at the train, the young natives nodded at Maya’s
exclamations—lava tube pipeline, of course—very big, yes, it would be wouldn’t
it—saved her some pipe for the less fortunate operations, yes? And then they
went back to discussing some people they knew that Maya had never heard of.
As the train continued they rounded the southwest arc of the
basin, and the piste led them north. They rode over four or five more big
pipelines, snaking out of high canyons in the Hellespontus Monies to their
left, canyons between bare serrated ridges of rock, like something out of
Nevada or Afghanistan, the peaks whitened with snow. Out the windows to the
right, down on the basin floor, there were more spreading patches of dirty
broken ice, often marked by the flat white patches of newer spills. They were
building on the hilltops by the piste, little tent towns like places out of the
Tuscan Renaissance. “These foothills will be a popular place to live,” Maya
said to Diana. “They’ll be between the mountains and the sea, and some of these
canyon mouths should end up as little harbors.”
Diana nodded. “Nice sailing.”
As they came around the last curve of their circumnavigation, the
piste had to cross the Niesten Glacier, the frozen remainder of the massive
outburst that had drowned Low Point in ‘61. There was no easy way to make this
crossing, as the glacier was thirty-five kilometers wide at its narrowest
point, and no one had yet marshaled the time and equipment to build a
suspension bridge over it. Instead several support pylons had been rammed
through the ice and secured in the rock below. These pylons had prows like
icebreakers on their upstream side, and on their downstream side there was
attached a kind of pontoon bridge, which rode over the passing ice of the
glacier using cushioned smart pads that expanded or contracted to compensate
for drops and rises in the ice.
The train slowed for the crossing of this pontoon, and as they
glided over it Maya looked upstream. She could see where the glacier fell out
of the gap between two fanglike peaks, very near Niesten Crater.
Never-identified rebels had broken open the Niesten aquifer with a
thermonuclear explosion, and released one of the five or six largest outbursts
of ‘61, almost as big as the one that had harrowed the Marineris canyons. The
ice under them was still a bit radioactive. But now it lay under the bridge
frozen and still, the aftermath of that terrible flood nothing more than an
astonishingly broken field of ice blocks. Beside her Diana said something about
climbers who liked to ascend the icefalls on the glacier for the fun of it.
Maya shuddered with disgust. People were so crazy. She thought of Frank,
carried away by the Marineris flood, and cursed out loud.
“You don’t approve?” Diana asked.
She cursed again.
An insulated pipeline ran down the midline of the ice, under the
pontoon and down toward Low Point. They were still draining the bottom of the
broken aquifer. Maya had overseen the building of Low Point, she had lived
there for years and years, with an engineer whose name she could not now
recall—and now they were pumping up what was left at the bottom of Niesten
aquifer, to add to the water over that drowned city. The great outburst of ‘61
was now reduced to a slender pipeline’s worth of water, channelized and
regulated.
Maya felt the turbulent maelstrom of emotions inside
her, stirred by all she had seen on her circumnavigation, by all that had
happened and all that was going to happen ... ah, the floods within her, the
flash floods in her mind! If only she could accomplish the same yoking of her
spirit that they had with this aquifer— drain it, control it, make it sane. But
the hydrostatic pressures were so intense, the outbreaks when they came so
fierce. No pipeline could hold it.
“Things are
changing.” she told Michel
and Spencer. “I don’t think we understand things anymore.”
She settled back into her life in Odessa, happy to be back but
also disturbed, inquisitive, seeing everything anew. On the wall above her desk
at the office she kept a drawing by Spencer, of an alchemist flinging a big
volume into a turbulent sea. At the bottom he had written, “I’ll drown my
book.”
She left the apartment every morning early, and walked down the
corniche to the Deep Waters offices near the dry waterfront, next to another
Praxis firm called Separation de L’Atmosphere. There she worked through the
days directing the synthesis team, coordinating the field units, and
concentrating now on the small mobile operations that were moving around the
basin floor, doing last-minute mineral mining and rearrangement of the ice.
Occasionally she worked on the design of these little roving hamlets’, enjoying
the return to ergonomics, her oldest skill aside from cosmonautics itself.
Working one day on changing room cabinets, she looked down at her sketches and
felt a wash of deja vu, and wondered if she had done exactly this bit of work
before, sometime in the lost past. She wondered also why it was that skills
were so robust in the memory, while knowledge was so fragile. She could not for
the life of her recall the education that had given her this ergonomic
expertise, but she had it nevertheless, despite the many decades that had
passed since she had last put it to use.
But the mind was strange. Some days the sense of deja vu returned
as palpably as an itch, such that every single event of that day felt like
something that had happened before. It was a sensation that became more and
more uncomfortable the longer it persisted, she found, until the world became
an acute frightful prison, and she nothing more than a creature of fate, a
clockwork mechanism unable to do anything that she had not done before in some
forgotten past. Once, when it lasted almost a week, she was almost paralyzed by
it; she had never had the meaning of life assaulted so viciously, never. Michel
was quite concerned about it, and assured her it was probably the mental
manifestation of a physical problem; this Maya believed, sort of, but as
nothing he prescribed helped to ease the feeling, it was of little practical
help. She could only endure, and hope for the sensation to pass.
When it did pass, she did her best to forget the experience. And
then when it recurred, she would say to Michel “Oh my God, I’m feeling it
again,” and he would say “Hasn’t this happened before?” and they would laugh,
and she would do her best to make do. She would dive into the particulars of
her current work, planning for the dowsing teams, giving them their assignments
based on the areographers’ reports from the rim, and the results of other
dowsing teams coming back in. It was interesting, even exciting work, a sort of
gigantic treasure hunt, which necessitated a continuing education in
areography, in the secret habits of submartian water. This absorption helped
with the deja vu quite a bit, and after a while it became just another of the
odd sensations with which her mind afflicted her, worse than the exhilarations
but better than the depressions, or the occasional moments when rather than
feeling that something had happened before, she was struck by the sense that
nothing like this had ever happened ever, even though she might be doing
something like stepping onto a tram. Jamais vu, Michel called it, looking
concerned. Quite dangerous, apparently. But nothing to be done about it.
Sometimes it was less than helpful, living with someone trained in
psychological problems. One could easily become nothing more than a spectacular
case study. They would need several pseudonyms to describe her.
In any case, on the days she was lucky and feeling well she worked
completely abstracted, and quit somewhere between four and seven, tired and
satisfied. She walked home in the characteristic light of the late day in
Odessa: the whole town in the shadow of the Hellespontus, the sky therefore
intense with light and color, the clouds brilliantly lit as they sailed east
over the ice, and everything below burnished with reflected light, in that
infinite array of colors between blue and red, different every day, every hour.
She strolled lazily under the leaves of the trees in the park, and through the
locked gate into the Praxis building, then up to the apartment to eat supper
with Michel, who usually had finished a long day of doing therapy with homesick
newcomers from Earth, or old-timers with a variety of complaints like Maya’s deja
vu or Spencer’s dissociation—memory loss, anomie, phantom smells and the like—
odd gerontological problems, which had seldom cropped up in shorter-lived
people, giving ominous warnings that the treatments might not be penetrating
the brain quite as fully as they needed them to.
Very few nisei or sansei or yonsei ever came to visit him,
however, which surprised him. “No doubt it is a good sign for the long-term
prospects of Martian habitation,” he said one evening as he came up from a
quiet day in his office on the bottom floor.
Maya shrugged. “They could be crazy and not know it. It looked
like it might be that way to me, when I went around the basin.” Michel eyed
her. “Do you mean crazy or just different?” “I don’t know. They just seem
unaware of what they’re doing.” “Every generation is its own secret society.
And these are what you might call areurges. It is their nature to operate the
planet. You have to give them that.”
Usually by the time Maya got home the apartment would already be
fragrant with the smells of Michel’s attempts at Provencal cooking, and there
would be an open bottle of red wine on the table. Through most of the year they
ate out on the balcony, and when he was in town and feeling up to it Spencer
joined them, as would their frequent visitors. As they ate they talked over the
day’s work, and the events around the world, and back on Earth.
And so she lived the ordinary days of an ordinary life, la vie
quotidienne, and Michel would share it with his sly smile, a bald man with an
elegant Gallic face, ironic and good-humored, and ever so objective. The
evening light would concentrate itself into the band of sky over the black
jagged peaks of the Hellespontus, brilliant pinks and silvers and violets
shading up into dark indigos and bruised blacks, and their voices would soften
in that last part of the twilight Michel called entre chien et loup. And then
they would pick up the plates, and go back inside, and clean up the kitchen—
everything habitual, everything known, deep in that deja vu that one determines
oneself, that makes one happy.
And then, on some evenings, Spencer would have arranged for her to
attend a meeting, usually in one of the communes in the upper town. These were
loosely affiliated with Marsfirst, but the people who came to the meetings did
not seem much like the radical Marsfirsters whom Kasei had led at the Dorsa
Brevia congress—they were more like Nirgal’s friends in Dao, younger, less
dogmatic, more self-absorbed, happier. It disturbed Maya to meet them even
though she wanted to, and she spent the day before a meeting in a state of
restless anticipation. Then after dinner a small band of Spencer’s friends
would join them at the Praxis building, and accompany her as they made their
way through town, taking trams and then walking, usually up into the upper
reaches of Odessa, where the more crowded apartments were located.
Here entire buildings were becoming alternative strongholds, in
which the occupants paid their rent and held some downtown jobs, but otherwise
disconnected themselves from the official economy; they farmed in greenhouses
and on terraces and roofs, and did programming and construction and small
instrument and agritool manufacture, for selling and trading and giving among
themselves. Their meetings took place in communal living rooms, or out in the
little parks and gardens of the upper town, under the trees. Sometimes groups
of Reds from out of town joined them.
Maya started by asking people to introduce themselves, and she
learned more then: that most of them were in their twenties or thirties or
forties, born in Burroughs, or on Elysium or Tharsis, or in camps on Acidalia
or the Great Escarpment. There was also a regular small percentage of old Mars
vets, and some new emigrants, often from Russia, which pleased Maya. They were
agronomists, ecological engineers, construction workers, technicians,
technocrats, city operators, service personnel. Much of this work was being
done more and more within their developing alternative economy. Their communal
buildings had begun as warrens of one-room apartments, with the bathrooms down
the hall. They walked or trammed to their downtown jobs, past the fortress
mansions behind the corniche, occupied by the visiting metanat executives.
(Everyone in Praxis lived in apartments like theirs, which they
had noted with approval.) They had all gotten the treatment, and took that to
be normality—they were shocked to hear the way it was being used as an
instrument of control back on Earth, but then added that to their list of
Terran evils. They were in excellent health, and knew very little about
sickness, or crowded health clinics. It was a folk cure among them to go out in
a walker and let in a single breath of the ambient air. This was said to kill
any ailment you could have. They were big and strong. They had a look in their
eye that one night Maya recognized: it was the look on the youthful Frank’s
face, in that photo she had seen in her lectern—that idealism, that edge of
anger, that knowledge that things were not right, that confidence that they
could set them right. The young, she thought. Revolution’s natural
constituency.
And there they were, in their small rooms, meeting to argue the
issues at hand, looking tired but happy. These were parties as much as anything
else, part of their social life. It was important to understand that. And Maya
would go to the middle of the room and sit on a tabletop, if possible, and say,
“I am Toitovna. I was here since the beginning.”
She would talk about that—about what it had been like in
Un-derhill—working to remember until she became as urgent in her manner as
History herself, trying to explain why things on Mars were the way they were.
“Look,” she told them, “you can never go back.” Physiological changes had
closed Earth to them forever, emigrants and native-born alike, but especially
the natives. They were Martian now, no matter what. They needed to be an
independent state, sovereign perhaps, semiautonomous at least. Semiautonomy
might be enough, given the realities of the two worlds; semiauton-omy would
justify calling it a free Mars. But in the current state of things they were no
more than property, and had no real power over their own lives. Decisions were
made for them a hundred million kilometers away. Their home was being chopped
up into metal bits and shipped away. It was a waste, it benefited no one except
a small metanational elite who were running the two worlds like feudal
fiefdoms. No, they needed to be free—and not so that they could cast loose from
Earth’s terrible situation, not at all— rather, to be able to exert some real
influence over what was happening down there. Otherwise they were only going to
be helpless witnesses to catastrophe. And then sucked down into the maelstrom
after the first sets of victims. That was intolerable. They had to act.
The communal groups were very receptive to this message, as were
the more traditional Marsfirst groups, and the urban Bogda-novists, and even
some of the Reds. To all of them, in every meeting, Maya stressed the
importance of coordinating their actions. “Revolution is no place for anarchy!
If we tried to fill Hellas each on our own we might easily wreck each other’s
work, and maybe even overfill the minus one contour, and wreck everything we’ve
been working for. It’s the same with this. We need to work together. We didn’t
in sixty-one, and that’s why it was such a fiasco. It was interference rather
than synergy, you understand? That was stupid. This time we have to work
together.”
Tell that to the Reds, the Bogdanovists would say. And Maya would
impale them with a look and say, “I’m talking to you right now. You don’t want
to hear how I talk to them.” Which might make them laugh, relaxing as they
imagined her castigating someone else. That awareness of her as the Black
Widow—the evil witch who might curse them, the Medea who might kill them—this
was not an unimportant part of her hold on them, and so she let the knives show
from time to time. She asked them hard questions, and although usually they
were hopelessly naive, sometimes their answers were really impressive,
especially when they were talking about Mars itself. Some of them were
collecting -tremendous amounts of information: inventories of metanat armories,
airport systems, communication center layouts, lists and location programs for
satellites and spacecraft, networks, databases. Sometimes, listening to them,
it seemed like the whole thing might be possible. They were young, of course,
and astonishingly ignorant in many ways, so that it was easy to feel superior
to them; but then there was their animal vitality, their health and energy. And
they were adults, after all, so that other times watching them Maya understood
that the vaunted experience of age was perhaps only a matter of wounds and
scarring—that young minds to old minds might be as young bodies to old bodies:
stronger, more vital, less twisted by damage.
So she would keep that in mind even as she lectured them as
sternly as she had the kids in Zygote, and after her lessons she took pains to
mingle among them and just talk, share some food, listen to their stories.
After an hour of that, Spencer would announce that she had to leave. The
implication throughout was that she was visiting from another city—although, as
she had seen some of their faces on the streets of Odessa, they certainly must
have seen her as well, and knew at least that she spent a lot of time in the
town. But afterward Spencer and his friends would take her through an elaborate
routine, to make sure they were not followed. And most of the group would fade
away into the staircased alleys of the upper town before they reached the
western quarter, and the Praxis apartment building. Then they would slip in
through the gate, and the door would shut with a clang, reminding her that the
sunny double apartment she shared with Michel was a safe house.
One night after a very sharp meeting with a group of young
engineers and areologists, as she was telling Michel about it, she tapped away
at her lectern, and found the photo of the young Frank in that article, and
printed out a copy of it. The article had taken the photo out of a newspaper of
the time, and it was black and white, and quite grainy. She taped the photo to
the side of the cabinet over the kitchen sink, feeling odd and turbulent.
Michel looked up from his AI and peered at it, and nodded
approvingly. “It’s amazing how much you can read from people’s faces.”
“Frank didn’t think so.”
“He was just afraid of the ability.”
“Hmm,” Maya said. She couldn’t remember. She recalled instead the
looks on the faces of the people at that night’s meeting. It was true, they had
revealed everything—they had been like masks expressing exactly the sentences
their owners had spoken. The meta-nats are out of control. They’re screwing
things up. They’re selfish, they only care about themselves. Metanationalism is
a new kind of nationalism, but without any home feeling. It’s money patriotism,
a kind of disease. People are suffering, not so much here, but on Earth. And if
it doesn’t change it will happen here too. They will infect us.
All said with the look from the photo, that knowing confident
righteous blaze. It could change to cynicism, no doubt about it; Frank was the
proof of that. It was possible to break that fervor, or lose it, in cynicism
which could be so contagious. They would have to act before that happened; not
too soon, but not too late. Timing would be everything. But if they timed it
right... .
One day at the office, news came in from the Hellespontus. They
had discovered a new aquifer, very deep compared to the others, very far away
from the basin, and very big. Diana speculated that earlier glacial ages had
run west off the Hellespontus range, and come to rest out there,
underground—some twelve million cubic meters, more than any other aquifer,
raising the amount of located water from 80 percent to 120 percent of the
amount needed to fill the basin to the—1-kilometer contour.
It was amazing news, and the whole headquarters group gathered in
Maya’s office to discuss it and plot it onto the big maps, the areographers
already charting pipeline routes over the mountains, and debating the relative
merits of different kinds of pipeline. The Low Point sea, called “the pond” in
the office, already supported a robust biotic community based on the Antarctic
krill food chain, and there was a spreading melt zone at its bottom, heated by
the mohole and the accumulating weight of the many tons of ice pressing down
from above. Increased air pressure and ever-warming temperatures meant that
there would be more and more surface melting as well; bergs would be slipping
and crashing together and breaking up, exposing more surfaces, and warming
things with friction and sunlight, until they reached a kind of pack ice, and
then brash ice. At that point newly pumped-in water, properly aimed to reinforce
the Coriolis forces, would start a counterclockwise current.
On and on they talked about it, getting further and further ahead
of the game, until when they went out to celebrate with a big lunch, it was
almost a shock to see the corniche standing over the rocky plain of the empty
basin floor. But today they would not be deterred by the present. They all had
a lot of vodka with lunch, so much so that they gave themselves the rest of the
afternoon off.
And so when Maya went back to the apartment, she was in no shape
to deal with the sight of Kasei, Jackie, Antar, Art, Dao, Rachel, Emily,
Frantz, and several of their friends, all there in her living room. They were
passing through on a trip to Sabishii, where they planned to meet with some
Dorsa Brevia friends, and enter Burroughs and spend a few months working there.
They were perfunctory in their congratulations on the discovery of the new
aquifer, all but Art; they weren’t really interested. This and the sudden
crowding of her apartment made Maya cross, and it did not help that she was
still affected by the vodka, or that Jackie was so effervescent, with her hands
all over both proud Antar (named after the unbeaten knight of the pre-Islamic
epic, as he had once explained to her) and dour Dao—both of whom stretched
under her touch without appearing to mind when she was on the other one, or
playing with Frantz. Maya ignored it. Who knew what perversion the ectogenes
were capable of, brought up like a litter of cats as they were. And now they
were rovers, gypsies, radicals, revolutionaries, whatever—like Nirgal, except
not, as he had a profession, and a plan, while this crowd—well, she forced
herself to suspend judgment. But she had her doubts.
She talked to Kasei, who was usually much more serious than the
younger ectogenes—a gray-haired mature man, who somewhat resembled John in
feature but not in expression, his stone eyetooth exposed like a fang as he
darkly eyed his daughter’s behavior. Unfortunately this time through he was
full of plans for ridding the world of the Kasei Vallis security compound.
Obviously he felt that the relocation of Korolyov to his namesake valley had
been a kind of personal affront, and the damage done to the complex by their
raid to rescue Sax had not been enough to assuage him—indeed, it seemed only to
have given him a taste for more. A brooding man, Kasei, with a temper—perhaps
that had come from John—though really he was not much like either John or
Hiroko, which Maya found endearing. But his plan to destroy Kasei Vallis was a
mistake. Apparently he and Coyote had worked up a decryption program that had
broken all the lock codes for the Kasei Vallis compound, and now he planned to
storm the sentries, shut the occupants of the city into rovers on a locked
course for Sheffield, and then blow up all the structures in the valley.
It might work or it might not, but either way it was a declaration
of war, a very serious break in the rough strategy that had held ever since
Spencer had managed to stop Sax from knocking things out of the sky. The
strategy consisted of simply disappearing from the face of Mars—no reprisals,
no sabotage, nobody home in whatever sanctuaries they happened to stumble on.
... Even Ann seemed to be paying at least some attention to this plan. Maya
reminded Kasei of this while praising his idea highly, and encouraging him to
use it when the proper time came.
“But we won’t necessarily be able to break the codes then,” Kasei
complained. “It’s a one-time opportunity. And it’s not as if they don’t know
we’re out here, after what Sax and Peter did to the aerial lens, and Deimos.
They probably think we’re even bigger than we are!”
“But they don’t know. And we want to keep that sense of mystery,
that invisibility. Invisible is invincible, as Hiroko says. But remember how
much they increased their security presence after Sax went on his rampage? And
if they lose Kasei Vallis, they might bring up a huge replacement force. And
that only makes it harder to take over in the end.”
Stubbornly Kasei shook his head. Jackie interrupted from across
the room and said cheerily, “Don’t worry, Maya, we know what we’re doing.”
“Something you.can be proud of! The question is, do any of the
rest of us? Or are you princess of Mars now?”
“Nadia is the princess of Mars,” Jackie said, and went to the kitchen
nook. Maya scowled at her back, and noticed Art watching her curiously. He did
not flinch when she stared at him, and she went to her room to change clothes.
Michel was in there cleaning up, making room for people to sleep on the floor.
It was going to be an irritating evening.
The next morning when she got up early to go to the bathroom,
feeling hung over, Art was already up. Over the sleeping bodies on the floor he
whispered, “Want to go out and get breakfast?”
Maya nodded. When she was dressed they walked down the stairs and
out, through the park and along the corniche, which was . lurid in the
horizontal beams of dawn sunlight. They stopped in a cafe that had just washed
down its section of sidewalk. On the dawn-stained white wall of the building, a
sentence had been painted with the help of a stencil, so that it was neat and
small, and brilliantly red:
YOU CAN NEVER GO BACK
“My God,” Maya exclaimed.
“What?”
She pointed at the graffito.
“Oh, yeah,” Art said. “You see that painted all over Sheffield and
Burroughs these days. Pithy, eh?”
“Ka wow.”
They sat in the chill air by a small round table, and ate pastries
and drank Turkish coffee. The ice on the horizon blinked like diamonds,
revealing some movement under the ice. “What a fantastic sight,” Art said.
Maya looked at the bulky Terran closely, pleased at his response.
He was an optimist like Michel, but more canny about it, more natural; with
Michel it was policy, with Art, temperament. She had always considered him to
be a spy, from the first moment they had rescued him from his too-convenient
breakdown out in their pathf a spy for William Fort, for Praxis, perhaps for
the Transitional Authority, perhaps for others as well. But now he had been
among them for so long—a close friend of Nirgal, of Jackie, of Nadia as well
... and they were in fact working with Praxis now, depending on it for
supplies, and protection, and information about Earth. So she was no longer so
sure—not only whether Art was a spy, but what, in this case, a spy was.
“You’ve got to stop them from making this assault on Kasei
Vallis,” she said.
“I don’t think they’re waiting on my permission.”
“You know what I mean. You can talk them out of it.”
Art looked surprised. “If I could talk people out of things that
well, we’d be free already.”
“You know what I mean.”
“Well,” Art said. “I suppose they’re afraid they won’t be able to
break the code again. But Coyote seems pretty confident he has the protocol.
And it was Sax helped him work it out.”
“Tell them that.”
“For what it’s worth. They listen to you more than me.”
“Right.”
“We could have a contest—who does Jackie listen to least?”
Maya laughed out loud. “Everyone would win.”
Art grinned. “You should slip your recommendations into Pauline.
Get it to imitate Boone’s voice.”
Maya laughed again. “Good idea!”
They talked about the Hellas project, and she described the import
of the new discovery west of Hellespontus. Art had been in contact with Fort,
and he described the intricacies of the latest World Court decision, of which
Maya had not heard. Praxis had brought a suit against Consolidated for
arranging to tether their Terran space elevator in Colombia, which was so close
to the site in Ecuador that Praxis had planned to use that both sites would be
endangered. The court had decided in favor of Praxis, but had been ignored by
Consolidated, who had gone ahead and built a base in their new clierit country,
and were already prepared to maneuver their elevator cable down onto it. The
other metanats were happy to see the World Court defied, and they were backing
Consolidated in every way possible, which was creating trouble for Praxis.
Maya said, “But these metanationals are squabbling all the time,
yes?”
“That’s right.”
“The thing to do would be to start a big fight between some of
them.”
Art’s eyebrows shot up. “A dangerous plan!”
“For who?”
“For Earth.”
“I don’t give a damn about Earth,” Maya said, tasting the words on
her tongue.
“Join the crowd,” Art said ruefully, and she laughed again.
Happily,
Jackie’s troop soon left for
Sabishii. Maya decided to travel out to the site of the newly discovered
aquifer. She took a train counterclockwise around the basin, over Niesten
Glacier and south down the great western slope, past the hill town of
Montepulciano to a tiny station called Yaonisplatz. From there she drove a
little car along a road that followed a mountain valley through the violent
ridges of the Hellespontus.
The road was no more than a rough cut in the regolith, secured by
a fixative, marked by transponders, and obstructed in shadowed places by drifts
of dirty hard summer snow. It ran through strange country. From space the
Hellespontus had a certain visual and areomorphological coherence, as the
ejecta had been thrown back from the basin in concentric rings. But on the
surface these rough rings were almost impossible to make out, and what was left
was random pilings of rock, stone dropped from the sky chaotically. And the
fantastic pressures engendered by the impact had resulted in all manner of
bizarre metamorphoses, the most common being giant shattercones, which were
conical boulders fractured on every scale by the impact, so that some had
faults you could drive into, while others were simply conical rocks on the
ground, with microscopic flaws that covered every centimeter of their surfaces,
like old china.
Maya drove through this fractured landscape feeling somewhat
spooked by the frequent kami stones: shattercones that had landed on their
points and stood balanced; others that had had the softer material underneath
them eroded away, until they became immense dolmens; giant rows of fangs; tall
capped lingam columns, such as the one known as Big Man’s Harden; crazily
stacked strata piles, the most prominent of them called Dishes In the Sink;
great walls of columnar basalt, patterned in hexagons; other walls as smooth
and gleaming as immense chunks of jasper.
The outermost concentric ring of ejecta was the one that most
resembled a conventional mountain range, appearing on this afternoon like
something out of the Hindu Kush, bare and huge under galloping clouds. The road
crossed this range by means of a high pass between two lumpy peaks. In the
windy pass Maya stopped her car and looked back, and saw nothing but ragged
mountains, a whole world of them—peaks and ridges all piebald with clouds’
shadows and snow, and here and there the occasional crater ring to give things
a truly unearthly look.
Ahead the land dropped to the crater-pocked Noachis Planum, and
down there was a camp of mining rovers, drawn up in a circle like a wagon train.
Maya drove hard down the rough road to this camp, reaching it in the late
afternoon. There she was welcomed by a small contingent of old Bedouin friends,
plus Nadia, who was visiting to consult on the drilling rig for the newly
discovered aquifer. They all were impressed with this one. “It extends past
Proctor Crater, and probably out to Kaiser,” Nadia said. “And it looks like it
goes way far south, so far it might be coextensive with the Australis Tholus
aquifer. Did you ever establish a northern boundary for that one?”
“I think so,” Maya said, and started tapping at her wristpad to
find out. They talked about water through an early dinner, only occasionally
pausing to exchange other news. After dinner they sat in Zeyk and Nazik’s
rover, and relaxed eating sherbet that Zeyk passed around, while staring into
the coals of a little brazier fire on which Zeyk had earlier cooked shish
kebab. The talk turned inevitably to the current situation, and Maya said again
what she had said to Art—that they should foment trouble between the
meta-nationals back on Earth, if they could.
“That means world war,” Nadia said sharply. “And if the pattern
holds, it would be the worst one yet.” She shook her head. “There has to be a
better way.”
“It will not take our meddling for it to start,” Zeyk said.
“They’re on the spiral down into it now.”
“Do you think so?” Nadia said. “Well, if it happens ... then we’ll
have our chance for a coup here, I guess.”
Zeyk shook his head. “This is their escape hatch. It will take a
lot of coercion to make the powerful give up a place like this.”
“There are different kinds of coercion,” Nadia said. “On a planet
where the surface is still deadly, we should be able to find some kinds that
don’t involve shooting people. There should be a whole new technology for
waging war. I’ve talked with Sax about this, and he agrees.”
Maya snorted, and Zeyk grinned. “His new ways resemble the old
ones, as far as I can tell! Bringing down that aerial lens—we loved that! As
for firing Deimos out of orbit, well. But I can see his point, to an extent.
When the cruise missiles come out ...”
“We have to make sure it doesn’t come to that.” Nadia had the
mulish expression she got when her ideas were set in concrete, and Maya
regarded her with surprise. Nadia, revolutionary strategist— Maya wouldn’t have
believed it possible. Well, she no doubt thought of it as protecting her
construction projects. Or a construction project itself, in a different medium.
“You should come talk to the communes in Odessa,” Maya suggested
to her. “They’re followers of Nirgal, basically.”
Nadia agreed, and leaned forward with a miniature poker to tap one
of the coals back into the center of the brazier. They watched the fire burn; a
rare sight on Mars, but Zeyk liked fires enough to take the trouble. Films of
gray ash fluttered over the Martian orange of hot coals. Zeyk and Nazik talked
in low voices, describing the Arab situation on the planet, which was complex
as usual. The radicals among them were almost all out in caravans, prospecting
for metals and water and areothermal sites, looking innocuous and never doing a
thing to reveal that they were not part of the metanat order. But they were out
there, waiting, ready to act.
Nadia got up to go to bed, and when she had gone, Maya said
hesitantly, “Tell me about Chalmers.”
Zeyk stared at her, calm and impassive. “What do you want to
know?”
“I want to know how he was involved with Boone’s murder.”
Zeyk squinted uncomfortably. “That was a very complicated night in
Nicosia,” he complained. “The talk about it among Arabs is endless. It gets
tiresome.”
“So what do they say?”
Zeyk glanced at Nazik, who said. “The problem is they all say
different things. No one knows what really happened,”
“But you were there. You saw some of it. Tell me first what you
saw.”
At this Zeyk eyed her closely, then nodded. “Very well.” He took a
breath, composed himself. Solemnly, as if giving witness, he said, “We were
gathered at the Hajr el-kra Meshab, after the speeches you gave. People were
angry at Boone because of a rumor that he had stopped a plan to build a mosque
on Phobos, and his speech hadn’t helped. We never liked that new Martian
society he talked about. So we were there grumbling when Frank came by. I must
say, it was an encouraging sight to see him at that moment. It seemed to us
that he was the only one with a chance to counter Boone. So we looked to him,
and he encouraged us to—he slighted Boone in subtle ways, made jokes that made
us angrier at Boone while making Frank seem the only bastion against him. I was
actually annoyed with Frank for stirring up the young ones even more. Selim
el-Hayil and several of his friends from the Ahad wing were there, and they
were in a state—not just at Boone, but also at the Fetah wing. You see the Ahad
and Fetah were split over a variety of issues—pan-Arab versus nationalist,
relations to West, attitude to the Sufis ... it was a fundamental division in
that younger generation of the Brotherhood.”
“Sunni-Shiite?” Maya asked.
“No. More conservative and liberal, with the liberals thought to
be secular, and the conservatives religious, either Sunni or Shiite. And
el-Hayil was a leader of the conservative Ahad. And he had been in the caravan
Frank had traveled with that year. They had talked often, and Frank had asked
him a lot of questions, really bored into him, in that way he had, until he
felt that he understood you, or understood your party.”
Maya nodded, recognizing the description.
“So Frank knew him, and that night el-Hayil almost spoke at one
point, and decided not to when Frank gave him a look. I saw this. Then Frank
left, and el-Hayil left almost immediately after.”
Zeyk paused to sip coffee and think it over.
“That was the last I saw of either of them for the next couple of
hours. It began to get ugly well before Boone was killed. Someone was cutting
slogans on the windows of the medina, and the Ahad thought it was the Fetah,
and some Ahad attacked a group of Fetah. After that they were fighting
throughout the city, and fighting some American construction crews as well. Something
happened. There were other fights going on as well. It was as if everyone had
suddenly gone crazy.”
Maya nodded. “I remember that much.”
“So, well, we heard that Boone had disappeared, and we were down
at the Syrian Gate checking the lock codes to see if he had gone out that way,
and we found someone had gone out and hadn’t come back in, so we were on our
way out when we heard the news about him.’We couldn’t believe it. We went down
to the medina and everyone was gathered there, and they all told us it was
true. I got into the hospital after about a half hour of moving through the
crowd. I saw him. You were there.”
“I don’t remember.”
“Well, you were, but Frank had already left. So I saw him, and
went back out and told the others it was true. Even the Ahad were shocked, I am
sure of that—Nasir, Ageyl, Abdullah. ...”
“Yes,” Nazik said.
“But el-Hayil and Rashid Abou, and Buland Besseisso, were not
there with us. And we were back at the residence facing Hajr el-kra Meshab when
there was a very hard knocking at the door, and when we opened it el-Hayil fell
into the room. He was already very sick, sweating and trying to vomit, and his
skin all flushed and blotchy. His throat had swollen and he could barely talk.
We helped him into the bathroom and saw he was choking on vomit. We called
Yussuf in, and were trying to get Selim out to the clinic in our caravan when
he stopped us. They have killed me,’ he said. We asked him what he meant, and
he said, ‘Chalmers.’ “
“He said that?” Maya demanded.
“I said, ‘Who did this?’ and he said, ‘Chalmers.’ “
As if from a great distance Maya heard Nazik say, “But there was
more.”
Zeyk nodded. “I said, ‘What do you mean?’ and he said, ‘Chalmers
has killed me. Chalmers and Boone.’ He was choking it out word by word. He
said, ‘We planned to kill Boone.’ Nazik and I groaned to hear this, and Selim
seized me by the arm.” Zeyk reached out with both hands and clutched an
invisible arm. “ He was going to kick us off Mars.’ He said this in such a
way—I will never forget it. He truly believed it. That Boone was somehow going
to kick us off Mars!” He shook his head, still incredulous.
“What happened then?”
“He—” Zeyk opened his hands. “He had a seizure. He held his throat
first, then all his muscles—” He clenched his fists again. “He seized up and
stopped breathing. We tried to get him breathing, but he never did. I didn’t
know—tracheotomy? Artificial respiration? Antihistamines?” He shrugged. “He
died in my arms.”
There was a long silence as Maya watched Zeyk remembering. It had
been half a century since that night in Nicosia, and Zeyk had been old at the
time.
“I’m surprised how well you remember,” she said. “My own memory,
even of nights like that ...”
“I remember everything,” Zeyk said gloomily.
“He has the opposite problem to everyone else,” Nazik said,
watching her husband. “He remembers too much. He does not sleep well.”
“Hmph.” Maya considered it. “What about the other two?”
Zeyk’s mouth pursed. “I can’t say for sure. Nazik and I spent the
rest of that night dealing with Selim. There was an argument about what to do
with his body. Whether to take it out to the caravan and then hide what had
happened, or to get the authorities in immediately.”
Or to go to the authorities with a lone dead assassin, Maya
thought, watching Zeyk’s guarded expression. Perhaps that had been argued as
well. He was not telling the story in the same way. “I don’t know what really
happened to them. I never found out. There were a lot of Ahad and Fetah in town
that night, and Yussuf heard what Selim had said. So it could have been their
enemies, their friends, themselves. They died later that night, in a room in
the medina. Coagulants.”
Zeyk shrugged.
Another silence. Zeyk sighed, refilled his cup. Nazik and Maya
refused.
“But you see,” Zeyk said, “that is just the start. That’s what we
saw, what we could tell you for sure. After that, whew!” He made a face.
“Arguments, speculation—conspiracy theories of all kind. The usual thing,
right? No one is ever simply assassinated anymore. Ever since your Kennedys, it
is always a matter of how many stories you can invent to explain the same body
of facts. That is the great pleasure of conspiracy theory—not explanation, but
narrative. It is like Scheherazade.”
“You don’t believe in any of them?” Maya asked, feeling suddenly
hopeless.
“No. I have no reason to. The Ahad and Fetah were in conflict, I
know that. Frank and Selim were connected somehow. How that affected
Nicosia—whether it did—” He blew out a breath. “I don’t know, and I don’t see
how one could know. The past... Allah forgive me, the past seems a sort of
demon, here to torture my nights.”
“I’m sorry.” Maya stood. The brilliant little chamber suddenly
seemed cramped and florid. Catching a glimpse of the evening stars in a window,
she said, “I’m going to go for a walk.”
Zeyk and Nazik nodded, and Nazik helped her get her helmet on.
“Don’t be long,” she said.
The sky was matted with the usual spectacular array of stars, with
a band of mauve on the western horizon. The Hellespontus reared to the east,
late alpenglow turning its peaks a dark pink that sawed at the indigo above it,
both colors so pure that the transition line seemed to vibrate.
Maya walked slowly toward an outcropping perhaps a kilometer away.
There was something growing in the cracks underfoot, lichen or piggyback moss,
its greens all black. She stepped on rocks where she could. Plants had it hard
enough on Mars without being stepped on as well. All living things. The chill
of the twilight seeped into her, until she could feel the X of the heating
filaments in her pants against her knees as she walked. She stumbled and
blinked to clear her vision. The sky was full of blurry stars. Somewhere north,
in the Aureum Chaos, the body of Frank Chalmers lay in a wash of ice and
sediments, his walker for a coffin. Killed while saving the rest of them from
being swept away. Though he would have scorned such a description with all his
heart. An accident of timing, he would insist, nothing more. The result of
having more energy than anyone else, energy fueled by his anger—at her, at
John, at UNOMA and all the powers of Earth. At his wife. At his father. At his
mother, and himself. At everything. The angry man; the angriest man who had
ever lived. And her lover. And the murderer of her other lover, the great love
of her life, John Boone, who might have saved them all. Who would have been her
partner forever.
And she had set them on each other.
Now the sky was starry black, with no more than a dark purple band
left on the western skyline. Her tears were gone, along with her feelings;
nothing left but the black world and a slash of purple bitterness, like a wound
bleeding into the night.
Some things you
must forget. Shikata ga
nai.
Back in Odessa Maya did the only thing she could with what she had
learned, and forgot it, throwing herself into the work of the Hellas project,
spending long hours at the office poring over reports, and assigning crews to
the various drilling and construction sites. With the discovery of the Western
Aquifer the dowsing expeditions lost their urgency, and more emphasis was
placed on tapping and pumping the aquifers already found, and constructing the
infrastructure of the rim settlements. So drillers followed dowsers, and
pipeline crews went out after the drillers, and tent teams were out all around the
piste, and up the Reull canyon above Har-makhis, helping the Sufis deal with a
badly fretted canyon wall. New emigrants were arriving at a spaceport built
between Dao and Harmakhis, and moving into upper Dao, and helping to transform
Harmakhis-Reull, and also settling the other new tent towns around the rim. It
was a massive exercise in logistics, and in almost every respect it conformed
to Maya’s old dream of development for Hellas. But now that it was actually
happening, she felt extremely jangly and odd; she was no longer sure what she
wanted for Hellas, or for Mars, or herself. Often she felt at the mercy of her
mood swings, and in the months after the visit to Zeyk and Nazik (though she
did not make this correlation) they were especially violent, an irregular
oscillation from elation to despair, with the equinox time in the middle
wrecked by the knowledge that she was either on her way up or down.
She was often hard on Michel in these months, often annoyed by his
composure, by the way he seemed so at peace with himself, humming along through
his life as if his years with Hiroko had answered all his questions. “It’s your
fault,” she told him, pushing to get a reaction. “When I needed you, you were
gone. You weren’t doing your job.”
Michel would ignore that, would soothe and soothe until it made
her angry. He was not her therapist now but her lover, and if you couldn’t make
your lover angry, then what kind of lover was he? She saw the awful bind that
one was put in when one’s lover was also one’s therapist—how that objective eye
and soothing voice could become the distancing device of a professional manner.
A man doing his job—it was intolerable to be judged by such an eye, as if he
were somehow above it all, and did not have any problems himself, any emotions
that he could not control. That had to be disproved. And so (forgetting to
forget): “I killed them both! I snared them and played them against each other,
to increase my own power. I did it on purpose and you were no help at all! It
was your fault too!”
He muttered something, beginning to get worried, as he could see
what was coming, like one of the frequent storms that blew over the
Hellespontus into the basin, and she laughed and slapped him hard in the face,
punching him as he retreated, shouting “Come on, you coward, stand up for
yourself!” until he ran out onto the balcony and held the door shut with the
heel of his foot, staring over the trees of the park and cursing out loud in
French while she battered the door. Once she even broke one of the panes and
showered glass over his back, and he yanked the door open, still cursing in
French as he shoved by her and out the door, out of the building.
But usually he just waited until she collapsed and started to cry,
and then he came back in and spoke in English, which marked the return of his
composure. And with only a slightly disgusted air he would return to the
intolerable therapy again. “Look,” he would say, “we were all under great
pressure then, whether we could tell it or not. It was an extremely artificial
situation, and dangerous as well—if we had failed in any number of different
ways, we all could have died. We had to succeed. Some of us dealt with the
pressure better than others. I did not do so well, and neither did you. But
here we are now. And the pressures are still there, some different, some the
same. But we are doing better at dealing with them, if you ask me. Most of the
time.”
And then he would leave and go out to a cafe on the corniche, and
nurse a cassis for an hour or two, drawing sketches of faces in his lectern,
mordant caricatures that he erased at the moment of completion. She knew this
because some nights she would go out and find him, and sit by him in silence
with her glass of vodka, apologizing with the set of her shoulders. How to tell
him that it helped her to fight now and then, that it started her on the upward
curve again—tell him without causing that sardonic little shrug of his,
melancholy and oppressed? Besides, he knew. He knew and he forgave. “You loved
them both,” he would say, “but in different ways. And there were things you
didn’t like about them as well. Besides, whatever you did, you can’t take
responsibility for their actions. They chose to do what they did, and you were
only one factor.”
It helped her to hear that. And it helped her to fight. It would
be all right; she would feel better, for a few weeks or days at least. The past
was so shot full of holes anyway, a ragged collection of images—eventually she
would forget for real, surely. Although the memories that held the firmest
seemed to stick because of a glue made of pain, and remorse. So it might take a
while to forget them, even though they were so corrosive, so painful, so
useless. Useless! Useless. Better to focus on the present.
Thinking that one afternoon, in the apartment by herself, she
‘ stared for a long time at the
photo of the young Frank by the sink—thinking that she would take it down, and
throw it away. A mur-I derer. Focus on the present. But she too was a murderer.
And also the one who had driven him to murder. If one ever drove anyone to
anything. In any case he was her companion in that, somehow. ! So after a long
time thinking about it, she decided to leave the photo up.
Over the months, however, and the long rhythms of the time-slipped
days and the six-month seasons, the photo became little more than part of the
decor, like the rack of tongs and wooden paddles, or the hanging row of
copper-bottomed pots and pans, or the little sailing-ship salt and pepper
shakers. Part of the stage set for this act of the play, as she sometimes
thought of it, which however permanent it seemed would be struck at some point—
would disappear utterly, as all the previous sets had disappeared, while she
passed through to the next reincarnation. Or not.
So the weeks passed and then the months, twenty-four per year. The
first of the month would fall on a Monday for so many months in a row that it
would seem fixed forever; then a third of a Martian year would have passed, and
a new season finally have made its appearance, and a twenty-seven-day month
would pass and suddenly the first would be on a Sunday, and after a while that
too would begin to seem the eternal norm, for month after month. And this went
on and on; the long Martian years made their slow wheel. Out around Hellas,
they seemed to have discovered most of the significant aquifers, and the effort
shifted entirely to mining and piping. The Swiss had recently developed what
they called a walking pipeline, made specifically for the work in Hellas, and up
on Vastitas Borealis. These contraptions rolled over the landscape,
distributing the groundwater evenly over the land, so that they could cover the
basin floor without creating mountains of ice directly outside the ends of
fixed pipelines, as they had tended to before.
Maya went out with Diana to look at one of these pipes in action.
Seen from a dirigible floating overhead, they looked remarkably like a garden
hose lying on the ground, snaking back and forth under the high pressure of the
spurting water.
Down on the ground it was more impressive, even bizarre; the
pipeline was huge, and it rolled majestically over layers of smooth ice already
deposited, held a couple of meters over the ice on squat pylons that ended in
big pontoon skis. The pipeline moved at several kilometers an hour, pushed by
the pressure of the water spewing out of its nozzle, which pointed at various
angles set by computer. When the pipeline had skiied out to the end of its arc,
motors would turn the nozzle, and the pipeline would slow down, stop, and
reverse direction.
The water shot out of the nozzle in a thick white stream, arcing
out and splashing onto the surface in a spray of red dust and white frost
steam. Then the water flowed over the ground, in great muddy lobate spills,
slowing down, pooling, settling flat, then whitening, and shifting slowly to
ice. This was not pure ice, however; nutrients and several strains of ice
bacteria had been added to the water from big bioreservoirs located back at the
beachline, and so the new ice had a milky pink cast, and melted quicker than
pure ice. Extensive” melt ponds, actually shallow lakes many square kilometers
in area, were a daily event in the summer, and on sunny spring and fall days.
The hydrologists ,also reported big melt pods under the surface. And as
worldwide temperatur.es continued to rise, and the ice deposits in the basin
got thicker, the bottom layers were apparently melting under the pressure. So
great plates of ice over these melt zones would slip down even the slightest of
slopes, piling up in great broken heaps over all the lowest points,on the basin
floor, in areas that were fantastic wastelands of pressure ridges, seracs, melt
pools that froze every night, and blocks of ice like fallen skyscrapers. These
great unstable ice piles shifted and broke as they melted in the day’s heat,
with explosive booms like thunder, heard in Odessa and every other rim town.
Then the piles froze again every night, booming and cracking, until many places
on the basin floor were an inconceivably shattered chaos.
No travel was possible across such surfaces, and the only way to
observe the process over the majority of the basin was from the air. One week
in the fall of M-48, Maya decided to join Diana and Rachel and some others
taking a trip out to the little settlement on the rise in the center of the
basin. This was already called Minus One Island, although it was not yet quite
an island, as the Zea Dorsa were not yet covered. But the last of the Zea Dorsa
was going to be inundated in a matter of days, and Diana, along with several
other hydrologists at the office, thought it would be a good idea to go out and
see the historic occasion.
Just before they were scheduled to leave, Sax showed up at their
apartment, by himself. He was on his way from Sabishii down to Vishniac, and
had dropped in to see Michel. Maya was glad to think that she would be off
soon, and so not be around during his stay, which would surely be brief. She
still found it unpleasant to be around him, and it was clear that the feeling
was mutual; he continued to avoid her eye, and did his talking with Michel and
Spencer. Never one word for her! Of course he and Michel had spent hundreds of
hours talking during Sax’s rehabilitation, but still, it made her furious.
Thus when he heard about her impending trip to Minus One, and
asked if he could come along, she was very unpleasantly surprised. But Michel
gave her a beseeching glance, quick as a. lightning bolt, and Spencer quickly
asked if he could come along too, no doubt to keep her from pushing Sax out of
the dirigible. And so she agreed, very grumpily.
Thus when they took off a couple of mornings later they had
“Stephen Lindholm” and “George Jackson” along with them, two old men whom Maya
did not bother to explain to the others, seeing that Diana and Rachel and
Frantz all knew who they were. The youngsters were all a bit more subdued as
they climbed the steps into the dirigible’s long gondola, which made Maya purse
her lips irritably. It was not going to be the same trip it would have been
without Sax.
The flight from Odessa out to Minus One Island took about
twenty-four hours. The dirigible was smaller than the old arrowhead-shaped
behemoths of the early years; this one was a cigar-shaped craft called the
Three Diamonds, and the gondola that formed the bag’s keel was long and
capacious. Though its ultralight props were powerful enough to drive it at some
speed, and directly into fairly strong winds, it still felt to Maya like a
barely controlled drift, the hum of the motors scarcely audible under the
whoosh of the west wind. She went to one window and looked down, her back to
Sax.
The view out the windows was a marvel from the very moment of the
first ascent, for Odessa was a handsome banked leaf-and-tile vision in its tent
on the north slope. And after a couple of hours of plowing through the air to
the southeast, the basin’s ice plain covered the entire visible surface of the
world, as if they flew over an Arctic Ocean, or an ice world.
They sailed at an altitude of some thousand meters, at about fifty
kilometers an hour. Through the afternoon of the first day the shattered
icescape beneath them was everywhere a dirty white, liberally dotted with
sky-purple melt pools, occasionally blazing silver as they mirrored the sun.
For a while they could see a pattern of spiral polynyas to the west, the long
black streaks of open water marking the location of the drowned mohole at Low
Point.
At sunset the ice became a jumble of opaque pinks and oranges and
ivories, streaked by long black shadows. Then they flew through the night,
under the stars, over a luminous crackled whiteness. Maya slept uneasily on one
of the long benches under the windows, and woke before dawn, which was another
wonder of coloration, the purples of the sky appearing much darker than the
pink ice below, an inversion that made everything look surreal.
Around midmorning of that day they caught sight of land again;
over the horizon floated an oval of sienna hills rising out of the ice, about a
hundred kilometers long and fifty wide. This rise was Hel-las’s equivalent of
the central knob found on the floor of medium-sized craters, and it was high
enough to remain well above the planned water level, giving the future sea a
fairly substantial central island.
At this stage the Minus One settlement, on the northwest point of
the high ground, was no more than an array of runways, rocket pads, dirigible
masts, and an untidy collection of small buildings— a few under a small station
tent, the rest standing isolate and bare, like concrete blocks dumped from the
sky. No one lived there but a small technical and scientific staff, although
visiting areologists dropped in from time to time.
The Three Diamonds swung around and latched on to one of the
poles, and was hauled down to the ground. The passengers left the gondola by a
jetway, and were given a short tour of the airport and residential habitat by
the stationmaster.
After a forgettable dinner in the dining hall of the habitat, they
suited up and took a walk outside, wandering through the scattered utilitarian
buildings, downhill to what one of the locals said would eventually be the
shoreline. They found when they got there that no ice was yet visible from this
elevation; it was a low sandy rubble-strewn plain, all the way out to the
nearby horizon, some seven kilometers away.
Maya strolled aimlessly behind Diana and Frantz, who seemed to be
commencing a romance. Beside them walked another native couple who were based
at the station, both even younger than Diana, arm in arm, very affectionate.
They were both well over two meters tall, but not lithe and willowy like most
of the young natives—this couple had worked out with weights, bulking up until
they had the proportions of Terran weight lifters, despite their great height.
They were huge people, and yet still very light on their feet, doing a kind of
boulder ballet over the scattered rocks of this empty shore. Maya watched them,
marveling again at the new species. Behind her Sax and Spencer were coming
along, and she even said something about it over the old First Hundred band.
But Spencer only said something about phenotype and genotype, and Sax ignored
the remark, and took off down the slope of the plain.
Spencer went with him, and Maya followed them, moving slowly over
all the other new species: there were grass tufts dotting the sand between the
rocks of the rubble, also low flowering plants, weeds, cacti, shrubs, even some
very small gnarled trees, tucked into the sides of rocks. Sax wandered around
stepping gingerly, crouching down to inspect plants, standing back up with an
unfocused look, as if the blood had left his head while he was crouching. Or
perhaps this was the look of Sax surprised, something Maya could not recall
seeing before. She stopped to stare around her; it was in fact surprising to
discover such profligate life, out here where no one had cultivated anything.
Or perhaps the scientists stationed at the airport had done it. And the basin
was low, and warm, and humid... . The young Martians upslope danced over it
all, gracefully avoiding the plants without taking any notice of them.
Sax stopped in front of Spencer and tilted his helmet back so that
he was staring up into Spencer’s faceplate. “These plants will all be drowned,”
he said querulously, almost as if asking a question.
“That’s right,” Spencer said.
Sax briefly glanced toward Maya. His gloved fingers were clenching
in agitation. What, was he accusing her of murdering plants now too?
Spencer said, “But the organic matter will help sustain later
aquatic life, isn’t that right?”
Sax merely looked around. As he looked past her, Maya could see he
was squinting, as if in distress. Then he took off again across the intricate
tapestry of plants and rocks.
Spencer met Maya’s gaze and lifted his gloved hands, as if to
apologize for the way Sax was ignoring her. Maya turned and walked back
upslope.
Eventually the whole group walked up a spiraling ridge, above the
contour to a knoll just north of the station, where they were high enough to
get a view of the ice on the western horizon. The airport lay below them,
reminding Maya of Underbill or the Antarctic stations—unplanned, unstructured,
with no sense at all of the island town that was sure to come. The youngsters
as they stepped gracefully over the rocks speculated about what that town would
look like—a seaside resort, they were sure, every hectare built up or gardened,
with boat harbors in every little indentation of the shoreline, and palm trees,
beaches, pavilions... . Maya closed her eyes and tried to imagine what the
young ones were describing—opened them again, to see rock and sand and scrubby
little plants. Nothing had come to her mind. Whatever the-future brought would
be a surprise to her—she could form no image of it, it was a kind of jamais vu,
pressing at the present. A sudden premonition of death washed over her, and she
struggled to shrug it off. No one could imagine the future. A blank there in
her mind meant nothing; it was normal. It was only the presence of Sax that was
disturbing her, reminding her of things she could not afford to think of. No,
it was a blessing that the future was blank. The freedom from deja vu. An
extraordinary blessing.
Sax trailed behind, looking off at the basin below them.
The next day they climbed back in the Three Diamonds and took to
the air again and floated southeast, until the captain dropped an anchor line
just to the west of the Zea Dorsa. It had been quite a while since Maya had
driven out onto them with Diana and her friends, and now the ridges were no
more than skinny rock peninsulas, extending out into the shattered ice toward
Minus One, and diving under the ice one after the next—all except for the
largest one, which was still an unbroken ridge, dividing two rough ice masses,
the western ice mass clearly about two hundred meters lower than the eastern
one. This, Diana said, was the final line of land connecting Minus One and the
basin rim. When this isthmus was overwhelmed, the central rise would be an
actual island.
The ice mass on the eastern side of the remaining dorsum was at one
point very near to the ridgeline. The dirigible captain let out more anchor
line and they floated east on the prevailing wind until they were directly over
the ridge, where they could see clearly that only meters of rock remained to be
overcome. And off to the east was a walking pipeline, a blue hose sliding
slowly back and forth on its ski pylons as its nozzle shot water onto the
surface. Under the drone of the props, they could hear occasional creaks and
moans from below, a muffled boom, a high crack like a gunshot. There was liquid
water below the ice, Diana explained, and the weight of new water on top was
causing some sections of ice to scrape over barely submerged dorsa. The captain
pointed to the south, and Maya saw a line of icebergs fly into the air as if
propelled by explosives, arcing in various directions and falling back onto the
ice, breaking into thousands of pieces. “Maybe we’d better back off a little,”
the captain said. “It would be better for my reputation if we did not get shot
out of the sky by an iceberg.”
The walking pipeline’s nozzle was pointing their way. And then,
with a faint seismic roar, the last complete ridge was overwhelmed. A rush of
dark water ran up the rock, and then poured down the western side of the ridge
in a waterfall some hundred meters wide. It fell the two hundred meters of its
descent in a slow lazy sheet. In the context of the great ice world stretching
to the horizon in every direction, it was no more than a trickle—but it kept
pouring steadily, the water on the eastern mass now channelized by ice on its
sides, the falls booming like thunder, the water on the western side fanning
out in a hundred streams through the broken ice— and the hair on Maya’s neck
lifted in fear. Probably a memory of the Marineris flood, she decided, but
couldn’t say for sure.
Slowly the volume of the waterfall decreased, and in less than an
hour it had all slowed and then frozen, at least on the surface; though a sunny
fall day, it was eighteen degrees below freezing down there, and a line of
ragged cumulonimbus clouds was approaching from the west, indicating a cold
front. So the waterfall eventually stilled. But left behind was a fresh
icefall, coating the rock ridge with a thousand smooth white tubes. So now the
ridge had become two promontories which did not quite meet, like all the other
ridges of the Zea Dorsa, all diving into the ice like sets of matching ribs:
matching peninsulas. The Hellas Sea was continuous now, and Minus One truly an
island.
After that, the circumHellas train trips and the various
overflights felt different to Maya, as she perceived the interlaced network of
glaciers and ice chaoses in the basin to be the new sea itself, rising and
filling and sloshing around. And in fact the liquid sea under the surface ice near
Low Point was growing much faster in the springs and summers than it was
shrinking in the autumns and winters. And strong winds kicked up waves in the
polynyas, which in the summers broke the ice between them, creating regions of
brash ice, a floating pack of ice chunks which growled so loudly as they rode
the steep little swells that conversation in dirigibles overhead was difficult.
And in the year M-49, the flow rates from all the tapped aquifers
reached their maximums, combining to pump 2,500 cubic meters a day into the
sea, an amount that would fill the basin to the — 1-kilometer contour in about
six M-years. To Maya this did not seem long at all, especially as they could
see the progress, right there on Odessa’s horizon. In winters the black storms that
poured over the mountains would blanket the whole basin floor with startling
white snow; in the springs the snow would melt, but the new edge of the ice sea
would be closer than it had been the previous autumn.
It was much the same in the northern hemisphere, as news reports
and her infrequent trips to Burroughs made clear. The great northern dunes of
Vastitas Borealis were being rapidly inundated, as the truly enormous aquifers
under Vastitas and the north polar region were being pumped onto the surface by
drilling platforms that rose on the ice as the ice accumulated under them. In
the northern summers, great rivers were pouring off the melting northern polar
cap, cutting channels through the laminate sands and running down to join the
ice. And a few months after Minus One had been islanded, news reports showed
video of an uncovered stretch of ground in Vastitas, disappearing under a dark
flood from west and east and north. This apparently created the last link
between the lobes of ice; so now there was a world-wrapping sea in the north.
Of course it was patchy still, and covered only about half of the land between
the sixtieth and seventieth latitudes, but as satellite photos showed, there
were already great bays of ice extending south into the deep depressions of
Chryse and Isidis.
Submerging the rest of Vastitas would take about twenty more
M-years, as the amount of water necessary to fill Vastitas Borealis was much
greater than that needed to fill Hellas. But the pumping operation up there was
bigger as well, so things were proceeding apace, and all the acts of Red
sabotage combined could do no more than put a dent in this progress. In fact
progress was accelerating despite increasing acts of sabotage and ecotage,
because some of the new mining methods being put into use were quite radical,
and very effective. The news programs showed video of the latest method, which
set off big underground thermonuclear explosions, very deep under Vastitas.
This melted the permafrost over large areas, providing the pumps with more
water. On the surface these explosions were manifested as sudden icequakes,
which reduced the surface ice overhead to a bubbling slurry, the liquid water
soon freezing on the surface, but tending to stay liquid underneath. Similar
explosions under the northern polar cap were causing floods nearly as vast as
the great outbursts of “61. And all that water was pouring downhill into
Vastitas.
Down at the office in Odessa, they followed all of this with
professional interest. A recent assessment of the amount of underground water
in the north had encouraged the Vastitas engineers to shoot for a final sea
level very near the datum itself, the 0-kilometer contour that had been set
back in the days of sky areology. Diana and other hydrologists in Deep Waters
thought that subsidence of the land in Vastitas, as a result of the mining of
aquifers and permafrost, would cause them to end up with a sea level somewhat
lower than the datum. But up there they seemed confident they had factored that
in, and would reach the mark.
Fooling around with various sea levels on an office AI map made it
clear what shape the coming ocean was likely to have. In many places the Great
Escarpment would form its southern shoreline. Sometimes that would mean a
gentle slope; in the fretted terrain, archipelagos; in certain regions,
dramatic seaside cliffs. Broached craters would provide good harbors. The
Elysium massif would become an island continent, and the remains of the
northern polar cap would as well—the land under the cap was the only part of
the north well above the 0-kilometer contour.
No matter which exact sea level they chose to display on the maps,
a big southern arm of the ocean was going to cover Isidis Planitia, which was
lower than most of Vastitas. And aquifers in the highlands around Isidis were
being pumped down into it as well. So a big bay was going to fill the old
plain, and because of that, construction crews were building a long dike in an
arc around Burroughs. The city was located fairly close to the Great Escarpment,
but its elevation was just below the datum. It was therefore going to become a
port city every bit as much as Odessa, a port city on a world-wrapping ocean.
The dike they were building around Burroughs was two hundred
meters high and three hundred meters wide. Maya found the concept of a dike to
protect the city disturbing, though it was clear from the aerial shots taken of
it that it was another pharaonic monument, tall and massive. It ran in a
horseshoe shape, with both its ends up on the slope of the Great Escarpment,
and it was so big that there were plans to build on it, to make it into a
fashionable Lido district, containing small boat harbors on its water side. But
Maya remembered once standing on a dike in Holland, with the land on one side
of her lower than the North Sea on the other side of her; it had been a very
disorienting sensation, more unbalancing than weightlessness. And, on a more
rational level, as news programs from Earth now showed, all dikes there were
currently stressed by a very slight rise in sea level, caused by global warming
initiated two centuries before. As little as a meter’s rise endangered many of
the low-lying areas of Earth, and Mars’s northern ocean was supposed to rise in
the coming decade by a full kilometer. Who could say whether they would be able
to fine-tune its ultimate level so accurately as to make a dike sufficient?
Maya’s work in Odessa made her worry about such control, though of course they
were trying for it themselves in Hellas, and thought that they probably had it.
They had better, as Odessa’s location gave them little margin for error. But
the hydrologists also talked about using the “canal” that had been burned by
the aerial lens before its destruction, as a runoff into the northern ocean, if
such a runoff became necessary. Fine for them, but the northern ocean would
have no such recourse.
“Oh,” Diana said, “they could always pump any excess up into
Argyre Basin.”
On Earth, riots, arson, and sabotage were becoming daily weapons
of the people who had not gotten the treatment—the mortals, i as they were called. Springing up around
all the great cities were [ walled
towns, fortress suburbs where those who had gotten the treatment could live
their entire lives inside, using telelinks, tele-operation, portable
generators, even greenhouse food, even air filtration systems: like tent towns
on Mars, in fact.
One evening, tired of Michel and Spencer, Maya went out to eat by
herself. Often she was feeling an urge to get off alone. She walked down to a
corner cafe on the sidewalk facing the corhiche, and sat at one of its outdoor
tables, under trees strung with lights, and ordered antipasto and spaghetti,
and ate abstractedly while she drank a.small carafe of chianti, and listened to
a small band of musicians play. The leader played a kind of accordion with
nothing but buttons on it, called a bandoneon, and his companions played
violin, guitar, piano, and an upright bass. A bunch of wizened old men, guys
her age, rollicking their way with a tight nimble attack through gaily
melancholy tunes—gypsy songs, tangos, odd scraps they seemed to be improvising
together... . When her meal ended she sat for a long time, listening to them,
nursing a last glass of wine and then a coffee, watching the other diners, the
leaves overhead, the distant icescape beyond the corniche, the clouds tumbling
in over the Hellespontus. Trying to think as little as possible. For a while it
worked, and she made a blissful escape into some older Odessa, some Europe of
the mind, as sweet and sad as the duets of violin and accordion. But then the
people at the next table began to debate what percentage of Earth’s population
had received the treatment—one argued ten percent, another forty—a sign of the
information war, or simply the level of chaos that obtained there. Then as she
turned away from them, she noticed a headline on the newspaper screen placed
over the bar, and read the sentences scrolling right to left after it: the
World Court had suspended operations in order to move from the Hague to Bern,
and Consolidated had seized the opportunity of the break to attempt a hostile
takeover of Praxis holdings in Kashmir, which in effect meant starting a large
coup or small war against the government of Kashmir, from Consolidated’s base
in Pakistan. Which would of course draw India into it. And India had been
dealing with Praxis lately as well. India versus Pakistan, Praxis versus
Consolidated—most of the world’s population, untreated and desperate... .
That night when Maya went home, Michel said that this assault
marked a new level of respect for the World Court, in that Consolidated had
timed its move to the court’s recess; but given the devastation in Kashmir, and
the reversal for Praxis, Maya was in no mood to listen to him. Michel was so stubbornly
optimistic that it made him stupid sometimes, or at least painful to be around.
One had to admit it; they lived in a darkening situation. The cycle of madness
on Earth was coming around again, caught in its inexorable sine wave, a sine
wave more awful even than Maya’s, and soon they would be back in the midst of
one of those paroxysms, out of control, struggling to avoid obliteration. She
could feel it. They were falling back in.
She began eating in the corner cafe regularly, to hear the band,
and be alone. She sat with her back to the bar, but it was impossible not to
think about things. Earth: their curse, their original sin. She tried to
understand, she tried to see it as Frank would have seen it, tried to hear his
voice analyzing it. The Group of Eleven (the old G-7 plus Korea, Azania,
Mexico, and Russia) were still in titular command of much of Terra’s power, in
the form of their militaries and their capital. The only real competitors to
these old dinosaurs were the big metanationals, which had coalesced like
Athenas out of the transnats. The big metanats—and there was only room in the
two-world economy for about a dozen of them, by definition— were of course
interested in taking over countries in the Group of Eleven, as they had so many
smaller countries; the metanats that succeeded in this effort would probably
win the dominance game among themselves. And so some of them were trying to
divide and conquer the G-ll, doing their best to pit the Eleven against each
other, or to bribe some to break ranks. All the while competing among
themselves, so that while some had allied themselves with G-ll countries, in an
attempt to subsume them, others had concentrated on poor countries, or the baby
tigers, to build up their strength. So there was a kind of complex balance of
power, the strongest old nations against the biggest new metanationals, with
the Islamic League, India, China, and the smaller metanats existing as
independent loci of power, forces that could not be predicted. Thus the balance
of power, like any moment of temporary equipoise, was fragile—necessarily so,
as half the population of the Earth lived in India and China, a fact Maya could
never quite believe or comprehend—history was so strange—and there was no
knowing what side of the balance this half of humanity might come down on.
And of course all this begged the question of why there was so
much conflict to begin with. Why, Frank? she thought as she sat listening to
the cutting melancholy tangos. What is the motivation of these metanational
rulers? But she could see his cynical grin, the one from the years when she had
known him. Empires have long half-lives, as he had remarked to her once. And
the idea of empire has the longest half-life of all. So that there were people
around still trying to be Genghis Khan, to rule the world no matter the
cost—executives in the metanats, leaders in the Group of Eleven, generals in
the armies... .
Or, suggested her mental Frank, calmly, brutally—Earth had a
carrying capacity. People had overshot it. Many of them would therefore die.
Everyone knew this. The fight for resources was correspondingly fierce. The
fighters, perfectly rational. But desperate.
The musicians played on, their tart nostalgia made even more
poignant as the months passed, and the long winter came on, and they played
through the snowy dusks with the whole world darkening, entre chien et loup.
Something so small and brave in that bandoneon wheeze, in those little tunes
pattering on in the face of it all: normal life, clung to so stubbornly, in a
patch of light under bare-branched trees.
So familiar, this apprehension. This was how it had felt in the
years before ‘61. Even though she could not remember any of the individual
incidents and crises that had constituted the prewar period last time around,
she could still remember the feel of it as fully as if stimulated by a familiar
scent; how nothing seemed to matter, how even the best days were pale and chill
under the black clouds that lay massed to the west. How the pleasures of town
life took on an antic, desperate edge, everyone with their backs to the bar, so
to speak, doing their best to counteract a feeling of diminution, of
helplessness. Oh yes, this was deja vu all right.
So when they
traveled around Hellas
and met with Free Mars groups, Maya was thankful to see the people who came,
who made the effort to believe that their actions could make a difference, even
in the face of the great vortex swirling below them. Maya learned from them
that everywhere he went, Nirgal was apparently insisting to the other natives
that the situation on Earth was critical to their own fortunes, no matter how
distant it seemed. And this was having an effect; now the people who came to
the meetings were full of the news of Consolidated and Amexx and Subarashii,
and of the recent new incursions into the southern highlands by the UNTA
police, incursions which had forced the abandonment of Overhangs, and many
hidden sanctuaries. The south was being emptied, all the hidden ones flooding
into Hiranyagarbha or Sabishii, or Odessa and the east Hellas canyons.
Some of the young natives Maya met seemed to think that the UNTA
appropriation of the south was basically a good thing, as it began the
countdown to action. She was quick to denounce such thinking. “It’s not them
who should have control of the timetable,” she told them. “We have to .control
the timing of this, we have to wait for our moment. And then all act together.
If you don’t see that—”
Then you’re fools!
But Frank had always lashed out at his audiences. These people
needed something more—or, to be precise, they deserved something more.
Something positive, something to draw them as well as to drive them. Frank had
said this too, but he had seldom acted on it. They needed to be seduced, like
the nightly dancers on the corniche. Probably these people were out on their
own waterfronts on all the other nights of the week. And politics needed to
co-opt some of that erotic energy, or else it was only a matter of
ressenti-ment and damage control.
So she seduced them. She did it even when she was worried or
frightened, or in a bad mood. She stood among them thinking about sex with the
tall lithe young men, and then she sat down in their midst, and asked them
questions. She caught their gazes one by one, all of them so tall that when she
sat on tables she was eye to eye with them as they sat in chairs, and she
engaged them in conversation as intimate and pleasurable as she could make it.
What did they want from life, from Mars? Often she laughed out loud at their responses,
caught unawares by their innocence or their wit. They had themselves already
dreamed Marses more radical than any she could believe in, Marses that were
truly independent, egalitarian, just and joyous. And in some ways they had
already enacted these dreams: many of them now had made their little warrens
into extensive communal apartments, and they worked.in their alternative
economy that had less and less connection with the Transitional Authority or
the metanats—an economy governed by Marina’s eco-economics and Hiroko’s
areophany, by the Sufis and by Nirgal, by his roving gypsy government of the
young. They felt they were going to live forever; they felt they lived in a
world of sensuous beauty; their confinement in tents was normality, but a stage
only, a confinement in warm womb mesocosms, which would be inevitably followed
by their emergence onto a free living surface—by their birth, yes! They were
embryo areurges, to use Michel’s term, young gods operating their world, people
who knew they were meant to be free, and were confident they would get there,
and soon. Bad news would come from Earth and attendance at the meetings would
rise—and in these meetings the air was not one of fear but of determination, of
the look on Frank’s face in the photo over her sink. A struggle between
ex-allies Arms-cor and Subarishii over Nigeria resulted in the use of
biological weapons (both sides disclaimed responsibility) so that the people,
animals, and plants of Lagos and the surrounding area were devastated by grotesque
diseases; and in the meetings that month, the young Martians spoke angrily,
their eyes flashing, of the lack of any rule of law on Earth—the lack of any
authority that could be trusted. The metanational global order was too
dangerous to be allowed to rule Mars!
Maya let them talk for an hour before she said anything but “I
know.” And she did know! It almost made her weep to look at them, to see how
shocked they were by injustice and cruelty. Then she went over the points of
the Dorsa Brevia Declaration one by one, describing how each had been argued
out, what it meant, and what its implementation in the real world would feel
like in their lives. They knew more about this than she did, and these parts of
the discussion got them more fired up than any complaints about Earth—less
anxious, and more enthusiastic. And in trying to envision a future based on the
declaration she often got them laughing: ludicrous scenarios of collective
harmony, everyone at peace and happy—they knew the squabbling cramped reality
of their shared apartments, and so it really was funny. The light in the eyes
of laughing young Martians— even she, who never laughed, felt a small smile
rearranging the unseen map of wrinkles that was her face.
And so she would end the meeting, feeling that it was work well
done. What use was Utopia without joy, after all? What was the point of all
their striving if it did not include the laughter of the young? This was what
Frank had never understood, at least not in his latter years. And so she would
abandon Spencer’s security procedures, and lead the people in the meetings out
of their rooms and down to the dry waterfronts, or into parks or cafes, to have
a walk or a drink or a late meal, feeling that she had found one of the keys to
revolution, a key that Frank had never known existed, but only suspected when
looking at John.
“Of course,” Michel said when she returned to Odessa, and tried to
tell him about it. “But Frank was not a believer in revolution anyway. He was a
diplomat, a cynic, a counterrevolutionary. Joy was not in his nature. It was
all damage control to him.”
But Michel was often contrary with her these days. He had learned
to explode rather than soothe if she showed signs she needed a fight, and she
appreciated that so much that she found she didn’t need to fight nearly so
often. “Come on,” she objected at this characterization of Frank, and shoved
Michel onto their bed and ravished him, just for the fun of it, just to drag
him into the realm of joy and make him admit it. She knew perfectly well that
he felt it was his duty to pull her always back toward the midline of her mood
oscillations, and she could see his point, no one more so, and appreciated the
anchoring he tried to provide; but sometimes, soaring up at the top of the
curve, she saw no reason not to enjoy it a little, those brief moments of no-g
flight, something like a spiritual status orgasmus... . And so she would pull
him up by the cock to that level, and make him smile for an hour or two. Then
it was possible for them to. walk together downstairs and out the gate, and
down through the park, over to her cafe in a mood of relaxation and peace,
there to sit with their backs to the bar, and listen to the flamenco guitarist
or the old tango band, playing its piazzollas. Talking casually about the work
around the basin. Or not talking at all.
One evening in the late summer of M-year 49, they walked down with
Spencer to the cafe and sat through the long twilight, watching dark copper
clouds that sat glowing over the distant ice, under the purple sky. The
prevailing westerlies drove air masses up over the Hellespontus, so that
dramatic fronts of cloud over the ice were part of their daily life, but some
clouds were special— metallic.lobed solid objects, like mineral statues which could
never just waft away on a wind. Spitting lightning from their black bottoms
onto the ice-below.
And then as they watched these particular statues, there was a low
rumble, and the ground trembled slightly underfoot, and the silverware
chattered across the table. They grabbed their glasses and stood, along with
everyone else in the cafe—and in the shocked silence Maya saw they were all
automatically looking to the south, out toward the ice. People were pouring out
of the park onto the cor-niche, and then standing against the tent wall in
silence, looking outward. There in the fading indigo of sunset, under the
copper clouds, it was just possible to see movement, a winking black and white
at the edge of the white-and-black mass. Moving toward the’m across the plain.
“Water,” someone at the next table said.
Everyone moved as if in a tractor beam, glasses in hand, all other
thoughts gone as they came to the tent coping at the edge of the waterfront and
stood together against the chest-high wall, squinting into the shadows on the
plain: black on black, with a salting of white spots, tumbling this way and
that. For a second Maya recalled again the Marineris flood, and she shuddered,
forced the memory back down like chyme in her esophagus, choking slightly on the
acidity, doing her best to kill that part of her mind. It was the Hellas Sea
coming toward her—her sea, her idea, now inundating the slope of the basin. A
million plants were dying, as Sax had taught her to remember. The Low Point
melt pod had been getting bigger and bigger, connecting up to other pods of
liquid water, melting the rotten ice between and around them, warmed by the
long summer and the bacteria and the surges of steam from explosions set in the
surrounding ice. One of the northern ice walls must have broken, and now the
flood was blackening the plain south of Odessa. The nearest edge was no more
than fifteen kilometers away. Now most of what they could see of the basin was
a salt-and-pepper jumble, the predominant pepper in the foreground shifting
even as they watched to more and more salt—the land lightening at the same time
that the sky was darkening, which as always gave things an unnatural aspect.
Frost steam swirled up from the water, glowing with what looked to be reflected
light from Odessa itself.
Perhaps half an hour passed, with everyone on the corniche
standing still and watching, in a general silence that only began to end when
the flood was frozen, and the twilight ended. Then there was a sudden return of
human voices, and electric music from a cafe two down. A peal of laughter. Maya
went to the bar and ordered champagne for the table, feeling her high spirits
sizzle. For once .her mood was in tune with events, and she was ready to
celebrate the bizarre sight of their own powers unleashed, lying out there on
the landscape for their inspection. She offered a toast to the cafe at large:
“To the Hellas Sea, and all the sailors who will sail it, dodging
icebergs and storms to reach the far shore!”
Everyone cheered, and people all up and down the corniche picked
it up and cheered as well, a wild moment. The gypsy band struck up a tango
version of a sea chantey, and Maya felt the small smile shifting the stiff skin
of her cheeks for the entire rest of that evening. Even a long discussion of the
possibility of another surge washing up and over Odessa’s seawall could not
take that smile off her face. Down at the office they had calculated the
possibilities very finely indeed, and any slopover, as they called it, was
unlikely or even impossible. Odessa would be all right.
* * *
But news kept Hooding in from afar, threatening to overwhelm them
in its own way. On Earth the wars in Nigeria and Azania had caused bitter
worldwide economic conflict between Armscor and Subarashii. Christian, Muslim,
and Hindu fundamentalists were all making a vice of necessity and declaring the
longevity treatment the work of Satan; great numbers of the untreated were
joining these movements, taking over local governments and making direct,
human-wave assaults on the metanational operations within their reach.
Meanwhile all the big metanationals were trying to resuscitate the UN, and put
it forth as an alternative to the World Court; and many of the biggest metanat
clients, and now the Group of Eleven, were going along with it. Michel
considered this a victory, as it again showed fear of the World Court. And any
strengthening of an international body like the UN, he said, was better than
none. But now there were two competing arbitration systems erected, one
controlled by the metanats, which made it easier to avoid the one they didn’t
like.
And on Mars things were little better. The UNTA police were roving
in the south, unhindered except by occasional unexplained explosions among
their robot vehicles, and Prometheus was the latest hidden sanctuary to have
been discovered and shut down. Of all the big sanctuaries only Vishniac
remained hidden, and they had gone dormant in an effort to stay that way. The
south polar region was no longer part of the underground.
In this context it was no surprise to see how frightened the
people who came to the meetings sometimes were. It took courage to join an
underground that was visibly shrinking, like Minus One Island. People were
driven to it by anger, Maya supposed, and indignation and hope. But they were
frightened as well. There was no assurance that this move would do any good.
And it would be so easy to plant a spy among these newcomers. Maya
found it hard to trust them, sometimes. Could all of them be what they claimed
to be? It was impossible to be sure of that, impossible. One night at a meeting
with a lot of newcomers there was a young man in the front with a look she
didn’t like, and after the meeting, which was uninspired, she had gone with
Spencer’s friends right back to the apartment, and told Michel about it. “Don’t
worry,” he said.
“What do you mean, don’t worry.”
He shrugged. “The members keep track of each other. They try to
make sure they’re all known to each other. And Spencer’s team is armed.”
“You never told me that.”
“I thought you knew.”
“Come on. Don’t treat me as if I was stupid.”
“I don’t, Maya. Anyway, it’s all we can do, unless we hide
entirely.”
“I’m not proposing to do that! What do you think I am, a coward?”
A sour expression crossed his face, and he said something in
French. Then he took a deep breath and shouted at her in French, one of his
curses. But she could see that this was a deliberate decision on his part—that
he had decided the fights were good for her, and cathartic for him, so that
they could be pursued, when inevitable, as a kind of therapeutic method—and
this of course was intolerable. An act, a manipulation of her—without another
thought she took a step into the kitchen area and picked up a copper pot and
heaved it at him, and he was so surprised that he barely managed to knock it
away.
“Putaine!” he roared. “Pourquoi ce fa? Pourquoi?”
“I won’t be patronized,” she told him, satisfied that he was
genuinely angry now, but still blazing herself. “You damned head-shrinker, if
you weren’t so bad at your job the whole First Hundred wouldn’t have gone crazy
and this world wouldn’t be so fucked up. It’s all your fault.” And she slammed
out the door and went down to the cafe to brood over the awfulness of having a
shrink as a partner, also over her own ugly behavior, so quick to leap out of
her control and attack him. He did not come down and join her that time, though
she sat around till closing.
And then, just after she had gotten home and lain down on the
couch and fallen asleep, there was a knock at the door, rapid and light in a
way immediately frightening, and Mic’hel ran to it and looked through the
peephole. He saw who it was and let her in. It was Marina.
Marina sat down heavily on the couch beside Maya, and with shaking
hands holding theirs, said, “They took over Sabishii. Security troops. Hiroko
and her whole inner circle were there visiting, as well as all the southerners
who had come up since the raids. And Coyote too. All of them were there, and
Nanao, and Etsu, and all the issei ...”
“Didn’t they resist?” Maya said.
“They tried. There were a bunch of people killed at the train
station. That slowed them down, and I think some people might have gotten into
the mohole mound maze. But they had surrounded the whole area, and they came in
through the tent walls. It was just like Cairo in sixty-one, I swear.”
Suddenly she started to cry, and Maya and Michel sat down on each
side of her, and she put her face in her hands and sobbed. This was so out of
character for the usually severe Marina that the reality of her news hit home.
She sat up and wiped her eyes and nose. Michel got her a tissue.
Calmly she went on: “I’m afraid a lot of them may be killed. I was out with
Vlad and Ursula in one of those outlying hermitage boul-d “rs, and we stayed
there for three days, and then walked to one of the hidden garages and got out
in boulder cars. Vlad went to Burroughs, Ursula to Elysium. We’re trying to
tell as many of the First Hundred as we can. Especially Sax and Nadia.”
Maya got up and put on her clothes, then went down the hall and
knocked on Spencer’s door. She returned to the kitchen and put on water for
tea, refusing to look at the photo of Frank, who watched her saying I told you
so. This is the way it happens. She took teacups back into the living room, and
saw that her own hands were shaking so much that hot liquid was spilling down
over her fingers. Michel’s face was pale and sweaty, and he wasn’t hearing
anything Marina was saying. Of course—if Hiroko’s group had been there, then
his entire family was gone, either captured or killed. She handed out the
teacups, and as Spencer came in and had the story told to him, she got a robe
and draped it over Michel’s shoulders, excoriating herself for the miserable
timing of her assault on him. She sat by him, squeezing his thigh, trying to
tell him by touch that she was there, that she was his family too, and that all
her games were over, to the best of her ability—no more treating him as pet or
punching bag... . That she loved him. But his thigh was like warm ceramic, and
he obviously didn’t notice her hand, was scarcely even aware she was there. And
it came to her that it was precisely in the moments of greatest need when
people could do the least for each other.
She got up and got Spencer some tea, avoiding looking at the photo
or the pale image of her face in the dark kitchen window, the pinched bleak
vulture eye that she could never meet. You can never look back.
For the moment there was nothing to do but sit there, and get
through the night. Try to absorb the news, to withstand it. So they sat, they
talked, they listened to Marina tell her story in greater and greater detail.
They made calls out on the Praxis lines, trying to find out more. They sat,
slumped and silent, caged in their own reflections, their solitary universes.
The minutes passed like hours, the hours like years: it was the hellish twisted
spacetime of the all-night vigil, that most ancient of human rituals, where
people fought without success to wrench meaning into each random catastrophe.
Dawn when it finally came was overcast, the tent spattered with
raindrops. A few painfully slow hours later, Spencer began the process of
contacting all the groups in Odessa. Over the course of that day and the next
they spread the news, which had been suppressed on Mangalavid and the other
infonets. But it was clear to all that something had happened, because of the
sudden absence of Sabishii from the ordinary discourse, even in matters of
common business. Rumors flew everywhere, gaining momentum in the absence of
hard news, rumors of everything from Sabishii’s independence to its razing. But
in the tense meetings of the following week Maya and Spencer told everyone what
Marina had said, and then they spent the subsequent hours discussing what
should be done. Maya did her best to convince people that they should not be
pushed into acting before they were ready, but it was hard going; they were
furious, and frightened, and there were a lot of incidents in town and around
Hellas that week, all over Mars in fact—demonstrations, minor sabotage,
assaults on security positions and personnel, AI breakdowns, work slowdowns.
“We’ve got to show them they can’t get away with this!” Jackie said over the
net, seeming everywhere at once. Even Art agreed with her: “I think’civil protests
by as much of the general population as we can muster might slow them down.
Make those bastards think twice about doing anything like this again.”
Nevertheless, the situation stabilized after a while. Sabishii
returned to the net and to train schedules, and life there resumed, although it
was not the same as before, as a big police force stayed in occupation,
monitoring the gates and the station, and trying to discover all the cavities
of the mound maze. During this time Maya had a number of long talks with Nadia,
who was working in South Fossa, and with Nirgal and Art, and even with Ann, who
called in from one of her refuges in. the Aureum Chaos. They all agreed that no
matter what had happened in Sabishii, they needed to hold back for the moment from
any attempt at a general insurrection. Sax even called in to Spencer, to say he
“needed time.” Which Maya found comforting, as it supported her gut feeling
that the time was not right. That they were being provoked in the hopes they
would try a revolt prematurely. Ann and Kasei and Jackie and the other
radicals—Dao, Antar, even Zeyk—were unhappy at the wait, and pessimistic about
what it meant. “You don’t understand,” Maya told them. “There’s a whole new
world growing out there, and the longer we wait, the stronger it gets. Just
hold on.”
Then about a month after the closing of Sabishii, they got a brief
message on their wrists from Coyote—a short clip of his lopsided face, looking
unusually serious, telling them that he had gotten away through the maze of
secret tunnels in the mohole mound, and was now back in the south, in one of
his own hideouts. “What about Hiroko?” Michel said instantly. “What about
Hiroko and the rest of them?”
But Coyote was already gone.
“I don’t think they got Hiroko either,” Michel said instantly,
walking around the room without noticing he was moving. “Not Hiroko or any of
them! If they had been captured, I’m sure the Transitional Authority would have
announced it. I’ll bet Hiroko has taken the group underground again. They haven’t
been pleased with things since Dorsa Brevia, they’re just not good at
compromise, that’s why they took off in the first place. Everything that has
happened since has only confirmed their opinion that they can’t trust us to
build the kind of world they want. So they’ve used this chance and disappeared
again. Maybe the crackdown on Sabishii forced them to do it without warning
us.”
“Maybe so,” Maya said, careful to sound like she believed it. It
sounded like denial on Michel’s part, but if it helped him, who cared? And
Hiroko was capable of anything. But Maya had to make her response plausibly
Mayalike, or he would see she was only reassuring him: “But where would they
go?”
“Back into the chaos, I would guess. A lot of the old shelters are
still there.”
“But what about you?”
“They’ll let me know.”
He thought it over, looked at her. “Or maybe they figure that
you’re my family now.”
So he had felt her hand, in that first horrible hour. But he gave
her such a sad crooked smile that she winced, and caught him up and tried to
crush him with a hug, really crack a rib, to show him how much she loved him
and how little she liked such a wan look. “They’re right about that,” she said
harshly. “But they ought to contact you anyway.”
“They will. I’m sure they will.”
Maya had no idea what to think of this theory of Michel’s. Coyote
had in fact escaped through the mound maze, and he was likely to have helped as
many of his friends as he could. And Hiroko would probably be first on that
list. She would certainly grill Coyote about it next time she saw him; but then
he had never told her anything before. In any case, Hiroko and her inner circle
were gone. Dead, captured, or in hiding, no matter which it was a cruel blow to
the cause, Hiroko being the moral center for so much of the resistance.
But she had been so strange. A part of Maya, mostly subconscious
and unacknowledged, was not entirely unhappy to have Hiroko off the scene,
however it had happened. Maya had never been able to communicate with Hiroko,
to understand her, and though she had loved her, it had made her nervous to
have such a great random force wandering about, complicating things. And it had
been irritating also to have another great power among the women, a power that
she had had absolutely no influence over. Of course it was horrible if the
whole of her group had been captured, or worse, killed. But if they had decided
to disappear again, that would not be a bad thing at all. It would simplify
things at a time when they desperately needed simplification, giving Maya more
potential control over the events to come.
So she hoped with all her heart that Michel’s theory was true, and
nodded at him, and pretended to agree in a reserved realistic way with his
analysis. And then went off to the next meeting, to calm down yet another
commune of angry natives. Weeks passed, then months; it seemed they had
survived the crisis. But things were still degenerating on Earth, and Sabishii,
their university town, the jewel of the demimonde, was functioning under a kind
of martial law; and Hiroko was gone, Hiroko who was their heart. Even Maya,
initially pleased in some sense to be rid of her, felt more and more oppressed
by her absence. The concept of Free Mars had been part of the areophany, after
all—and to be reduced to mere politics, to the survival of the fittest. ...
The spirit seemed gone from things. And as the winter passed, and
the news from Earth told of escalating conflicts, Maya noticed ‘that people
seemed more and more desperate for distraction. The partying got louder and
wilder; the corniche was a nightly celebration, and on special nights, like
Fassnacht or New Year’s, it was jammed with everyone in town, all dancing and
drinking and singing with a kind of ferocious gaiety, under the little red
mottoes painted on every other wall. YOU CAN NEVER GO BACK. FREE MARS. But how?
How?
New Year’s that winter was especially wild; it was M-year 50, and
people were celebrating the big anniversary in style. Maya walked with Michel
up and down the corniche, and from behind her domino she watched curiously as
the undulating dance lines passed them by, she stared at all the long young
dancing bodies, the figures masked but naked to the waist for the most part, as
if out of an ancient Hindu illustration, breasts and pecs bobbing gracefully to
nuevo calypso steel-drum ponking... . Oh, it was strange! And these young
aliens were ignorant, but how beautiful! How beautiful! And this town she had
helped to build, standing over its dry waterfront... . She felt herself taking
off inside, past the equinox and into the glorious rush to euphoria, and maybe
it was only an accident of her biochemistry, probably so given the grim
situation of the two worlds, entre chien et loup, but nevertheless it existed,
and she felt it in her body. And so she pulled Michel into a dance line, and
danced and danced until she was slippery with sweat. It felt great.
For a while they sat together in her cafe—quite a little reunion
of the First Thirty-nine, as it turned out: she and Michel and Spencer, and
Vlad and Ursula and Marina, and Yeli Zudov and Mary Dunkel, who had slipped out
of Sabishii a month after the shutdown, and Mikhail Yangel, up from Dorsa
Brevia, and Nadia, down from South Fossa. Ten of them. “A decimation,” Mikhail
noted. They ordered bottle after bottle of vodka, as if they could drown the
memory of the other ninety, including their poor farm crew, who at best had
just disappeared on them again, and at worst had been murdered. The Russians
among them, strangely in the majority that night, began to offer up all the old
toasts from home. Let’s pig up! Let’s get healthier! Let’s pour behind the
cellar! Let’s get glassed! Let’s get fucked! Let’s fill the eyes with it! Let’s
lick it out! Let’s wet the back of the throat! Let’s buy for three! Let’s suck
it, pour it, knock it, grab it, beat it, flog it, swing it—and so on and so on,
until Michel and Mary and Spencer were looking amazed and appalled. It’s like
Eskimos and snow, Mikhail told them.
And then they went back out to dance, the ten of them forming a
line of their own, weaving dangerously through the crowds of youngsters. Fifty
long Martian years, and still they survived, still they danced! It was a
miracle!
But as always in the all-too-predictable fluctuation of Maya’s
moods, there came that stall at the top, that sudden downturn— tonight, begun
as she noticed the drugged eyes behind the other masks, saw how everyone was on
their way out, doing their best to escape into their own private world, where
they didn’t have to connect with anyone except that night’s lover. And they
were no different. “Let’s go home,” she said to Michel, who was still bouncing
along before her in time to the bands, enjoying the sight of all the lean
Martian youngsters. “I can’t stand this.”
But he wanted to stay, and so did the others, and in the end she
went home by herself, through the gate and the garden and up the stairs to
their apartment. The noise of the celebration was loud behind her.
And there on the cabinet over the sink the young Frank smiled at
her distress. Of course it goes this way, the youth’s intent look said. I know
this story too—I learned it the hard way. Anniversaries, marriages, happy
moments—they blow away. They’re gone. They never meant a thing. The smile
tight, fierce, determined; and the’ eyes ... it was like looking in the windows
of an empty house. She knocked a coffee cup off the counter and it broke on the
floor; the handle spun there and she cried out loud, sank to the floor and
wrapped her arms around her knees and wept.
Then in the new year came news of heightened security measures in
Odessa itself. It seemed that UNTA had learned the lesson of Sabishii, and was
going to clamp down on the other cities more subtly: new passports, security
checks at every gate and garage, restricted access to the trains. It was
rumored they were hunting the First Hundred in particular, accusing them of
attempting to overthrow the Transitional Authority.
Nevertheless Maya wanted to keep going to the Free Mars meetings,
and Spencer kept agreeing to take her. “As long as we can,” she said. And so
one night they walked together up the long stone staircases of the upper town.
Michel was with them for the first time since the assault on Sabishii, and it
seemed to Maya that he was recovering fairly well from the blow of the news,
from that awful night after Marina’s knock on the door.
But they were joined at this meeting by Jackie Boone and the rest
of her crowd, Antar and the zygotes, who had arrived in Odessa on the
circumHellas train, on the run from the UNTA troops in the south, and rabidly
angry at the assault on Sabishii, more militant than ever. The disappearance of
Hiroko and her inner group had sent the ectogenes over the edge; Hiroko was
mother to many of them, after all, and they all seemed in agreement that it was
time to come out from cover and start a full-scale rebellion. Not a minute to
lose, Jackie told the meeting, if they wanted to rescue the Sa-bishiians and
the hidden colonists.
“I don’t think they got Hiroko’s people,” Michel said. “I think
they went underground with Coyote.”
“You wish,” Jackie told him, and Maya felt her upper lip curl.
Michel said, “They would have signaled us if they were truly in
trouble.”
Jackie shook her head. “They wouldn’t go into hiding again, now
that things are going critical.” Dao and Rachel nodded. “And besides, what
about the Sabishiians, and the lockup of Sheffield? And it’s going to happen
here too. No, the Transitional Authority is taking over everywhere. We have to
act now!”
“The Sabishiians have sued the Transitional Authority,” Michel
said, “and they’re all still in Sabishii, walking around.”
Jackie just look disgusted, as if Michel were a fool, a weak
over-optimistic frightened fool. Maya’s pulse jumped, and she could feel her
teeth pressing together.
“We can’t act now,” she said sharply. “We’re not ready.”
Jackie glared at her. “We’ll never be ready according to you!
We’ll wait until they’ve got a lock on the whole planet, and then we won’t be
able to do anything even if we wanted to. Which is just how you’d like it, I’m
sure.”
Maya shot out of her chair. “There is no they anymore. There are
four or five metanationals fighting over Mars, just like they’re fighting over
Earth. If we stand up in the middle of it we’ll just get cut down in the
crossfire. We need to pick our moment, and that has to be when they’ve hurt
each other, and we have a real chance to succeed. Otherwise we get the moment
imposed on us, and it’s just like sixty-one, it’s just flailing about and chaos
and people getting killed!”
“Sixty-one,” Jackie cried, “it’s always sixty-one with you—the
perfect excuse for doing nothing! Sabishii and Sheffield are shut down and
Burroughs is close, and Hiranyag and Odessa will be next, and the elevator is
bringing down police every day and they’ve got hundreds of people killed or
imprisoned, like my grandmother who is the real leader of us all, and all you
talk about is sixty-one! Sixty-one has made you a coward!”
Maya lunged out and slapped her hard on the side of the head, and
Jackie leaped on her and Maya fell back into a table’s edge and the breath
whooshed out of her. She was being punched but managed to catch one of Jackie’s
wrists, and she bit into the straining forearm as hard as she could, really
trying to sever things. Then they were jerked apart and held onto, the room
bedlam, everyone shouting including Jackie, who shouted “Bitch! Bitch! Bitch!
Murderer!” and Maya heard words grating out of her own throat as well, “Stupid
little slut, stupid little slut,” between gasps for air. Her ribs and teeth
hurt. People were holding hands over her mouth and Jackie’s too, people were
hissing “Sssh, sssh, quiet, they’ll hear us, they’ll report us, the police will
come!”
Finally Michel took his hand from Maya’s mouth and she hissed
“Stupid little slut” one last time, then sat back in a chair and looked at them
all with a glare that caught and stilled at least half of them. Jackie was
released and she started to curse in a low voice and Maya snapped, “Shut up!”
so viciously that Michel stepped between them again. “Towing all your boys
around by the cock and thinking you’re a leader,” Maya snarled in a whisper,
“and all without a single thought in your empty head—”
“I won’t listen to this!” Jackie cried, and everyone said “Ssssh!”
and she was off, out into the hall. That was a mistake, a retreat, and Maya
stood back up and used the time to castigate the rest of them in a tearing
whisper for their stupidity—and then, when she had controlled her temper a
little, to argue the case for biding their time, the excoriating edge of her anger
just under the surface of a rational plea for patience and intention and
control, an argument that was essentially unanswerable. All through this
peroration everyone in the room was of course staring at her as if she were
some bloodied gladiator, the Black Widow indeed, and as her teeth still hurt
from sinking them into Jackie’s arm she could scarcely pretend to be the
perfect model of intelligent debate; she felt like her mouth must be puffed up,
it throbbed so, and she fought a rising sense of humiliation and carried on,
cold and passionate and overbearing. The meeting ended in a sullen and mostly
unspoken agreement to delay any mass insurrection and continue lying low, and
the next thing she knew she was slumped on a tram seat between Michel and Spencer,
trying not to cry. They would have to put up Jackie and the rest of her group
while they were in Odessa— theirs was the safe house, after all. So it was a
situation she wasn’t going to be able to escape. And meanwhile there were
police officers standing in front of the town’s physical plant and offices,
checking wrists before they let people inside. If she didn’t go to work again
they very well might try to track her down to ask why, and if she went to work
and got checked, it wasn’t certain that her wrist ID and Swiss passport would
pass her. There were rumors that the post-’61 balkanization of information was
beginning to collapse back into some larger integrated systems, which had
recovered some prewar data; thus the requirement of new passports. And if she
ran into one of those systems, that would be that. Shipped off to the asteroids
or to Kasei Vallis, to be tortured and have her mind wrecked like Sax. “Maybe
it is time,” she said to Michel and Spencer. “If they lock up all the cities
and the pistes, what other choice do we have?”
They didn’t answer. They didn’t know what to do any more than, she
did. Suddenly the whole independence project again seemed a fantasy, a dream
that was just as impossible now as it had been when Arkady had espoused it, Arkady
who had been so cheerful and so wrong. They would never be free of Earth,
never. They were helpless before it.
“I want to talk to Sax first,” Spencer said.
“And Coyote,” Michel said. “I want to ask him more about what
happened in Sabishii.”
“And Nadia,” Maya said, and her throat tightened; Nadia would have
been ashamed of her if she had seen her at that meeting, and that hurt. She
needed Nadia, the only person on Mars whose judgment she still trusted.
“There’s something odd going on with the atmosphere,” Spencer
complained to Michel as they changed trams. “I really want to hear what Sax has
to say about it. Oxygen levels are rising faster than I would have expected,
especially on north Tharsis. It’s like some really successful bacteria has been
distributed without any suicide genes in it. Sax has basically reassembled his
old Echus Overlook team, everyone still alive, and they’ve been working at
Acheron and Da Vinci on projects they’re not telling us about. It’s like those
damn windmill heaters. So I want to talk to him. We have to get together on
this, or else—”
“Or else sixty-one!” Maya insisted.
“I know, I know. You’re right about that, Maya, I mean I agree. I
hope enough of the rest of us do.”
“We’re going to have to do more than hope.”
Which meant she was going to have to get out there and do it
herself. Go fully underground, move from city to city, from safe house to safe
house as Nirgal had been doing for years, without a job or a home, meeting with
as many of the revolutionary cells as she could, trying to hold them on board.
Or at least keep them from popping off too soon. Working on the Hellas Sea
project wasn’t going to be possible anymore.
So this life was over. She got off the tram and glanced briefly
through the park down the corniche, then turned and walked up to their gate and
through the garden, up the stairwell, down the familiar hall, feeling heavy and
old and very, very tired. She stuck the right key into the lock without
thinking about it, and walked into the apartment and looked at her things, at
Michel’s stacks of books, the Kandinsky print over the couch, Spencer’s
sketches, the battered coffee table, the battered dining table and chairs, the
kitchen nook with everything in its place, including the little face on the
cabinet by the sink. How many lifetimes ago had she known that face? All these
pieces of furniture would go their ways. She stood in the middle of the room,
drained and desolate, grieving for these years that had slipped by almost
without noticing; almost a decade of productive work, of real life, now blowing
away in this latest gale of history, a paroxysm that she was going to have to
try to direct or at least ride out, trying her best to nudge it in ways that
would allow them to survive. Damn the world, damn its in-trusiveness, its
mindless charge, its inexorable roll through the present, wrecking lives as it
went... . She had liked this apartment and this town and this life, with Michel
and Spencer and Diana and all her colleagues at work, all her habits and her
music and her small daily pleasures.
She looked glumly at Michel, who stood behind her in the doorway,
staring around as if trying to commit the place to memory. A Gallic shrug:
“Nostalgia in advance,” he said, trying to smile. He felt it too—he
understood—it wasn’t just her mood, this time, but reality itself.
She made an effort and smiled back, walked over and
held his hand. Downstairs there was a clatter as the Zygote gang came up the
stairs. They could stay in Spencer’s apartment, the bastards. “If it works out,”
she said, “we’ll come back someday.”
They walked
down to the station in the
fresh morning light, past all the cafes, still chairs-on-tables wet. At the
station they risked their old IDs and got tickets without trouble, and took a
counterclockwise train down to Montepulciano, and got into rented walkers and
helmets, and walked out of the tent and down the hill and off the map of the
surface world, into one of the steep ravines of the foothills. There Coyote was
waiting for them in a boulder car, and he drove them through the heart of the
Helles-pontus, up a forking network of valleys, over pass after pass in this
mountain range that was just as chaotic as rock falling from the sky implied, a
nightmare maze of a wilderness—until they were down the western slope, past
Rabe Crater and onto the crater-ringed hills of the Noachis highlands. And so
they were off the net again, wandering as Maya never had before.
Coyote helped a lot in the early part of this period. He was not
the same, Maya thought—subdued by the takeover of Sabishii, even worried. He
wouldn’t answer their questions about Hiroko and the hidden colonists; he said
“I don’t know” so often that she began to believe him, especially when his face
finally twisted up into a recognizably human expression of distress, the famous
invulnerable insouciance finally shattered. “I truly don’t know whether they
got out or not. I was already out in the mound maze when the takeover started,
and I got out in a car as fast as I could, thinking I could help the most from
outside. But no one else came out from that exit. But I was on the north side,
and they could have gotten out to the south. They were staying in the mound
maze too, and Hiroko has emergency shelters just like I do. But I just don’t
know.”
“Then let’s go see if we can find out,” she said.
So he drove them north, at one point going under the
Sheffield-Burroughs piste, using a long tunnel just bigger than his car; they
spent the night in this black slot, restocking from recessed closets and
sleeping the uneasy sleep of spelunkers. Near Sabishii they descended into
another hidden tunnel, and drove for several kilometers until they came into a
small cave of a garage; it was part of the Sabishiians’ mound maze, and the
squared stone caves behind it were like Neolithic passage tombs, now lit with
strip lighting and warmed from vents. They were greeted down there by Nanao
Nakayama, one of the issei, who seemed just as cheerful as ever. Sabishii had
been returned to them, more or less, and though there were UNTA police in town
and especially at the gates and the train station, the police were still
unaware of the full extent of the mound complexes, and so not able to
completely stop Sabishii’s efforts to help the underground. Sabishii was no
longer an open demimonde, as he put it, but they were still working.
And yet he, too, did not know what had happened to Hiroko. “We
didn’t see the police take any of them away,” he said. “But we didn’t find
Hiroko and her group down here either, after things had calmed down. We don’t
know where they went.” He tugged at his turquoise earring, obviously mystified.
“I think they are probably off on their own. Hiroko was always careful to have
a bolt-hole everywhere she went, that is what Iwao told me once when we drank a
lot of sake down at the duck pond. And it seems to me that disappearance is a
habit of Hiroko’s, but not of the Transitional Authority. So we can infer that
she chose to do this. But come on—you must want a bath and some food, and then
if you could talk to some of the sansei and yonsei who have gone into hiding
with us, that would be good for them.”
So they stayed in the maze for a week or two, and Maya met with
several groups of the newly disappeared. She spent most of her time encouraging
them, assuring them that they would be able to reemerge onto the surface, even
into Sabishii itself, quite soon; security was hardening, but the nets were
simply too permeable, and the alternative economy too large, to allow for total
control. Switzerland would give them new passports, Praxis would give them
jobs, and they would be back in business. The important thing was to coordinate
their efforts, and to resist the temptation to lash out too early.
Nanao told her after one such meeting that Nadia was making
similar appeals in South Fossa, and that Sax’s team was begging them for more
time; so there was some agreement on the policy, at least among the old-timers.
And Nirgal was working closely with Nadia, supporting the policy as well. So it
was the more radical groups that they would have to work hardest to rein in,
and here Coyote had the most influence. He wanted to visit some of the Red
refuges in person, and Maya and Michel went with him, to catch a ride up to
Burroughs.
The region between Sabishii and Burroughs was saturated with
crater impacts, so that they wound through the nights between flat-topped
circular hills, stopping every dawn at small rim shelters crowded with Reds who
were none too hospitable to Maya and Michel. But they listened to Coyote very
attentively, and traded news with him about scores of places Maya had never
heard of. On the third night of this they came down the steep slope of the
Great Escarpment, through an archipelago of mesa islands, and abruptly onto the
smooth plain of Isidis! They could see down the slope of the basin for a long
way, all the way out to where a mound like the Sabishiians’ mohole mound ran
across the land, in a great curve from Du Martheray Crater on the Great
Escarpment, northwest toward Syrtis. This was the new dike, Coyote told them,
built by a robot collection pulled from the Elysium mohole. The dike was truly
massive, and looked like one of the basalt dorsa of the south, except that its
velvety texture revealed it to be excavated regolith rather than harKyolcanic
rock.
Maya stared at the long ridge. The cascading recombinant
consequences of their actions were, she thought, out of their control. They
could try to build bulwarks to contain them—but would the bulwarks hold?
* * *
Then they were back in Burroughs, in through the Southeast Gate on
their Swiss IDs, and secured in a safe house run by Bog-danovists from
Vishniac, now working for Praxis. The safe house was an airy light-filled
apartment about halfway up the northern wall of Hunt Mesa, with a view out over
the central valley to Branch Mesa and Double Decker Butte. The apartment above
it was a dance studio, and many of the hours of the day they lived to a faint
thump, thump, thump-thump, thump-thump. Just over the horizon to the-north an
irregular cloud of dust and steam marked where the robots were working still on
the dike; every morning Maya looked out at it, thinking over the news reports
on Mangalavid.and in the long messages from Praxis. Then it was into the day’s
work, which was entirely underground, and often confined to meetings in the
apartment, or to work there on video messages. So it was not at all like life
in Odessa, and it was hard to develop any habits, which made her feel jangly
and dark.
But she could still walk the streets of the great city, one
anonymous citizen among thousands of others—strolling by the canal, or sitting
in restaurants around Princess Park, or on one of the less trendy mesa tops.
And everywhere she went, she saw the neat red print of their stenciled
graffiti: FREE MARS. Or GET
READY. Or, as if she were hallucinating a warning made to her by her own
soul: YOU CAN NEVER GO BACK. These
messages were ignored by the populace as far as she could tell, never
discussed, and often removed by.cleaning crews; but they kept popping up in
their neat red, usually in English but sometimes in Russian, the old alphabet
like a long-lost friend, like some subliminal flash out of their collective
unconscious, if they had one; and somehow the messages never lost their little
electric shock. It was strange what powerful effects could be created with such
simple means. People might come to do almost anything, if they talked about it
long enough.
Her meetings with small cells of the various resistance
organizations went well, although it became clearer to her that there were
profound divisions of all kinds among them, particularly the dislike that the
Reds and Marsfirsters had for the Bogdanovists and Free Mars groups, whom the
Reds considered green, and thus one more manifestation of the enemy. That could
be trouble. But Maya did what she could, and everyone at least listened to her,
so that she felt she made some progress. And slowly she warmed to Burroughs,
and her hidden life there. Michel arranged a routine for her with the Swiss and
Praxis, and with the Bogdanovists now tucked away in the city—a secure routine,
which allowed her to meet groups fairly frequently without ever compromising
the integrity of the safe houses they had established. And every meeting seemed
to help a little. The only intransigent problem was that so many groups seemed
to want to revolt immediately—Red or green, they tended to follow the radical
lead of Ann’s Reds in the outback, and the young hotheads surrounding Jackie,
and there were more and more incidents of sabotage in the cities, which caused
a corresponding increase in police surveillance, until it seemed very possible
that things could break wide open. Maya began to see herself as a kind of
brake, and she often lost sleep worrying about how little people wanted to hear
that message. On the other hand she was also the one who had to keep the old
Bogdanovists and other veterans aware of the power of the native movement,
cheering them up when they got depressed. Ann in the outback with the Reds,
grimly wrecking stations: “It’s not going to happen like that,” Maya told her
over and over, though there was no sign that Ann was getting the message.
Still, there were encouraging signs. Nadia was in South Fossa,
building a strong movement there which seemed under her influence, and closely
aligned with Nirgal and his crowd. Vlad and Ursula and Marina had reoccupied
their old labs at Acheron, under the aegis of the Praxis bioengineering company
nominally in charge. They were in constant communication with Sax, who was in a
refuge in Da Vinci Crater with his old terraforming team, being supported by
the Dorsa Brevia Minoans. The inhabitation of that great lava tube had extended
north much farther than it had been during the time of the congress, and most
of the new segments apparently were devoted to shelter for the refugees from
the wrecked or abandoned sanctuaries farther south, and a whole string of
manufactories. Maya watched videos of people driving about in little cars from
segment to tented segment, working under the clear brown light pouring down
from the filtered skylights, engaged in what could only be called military
production; they were building stealth fliers, stealth cars, surface-to-space
missiles, reinforced block shelters (some of which were already installed in
the lava tube itself, in case it was ever broached)—also air-to-ground
missiles, antivehicle weapons, handguns, and, the Minoans told Maya, a variety
of ecological weapons Sax was designing himself.
This kind of work, and the destruction of the southern
sanctuaries, had created what looked from a distance like a sort of war fever
in Dorsa Brevia, and Maya was worried by that too. Sax, at the heart of it, was
a stubborn secretive brilliant brain-damaged loose cannon, a bona fide mad
scientist. He had still never spoken to her directly; and his strikes against
the aerial lens and Deimos, while very effective, had in her opinion caused
UNTA’s intensification of the assault on the south. She kept sending down
messages advising restraint and patience, until Ariadne replied irritably,
“Maya, we know. We’re working with Sax here, we’ve got an idea of what we’re up
to, and what you’re saying is either obvious or wrong. Talk to the Reds if you
want to help, but we don’t need it.”
Maya cursed the video and talked to Spencer about it. Spencer
said, “Sax thinks if we’re going to pull this off we might need some weapons,
if only in reserve. It seems sensible to me.”
“What happened to the idea of a decapitation?”
“Maybe he thinks he’s building the guillotine. Look, talk to
Nirgal and Art about that. Or even Jackie.”
“Right. Look, I want to talk to Sax. He’s got to talk to me
sometime, goddammit. Get him to talk to me, will you?”
Spencer agreed to try, and one morning he arranged a call over his
private line to Sax. It was Art who answered the call, but he promised to try
to get Sax to come to the line. “He’s busy these days, Maya. I like to see it.
People are calling him General Sax.”
“God forbid.”
“Thai’s all right. They talk about General Nadia too, and General
Maya.”
“That’s not what they call me.” The Black Widow, more like, or the
Bitch. The Killer. She knew.
And Art’s squint told her she was right. “Well,” he said,
“whatever. With Sax it’s kind of a joke. People talk about the revenge of the
lab rats, that kind of thing.”
“I don’t like it.” The idea of another revolution seemed to be
gaining a life of its own now, a momentum independent of any real logic; it was
just something they were doing, were always going to have done. Out of her
control, and out of anyone else’s control. Even their collective efforts,
scattered and hidden as they were, seemed not to be coordinated or conceived
with any clear idea of what they were going to try to do, or why. It was just
happening.
She tried to express some of this to Art, and he nodded. “That’s
history, I guess. It’s messy. You just have to ride the tiger and hold on.
You’ve got a lot of different people in this movement, and they all have their
own ideas. But look, I think we’re doing better than last time. I’m working on
some initiatives back on Earth, negotiating with Switzerland and some people at
the World Court and so on. And Praxis is keeping us really well informed about
what’s going on among the metanationals on Earth, which means we won’t just get
swept into something we don’t understand.”
“True,” Maya admitted. The news and analysis packages sent up from
Praxis were more thorough by far than any commercial news shows, and as the
metanationals continued to drift into what was being called the metanatricide,
they on Mars, in their sanctuaries and safe houses, were able to follow it blow
by blow. Subar-ashii taking over Mitsubishi, and then its old foe Armscor, and
then falling out with Amexx, which was working hard on breaking the United
States out of the Group of Eleven; they saw it all from the inside. Nothing
could have been less like the situation in the 2050s. And that was a comfort,
if a very small one.
And then there was Sax on the screen behind Art, and looking at
her. He saw who it was, and said, “Maya!”
She swallowed hard. Was she forgiven, then, for Phyllis? Did he
understand why she had done it? His new face gave her no clues—it was as
impassive as his old one had been, and harder to read because so unfamiliar
still.
She collected herself, asked him what his plans were.
He said, “No plan. We’re still making preparations. We need to
wait for a trigger. A trigger event. Very important. There are a couple of
possibilities I’m keeping an eye against. But nothing yet.”
“Fine,” she said. “But listen, Sax.” And then she told him
everything she had been worrying about—the strength of the Transitional
Authority troops, bolstered as they were by the big centrist metanats; the
constant edging toward violence in the more radical wings of the underground;
the feeling that they were falling into the same old pattern. And as she spoke
he blinked in his old fashion, so that she knew it was really him listening
under that new face—finally listening to her again, so that she went on longer
than she had intended to, pouring out everything, her distrust of Jackie, her
fear at being in Burroughs, everything. It was like talking to a confessor, or
pleading—begging their pure rational scientist not to let things go crazy
again. Not to go crazy again himself. She heard herself babbling, and realized
how frightened she was.
And he blinked in what seemed a kind of neuter, ratlike sympathy.
But in the end he shrugged and said little. This was General Sax now, remote,
taciturn, speaking to her from the strange world inside his new mind.
“Give me twelve months,” he said to her. “I need twelve more
months.”
“Okay, Sax.” She felt reassured, somehow. “I’ll do my best.”
“Thanks, Maya.”
And he was gone. She sat there staring at the little AI screen,
feeling drained, teary, relieved. Absolved, for the hour.
So she returned to the work with a will, meeting groups almost
every week, and making occasional off-the-net trips to Elysium and Tharsis, to
talk to cells in the high cities. Coyote took charge of her travel, flying her
across the planet in night voyages that reminded her of ‘61. Michel took charge
of her security, protecting her with the help of a team of natives, including
several of the Zygote ectogenes, who moved her from safe house to safe house in
every city they visited. And she talked and talked and talked. It was not just
a matter of getting them to wait, but also coordinating them, forcing them to
agree they were on the same side. Sometimes it seemed that she was having an
effect, she could see it on the faces of the people who came to listen. Other
times her whole effort was devoted to applying the brakes (worn, burning) to
radical elements. There were a lot of these now, and more every day: Ann and
the Reds, Kasei’s Marsfirsters, the Bogdanovists under Mikhail, Jackie’s
“Booneans,” the Arab radicals led by Antar, who was one of Jackie’s many
boyfriends—Coyote, Dao, Rachel. ... It was like trying to stop an avalanche
that she herself was caught up in, grasping at clumps even as she rolled down
with them. In such a situation the disappearance of Hiroko began to loom as
more and more of a disaster.
The attacks of deja vu returned, stronger than ever. She had lived
in Burroughs before, in a time like this—perhaps that was all it was. But the
feeling was so disturbing when it struck, this profound unshakable conviction
that everything had happened before in exactly this way, as ineluctably as if
eternal recurrence were really true. ... So that she would wake up and go to
the bathroom, and certainly all that had happened before in just that way,
including all the stiffness and small aches and pains; and then she would walk
out to meet with Nirgal and some of his friends, and recognize that it was a
genuine attack and not just a coincidence. Everything had happened just like
this before, it was all clockwork. Strokes of fate. Okay, she would think,
ignore it. That’s reality, then. We are creatures of fate. At least you don’t
know what will happen next.
She talked endlessly with Nirgal, trying to understand him, and
get him to understand her. She learned from him, she imitated him in meetings
now—his bright friendly quiet confidence, which so obviously drew people to
him. They both were famous, they both were talked about on the news, they both
were on UNTA’s wanted list. They both had to stay off the streets now. So they had
a bond, and she learned all she could from him, and she thought he learned from
her as well. She-had an influence, anyway. It was a good relationship, her best
link to the young. He made her happy. He gave her hope.
But to have it all happen in the remorseless grip of an
overmastering fate! The seen-again, the always-already: nothing but brain
chemistry, Michel said. There was simply a neural delay or repetition, which
was giving her the sensation that the present was a kind of past as well. As
maybe it was. So she accepted his diagnosis, and took whatever drugs he
prescribed, without complaint and without hope. Every morning and evening she
opened the pocket in the container strip he prepared for her every week, and
took whatever pills were in it, without asking questions. She did not lash out
at him; she no longer felt the urge. Perhaps the night of the vigil in Odessa
had cured her. Perhaps he had finally mixed the right cocktail of drugs. She
hoped so. She went out with Nirgal to meetings, returned to the apartment under
the dance studio, exhausted. And yet very often insomniac. Her health got bad,
she was sick often, digestive troubles, sciatica, chest pains... . Ursula
recommended another course of the gerontological treatment. Always helps, she
said. And with the latest genomic mismatch scanning techniques, faster than
ever. She would only have to take a week off, at most. But Maya didn’t feel
like she had a week to take off. Later, she told Ursula. When this is all over.
Some nights when she couldn’t sleep, she read about Frank. She had
taken the photo from the Odessa apartment with her, and now it was stuck to the
wall by her bed in the Hunt Mesa safe house. She still felt the pressure of
that electrifying gaze, and so sometimes in the sleepless hours she read about
him, and tried to learn more about his diplomatic efforts. She hoped to find
things he had been good at to imitate, and also to identify what he had done
that she thought had been wrong.
One night in the apartment, after a tense visit to Sabishii and
the community still hidden in its mound maze., she fell asleep over her
lectern, which had been displaying a book about Frank. Then a dream about him
woke her. Restlessly she went out to the living room of the apartment and got a
drink of water, and went back and began to read the book again.
This one focused on the years between the treaty conference of
2057 and the outbreak of the unrest in 2061. These were the years when Maya had
been closest to him, but she remembered them poorly, as if by flashes of
lightning—moments of electric intensity, separated by long stretches of pure
darkness. And the account in this particular book sparked no feelings of
recognition in her at all, despite that fact that she was mentioned fairly
frequently in the text. A kind of historical jamais vu.
Coyote was sleeping on the couch, and he groaned in some dream of
his own, and woke and looked around to find the source of the light. He padded
behind her on the way to the bathroom, looked over her shoulder. “Ah,” he said
meaningfully. “They say a lot about him.” And he went down the hall.
When he came back Maya said, “I suppose you know better.”
“I know some things about Frank that they don’t, that’s for sure.”
Maya stared at him. “Don’t tell me. You were in Nicosia too.” Then
she remembered reading that, somewhere.
“I was, now you mention it.”
He sat down heavily on his couch, stared at the floor. “I saw
Frank that night, throwing bricks through windows. He started that riot
single-handed.”
He looked up, met her stare. “He was speaking to Selim el-Hayil in
the apex park, about a half hour before John was attacked. You figure it out
for yourself.”
Maya clenched her teeth and stared at the lectern, ignoring him.
He stretched out on the couch and began to snore.
It was old news, really. And as Zeyk had made clear, no one would
ever untangle that knot, no matter what they had seen or thought they
remembered seeing. No one could be sure of anything that far in the past, not
even of their own memories, which shifted subtly at every rehearsal. The only
memories one could trust were those unbidden eruptions from the depths, the
memoires involun-taires, which were so vivid they had to be true—but often
concerned unimportant events. No. Coyote’s was just one more unreliable account
among all the rest.
When the words of the text on the screen started registering
again, she read on.
Chalmers’s efforts to stop the outbreak of violence in 2061 were
unsuccessful because in the end he was simply ignorant of the full extent of
the problem. Like most of the rest of the First Hundred, he could never quite
imagine the actual population of Mars in the 2050s, which was well over a
million; and while he thought that the resistance was led and coordinated by
Arkady Bogdanov, because he knew him, he was unaware of the influence of Oskar
Schnelling in Korolyov, or of the widespread Red movements such as Free
Elysium, or the unnamed disappeareds who left the established settlements by
the hundreds. Through ignorance and a failure of the imagination, he addressed
only a small fraction of the problem.
Maya pulled back, stretched, looked over at Coyote. Was that
really true? She tried to think back into those years, to remember. Frank had
been aware, hadn’t he? “Playing with needles when the roots are sick.” Hadn’t
Frank said that to her, sometime in that period?
She couldn’t remember. Playing with needles when the roots are
sick. The statement hung there, separated from anything else, from any context
that could give it meaning. But she had the very strong impression that Frank
had been aware that there was a huge unseen pool of resentment and resistance
out there; no one had been more aware of it, in fact! How could this writer
have missed that! For that matter how could any historian, sitting in a chair
and sifting through the records, ever know what they had known, ever capture
the way it had felt at the time, the fractured kaleidoscopic nature of the
daily crisis? Each moment of the storm they had struggled... .
She tried to remember Frank’s face, and there came to her an image
of him, hunched over miserably at a cafe table, a white coffee cup handle
spinning under his feet; and she had broken the coffee cup; but why? She
couldn’t remember. She clicked forward through the book on the screen, flying through
months with every paragraph, the dry analysis utterly divorced from anything
like what she could recall. Then a sentence caught her eye, and she read on as
if a hand were at her throat, forcing her to:
Ever after their first liaison in Antarctica, Toitovna had a hold
over Chalmers that he never broke, no matter how much it damaged his own plans.
Thus when he returned from Elysium in the final month before the Unrest broke
out, Toitovna met him in Burroughs, and they stayed together for a week, during
which it was clear to others they were fighting; Chalmers wanted to stay in
Burroughs, where the conflict was at a crisis; Toitovna wanted him to return to
Sheffield. One night he showed up in one of the cafes by the canal so angry and
distraught that the waiters were afraid, and when Toitovna appeared, they
expected him to explode. But he only sat there as she reminded him of every
connection they had ever had, every debt owed, all their past together, such as
it was; and finally he bowed to her wishes, and returned to Sheffield, where he
was unable to control the growing violence in Elysium and Burroughs. And so the
revolution came.
Maya stared at the screen. It was wrong, wrong, wrong, all
wrong—nothing like that had happened! A liaison in Antarctica? No, never!
But she had once confronted him at some restaurant... no doubt it
was possible they had been observed ... so hard to say. But this book was
stupid—stuffed with unwarranted speculation— not history at all. Or maybe all
the histories would be like that, if one had really been there and so could
judge them properly. All lies. She tried to call it back—she clenched her
teeth, and stiffened, and her fingers curled as if she could dig out thoughts
with them. But it was like clawing at rock. And now when she tried to remember
that particular confrontation in a cafe, no visual image at all came into her
mind; the phrases from the book overlaid them, She reminded him of every
connection they had ever had no! Nol A figure hunched at a table, there it was,
the image itself—and it finally looked up at her—
But it was the youthful face from her kitchen wall in Odessa.
She groaned; she began to cry; she chewed at her clenched fists
and wept.
“You okay?” Coyote said blearily from the couch.
“No.”
“Find something?”
“No.”
Frank was being erased by books. And by time. The years had
passed, and for her, even for her, Frank Chalmers was becoming nothing but one
tiny historical figure among many others, standing out there like a person seen
through the wrong end of the telescope. A name in a book. Someone to read
about, along with Bismarck, Talleyrand, Machiavelli. And her Frank ... gone.
She spent a few hours of most days going over the Praxis reports
with Art, trying to find patterns and comprehend them. They were getting such
great amounts of data through Praxis that they had the reverse of the problem
they had had in the pre-’61 crisis—not too little information, but too much.
Every day the screws tightened in a multitude of crises, and Maya often ended
up near despair. Several countries attending the UN, all of them Consolidated
or Subarashii clients, requested that the World Court be abolished, as its
functions were redundant. Most of the metanats immediately declared their
support for this idea, and as the World Court had long ago begun as an agency
of the UN, there were those who claimed the action would be legal and have some
historical reason for being—but the first result was to disrupt some of the
arbitrations in process, leading to fighting in Ukraine and Greece. “Who’s
responsible?” Maya exclaimed to Art. “Is there anyone doing this stuff?”
“Of course. Some metanats have presidents, and they all have
executive boards, and they get together and talk things over, and decide what
orders to give. It’s like Fort and the eighteen immortals in Praxis, although
Praxis is more democratic than most. And then the metanat boards appoint the
executive committee for the Transitional Authority, and the Authority makes
some local decisions, and I could give you their names, but I don’t think
they’re as powerful as the folks back home.”
“Never mind.” Of course people were responsible. But no one was in
control. It was the same on both sides, no doubt. Certainly it was true in the
resistance. Sabotage, against the Vastitas ocean platforms particularly, was
now pandemic, and she knew whose idea that was. She talked with Nadia about
getting in touch with Ann, but Nadia just shook her head. “Not a chance. I
haven’t been able to talk to Ann since Dorsa Brevia. She’s one of the most radical
Reds there is.” “As always.”
“Well, I don’t think she used to be. But it doesn’t matter now.”
Maya shook her head and went back to work. She spent more and more time working
with Nirgal, taking his instruction and advising him in turn. More than ever he
was her best contact among the young, and the most powerful, and a moderate to
boot; he wanted to wait for a trigger and then organize a concerted action just
like she did, and this of course was one of the reasons she gravitated to him.
But it was also just a matter of his character, his warmth and high spirits,
his regard for her. He couldn’t have been more different than Jackie, although
Maya knew the two of them had a very close complex relationship, going right
back into their childhoods. But they appeared to be estranged these days, which
she was not at all unhappy to see, and very much at odds politically. Jackie,
like Nirgal, was a charismatic leader, and recruiting big new crowds into her
“Boonean” wing of Marsfirst^ which advocated immediate action, and thus aligned
her much more with Dao than Nirgal, politically in any case. Maya did
everything she could to back Nirgal in this split among the natives: in every
meeting she argued for policies and actions that were green, moderate,
nonviolent, and coordinated from a center. But she could see that the majority
of the newly politicized natives in the cities were attracted to Jackie and
Marsfirst, which was generally Red, radical, violent, and anarchic—or so she
saw it. And the increasing strikes, demonstrations, street fights, sabotage,
and ecotage tended to support her analysis.
And it wasn’t just most of the new native recruits going to
Jackie, but also great numbers of disaffected emigrants, the most recent
arrivals. This tendency baffled her, and she complained about it to Art one day
after they had gone through the Praxis report.
“Well,” he said diplomatically, “it’s good to have as many
emigrants on our side as possible.”
Of course when he wasn’t on-line to Earth he was spending much of
his time shuttling around between resistance groups trying to get them to
agree, so this was his party line. “But why are they joining her?” Maya
demanded.
“Well...” Art said, waggling a hand, “you know, these emigrants
arrive, and some of them hear about the demonstrations, or they see one, and
they ask around and hear stories, and some hear that if they go out and join in
a demonstration then the natives will really like them for it, you know? Some
of the young native women maybe, who they hear can be friendly, right? Very
friendly. So they go out there thinking that maybe if they help out, one of
these big girls will take them home at the end of the day.”
“Come on,” Maya said.
“Well, you know,” Art said. “It does happen to some of them.”
“And so of course our Jackie gets all the new recruits.”
“Well, I’m not sure it isn’t a factor for Nirgal as well. And I
don’t know that people are making that much of a party distinction between
them. That’s a fine point, something you’re more aware of than them.”
“Hmm.”
She remembered Michel, telling her it was important to argue for
what she loved, as well as against what she hated. And she loved Nirgal, it was
true. He was a wonderful young man, the finest native of them all. Certainly it
was not right to scorn those kinds of motivations, that erotic energy taking
people into the streets... . Still, if only people would be more sensible.
Jackie was doing her damnedest to lead them into yet another spastic unplanned
revolt, and the results of that could be disastrous.
“It’s part of why people follow you too, Maya.”
“What?”
“You heard me.”
“Come on. Don’t be a fool.”
Although it was nice to think so. Perhaps she could extend the
struggle for control to that level too. Although she would be at a
disadvantage. Create a party of the old. Well, in effect that’s what they were
already. That had been her whole idea, back in Sabi-shii—that the issei would
take over the resistance, and guide it on the right course. And a good number
of them had devoted many years of their life to doing just that. But in fact it
hadn’t worked. They were outnumbered. And the new majority was a new species,
with new minds of their own. The issei could only ride the tiger. Do the best
they could. She sighed.
“Tired?”
“Exhausted. This work is going to kill me.”
“Get some rest.”
“Sometimes when I talk to these people I feel like such a cautious
conservative coward of a naysayer. Always don’t do this, don’t do that. I get
so sick of it. I wonder sometimes if Jackie isn’t right.”
“Are you kidding?” Art said, eyes wide. “You’re the one holding
this show together, Maya. You and Nadia and Nirgal. And me. But you’re the one
with the, the aura.” The reputation as a murderer, he meant. “You’re just
tired. Get some rest. It’s almost the timeslip.”
Michel woke her up some other night: on the other side of the
planet Armscor security units supposedly integrated into Subara-shii had taken
control of the elevator from regular Subarashii police, and .in the hour of
uncertainty a group of Marsfirsters had tried to seize the new Socket outside
Sheffield. The attempt had failed, and most of the assault group had been
killed, and Subarashii had ended up back in control of Sheffield and Clarke and
everything in between, and most of Tharsis as well. Now it was late afternoon
there, and a huge crowd had appeared on the streets of Sheffield to demonstrate
against the violence, or the takeover, it was impossible to say; it had no
purpose; groggily Maya watched with Michel as police units in walkers and
helmets cut the demonstrating groups into segments, and drove them off with
tear gas and rubber batons. “Fools!” Maya cried. “Why are they doing this!
They’ll bring down the whole Terran military on our heads!”
“It looks like they’re dispersing,” Michel said as he stared into
the little screen. “Who knows, Maya. Images like this may galvanize people.
They win this battle, but they lose support everywhere.”
Maya splayed out over a couch in front of the screen, not yet
awake enough to think. “Maybe,” she said. “But it’s going to be harder than ever
to hold people back as long as Sax wants.”
Michel waved this off, face to the screen. “How long can he expect
you to manage that?”
“I don’t know.”
They watched as the Mangalavid reporters described the riots as
terrorist-sponsored violence. Maya groaned. Spencer was at another AI screen,
talking to Nanao in Sabishii. “Oxygen is rising so fast, there has to be
something out there without suicide genes.
Carbon dioxide levels? Yeah, dropping fast as well. ... A bunch of
really good carbon-fixing bacteria out there, proliferating like a weed. I’ve
asked Sax about it and he just blinks... . Yeah, he’s as out of control as Ann.
And she’s out there sabotaging every project she can get her hands on.”
When Spencer got off, Maya said to him, “Just how long is Sax going
to want us to hold out?”
Spencer shrugged. “Until we get something he thinks is a trigger,
I guess. Or a coherent strategy. But if we can’t stop the Reds and the
Marsfirsters, it won’t matter what Sax wants.”
So the weeks crept by. A campaign of regular street demonstrations
began in Sheffield and South Fossa. Maya thought this would only bring more
security down on them, but Art argued in their favor. “We’ve got to let the
Transitional Authority know how widespread the resistance is, so that when the moment
comes, they don’t try to crush us out of ignorance, see what I mean? At this
point we need them to feel disliked and outnumbered. Hell, mass numbers of
people in the streets are about the only thing that scare governments, if you
ask me.”
And whether Maya agreed or not, there was nothing she could do
about it; every day passed and she could only work as hard as possible,
traveling and meeting group after group, while inside her body her muscles were
turning to wire with the tension, and she could barely sleep at night, nothing
more than an exhausted hour or two near dawn.
One morning in the northern spring of M-52, year 2127, she woke
feeling more refreshed than usual. Michel was still sleeping, and she dressed
and went out alone, and walked across the great central promenade to the cafes
by the canal. This was the wonderful thing about Burroughs; despite tightened
security at the gates and stations, one could still walk around freely inside
the city at some hours, and among the throngs there was very little danger of
being picked out. So she sat and drank coffee and ate pastries and looked at
the low gray clouds rolling overhead, down the slope of Syrtis and toward the
dike to the east. Air circulation under the tent was high, to give some kinetic
match to the visuals overhead. That was strange, that; how used she had gotten
to the sky visuals not matching the feel of the wind under the tents. The long
slender arched tube of the bridge from Ellis Butte to Hunt Mesa was filled with
the colorful ant-figures of people, hurrying about their morning’s work. Living
normal lives; abruptly she got up and paid her bill, and went for a long walk
herself. She strolled along the rows of white Bareiss columns, up through
Princess Park to the new tents, around the pingo hills where the currently
fashionable apartments were located. Here in the high western district one
could look back down and see the whole spread of the city, the trees and
rooftops split by the promenade and its canals, the mesas huge and widely spaced,
resembling vast cathedrals. Their sheer rock sides’were cracked and furrowed,
horizontal lines of twinkling windows the only clue that they were hollowed out
inside, each of them a city of its own, a little world, living together on the
red sand plain, under the immense invisible tent, connected by soaring
footbridges that glinted like the visible sheen of soap bubbles. Ah, Burroughs!
So she walked back with the clouds, through narrow streets walled
by apartment blocks and gardens, to Hunt Mesa and their home under the dance
studio. Michel and Spencer were out, and for a long time she just stood in the
window and looked at the clouds racing over the city, trying to do Michel’s job
for him, to lasso her moods and pull them back to some kind of stable center.
From the ceiling came little uncoordinated thump thump thumps. Another class
beginning. Then the thumps were in the hall before the door, and there was a
hard knock. She went to answer it, heart pounding like the ceiling.
It was Jackie and Antar, and Art and Nirgal, and Rachel and Frantz
and the rest of the Zygote ectogenes, pouring in and talking at the speed of
sound, so that she couldn’t quite understand them. She greeted them as
cordially as she could, given Jackie’s presence among them, and then collected
herself and removed all hatred from her eyes, and talked with all of them, even
Jackie, about their plans. They had come to Burroughs to help organize a
demonstration down in the canal park. Word had been sent out through the cells,
and they were hoping that a lot of the unaligned citizenry would join them as
well. “I hope it doesn’t precipitate any crackdowns,” Maya said.
Jackie smiled at her, in triumph of course. “Remember, you can
never go back,” she said.
Maya rolled her eyes and went to put water on the stove, trying to
quell her bitterness. They would meet with all the cell leaders in the city,
and Jackie would take over the meeting, and exhort them to: immediate
rebellion, no sense or strategy involved. And there was nothing Maya could do about
it—the time for beating the shit out of her had passed, unfortunately.
So she went around taking off people’s coats and giving them
bananas and kicking their feet off the couch cushions, feeling like a dinosaur
among the mammals, a dinosaur in a new climate, among quick hot creatures who
disdained her gallumphing around, who dodged her slow blows and ran end runs
behind her dragging tail.
Art came slouching out to help her with the teacups, scruffy and
relaxed as always. She asked him what he’d heard from Fort, and he gave her the
daily report from Earth. Subarashii and Consolidated were under attack by
fundamentalist armies, in what looked like a fundamentalist alliance, although
that was an illusion as the Christian and Muslim fundamentalists hated each
other, and despised the fundamentalist Hindus. The big metanats had used the
new UN to give warning that they would protect their interests with appropriate
force. Praxis and Amexx and Switzerland had urged use of the World Court, and
India had done so, but no one else. Michel said, “At least they’re still afraid
of the World Court.” But to Maya it looked like the metanatricide was shifting
to a war between the well-to-do and the “mortals,” which could be much more
explosive—total war, rather than decapitations.
She and Art talked the situation over as they served the people in
the apartment tea. Spy or not, Art knew Terra, and had an incisive political
judgment, which she found helpful. He was like a mellow Frank. Was that right?
Somehow she was reminded of Frank, and though she couldn’t pin down why, she
was obscurely pleased. No one else could have seen any resemblance in this
lumbering sly man, it was her perception and hers alone.
Then more people began to crowd into the apartment, cell leaders
and visitors from out of town. Maya sat at the back and listened as Jackie
spoke to them. Everyone in the resistance, Maya thought as she listened to her,
was in it for themselves. The way Jackie used her grandfather as a symbol,
waving him like a flag to rally her troops, was sickening. It wasn’t John who
had gotten her her followers, but her white scoop blouse, the slut. No wonder
Nirgal was estranged from her.
Now she exhorted them with her usual incendiary message,
enthusiastically advocating immediate rebellion, no matter what the agreed-upon
strategy was. And to these so-called Booneans, Maya was nothing more than an
old paramour of the great man, or perhaps the reason he had been killed: a
fossil odalisque, a historical embarrassment, an object of men’s desire, like
Helen of Troy called back by Faustus, insubstantial and weird. Ach, it was
maddening! But she kept a calm face, and got up and walked in and out of the
kitchen with her head averted, doing what paramours did, keeping people
comfortable and fed. Nothing more to be done, at this point.
She stood in the kitchen, staring out the window at the rooftops
below. She had lost whatever influence she had ever had on the resistance. The
whole thing was going to come unraveled before Sax or any of the rest of them
who counted were ready. Jackie was ranting on cheerily in the living room,
organizing a demonstration that might get ten thousand people into the park,
maybe fifty, who could say? And if security responded with tear gas and rubber
bullets and truncheons, people would get hurt, some killed; killed for no
strategic purpose, people who might have lived a thousand years. And still
Jackie went on, bright and enthusiastic, burning like a flame. Overhead the sun
gleamed through a break in the clouds, bright silver, ominously large. Art came
into the kitchen and sat at the table, switching on his AI and sticking his
face into it. “Got a note from home Praxis on the wrist.” He read the screen,
nose practically touching it.
“Are you nearsighted?” Maya said irritably.
“I don’t think so ... oh man. Ka boom. Is Spencer out there? Get
Spencer in here.”
Maya went to the doorway and signaled Spencer, who came in.-Jackie
ignored the disturbance and went on talking. Spencer sat down at the kitchen
table beside Art, who was. now sitting back, round-eyed and round-mouthed.
Spencer read for five seconds and sat back in his chair, looked over at Maya
with a strange expression. “This is it!” he said.
“What?”
“The trigger.”
Maya went to him and stood reading over his shoulder.
She held on to him, feeling a bizarre sensation of weightlessness.
No more staving off the avalanche. She had done her job, she had just barely
done it. At the very moment of failure, fate had turned.
Nirgal came into the kitchen to ask what was going on, attracted
by something in their low voices. Art told him and his eyes lit, he couldn’t
conceal his excitement. He turned to Maya and said, “It’s true?”
She could have kissed him for that. Instead she nodded, not
trusting herself to speak, and went to the doorway to the living room. Jackie
was still in the midst of her exhortation, and it gave Maya the greatest of
pleasure to interrupt her. “The demonstration’s off.”
“What do you mean?” Jackie said, startled and annoyed. “Why?”
“Because we’re having a revolution instead.”
PART
10
----------
----Phase Change
----------
They were pelican surfing when apprentices jumping up and down on
the beach alerted them that something was wrong. They flew back in to the beach
and stuck their landings on the wet sand, and got the news. An hour later they
were up to the airport, and soon after that taking off in a little Skunkworks
space plane called the Gollum. They headed south, and when they reached 50,000
feet they were somewhere over Panama, and the pilot tilted it up and kicked in
the rockets, and they were pressed back in their big g chairs for a few
minutes. The three passengers were in cockpit seats behind the pilot and
copilot, and out their windows they could see the exterior skin of the plane, which
looked like pewter, begin to glow, and then quickly turn a vivid glowing yellow
with a touch of bronze to it, brighter and brighter until it looked as if they
were Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego, sitting together in the fiery furnace and
coming to no harm.
When the skin lost some of its glow, and the pilot leveled them
off, they were about eighty miles above the Earth, and looking down on the
Amazon, and the beautiful spinal curve of the Andes. As they flew south one of
the passengers, a geologist, told the other two more about the situation.
“The West Antarctic ice sheet was resting on bedrock that is below
sea level. It’s continental land, though, not ocean bottom, and under West
Antarctica it’s a kind of basin and range zone, very geothermally active.”
“West Antarctica?” Fort asked, squinting.
“That’s the smaller half, with the peninsula sticking up toward
South America, and the Ross ice shelf. The west ice sheet is between the
mountains of the peninsula and the Transantarctic Mountains, in the middle of
the continent. Here, look, I brought a globe.” He pulled from his pocket an
inflatable globe, a child’s toy, and blew it up and passed it around the
cockpit.
“So, the western ice sheet, there, was resting on bedrock below
sea level. But the land down there is warm, and there are some under-ice
volcanoes down there, and so the ice on the bottom gets melted a bit. This
water mixes with sediments from the volcanoes, and forms a substance called
till. It has a consistency kind of like toothpaste. Where the ice is riding
over this till it moves faster than usual, so within the west ice sheet there
were ice streams, like fast glaciers with their banks made of slower ice. Ice
Stream B ran two meters a day, for instance, while the ice around it moved two
meters a year. And B was fifty kilometers across, and a kilometer deep. So that
was one hell of a river, running off with about half a dozen other ice streams
into the Ross ice shelf.” He indicated these invisible streams with a
fingertip.
“Now, where the ice streams and the ice sheet in general came off
the bedrock, and started floating in the Ross Sea—that was called the grounding
line.”
“Ah,” said one of Fort’s friends. “Global warming?”
The geologist shook his head. “Our global warming has had very
little effect on all this. It’s raised temperatures and sea levels a little
bit, but if that was all that was happening it wouldn’t make much difference
here. The problem is we’re still in the interglacial warming that began at the
end of the last Ice Age, and that warming sends what we call a thermal pulse
down through the polar ice sheets. That pulse has been moving down for eight
thousand years. And the grounding line of the west ice sheet has been moving
inland for eight thousand years. And now one of the under-ice volcanoes down
there is erupting. A major eruption. About three months old now. The grounding
line had already started to retreat at an accelerated rate some years ago, and
it was very close to the volcano that’s erupted. It looks like the eruption has
brought the grounding line right to the volcano, and now ocean water is running
between the ice sheet and the bedrock, right into an active eruption. And so
the ice sheet is breaking up. Lifting up, sliding out into the Ross Sea, and
being carried away by currents.”
His listeners stared at the little inflatable globe. By this time
they were over Patagonia. The geologist answered their questions, pointing out
features on the globe as he did. This kind of thing had happened before, he
told them, and more than once. West Antarctica had been ocean, dry land, or ice
sheet, many times in the millions of years since tectonic movement had
deposited that continent in that position. And there appeared to be several
unstable points in the long-term temperature changes—”instability triggers,” he
called them, causing massive changes in a matter of years. “This climatological
stuff is practically instantaneous as far as geologists are concerned. Like,
there’s good evidence in the Greenland ice sheet that one time we went from
glacial to interglacial in three years.” The geologist shook his head.
“And these ice sheet breakups?” Fort asked.
“Well, we think they might go typically in a couple hundred years,
which is still very fast, mind you. A trigger event. But this time the volcano
eruption makes it much worse. Hey look, there’s the Banana Belt.”
He pointed down, and across Drake Strait they saw a narrow icy
mountainous peninsula, pointing in the same direction as the coccyx of Tierra
del Fuego.
The pilot banked to the right, then more gently to the left,
beginning a wide lazy turn. Below them as they stared down was the familiar
image of Antarctica as seen in satellite photos, but everything was now
brilliantly colored and articulated: the cobalt blue of the ocean, the daisy chain
of cyclonic cloud systems spinning away to the north, the textured sheen of the
sun on the water, the great gleaming mass of the ice, and the flotillas of tiny
icebergs, so white in the blue.
But the familiar Q shape of the continent was now strangely
mottled in the area behind the comma of the Antarctic peninsula, with gaping
blue-black cracks in the white. And the Ross Sea was even more fractured, by
long ocean-blue fjords, and a radial pattern of turquoise-blue cracks; and
offshore from the Ross Sea, floating up toward the South Pacific, were some
tabular icebergs that were like pieces of the continent itself, sailing away.
The biggest one looked to be about the same size as New Zealand’s South Island,
or even bigger.
After they had pointed out the biggest tabular bergs to each
other, and the various features of the broken and reduced western ice sheet
(the geologist indicated where he thought the volcano under the ice was, but it
looked no different from the rest of the sheet), they simply sat in their seats
and watched.
“That’s the Ronne ice shelf, there,” the geologist said after a
while, “and the Weddell Sea. Yeah, there’s some slippage down into it too....
Up there’s where McMurdo used to be, on the far side of the Ross ice shelf. Ice
was pushed across the bay and ran up over the settlement.”
The pilot started a second lap around the continent.
Fort said, “Now say again what effect this will have?”
“Well, theoretical models have world sea levels rising about six
meters.”
“Six meters!”
“Well, it will take a few years for the full rise, but it’s
definitely started. This catastrophic break will raise sea levels about two or
three meters, in a matter of weeks. What’s left of the sheet will be afloat in
a matter of months, or a few years at most, and that will add another three
meters.”
“How could it raise the whole ocean that much?”
“It’s a lot of ice.”
“It can’t be that much ice!”
“Yes it can. That’s most of the fresh water in the world, right
down there under us. Just be thankful the East Antarctic ice sheet is nice and
stable. If it were to slide off, sea levels would rise sixty meters.”
“Six meters is plenty,” Fort said.
They finished another lap. The pilot said, “We should be getting
back.”
“That’s it for every beach in the world,” Fort said, pulling his
face back from the window. Then: “I guess we’d better go get our stuff.”
When the Second Martian revolution began, Nadia was in
the upper canyon of Shalbatana Vallis, north of Marineris. In a sense one could
say that she started it.
She had left South Fossa temporarily to oversee the Shalbatana
closure, which was similar to those over Nirgal Vallis and the east Hellas
valleys: a long tent roof over a temperate ecology, with a stream running down
the canyon floor, in this case supplied by pumping from the Lewis aquifer, 170
kilometers to the south. Shalbatana was a long series of lazy S’s, so that the
valley floor looked very picturesque, but the construction of the roof had been
complicated.
Nevertheless Nadia had directed the project with only one small
part of her attention, the rest being focused on the cascading developments on
Earth. She was in daily communication with her group in South Fossa, and with
Art and Nirgal in Burroughs, and they kept her informed of all the latest news.
She was particularly interested in the activities of the World Court, which was
trying to establish itself as an arbitrator in the growing conflict of the
Su-barashii metanats and the Group of Eleven against Praxis, Switzerland, and
the developing China-India alliance—trying to function, as Art had put it, “as
a sort of world court.” That effort had looked doomed when the fundamentalist
riots began and the metanats prepared to defend themselves; and Nadia had
concluded unhappily that things on Earth were about to spiral down into chaos
again.
But all these crises were immediately cast into insignificance
when Sax called to tell her of the collapse of the West Antarctic ice sheet.
She had taken his call at her desk in one of the construction trailers, and now
she stared at his little face on the screen. “What do you mean, collapsed?”
“It’s lifted off the bedrock. There’s a volcano erupting. It’s
being broken up by ocean currents.”
The video image he was sending cut to Punta Arena, a Chilean
harbor town with its docks gone and its streets awash; then it cut again to
Port Elizabeth in Azania, where the situation was much the same.
“How fast is it?” Nadia said. “Is it a tidal wave?”
“No. More like a very high tide. That will never go away.”
“So enough time to evacuate,” Nadia said, “but not enough time to
build anything. And you say six meters!”
“But only over the next few ... no one is sure how long. I’ve seen
estimates that as much as a quarter of the Terran population will be—affected.”
“I believe it. Oh, Sax ...”
A worldwide stampede to higher ground. Nadia stared at the screen,
feeling stunned as the scale of the catastrophe became clearer to her. Coastal
cities would be awash. Six meters! She found it very hard to imagine that any
possible ice mass could be so large as to raise the sea level of all Earth’s
oceans by even as much as one meter—but six! It was shocking proof, if one
needed it, that the Earth was not so big after all. Or else that the West
Antarctic ice sheet was huge. Well, it had covered about a third of a
continent, and was, the reports said, some three kilometers thick. That was a
lot of ice. Sax was saying something about the East Antarctic ice sheet, which
apparently was not threatened. She shook her head to clear it of this
nattering, concentrated on the news. Bangladesh would have to be entirely
evacuated; that was three hundred million people, not to mention the other
coastal cities of India, like Calcutta, Madras, Bombay. Then London,
Copenhagen, Istanbul, Amsterdam, New York, Los Angeles, New Orleans, Miami,
Rio, Buenos Aires, Sydney, Melbourne, Singapore, Hong Kong, Manila, Djakarta,
Tokyo ... and those were only the big ones. A lot of people lived on the coast,
in a world already severely stressed by overpopulation and declining resources.
And now all kinds of basic necessities were being drowned by salt water.
“Sax,” she said, “we should be helping them. Not just...” . “There
is not that much we can do. And we can do that best if we’re free. First one,
then the other.”
“You promise?”
“Yes,” he said, looking surprised. “I mean—I’ll do what I can.”
“That’s what I’m asking.” She thought it over. “You’ve got
everything ready at your end?”
“Yes. We want to start with missile strikes against all
surveillance and weapons satellites.”
“What about Kasei Vallis?”
“I’m dealing with it.”
“When do you want to start?”
“How about tomorrow?”
“Tomorrow!”
“I have to deal with Kasei very soon. Conditions are good right
now.”
“What are you going to do?”
“Let’s try to launch tomorrow. No sense wasting time.”
“My God,” Nadia said, thinking hard. “We’re about to go behind the
sun?”
“Yes.”
This position vis-a-vis Earth was mostly a symbolic matter these
days, as communications were assured by a great number of asteroid relays; but
it did mean that it would take months for even the fastest shuttles to get from
Earth to Mars.
Nadia took a deep breath, let it out. She said, “Let’s go, then.”
“I was hoping you would say that. I’ll call them in Burroughs and
give them the word.”
“We’ll meet in Underbill?” This was their current rendezvous point
in case of emergency; Sax was in a refuge in Da Vinci Crater where a lot of his
missile silos were located, so both of them could get to Underbill in a day.
“Yes,” he said. “Tomorrow.” And he was gone.
And so she had started a revolution.
* * *
She found a news program running the satellite photo of Antarctic,
and watched it in a kind of daze. Little voices on the screen chattered at
speed, one claiming that the disaster was an act of ecotage perpetrated by
ecoteurs from Praxis, who supposedly had drilled holes in the ice sheet and set
hydrogen bombs down on the Antarctic bedrock. “Still at it!” she cried,
disgusted. No other news shows made this assertion, or refuted it—it was just
part of the chaos, no doubt, swept away by all the other accounts of the flood.
But the metanatricide was still on. And they were part of it.
All existence immediately reduced itself to that, in a way sharply
reminiscent of ‘61. She felt her stomach knotting as of old, tightening past
any usual levels of tension, into an iron walnut at the center of her being,
painful and constricting. She had been taking medicine recently to prevent
ulcers, but it was woefully inadequate against this kind of assault. Come on,
she told herself. Be calm. This is the moment. You’ve expected it, you’ve
worked on it. You’ve laid the groundwork for it. Now came the chaos. At the
heart of any phase change there was a zone of cascading recombinant chaos. But
there were methods to read it, to deal with it.
She crossed the little mobile habitat, and glanced briefly down at
the idyllic beauty of the canyon floor of Shalbatana, with its pebble-pink
stream and the new trees, including strings of cotton-wood on the banks and
islands. It was possible, if things went drastically wrong, that no one would
ever inhabit Shalbatana Vallis, that it would remain an empty bubble world
until mudstorms caved the roof in, or something in the mesocosmic ecology went
awry. Well—
She shrugged and woke her crew, and told them to get ready to
leave for Underbill. She told them why, and as they were all part of the
resistance in one way or another, they cheered.
It was just after dawn, on what was looking to be a warm spring
day, the kind that had allowed them to work in loose walkers and hoods and
facemasks, with only the insulated hard boots to remind Nadia of the bulky
clothing of the early years. Friday, Ls 101, 2 July 2, M-year 52, Terran date
(she checked her wristpad) October 12, 2127. Somewhere near the hundredth
anniversary of their arrival, though it was a date no one seemed to be
celebrating. A hundred years! It was a bizarre thought.
Another July revolution, then, and another October revolution too.
A decade past the bicentennial of the Bolshevik revolution, she seemed to
remember. Which was another strange thought. Well, but they too had tried. All
the revolutionaries, all through history. Mostly desperate peasants, fighting
for their children’s lives. As in her Russia. So many in that bitter twentieth
century, risking all to make a better life, and even so it had led to disaster.
It was frightening—as if history were a series of human wave assaults on
misery, failing time after time.
But the Russian in her, the cerebellum Siberian, decided to take
the October date as a good auspice. Or a reminder of what not to do, if nothing
else—along with ‘61. She could, in her Siberian mind, dedicate this time to all
of them: to the heroic suffering of the Soviet catastrophe, to all her friends
dead in ‘61, to Arkady and Alex and Sasha and Roald and Janet and Evgenia and
Samantha, all of whom still haunted her dreams and her attenuated insomniac
memories, spinning like electrons around the iron walnut inside her, warning
her not to screw it up, to get it right this time, to redeem the meanings of
their lives and their deaths. She remembered someone saying to her, “Next time
you have a revolution you’d better try some other way.”
And now they were. But there were Marsfirst guerrilla units under
Kasei’s command, out of contact with the headquarters in Burroughs, as well as
a thousand other factors coming to Dear, most of them completely out of her
control. Cascading recombinant chaos. So how different was it going to be?
She got her crew into rovers and over to the little piste station,
some kilometers to the north of them. From there they rode in a freight train,
on a mobile piste laid for the Shalbatana job, on to the main
Sheffield-Burroughs line. Both those cities were metanat strongholds, and Nadia
worried that they would take pains to secure the piste linking them. In that
sense Underbill was strategically important, as occupying it would cut the
piste. But for that very reason she wanted to get away from Underbill, and off
the piste system entirely. She wanted to get into the air, as she had in ‘61—
all the instincts learned in those few months were trying to take over again,
as if sixty-six years had not passed. And those instincts told her to hide.
As they glided southwest over the desert, shooting the gap between
Ophir and Juventae chasmas, she kept her wristpad linked to Sax’s headquarters
in Da Vinci Crater. Sax’s team of technicians were trying to imitate his dry
style, but it was obvious that they were just as excited as her young
construction crew. About five of them got on the wrist at once to tell her that
they had set off a barrage of the surface-to-space missiles which Sax had
arranged to have placed in hidden equatorial silos over the past decade, and
this barrage had gone off like a fireworks display, and had knocked out all of
the orbiting metanat weapons platforms that they knew of, and many of their
communications satellites as well. “We got eighty percent of them in the first
wave! —We sent up our own communications satellites! —Now we’re dealing with
them on a case-by-case basis—”
Nadia interrupted. “Are your satellites working?”
“We think they’re fine! We can only tell for sure after a full
test, and everyone’s kind of busy right now.”
“Let’s try one out now. And some of you make that a priority, you
understand? We need a redundant system, a very redundant system.”
She clicked off and tapped out one of the frequency and encryption
codes Sax had given her. A few seconds later she was talking to Zeyk, who was
in Odessa, helping to coordinate activities in the Hellas Basin. Everything
there was going according to plan so far, he said; of course they were only a
few hours into it, but it looked like- Michel and Maya’s organizing there had
paid off, because all the cell members in Odessa had poured into the streets
and told people what was happening, sparking a spontaneous mass work stoppage
and demonstration. They were in the process of closing down the train station,
and occupying the corniche and most other public spaces, in a strike that
looked like it would soon be a takeover. The Transitional Authority personnel
in the city were retreating to the train station or the physical plant, as Zeyk
had hoped they would. “When most of them are inside we’re going to override the
plant’s AI, and then it’ll become a jail holding them. We’ve got control of the
backup life-support systems for the town, so there’s very little they can do,
except maybe blow themselves up, but we don’t think they’ll do that. A lot of
the UNTA people here are Syrians under Niazi, and I’m talking to Rashid while
we try to disable the physical plant from the outside, just to make sure no one
in there can decide to become a martyr.”
“I don’t think there will be too many martyrs to the
metana-tionals,” Nadia said.
“I hope not, but you never can tell. So far so good here, though.
And elsewhere around Hellas it’s been even easier—the security
forces were minimal, and most of the population are natives or radicalized
emigrants, and they’ve simply been surrounding security and daring them to do
anything violent. It has resulted either in a standoff, or else in the security
forces being disarmed. Dao and Harmakhis-Reull have both declared themselves
free canyons, and invited anyone who wants to take refuge there if they need
it.”
“Good!”
Zeyk heard the surprise in her voice, and warned, “I don’t think it
will be as easy in Burroughs and Sheffield. And we need to shut down the
elevator, so they don’t start shooting at us from Clarke.”
“At least Clarke is stuck over Tharsis.”
“True. But it sure would be nice to seize that thing, and not have
the elevator come crashing down again.”
“I know. I heard the Reds have been working with Sax on a plan for
seizure.”
“Allah preserve us. I must be off, Nadia. Tell Sax that the
programs for the plant worked perfectly. And listen, we should come up and join
you in the north, I think. If we can secure Hellas and Elysium quickly, it will
help our chances with Burroughs and Sheffield.”
So Hellas was going as planned. Arid just as important, or more,
they were still in communication with each other. This was critical; among all
the nightmare images of ‘61, scenes illuminated in her memory by lightning
bolts of fear or pain, few were worse than the feeling of sheer helplessness
that had struck her when their communication system had crashed. After that
nothing they did had mattered, they had been like insects with their antennae
ripped off, stumbling around ineffectually. So in the last few years Nadia had
repeatedly insisted to Sax that he come up with a plan for hardening their
communications; and he had built, and now put in orbit, a whole fleet of very
small communications satellites, stealthed and hardened as much as possible. So
far they were functioning as planned. And the iron walnut within her, while not
gone, was at least not pulling in so hard at her ribs. Calm, she told herself.
Thisness. This is the moment and the only moment. Concentrate on it.
Their mobile piste reached the big equatorial line, rerouted the
year before to avoid the Chryse ice, and they shunted onto the piste for local
trains, and headed west. Their train was only three cars long, and Nadia’s
whole crew, some thirty people, were all gathered in the first car to watch the
incoming reports over the car’s screen. These were official news reports from
Mangalavid in South Fossa, and they were confused and inconsistent, combining
regular weather reports and the like with brief accounts of strikes in many
cities. Nadia kept her wristpad in contact with either Da Vinci or the Free
Mars safe house in Burroughs, and as they slid on she watched both the car screen
and her wrist, taking in simultaneous bursts of information as if listening to
polyphonic music, finding she could track the two sources at once without any
trouble, and was hungry for more. Praxis was sending up continuous reports on
the Terran situation, which was confused, but not incoherent or opaque as it
had been in ‘61; for one thing Praxis was keeping them informed, and for
another, much of the current activity on Earth was devoted to moving the
coastal populations out of the reach of the floods, which so far were like very
high tides, as Sax had said they would be. The metanatricide was still being
played out in the form of surgical strikes and decapitation coups, commando
raids and counterraids on various corporate compounds and headquarters, combined
with legal actions and PR of all sorts— including a number of suits and
countersuits finally introduced to the World Court, which Nadia considered
encouraging. But these strategic raids and maneuvers were much reduced in the
face of the global flood. And even at their worst (video of exploding
compounds, airplane crash sites, stretches of road craterized by the bombing of
passing limousines) they were still infinitely better than any kind of
escalating war, which in biological form could kill millions. As became clear,
unfortunately, with a shocking report from Indonesia that came over the car’s
screen—a radical liberation group from East Timor, modeled on Peru’s Shining
Path, had poisoned the island of Java with an as yet unidentified plague, so that
along with the travails of the flooding there, they were losing hundreds of
thousands to disease. On a continent such a plague could become a terminal
disaster, and there was no guarantee it wouldn’t happen still. But meanwhile,
with that one awful exception, the war down there, if that was what one called
the chaos of the metanatricide, was proceeding as a fight at the top. A style
similar to what they were attempting on Mars, in fact. This was comforting in a
way, although if the metanats became adept at the style, they could presumably
wage it on Mars as well—if not in this first moment of surprise, then later
when they had reorganized. And there was an ominous item in the flow of reports
from Praxis Geneva, indicating they might be responding already: a fast shuttle
with a large force of “security experts” had left Earth orbit for Mars three
months ago, the report said, and was expected to reach the Martian system “in a
few days.” The news was being released now to encourage security forces
beleaguered by rioting and terrorism, according to the UN press release.
Nadia’s concentration on the screens was broken by the appearance
of one of the big round-the-world trains on the piste beside them. One second
they were gliding smoothly over the bumpy plateau of Ophir Planum, and the next
a big fifty-car express was whooshing by them. But it didn’t slow down, and
there was no way of telling who, if anyone, sat behind its darkened .windows.
Then it was past them, and soon after that over the horizon ahead, and gone.
The news shows continued at their manic pace, the reporters
obviously astonished by the developments of the day. Riots in Sheffield, work
stoppages in South Fossa and Hephaestus—the accounts overlapped each other in
such rapid succession that Nadia found it hard to believe they were real.
When they came into Underbill Nadia’s feeling of unreality
persisted, for the sleepy semiabandoned old settlement was now abuzz with
activity, as in M-year 1. Resistance sympathizers had been pouring in all day
from small stations around Ganges Catena and Hebes Chasma, and the north wall
of Ophir Chasma. The local Bog-danovists had apparently organized them into a
march on the little unit of UNTA security personnel at the train station. This
had led to a standoff just outside the station itself, under the tent that
covered the old arcade and the original quadrant of barrel vaults, now looking
very small and quaint.
So when Nadia’s train pulled in, there was a loud argument going
on between a man with a bullhorn surrounded by about twenty bodyguards, and the
unruly crowd facing them. Nadia got off the train as soon as it stopped, and
went over to the edge of the group hemming in the stationmaster and his troops.
She commandeered a bullhorn from a surprised-looking young woman and began
shouting through it. “Stationmaster! Stationmaster! Station-master!” She
repeated this in English and Russian, until everyone had gone quiet to find out
who she was. Her construction team had filtered out through the crowd, and when
she saw that they were positioned, she walked right up to the cluster of men
and women in their flak jackets. The stationmaster appeared to be a Mars
old-timer, his face weathered and scarred across the forehead. His young team
wore the Transitional Authority insignia, and looked scared. Nadia let the
bullhorn fall to her side and said, “I’m Nadia Cherneshevsky. I built this
town. And now we’re taking control of it. Who do you work for?”
“The United Nations Transitional Authority,” the stationmaster
said firmly, staring at her as if she had stepped out of the grave.
“But what unit? Which metanational?”
“We’re a Mahjari unit.”
“Mahjari is working with China now, and China with Praxis, and
Praxis with us. We’re on the same side, and you don’t know it yet. And no
matter what you think about that, we’ve got you outgunned here.” She shouted
out to the crowd, “Everyone armed raise their hand!”
Everyone in the, crowd raised their hand, and all of her crew had
stun guns or nail guns or soldering-beam guns in hand.
“We don’t want bloodshed,” Nadia said to the ever-tighter knot of
bodyguards before her. “We don’t even want to take you prisoner. There’s our
train right there; you can take it, and go to Sheffield and join the rest of
your team. There you’ll find out the new status of things. It’s that or else
we’ll all leave the station here, and blow it up. We’re taking over one way or
another, and it would be stupid for anyone to get killed when this revolt is
already a done deal. So take the train. I’d advise going to Sheffield, where
you can get a ride out on the elevator if you want. Or if you want to work for
a free Mars, you can join us right now.”
She stared calmly at the man, feeling more relaxed than she had
all day. Action was such a relief. The man ducked his head to confer with his
team, and they talked in whispers for most of five minutes.
The man looked at her again. “We’ll take your train.”
And so Underbill was the first town freed.
That night Nadia went out to the trailer park, which was near the
new tent coping wall. The two habitats that had not been turned into labs were
still outfitted with the original living quarters equipment, and after
inspecting them, and then going back out and walking around the barrel vaults,
and the Alchemists’ Quarter, she finally returned to the one she had lived in
at the very start, and lay down on one of the floor mattresses, feeling
exhausted.
It was strange indeed to lie by herself among all the ghosts,
trying to feel again the presence of that distant time in her. Too strange;
despite her exhaustion she could not sleep, and near dawn she had a hazy
vision, of worrying about uncrating goods from freight rockets, and programming
robot bricklayers, and taking a call from Arkady on Phobos. She even slept a
while in this state, dozing uneasily, until a tingling in her ghost finger woke
her up.
And then, rising with a groan, it was just as hard to imagine that
she was waking up to a world in turmoil, with millions of people waiting to see
what the day would bring. Looking around at the tight confines of her first
home on Mars, it suddenly seemed to her that the walls were moving—beating very
lightly—a kind of standing wave of double vision, as if she were standing in
the low morning light looking through a temporal stereopticdn, which revealed
all four dimensions at once with a pulsating, hallucinatory light.
They
breakfasted in the barrel
vaults, in the large hall where Ann and Sax had once argued the merits of
terraforming. Sax had won that argument, but Ann was out there fighting it
still, as if it had not been decided long since.
Nadia focused on the present, on her AI screen and the flood of
news pouring through it this Saturday morning: the top of the screen given over
to Maya’s safe house in Burroughs, the bottom to Praxis reports from Earth.
Maya was performing heroically as usual, vibrant with apprehension, hectoring
everyone in sight to conform to her vision of how things should happen, haggard
and yet buzzing with her internal spin. As Nadia listened to her describe the
latest developments she chewed breakfast methodically, scarcely noticing
Underbill’s delicious bread. It. was afternoon already in Burroughs, and the
day had been busy. Every town on Mars was in turmoil. On Earth all the coastal
areas- were now flooded, and the mass dislocations were causing chaos inland.
The new UN had condemned the rioters on Mars as heartless opportunists who were
taking advantage of a time of unprecedented suffering to advance their own
selfish cause. “True enough,” Nadia said to Sax as he walked in the door, fresh
from Da Vinci Crater. “They’ll hold that against us later, I bet.”
“Not if we help them out.”
“Hmm.” She offered him bread, regarding him closely. Despite his
changed features he was looking more like Sax every day, standing there impassively,
blinking as he looked around the old brick chamber. It seemed as though
revolution was the last thing on his mind. She said, “Are you ready to fly to
Elysium?”
“That’s what I was going to ask you.”
“Good. Let me go get my-bag.”
While she was throwing her clothes and AI into her old black
backpack, her wrist beeped and there was Kasei, his long gray hair wild around
his deeply lined face, which was the strangest mix of John and Hiroko—John’s
mouth, at the moment stretched into a wide grin; Hiroko’s Oriental eyes, now
slitted with delight. “Hello, Kasei,” Nadia said, unable to conceal her
surprise. “I don’t think I’ve ever seen you on my wrist before.”
“Special circumstances,” he said, unabashed. She was used to
thinking of him as a dour man, but the outbreak of the revolution was obviously
a great tonic; she understood suddenly by his look that he had been waiting for
this all his life. “Look, Coyote and I and a bunch of Reds are up here in
Chasma Borealis, and we’ve secured the reactor and the dam; everyone working
here has been cooperative—”
“Encouraging!” someone beside him yelled.
“Yes, there’s been a lot of support up here, except for a security
team of about a hundred people who are holed up in the reactor. They’re
threatening to melt it down unless we give them safe passage to Burroughs.”
“So?” Nadia said.
“So?” Kasei repeated, and laughed. “So Coyote says we should ask
you what to do.”
Nadia snorted. “Why do I find that hard to believe.”
“Hey, no one here believes it either! But that’s what Coyote said,
and we like to indulge the old bastard when we can.”
“So, well, give them safe passage to Burroughs. That’s a
no-brainer if I’ve ever seen one. It won’t matter if Burroughs has an extra
hundred cops, and the fewer reactor meltdowns the better, we’re still wading
around in the radiation from last time.”
Sax came into the room while Kasei was thinking it over.
“Okay!” Kasei said. “If you say so! Hey talk to you later, I have
to go, ka.”
Nadia stared at her blank wrist screen, scowling.
Sax said, “What was that about?”
“You’ve got me,” Nadia said, and described the conversation while
trying to call Coyote. She got no answer.
Sax said, “Well, you’re the coordinator.”
“Shit.” Nadia pulled her backpack over one shoulder. “Let’s go.”
They flew in a new 5IB, very small and very fast. They took a
great circle route, which headed northwest over the Vastitas ice sea, and
avoided the metanat strongholds of Ascraeus, and Echus Overlook. Very soon
after takeoff they could see the ice filling Chryse to the north, the shattered
dirty bergs dotted with pink snow algae and amethyst melt ponds. The okr
transponder road to Chasma Borealis was of course long gone, that whole system
of bringing water south forgotten, a technical footnote for the history books.
Looking down at the ice chaos Nadia suddenly remembered what the land had
looked like on that first trip, the endless hills and hollows, the funnel-like
alases, the great black barchan dunes, the incredible laminated terrain in the
last sands before the polar cap ... all gone now, overwhelmed by ice. And the
polar cap itself was a mess, nothing but a collection of great melt zones and
ice streams, slush rivers, ice-covered liquid lakes—every manner of slurry, and
all of it crashing downslope off the high round plateau that the polar cap
rested on, down into the world-wrapping northern sea.
Landing was therefore out of the question for much of their
flight. Nadia watched the instruments nervously, all too aware of the many
things that could go wrong in a new machine during a crisis, when maintenance
was down and human error up.
Then billows of white and black smoke appeared on the horizon to
the southwest, pouring east in what was clearly a high wind. “What’s that?”
Nadia asked, moving to the left side of the plane to look.
“Kasei Vallis,” Sax said from the pilot’s seat.
“What’s happened to it?”
“It’s burning.”
Nadia stared at him. “What do you mean?”
“Heavy vegetation there in the valley. And along the foot of the
Great Escarpment. Resinated trees and shrubs, for the most part. Also fireseed
trees—you know. Species that require fire to propagate. Engineered at Biotique.
Thorny resin manzanita, blackthorn, giant sequoia, some others.”
“How do you know this?”
“I planted them.”
“And now you’ve set them on fire?”
Sax nodded. He glanced down at the smoke.
“But Sax, isn’t the percentage of oxygen in the atmosphere really
high now?”
“Forty percent.”
She stared at him some more, suddenly suspicious. “You jacked that
up too, didn’t you! Jesus, Sax—you might have set the whole world on fire!”
She stared down at the bottom of the column of smoke. There in the
big trough of Kasei Vallis was a line of flame, the leading edge of the fire,
burning brilliant white rather than yellow—it looked like molten magnesium.
“Nothing will put that out!” she cried. “You’ve set the world on fire!”
“The ice,” Sax said. “There’s nothing downwind but the ice
covering Chryse. It should only burn a few thousand square kilometers.”
Nadia stared at him, amazed and appalled. Sax was still glancing
down at the fire, but most of the time he watched the plane’s instruments, his
face set in a curious expression: reptilian, stony— utterly inhuman.
The metanat security compounds in the curve of Kasei Vallis came
over the horizon. The tents were all burning furiously, like torches of pitch,
the craters on the inner bank like beach firepits, spurting white flame into
the air. Clearly there was a strong wind pouring down Echus Chasma and
funneling through Kasei Vallis, fanning the flames. A firestorm. And Sax stared
down at it unblinking, his jaw muscles bunched under the skin.
“Fly north,” Nadia ordered him. “Get clear of that.”
He banked the plane, and she shook her head. Thousands of square
kilometers, burned—all that vegetation, so painstakingly introduced—global oxygen
levels raised by a significant percentage... . She regarded the strange
creature sitting beside her warily.
“Why didn’t you tell me about this?”
“I didn’t want you to stop it.”
As simple as that.
“So I have that power?” she said.
“Yes.”
“Meaning I’m kept ignorant of things?”
“Only of this,” Sax said. His jaw muscles were bunching and
relaxing, in a rhythm that reminded her suddenly of Frank Chal-mers. “The
prisoners were all moved out into asteroid mining. This was the training site
for all their secret police. The ones who would never give up. The torturers.”
He turned that lizard gaze on her. “We’re better off without them.” And he
returned to his piloting.
Nadia was still looking back at the fierce white line of the
firestorm when the plane’s radio beeped her code. This time it was Art,
cross-eyed with worry. “I need your help,” he said. “Ann’s people have retaken
Sabishii, and a lot of the Sabishiians have come up out of the maze to reoccupy
it, and the Reds in control there are telling them to go away.”
“What?”
“I know, well, I don’t think Ann knows about this yet, and she
isn’t answering my calls. There are Reds out there that make her look like a
Boonean, I swear. But I reached Ivana and Raul, and got them to stop the Reds
in Sabishii till they heard from you. That’s the best I could do.”
“Why me?” ‘ “I think Ann
told them to listen to you.”
“Shit.”
“Well, who else is going to do it? Maya’s made too many enemies
holding things together the last few years.”
“I thought you were the big diplomat here.”
“I am! But what I got was everyone agreeing to defer to your
judgment. That was the best I could do. Sorry, Nadia. I’ll help you anyway you
want me to.”
“You’d damn well better, after setting me up like this!”
He grinned. “It’s not my fault everyone trusts you.”
Nadia clicked off and tried the various Red radio channels. At
first she couldn’t find Ann. But while she was running through their channels
she heard enough messages to realize that there were young Red radicals whom
Ann would certainly condemn, or so she hoped—people who, with the revolt still
in the balance, were busy blowing up platforms in Vastitas, slashing tents,
breaking pistes, threatening to end their cooperation with the other rebels
unless they were joined in their ecotage and all their demands were met, etc.,
etc.
Finally Ann answered Nadia’s call. She looked like an avenging
Fury, righteous and slightly mad. “Look,” Nadia said to her without preamble,
“an independent Mars is the best chance you’ll ever have to get what you want.
You try holding the revolution hostage to your concerns and people will
remember, I’m warning you! You can argue all you want once we’ve gotten the
situation under control, but until then it’s just blackmail as far as I’m
concerned. It’s a stab in the back. You get those Reds in Sabishii to turn the
city back over to its residents.”
Ann said angrily, “What makes you think I can tell them what to
do?”
“Who else if not you?”
“What makes you think I disagree with what they’re doing?”
“My impression that you are a sane person, that’s what!”
“I don’t presume to order people about.”
“Reason with them if you can’t order them! Tell them stronger
revolts than ours have failed because of this kind of stupidity. Tell them to
get a grip.”
Ann cut the connection without a reply.
“Shit,” Nadia said.
Her AI continued to pour out news. The UNTA expeditionary force
was coming back up from the southern highlands, and appeared to be on its way
to Hellas, or Sabishii. Sheffield was still in the control of Subarashii.
Burroughs was an open situation, with security forces seemingly in control; but
refugees were pouring into the city from Syrtis and elsewhere, and there was a
general strike going on as well. The vids made it look like most of the
populace was spending the day*out on the boulevards and in the parks,
demonstrating against the Transitional Authority, or merely trying to watch
what was going on.
“We’ll have to do something about Burroughs,” Sax said.
“I know.”
They flew southward again, past the bump of Hecates Tholus on the
northern end of the Elysium massif, to the South Fossa spaceport. Their flight
had taken twelve hours, but they had gone west through nine time zones, and
crossed the date line at 180° longitude, so it was midday Sunday when their
airport bus drove to the rim of South Fossa, and through the roof lock.
South Fossa and the other Elysium towns, Hephaestus and Elysium
Fossa, had all come out for Free Mars in a big way. They made a kind of
geographical unit; a southern arm of the Vastitas ice now ran between the
Elysium massif and the Great Escarpment, and though the ice had already been
spanned by pistes on pontoon bridges, Elysium was in the process of becoming an
island continent. In all three of its big towns crowds had poured into the
streets, and occupied the city offices and the physical plants. Without the
threat of attacks from orbit to back them up, the few Transitional Authority
police in, the towns had either changed into civilian clothes and melted into
the crowds, or else gotten on the train to Burroughs. Elysium was uncontestedly
part of Free Mars.
Down at the Mangalavid offices Nadia and Sax found that a large
armed group of rebels had taken over the station, and were now busy churning
out twenty-four and a half hours a day of video reports on all four channels,
all sympathetic to the revolt, with long interviews from people in all the
independent towns and stations. The timeslip was going to be devoted to a
montage of the previous day’s events.
Some outlying mining stations in Elysium’s radial cracks, and in
the Phlegra Montes, were purely metanat operations, mostly Amexx and
Subarashii. These were staffed largely by new emigrants who had holed up in
their camps, and either gone silent or else started to threaten anyone who
tried to bother them; some even declared their intention to retake the planet,
or hold out until reinforcements from Earth arrived. “Ignore them,” Nadia
advised. “Avoid them and ignore them. Jam their communications systems if you
can, and leave them alone.”
Reports from elsewhere on Mars were more promising. Senzeni Na was
in the hands of people who called themselves Booneans, though they were not
associated with Jackie—they were issei, nisei, sansei, and yonsei, who had
immediately named their mohole John Boone, and declared Thaumasia a “Dorsa
Brevia Peaceful Neutral Place.” Korolyov, now a small mining town only, had
revolted almost as violently as in ‘61, and its citizens, many of them
descendants of the old prison population, had renamed the town Sergei Pavlovich
Korolyov, and declared it an undocumented anarchist free zone; the old prison
compounds were to be converted into a giant bazaar and communal living space,
with a particular welcome made to refugees from Earth. Nicosia was likewise a
free city. Cairo was under the control of Amexx security. Odessa and the rest
of the Hellas Basin towns were still holding firm for independence, although
the circumHellas piste had been cut in some places. The maglev train system was
bad that way; the magnetic systems had to be operating for the pistes to
function and the trains to move, and these systems were easy to break. For that
reason many trains were running empty or were canceled, as people took to
rovers or planes to make sure they didn’t get stranded in the outback
somewhere, in vehicles that didn’t even have wheels.
Nadia and Sax spent the rest of Sunday monitoring developments and
making suggestions, if asked, about problem situations. In general it seemed to
Nadia that things were going well. But on Monday, bad news came in from
Sabishii. The UNTA expeditionary force had arrived there from the southern
highlands, and retaken the surface portion of the city after a bitter all-night
fight with the Red guerrillas in control of the city. The Reds and the original
Sabishiians had retreated into the mound maze or the outlying shelters, and the
prospect of continued bloody fighting in the maze was clear. Art predicted that
the security force would be unable to penetrate the maze, and so would be
forced to abandon Sabishii, and train or fly up to Burroughs, to consolidate
with the forces already there. But there was no way to be sure; and poor
Sabishii was sadly battered by the assault, and back in security’s hands.
Monday evening at dusk Nadia went out with Sax to get something to
eat. South Fossa’s canyon floor was thick with mature trees, the giant sequoias
standing over an understory of pines and junipers and, in the lower stretch of
the canyon, aspens and canyon oaks. As they walked down the streamside park,
Nadia and Sax were introduced by the Mangalavid people to group after group,
most of them natives, all of them unfamiliar faces, but all very happy to meet
them, it was clear. It was strange to see so many people obviously, visibly
happy; in normal life, Nadia realized, one simply didn’t see it—smiles
everywhere, strangers talking to each other ... there was more than one way for
things to go when a social order disappeared. Anarchy and chaos, definitely all
too possible; but also communion.
They ate in an outdoor restaurant by the central stream, and then
returned to the Mangalavid offices. Nadia got back in front of her screen, and
went to work talking to as many organizing cornmittees as she could reach. She
felt like Frank in ‘61, working the phones in frantic overdrive; only now they
were in communication with all of Mars, and she had the distinct impression
that while she was not by any means in control, she at least had a good sense
of what was going on. And that was gold, that was. The iron walnut in her
stomach began to shift to something more like wood.
After a couple of hours, she began to fall asleep in the seconds
between one call and the next; it was the middle of the night back in Underbill
and Shalbatana, and she hadn’t slept much since the call from Sax about
Antarctica. That meant four or five days without sleep—no, wait—she figured it
out—three days. Though it already felt like two weeks.
She had just lain down on a couch when there was an outcry, and
everyone ran into the hall, then out onto the stone-flagged plaza surrounding
the Mangalavid offices. Nadia stumbled blearily after Sax, who grabbed her by
the arm and helped her keep her balance.
Apparently there was a hole in the roof tent. People pointed, but
Nadia couldn’t make it out. “This is where we’re better off,” Sax said with a
satisfied little purse of the mouth. “The pressure under the roof is only a
hundred and fifty millibars higher than the pressure outside.”
“So roofs don’t pop like pricked balloons,” Nadia said,
remembering with a shudder some of the domed craters of ‘61.
“And even though some outside air is getting in, it’s mostly
oxygen and nitrogen. Still too much CO2, but not so much that we’re all
poisoned instantly.”
“But if the hole were bigger,” Nadia said.
“True.”
She shook her head. “We need to secure the whole planet, to really
be safe.”
“True.”
Nadia went back inside, yawning. She sat at her screen again, and
began watching the four Mangalavid channels, switching among them rapidly. Most
of the big cities were either openly for independence or in various kinds of
stalemate, with security in control of the physical plants but nothing
happening, and much of the population in the streets, waiting to see what would
happen next. There were a number of company towns and camps that were still
supporting their metanats, but in the case of Bradbury Point and Huo Hsing
Vallis, neighboring towns up on the Great Escarpment, their parent metanats
Amexx and Mahjari had been fighting each other on Earth. What effect that would
have on these northern towns wasn’t clear, but Nadia was sure it did not help
them to sort out their situation.
There were several important towns still in the grasp of
Subar-ashii and Amexx, and these were serving as magnets for isolated metanat
and UNTA security units. Burroughs was obviously chief among these, but it was
true also of Cairo, Lasswitz, Sudbury, and Sheffield. In the south, the
sanctuaries that had not been abandoned or destroyed by the expeditionary force
were coming out of hiding, and Vishniac Bogdanov was building a surface tent
over the old robot vehicle parking complex next to its mohole. So the south
would no doubt return to its status as a resistance stronghold, for what that
was worth; Nadia didn’t think it was worth much. And the northern polar cap was
in such environmental disarray that it almost didn’t matter who held it—with
most of its ice draining down into Vastitas, but the polar plateau covered by
new snow every winter, it was the most inhospitable region on Mars, and there
were almost no permanent settlements left up there.
So the contested zone was basically the temperate and equatorial
latitudes, the band around the planet bordered by the Vastitas ice to the
north, and the two great basins to the south. And orbital space, of course; but
Sax’s assault on metanat orbital objects had apparently been a success, and his
removal of Deimos from the vicinity was now looking like a happy stroke indeed.
The elevator, however, was still in metanat hands. And reinforcements from
Earth were due any time. And Sax’s team in Da Vinci had apparently used up most
of their weaponry in the initial attack.
As for the soletta and the annular mirror, they were so big and
fragile that they were impossible to defend; if someone wanted to wreck them,
they probably could. But Nadia did not see the reason for it. If it happened,
she would immediately suspect Reds on their own side of doing it. And if they
did—well, everyone could get by without that extra light, as they had before.
She would have to ask Sax what he thought about that. And talk to Ann about it,
see what her position was. Or maybe it was better not to put ideas in her head.
She would have to see how it went. Now what else ...
She fell asleep with her head on the screen. When she woke again
she was on the couch, ravenous, and Sax was reading her screen. “It’s looking
bad in Sabishii,” he said when he saw her struggling up. She went to the
bathroom, and when she came back she looked over his shoulder and read as he
talked. “Security couldn’t deal with the maze. So they’ve left for Burroughs.
But look.” He had two images on-screen—on top, one of Sabishii, burning as
ferociously as Kasei Vallis had; on bottom, troops flooding into the train
station in Burroughs, wearing light body armor and carrying automatic weapons,
their fists punching the air. Burroughs was filled with groups of these
security forces, it seemed, and they had taken over Branch Mesa and Double
Decker Butte for their residential quarters. So along with the UNTA troops in
the city, there were now security teams from both Subarashii and Mahjari—in
fact all the’big metanats were represented, which caused Nadia to wonder about
what was really going on between them on Earth—whether they hadn’t come to some
sort of agreement or ad hoc alliance, as a result of the crisis. She called up
Art in Burroughs, to ask him what he thought.
“Maybe these Martian units are so cut off that they’re making
their own peace,” he said. “They might be completely on their own.”
“But if we’re still in contact with Praxis ...”
“Yeah, but we surprised them. They weren’t aware of the extent of
sympathy for the resistance, and so we got the drop on them. Maya’s strategy of
lying low paid off in that sense. No, these teams could very well be on their
own right now. In which case we could consider Mars to be independent already,
and in the midst of a civil war over who has control here. I mean, if those
people in Burroughs call us up and say okay, Mars is a world, it’s big enough
for more than one kind of government, you have yours, and we have Burroughs,
don’t try to take ours away from us—what are we going to say?”
“I don’t think anyone in metanat security is thinking that big,”
Nadia said. “It’s only been three days since things fell apart on them.” She
pointed to the TV screen. “See, look, there’s Derek Hastings, head of the
Transitional Authority. He was head of Mission Control in Houston when we flew
out, and he’s dangerous— smart, and very stubborn. He’ll just hold on until
those reinforcements land.”
“So what do you think we should do?”
“I don’t know.”
“Can we just leave Burroughs alone?”
“I don’t think so. We’d be much better off if we came out from
behind the sun with a completed takeover. If there are beleaguered Terran
troops, holding out heroically in Burroughs, they’re almost sure to come out
and save them. Call it a rescue mission and then go for the whole planet.”
“It won’t be easy to take Burroughs, with all those troops in it.”
“I know.”
Sax had been asleep on another couch across the room, and now he
opened one eye. “The Reds are talking about flooding it.”
“What?”
“It’s below the level of the Vastitas ice. And there’s water under
the ice. Without the dike—”
“No,” Nadia said. “There’s two hundred thousand people in
Burroughs, and only a few thousand security troops. What are the people supposed
to do? You can’t evacuate that many people. It’s crazy. It’s sixty-one all over
again.” The more she thought about it, the angrier she got. “What can they be
thinking?”
“Maybe it’s just a threat,” Art said over the screen.
“Threats don’t work unless the people you’re threatening believe
you’ll carry them out.”
“Maybe they will believe it.”
Nadia shook her head. “Hasting’s not that stupid. Hell, he could
evacuate his troops by way of the spaceport, and let the population drown! And
then we become monsters, and Earth would be more certain than ever to come
after us! No!”
She got up and went looking for some breakfast; then discovered,
looking at the row of pastries in the kitchen, that her appetite was gone. She
took a cup of coffee and went back to the office, watching her hands shake.
In 2061 Arkady had been faced with a splinter group, which had
sent a small asteroid on a collision course with the Earth. It was meant to be
a threat only. But the asteroid had been blown apart, in the biggest human-created
explosion in history. And after that the war on Mars had suddenly become deadly
in a way that it hadn’t been before. And Arkady had been helpless to stop it.
And it could happen again.
She walked back into the office. “We have to go to
Burroughs,” she said to Sax.
Revolution
suspends habit as well
as law. But just as nature abhors a vacuum, people abhor anarchy.
So habits made their first incursions into the new terrain, like
bacteria into rock, followed by procedures, protocols, a whole fell-field of
social discourse, on its way to the climax forest of law... . Nadia saw that
people (some people) were indeed coming to her to resolve arguments, deferring
to her judgment. She might not have been in control, but she was as close to
control as they had: the universal solvent, as Art called her, or General
Nadia, as Maya said nastily over the wrist. Which only made Nadia shudder, as
Maya knew it would. Nadia preferred something she had heard Sax say over the
wrist to his faithful gang of techs, all young Saxes in the making: “Nadia is
the designated arbitrator, talk to her about it.” Thus the power of names;
arbitrator rather than general. In charge of negotiating what Art was calling
the “phase change.” She had heard him use the term in the midst of a long
interview on Mangalavid, with that deadpan expression of his that made it very
hard to tell if he was joking or not: “Oh I don’t think it’s really a
revolution we’re seeing, no. It’s a perfectly natural next step here, so it’s
more a kind of evolutionary or developmental thing, or what in physics they
call a phase change.”
His subsequent comments indicated to Nadia that he did not in fact
know what a phase change was. But she did, and she found the concept
intriguing. Vaporization of Terran authority, condensation of local power, the
thaw finally come ... however you wanted to think about it. Melting occurred
when the thermal energy of particles was great enough to overcome the
intracrystalline forces that held them in position. So if you considered the
metanat order as the crystalline structure... . But then it made a huge
difference whether the forces holding it together were interionic or
intermolecular; sodium chloride, interionic, melted at 801°C; methane,
intermolecular, at — 183°C. What kind of forces, then? And how high the
temperature?
At this point the analogy itself melted. But names were powerful
in the human mind, no doubt about it. Phase change, integrated pest management,
selective disemployment; she preferred them all to the old deadly notion
revolution, and she was glad they were all in circulation, on Marigalavid and
on the streets.
But there were some five thousand heavily armed security troops in
Burroughs and Sheffield, she reminded herself, who were still thinking of
themselves as police facing armed rioters. And that would have to be dealt with
by more than semantics.
For the most part, however, things were going better than she had
hoped. It was a matter of demographics, in a way; it appeared that almost every
single person who had been born on Mars was now in the streets, or occupying
city offices, train stations, spaceports—all of them, to judge by the
Mangalavid interviews, completely (and unrealistically, Nadia thought)
intolerant of the idea that powers on another planet should control them in any
way whatsoever. That was nearly half the current Martian population, right
there. And a good percentage of the old-timers were on their side too, as well
as some of the new emigrants. “Call them immigrants,” Art advised over the phone.
“Or newcomers. Call them settlers or colonialists, depending on whether they’re
with us or not. That’s something Nirgal has been doing, and I think it helps
people to think about things.”
On Earth the situation was less clear. The Subarashii metanats
were still struggling with the southern metanats, but in the context of the
great flood they had become a bitter sideshow. It was hard to tell what Terrans
in general thought of the conflict on Mars.
Whatever they thought, a fast shuttle was about to arrive, with
reinforcements for security. So resistance groups from all over mobilized to
converge on Burroughs. Art did what he could to help this effort from inside
Burroughs, locating all the people who had independently thought of coming (it
was obvious, after all), telling them their idea was good, and siccing them on
people opposed to the plan. He was, Nadia thought, a subtle diplomat—big, mild,
unpretentious, unassuming, sympathetic, “undiplomatic”—head lowered as he
conferred with people, giving them the impression they were the ones driving
the process. Indefatigable, really. And very clever. Soon he had a great number
of groups coming, including the Reds and the Marsfirst guerrillas, who still
appeared to be thinking of their approach as a kind of assault, or siege. Nadia
felt acutely that while the Reds and Marsfirsters she knew—Ivana, Gene, Raul,
Kasei—were keeping in touch with her, and agreeing to the use of her as an
arbitrator, there were more radical Red and Marsfirst units out there for whom
she was irrelevant, or even an obstruction1. This made her angry, because she
was sure that if Ann was fully supporting her, the more radical elements would
come around. She complained bitterly about this to Art, after seeing a Red
communique arranging the western half of the “convergence” on Burroughs, and
Art went to work and got Ann to answer a call, then gave her over in a link to
Nadia.
And there she was again, like one of the furies of the French
Revolution, as bleak and grim as ever. Their last exchange, over Sabishii, lay
heavy between them; the issue had become moot when UNTA retook Sabishii and
burned it down, but Ann was obviously still angry, which Nadia found
irritating.
Brittle greetings over, their conversation degenerated almost
instantly into argument. Ann clearly saw the revolt as a chance to wreck all
terraforming efforts and to remove as many cities and people as possible from
the planet, by direct assault if necessary. Frightened by this apocalyptic
vision, Nadia argued with her bitterly, then furiously. But Ann had gone off
into a world of her own. “I’d be just as happy if Burroughs did get wrecked,”
she declared coldly.
Nadia gritted her teeth. “If you wreck Burroughs you wreck
everything. Where are the people inside supposed to go? You’ll be no better
than a murderer, a mass murderer. Simon would be ashamed.”
Ann scowled. “Power corrupts, I see. Put Sax on, will you? I’m
tired of this hysteria.”
Nadia switched the call to Sax and walked away. It was not power
that corrupted people, but fools who corrupted power. Well, it could be that
she had been too quick to anger, too harsh. But she was frightened of that dark
place inside Ann, the part that might do anything; and fear corrupted more than
power. Combine the two... .
Hopefully she had shocked Ann severely enough to squeeze that dark
place back into its corner. Bad psychology, as Michel pointed out gently, when
Nadia called him in Burroughs to talk about it. A strategy resulting from fear.
But she couldn’t help it, she was afraid. Revolution meant shattering one
structure and creating another one, but shattering was easier than creating,
and so the two parts of the act were not necessarily fated to be equally
successful. In that sense, building a revolution was like building an arch;
until both columns were there, and the keystone in place, practically any
disruption could bring the whole thing crashing down.
So on Wednesday evening, five days after Nadia’s call from Sax,
about a hundred people left for Burroughs in planes, as the pistes were judged
too vulnerable to sabotage. They flew overnight to a rocky landing strip next
to a large Bogdanovist refuge in the wall of Du Martheray Crater, which was on
the Great Escarpment southeast of Burroughs. They landed at dawn, with the sun
rising through mist like a blob of mercury, lighting distant ragged white hills
to the north, on the low plain of Isidis: another new ice sea, whose progress
south had been stopped only by the arcing line of the dike, curving across the
land like a long low earthen dam— which was just what it was.
To get a better view Nadia went up to the top floor of the Du
Martheray refuge, where an observation window, disguised as a horizontal crack
just under the rim, gave a view down the Great Escarpment to the new dike and
the ice pressing against it. For a long time she stared down at the sight,
sipping coffee mixed with a dose of kava. To the north was the ice sea, with
its clustered seracs and long pressure ridges, and the flat white sheets of
giant frozen-topped melt lakes. Directly below her lay the first low hills of
the Great Escarpment, dotted with spiky expanses of Acheron cacti, sprawling
over the rock like coral reefs. Staircased meadows of black-green tundra moss
followed the courses of small frozen streams dropping down the Escarpment; the
streams in the distance looked like long algae diatoms, tucked into creases in
the redrock.
And then in the middle distance, dividing desert from ice, ran the
new dike, like a raw brown scar, suturing two separate realities together.
Nadia spent a long time studying it through binoculars. Its
southern end was a regolith mound, running up the apron of Crater Wg and ending
right at Wg’s rim, which was about half a kilometer above the datum, well above
the expected sea level. The dike ran northwest from Wg, and from her prospect
high on the Escarpment Nadia could see about forty kilometers of it before it
disappeared over the horizon, just to the west of Crater Xh. Xh was surrounded
by ice almost to its rim, so that its r6und interior was like an odd red
sinkhole. Everywhere else the ice had pressed right up against the dike, for as
far as Nadia could see. The desert side of the dike appeared to be some two
hundred meters high, although it was difficult to judge, as there was a broad
trench underneath the dike. On the other side, the ice bulked quite high,
halfway up or more.
The dike was about three hundred meters wide at the top. That much
displaced regolith—Nadia whistled respectfully—represented several years of
work, by a very large team of robot draglines and canal-diggers. But loose
regolith! It seemed to her that huge as the dike was on any human scale, it was
still not much to contain an ocean of ice. And ice was the easy part—when it
became liquid, the waves and currents would tear regolith away like dirt. And
the ice was already melting; immense melt pods were said to lie everywhere
underneath the dirty white surface, including directly against the dike,
seeping into it.
“Aien’t they’re going to have to replace that whole mound with concrete?”
she said to Sax, who had joined her, and was looking through his own binoculars
at the sight.
“Face it,” he said. Nadia prepared herself for bad news, but he
continued by saying, “Face the dike with a diamond coating. That would last
fairly long. Perhaps a few million years.”
“Hmm,” Nadia said. It was probably true. There would be seepage
from below, perhaps. But in any case, whatever the particulars, they would have
to maintain the system in perpetuity, and with no room for error, as Burroughs
was just 20 kilometers south of the dike, and some 150 meters lower than it. A
strange place to end up. Nadia trained her binoculars in the direction of the
city, but it lay just over her horizon, about 70 kilometers to the northwest.
Of course dikes could be effective; Holland’s dikes had held for centuries,
protecting millions of people and hundreds of square kilometers, right up until
the recent flood—and even now those great dikes were holding, and would be
broached first by flanking floods through Germany and Belgium. Certainly dikes
could be effective. But it was a strange fate nevertheless.
Nadia pointed her binoculars along the ragged rock of the Great
Escarpment. What looked like flowers in the distance were actually massive
lumps of coral cactus. A stream looked like a staircase made of lily pads. The
rough redrock slope made for a very stark, surreal, lovely landscape... . Nadia
was pierced by an unexpected paroxysm of fear, that something might go wrong
and she might suddenly be killed, prevented from witnessing any more of this
world and its evolution. It could happen, a missile might burst out of the
violet sky at any moment—this refuge was target practice, if some frightened
battery commander out at the Burroughs spaceport learned of its presence and
decided to deal with the problem preemptively. They could be dead within
minutes of such a decision.
But that was life on Mars. They could be dead within minutes of
any number of untoward events, as always. She dismissed the thought, and went
downstairs with Sax.
She wanted to go into Burroughs and see things, to be on the scene
and judge for herself: walk around and observe the citizens of the town, see
what they were doing and saying. Late on Thursday she said to Sax, “Let’s go in
and have a look.”
But it seemed to be impossible. “Security is heavy at all the
gates,” Maya told her over the wrist. “And the trains coming in are checked at
the stations very closely. Same with the subway to the spaceport. The city is
closed. In effect we’re hostages.”
“We can see what’s happening on-screen,” Sax pointed out. “It
doesn’t matter.”
Unhappily Nadia agreed. Shikata ga nai, apparently. But she didn’t
like the situation, which seemed to her to be rapidly approaching a stalemate,
at least locally. And she was intensely curious about conditions in Burroughs.
“Tell me what it’s like,” she asked Maya over their phone link.
“Well, they’ve got control of the infrastructure,” Maya said.
“Physical plant, gates, and so on. But there aren’t enough of them to force
people to stay indoors, or go to work of course, or anything else. So they
don’t seem to know what to do next.”
Nadia could understand that, as she too felt at a loss. More
security forces were coming into the city every hour, on trains from tent towns
they had given up on. These new arrivals joined their fellow troops, and stayed
near the physical plant and the city offices, getting around in heavily armed
groups, unmolested. They were housed in residential quarters in Branch Mesa,
Double Decker Butte, and Black Syrtis Mesa, and their leaders were meeting more
or less continuously at the UNTA headquarters in Table Mountain. But the
leaders were issuing no orders.
So things were in an uneasy suspension. The Biotique and Praxis
offices in Hunt Mesa were still serving as an information center for all of
them, disseminating news from Earth and the rest of the Mars, spreading it
through the city on bulletin boards and computer postings. These media, along
with Mangalavid and other private channels, meant that everyone was well
informed concerning the latest developments. On the great boulevards, and in
the parks, some big crowds congregated from time to time, but more often people
were scattered in scores of small groups, milling around in a kind of active
paralysis, something between a general strike and a hostage crisis. Everyone
was waiting to see what would happen next. People seemed in good spirits, many
shops and restaurants were still open, and video interviews taped in them were
friendly.
Watching them while jamming down a meal, Nadia felt an aching
desire to be in there, to talk to people herself. Around ten that night,
realizing she was hours from sleep, she called Maya again, and asked her if she
would don vidcam glasses, and go on a walk for her around the city. Maya, just
as antsy as Nadia if not more so, was happy to oblige.
Soon Maya was out of the safe house, wearing vidspecs and
transmitting images of what she looked at to Nadia, who sat apprehensively in a
chair before a screen, in the Du Martheray refuge common room. Sax and several
others ended up looking overNa-dia’s shoulders, and together they watched the
bouncing image Maya got with her vidcam, and listened to her running
commentary.
She walked swiftly down Great Escarpment Boulevard, toward the
central valley. Once down among the cart vendors in the upper end of Canal
Park, she slowed her pace, and looked around slowly to give Nadia a panning
shot of the scene. People were out and about everywhere, talking in groups,
enjoying a kind of festival atmosphere. Two women next to Maya struck up an
animated conversation about Sheffield. A group of newcomers came right up to
Maya and asked her what was going to happen next, apparently confident that she
would know, “Simply because I am so old!” Maya noted with disgust when they had
left. It almost made Nadia smile. But then some young people recognized Maya as
herself, and came over to greet her happily. Nadia watched this encounter from
Maya’s point of view, noting how starstruck the people seemed. So this is what
the world looked like to Maya! No wonder she thought she was so special, with
people looking at her like that, as if she were a dangerous goddess, just
stepped out of a myth... .
It was disturbing in more senses than one. It seemed to Nadia that
her old companion was in danger of being arrested by security, and she said as
much over the wrist. But the view on-screen waggled from side to side as Maya
shook her head. “See how there aren’t any cops in sight?” Maya said. “Security
is all concentrated around the gates and the train stations, and I stay away
from them. Besides, why should they bother to arrest me? In effect they have
this whole city arrested.”
She tracked an armored vehicle as it drove down the grassy
boulevard and passed without slowing down, as if to illustrate her point.
“That’s so everyone can see the guns,” Maya said darkly.
She walked down to Canal Park, then turned around and went up the
path toward Table Mountain. It was cold in the city that night; lights
reflecting off the canal showed that the water in it was icing over. But if
security had hoped to discourage crowds, it hadn’t worked; the park was
crowded, and becoming more crowded all the time. People were clumped around
gazebos, or cafes, or big orange heating coils; and everywhere Maya looked more
people were coming down into the park. Some listened to musicians, or people
speaking with the help of little shoulder amplifiers; others watched the news
on their wrists, or on lectern screens. “Rally at midnight!” someone cried.
“Rally in the timeslip!”
“I haven’t heard anything about this,” Maya said apprehensively.
“This must be Jackie’s doing.”
She looked around so fast that the view on Nadia’s screen was
dizzying. People everywhere. Sax went to another screen and called the safe house
in Hunt Mesa. Art answered there, but other than him, the safe house was nearly
empty. Jackie had indeed called for a mass demonstration in the timeslip, and
word had gone out over all the city media. Nirgal was out there with her.
Nadia told Maya about this, and Maya cursed viciously. “It’s much
too volatile for this kind of thing! Goddamn her.”
But there was nothing they could do about it now. Thousands of
people were pouring down the boulevards into Canal Park and Princess Park, and
when Maya looked around, tiny figures could be seen on the rims of the mesas,
and crowding the walktube bridges that spanned Canal Park. “The speakers are
going to be up in Princess Park,” Art said from Sax’s screen.
Nadia said to Maya: “You should get up there, Maya, and fast. You
might be able to help keep the situation under control.”
Maya took off, and as she made her way through the crowd, Nadia
kept talking to her, giving her suggestions for what she should say if she got
a chance to speak. The words tumbled out of her, and when she paused for
thought, Art passed along ideas of his own, until Maya said, “But wait, wait,
is any of this true?”
“Don’t worry if it’s true,” Nadia said.
“Don’t worry if it’s true!” Maya shouted into her wristpad. “Don’t
worry if what I say to a hundred thousand people, what I say to everyone on two
worlds, is true or not?”
“We’ll make it true,” Nadia said. “Just give it a try.”
Maya began to run. Others were walking in the same direction as
she was, up through Canal Park, toward the high ground between Ellis Butte and
Table Mountain, and her camera gave them bobbing images of the backs of heads
and the occasional excited face, turned to look at her as she shouted for
clearance. Great roars and cheers were rippling through the crowd ahead, which became
denser and denser, until Maya had to slow down, and then to shove and twist
through gaps between groups. Most of these people were young, and much taller
than Maya, and Nadia went to Sax’s screen to watch the Managalavid cameras’
images, which were cutting back and forth between a camera on the speakers’
platform, set on the rim of an old pingo over Princess Park, and a camera up in
one of the walktube bridges. Both angles showed that the crowd was getting
immense—maybe eighty thousand people, Sax guessed, his nose a centimeter from
the screen, as if he were counting them individually. Art managed to link up to
Maya along with Nadia, and he and Nadia continued to talk to her as she fought
her way forward through the crowd.
Antar had finished a short incendiary speech in Arabic while Maya
was making her final push through the crowd, and Jackie was now up on the
speakers’ platform before a bank of microphones, making a speech that was
amplified through big speakers on the pingo, and then reamplified by radio to
auxiliary speakers placed all over Princess Park, and also to shoulder
speakers, and lecterns, and wristpads, until her voice was everywhere—and yet,
as every phrase echoed a bit off Table Mountain and Ellis Butte, and was
welcomed by cheers, she could still only be heard part of the time. “... Will
not allow Mars to be used as a replacement world ... an executive ruling class
who are primarily responsible for the destruction of Terra ... rats trying to
leave a sinking ship ... make the same mess of things on Mars if we let them!
... not going to happen! Because this is now a free Mars! Free Mars! Free
Mars!”
And she punched a finger at the sky and the crowd roared the words
out, louder and louder with each repetition, falling quickly into a rhythm that
allowed them to shout together—”Free Mars! Free Mars! Free Mars! Free Mars!”
While the huge and still growing crowd was chanting this, Nir-gal
made his way up the pingo and onto the platform, and when people saw him, many
of them began shouting “Nir-gal,” either in time with “Free Mars” or in
the pauses between, so that it became “Free Mars (Nir-gal) Free Mars
(Nir-gal),” in an enormous choral counterpoint.
When he reached the microphone, Nirgal waved a hand for quiet. The
chanting, however, did not stop, but changed over entirely to “Nir-gal,
Nir-gal, Nir-gal, Nir-gal,” with an enthusiasm that was palpable, vibrating
in the sound of that great collective voice, as if every single person out
there was one of his friends, and enormously pleased at his appearance—and,
Nadia thought, he had been traveling for so much of his life that this might
not be all that far from the truth.
The chanting slowly diminished, until the crowd noise was a
general buzz, quite loud, above which Nirgal’s amplified greeting could be
heard pretty well. As he spoke, Maya continued to make her way through the
crowd toward the pingo, and as people stilled, it became easier for her. Then
when Nirgal began to speak, she stopped as well and just watched him, sometimes
remembering to move forward during the cheers and applause that ended many
sentences.
His speaking style was low-key, calm, friendly, slow. It was
easier to hear him. “For those of us born on Mars,” he said, “this is our
home.”
He had to pause for most of a minute as the crowd cheered. They
were mostly natives, Nadia saw again; Maya was shorter than almost everyone out
there.
“Our bodies are made of atoms that until recently were part of the
regolith,” Nirgal went on. “We are Martian through and through. We are living
pieces of Mars. We are human beings who have made a permanent, biological
commitment to this planet. It is our home. And we can never go back.” More
cheers at this very well-known slogan.
“Now, as for those of us who were born on Earth—well, there are
all different kinds, aren’t there. When people move to a new place, some intend
to stay and make it their new home, and we call those settlers. Others come to
work for a while and then go back where they came from, and those we call
visitors, or colonialists.
“Now natives and settlers are natural allies. After all, natives
are no more than the children of earlier settlers. This is home to all of us
together. As for visitors—there is room on Mars for them too. When we say that
Mars is free, we are not saying Terrans can no longer come here. Not at all! We
are all children of Earth, one way or another. It is our mother world, and we
are happy to help it in every way we can.”
The noise diminished, the crowd seeming somewhat surprised by this
assertion.
“But the obvious fact,” Nirgal went on, “is that what happens here
on Mars should not be decided by colonialists, or by anyone back on Earth.”
Cheers began, drowning out some of what he said. “—A simple statement of our
desire for self-determination ... our natural right... the driving force of
human history. We are not a colony, and we won’t be treated as one. There is no
such thing as a colony anymore. We are a free Mars.”
More cheers, louder than ever, flowing into more chanting of “Free
Mars! Free Mars!”
Nirgal interrupted the chanting. “What we intend to do now, as
free Martians, is to welcome every Terran who wants to come to us. Whether to
live here for a time and then go back, or else to settle here permanently. And
we intend also to do everything we can to help Earth in its current
environmental crisis. We have some expertise with flooding” (cheers) “and we
can help. But this help, from now on, will no longer come mediated by
metanationals, exacting their profits from the exchange. It will come as a free
gift. It will benefit the people of Earth more than anything that could be
extracted from us as a colony. This is true in the strict literal sense of the
amount of resources and work that will be transferred from Mars to Earth. And
so we hope and trust that everyone on both worlds will welcome the emergence of
a free Mars.”
And he stepped back and waved a hand, and the cheering and
chanting erupted again. Nirgal stood on the platform, smiling and waving,
looking pleased, but somewhat at a loss concerning what to do next.
All through his speech Maya had continued to inch forward during
the cheering, and now Nadia could see by her vidcam image that she was at the
platform’s edge, standing in the first row of people. Her arms blocked the
image again and again, and Nirgal caught sight of the waving, and looked at
her.
When he saw who she was, he smiled and came right over, and helped
boost her onto the platform. He led her over to the microphones, and Nadia
caught a final image of a surprised and displeased Jackie Bopne before Maya
whipped off her vidcam spectacles. The image on Nadia’s screen swung wildly,
and ended up showing the planks of the platform. Nadia cursed and hurried over
to Sax’s screen, her heart in her throat.
Sax still had the Mangalavid image, now taken from the camera on
the walktube arching from Ellis Butte to Table Mountain. From this angle they
could see the sea of people surrounding the pingo, and filling the city’s
central valley far down into Canal Park; it had to be most of the people in
Burroughs, surely. On the makeshift stage Jackie appeared to be shouting into
Nirgal’s ear. Nirgal did not respond to her, and in the middle of her
exhortation he went up to the mikes. Maya looked small and old next to Jackie,
but she was drawn up like an eagle, and when Nirgal said into the mikes, “We
have Maya Toitovna,” the cheers were huge.
Maya made chopping motions as she walked forward, and said into
the mikes, “Quiet! Quiet! Thank you! Thank you. Be quiet! We have some serious
announcements to make here as well.”
“Jesus, Maya,” Nadia said, clutching the back of Sax’s chair.
“Mars is now independent, yes. Quiet! But as Nirgal just said,
this does not mean we exist in isolation from Earth. This is impossible. We are
claiming sovereignty according to international law, and we appeal to the World
Court to confirm this legal status immediately. We have signed preliminary
treaties affirming this independence, and establishing diplomatic relations,
with Switzerland, India, and China. We have also initiated a nonexclusive economic
partnership with the organization Praxis. This, like all arrangements we will
make, will be not-for-profit, and designed to maximally benefit both worlds.
All these treaties taken together begin the creation of our formal, legal,
semiautonomous relationship with the various legal bodies of Earth. We fully
expect immediate confirmation and ratification of all these agreements, by the
World Court, the United Nations, and all other relevant bodies.”
Cheers followed this announcement, and though they were not as
loud as they had been for Nirgal, Maya allowed them to go on. When they had
died down a bit, she continued.
“As for the situation here on Mars, our intentions are to meet
here in Burroughs immediately, and use the Dorsa Brevia Declaration as the
starting point for the establishment of a free Martian government.”
Cheers again, much more enthusiastic. “Yes yes,” Maya said
impatiently, trying to cut them off again. “Quiet! Listen! Before any of that,
we must address the problem of opposition. As you know, we are meeting here in
front of the headquarters of the United Nations Transitional Authority security
forces, who are this very moment listening along with the rest of us, there
inside Table Mountain.” She pointed. “Unless they have come out to join us.”
Cheers, shouting, chanting. “... I want to say to them now that we mean them no
harm. It is the Transitional Authority’s job, now, to see that the transition
has taken on a new form. And to Order its security forces to stop trying to
control us. You cannot control us!” Mad cheers. “... mean you no harm. And we
assure you that you have free access to the spaceport, where there are planes
that can take all of you to Sheffield, and from there up to Clarke, if you do
not care to join us in this new endeavor. This is not a siege or a blockade.
This is, simply enough—”
And she stopped, and put out both hands: and the crowd told her.
Over the sound of the chanting Nadia tried to get through to Maya,
still up on the stage, but it was obviously impossible for her to hear.
Finally, however, Maya looked down at her wristpad. The image trembled; her arm
was shaking.
“That was great, Maya! I am so proud of you!”
“Yes, well, anyone can make up stories!”
Art said loudly, “See if you can get them to disperse!”
“Right,” Maya said.
“Talk to Nirgal,” Nadia said. “Get him and Jackie to do it. Tell
them to make sure there isn’t any rush on Table Mountain, or anything like. Let
them do it.”
“Ha,” Maya exclaimed. “Yes. We will let Jackie do it, won’t we.”
After that her wristpad’s little camera image swung everywhere,
and the noise was too great for the linked observers to make anything out. The
Mangalavid cameras showed a big clump of people onstage conferring.
Nadia went over and sat down on a chair, feeling as drained as if
she had had to make the speech herself. “She was great,” she said. “She
remembered everything we told her. Now we just have to make it real.”
“Just saying it makes it real,” Art said. “Hell, everyone on both
worlds saw that. Praxis will be on it already. And Switzerland will surely back
us. No, we’ll make it work.”
Sax said, “Transitional Authority might not agree. Here’s a
message in from Zeyk. Red commandos have come down from Syrtis. They’ve taken
over the western end of the dike. They’re moving east along it. They’re not
that far from the spaceport.”
“That’s just what we want to avoid!” Nadia cried. “What do they
think they’re doing!”
Sax shrugged.
“Security isn’t going to like that at all,” Art said.
“We should talk to them directly,” Nadia said, thinking it over.
“I used to talk to Hastings when he was Mission Control. I don’t remember much
about him, but I don’t think he was any kind of screaming crazy person.”
“Couldn’t hurt to find out what he’s thinking,” Art said.
So she went to a quiet room, and got on a screen, and made a call
to UNTA headquarters in Table Mountain, and identified herself. Though it was
now about two in the morning, she got through to Hastings in about five
minutes.
She recognized him immediately, though she would have said she had
long since forgotten his face. A short thin-faced harried technocrat, with a
bit of a temper. When he saw her on his screen he grimaced. “You people again.
We sent the wrong hundred, I’ve always said that.”
“No doubt.”
Nadia studied his face, trying to imagine what kind of man could
have headed Mission Control in one century and the Transitional Authority in
the next. He had been irritated with them frequently when they were on the
Ares, haranguing them for every little deviation from the regulations, and
getting truly furious when they temporarily stopped sending back video, late in
the trip. A rules and regs bureaucrat, the kind of man Arkady had despised. But
a man you could reason with.
Or so it seemed to her at first. She argued with him for ten or
fifteen minutes, telling him that the demonstration he had just witnessed
outside in the park was part of what had happened everywhere on Mars—that the
whole planet had turned against them—that they were free to go to the spaceport
and leave.
“We’re not going to leave,” Hastings said.
His UNTA forces controlled the physical plant, he told her, and
therefore the city was his. The Reds might take over the dike, but there was no
chance they would broach it, because there were two hundred thousand people in
the city, who were in effect hostages. Expert reinforcements were due to arrive
with the next continuous shuttle, which was going to make its orbital insertion
in the next twenty-four hours. So the speeches meant nothing. Posturing only.
He was calm as he told Nadia this—if he hadn’t been so disgusted,
Nadia might even have called him complacent. It seemed more than likely that he
had orders from home, telling him to sit tight in Burroughs and wait for the
reinforcements. No doubt the UNTA division in Sheffield had been told the same.
And with Burroughs and Sheffield still in their hands, and reinforcements due
any minute, it was not surprising they thought they had the upper hand. One
might even say they were justified. “When people come to their senses,” Hasting
said to her sternly, “we’ll be in control here again. The only thing that
really matters now is the Antarctic flood, anyway. It’s crucial to support the
Earth in its time of need.”
Nadia gave up. Hastings was clearly a stubborn man, and besides,
he had a point. Several points. So she ended the conference as politely as she
could, asking to get back to him later, in what she hoped was Art’s diplomatic
style. Then she went back out to the others.
As the night went on, they continued to monitor reports coming in
from Burroughs and elsewhere. Too much was happening to allow Nadia to feel
comfortable going to bed, and apparently Sax and Steve and Marian and the other
Bogdanovists in Du Martheray felt similarly. So they sat slumped in their
chairs, sandy-eyed and aching as the hours passed and the images on the screen
flickered. Clearly some of the Reds were detaching from the main resistance
coalition, following some sort of agenda of their own, escalating their
campaign of sabotage and direct assault all over the planet, taking small
stations by force and then, as often as not, putting the occupants in cars, and
blowing the stations up. Another “Red army” also successfully stormed the
physical plant in Cairo, killing many of the security guards inside, and getting
the rest to surrender.
This victory had encouraged them, but elsewhere the results were
not so good; it appeared from some scattered survivors’ calls that a Red attack
on the occupied physical plant in Lasswitz had destroyed it, and massively
broached the tent, so that those who had not managed to get into secure
buildings, or out into cars, had died. “What are they doing?” Nadia cried. But
no one answered her. These groups were not returning her calls. And neither was
Ann.
“I wish they would at least discuss their plans with the rest of
us,” Nadia said fearfully. “We can’t let things spiral out of control, it’s too
dangerous ...”
Sax was pursing his lips, looking uneasy. They went to the commons
to get some breakfast, and then some rest. Nadia had to force herself to eat.
It was exactly a week since Sax’s first call, and she couldn’t recall anything
she had eaten in that week. Indeed, on reflection she found she was ravenous.
She began to shovel down scrambled eggs.
When they were almost done eating Sax leaned over and said, “You
mentioned discussing plans.”
“What,” Nadia said, her fork stalled halfway to her face.
“Well, this incoming shuttle, with the security task force on
board?”
“What about it?” After the flight over Kasei Vallis, she did not
trust Sax to be rational; the fork in her hand began to tremble visibly.
He said, “Well, I have a plan. My group in Da Vinci thought of it,
actually.”
Nadia tried to steady the fork. “Tell me.”
* * *
The rest of that day was a blur to Nadia, as she abandoned any
attempt to rest, and tried to reach Red groups, and worked with Art drafting
messages to Earth, and told Maya and Nirgal and the rest in Burroughs about
Sax’s latest. It seemed that the pace of events, already accelerated, had
caught gears with something spinning madly, and had now accelerated out of
anyone’s control, leaving no time to eat or sleep or go to the bathroom. But
all those things had to be done, and so she staggered down to the women’s room
and took a long shower, then ate a spartan lunch of bread and cheese, and then
stretched out on a couch and caught some sleep; but it was the kind of restless
shallow sleep in which her mind continued to tick over, thinking fuzzy
distorted thoughts about the events of the day, incorporating the voices there
in the room with her. Nirgal and Jackie were not getting along; was this a
problem for the rest of them?
Then she was up again, as exhausted as before. The people in the
room were still talking about Jackie and Nirgal. Nadia went off to the
bathroom, and then hunted for coffee.
Zeyk and Nazik and a large Arab contingent had arrived at Du
Martheray while she was sleeping, and now Zeyk stuck his head into the kitchen:
“Sax says the shuttle is about to arrive.”
Du Martheray was only six degrees north of the equator, and so
they were well situated to see this particular aerobrakmg, which was going to
happen just after sunset. The weather cooperated, and the sky was cloudless and
very clear. The sun dropped, the eastern sky darkened, and the arch of colors above
Syrtis to the west was a spectrum array, shading through yellow, orange, a
narrow pale streak of green, teal blue, and indigo. Then the sun disappeared
over the black hills, and the sky colors deepened and turned transparent, as if
the dome of the sky had suddenly grown a hundred times larger.
And in the midst of this color, between the two evening stars, a
third white star burst into being and shot up the sky, leaving a short straight
contrail. This was the usual dramatic appearance that aerobraking continuous
shuttles made as they burned into the upper atmosphere, almost as visible by
day as by night. It on\y took about a minute for them to cross the sky from one
horizon to the other, slow brilliant shooting stars.
But this time, when it was still high in the west, it got fainter
and fainter, until it was no more than a faint star. And was gone.
Du Martheray’s observation room was crowded, and many exclaimed at
this unprecedented sight, even though they had been warned. When it was
completely gone Zeyk asked Sax to explain it for those of them who had not
heard the full story. The orbital insertion window for aerobraking shuttles was
narrow, Sax told them, just as it had been for the Arcs back in the beginning.
There was very little room for error. So Sax’s technical group in Da Vinci
Crater had equipped a rocket with a payload of metal bits—like a keg of scrap
iron, he said—and they had shot it off a few hours before. The payload had
exploded in the approaching shuttle’s MOI path just a few minutes before its
arrival, casting the metal fragments in a band that was wide horizontally but
harrow vertically. Orbital insertions were completely computer-controlled, of
course, and so when the shuttle’s radar had identified the patch of debris, the
AI navigating the shuttle had had very few options. Diving below the debris
would have put the shuttle through thicker atmosphere, very likely burning it
up; going through the debris would risk holing the heat shield, likewise
burning it up. Shikata go. nai, then; given the risk levels programmed into it,
the AI had had to abort the aerobraking run by flying above the debris, thus
skipping back out of the atmosphere. Which meant the shuttle was still moving
outward in the solar system at very near its top speed of 40,000 kilometers per
hour.
“Do they have any way to slow down except aerobraking?” Zeyk asked
Sax.
“Not really. That’s why they aerobrake.”
“So the shuttle is doomed?”
“Not necessarily. They can use another planet as a gravity handle
to swing around, and come back here, or go back to Earth.”
“So they’re on their way to Jupiter?”
“Well, Jupiter is on the other side of the solar system right
now.”
Zeyk was grinning. “They’re on their way to Saturn?”
“They may be able to pass very close to several asteroids sequentially,”
Sax was saying, “and redirect their crash—their course.”
Zeyk laughed, and though Sax went on about course correction
strategies, too many other people were talking for anyone to be able to hear
him.
So they no longer had to worry about security reinforcements from
Earth, at least not immediately. But Nadia thought that this fact might make
the UNTA police in Burroughs feel trapped, and thus more dangerous to them. And
at the same time, the Reds were continuing to move north of the city, which no
doubt added to security’s trapped feeling. On the same night as the shuttle’s
flyby, groups of Reds in armored cars completed their takeover of the> dike.
That meant they were fairly close to the Burroughs spaceport, which was located
just ten kilometers northwest of the city.
Maya appeared on-screen, looking no different than she had before
her great speech. “If the Reds take the spaceport,” she said to Nadia,
“security will be trapped in Burroughs.”
“I know. That’s just what we don’t want. Especially now.”
“I know. Can’t you keep those people under control?”
“They’re not consulting me anymore.”
“I thought you were the great leader here.”
“I thought it was you,” Nadia snapped back.
Maya laughed, harsh and humorless.
Another report came in from Praxis, a package of Terran news
programs that had been relayed off Vesta. Most of it was the latest information
on the flood, and the disasters in Indonesia and in many other coastal areas,
but there was some political news as well, including some instances of nationalization
of metanat holdings by the militaries of some client countries in the Southern
Club, which the Praxis analysts thought might indicate the beginnings of a
revolt by governments against metanats. As for the mass demonstration in
Burroughs, it had made the news in many countries, and was certainly a topic in
government offices and boardrooms around the world. Switzerland had confirmed
that it was establishing diplomatic relations with a Martian government “to be
designated later,” as Art said with a grin. Praxis had done the same. The World
Court had announced that it would consider the suit brought by the Dorsa Brevia
Peaceful Neutral Coalition against UNTA—a suit dubbed “Mars vs. Terra” by the
Terran media—as soon as possible. And the continuous shuttle had reported its
missed insertion; apparently it planned to turn around in the asteroids. But
Nadia found it extremely encouraging that none of these events were being
treated as first-headline news on Earth, where the chaos caused by the flooding
was still paramount in everyone’s attention. There were millions of refugees
everywhere, and many of them in immediate need... .
But this was why they had launched the revolt when they had. On
Mars, the independence movements had most of the cities under their control.
Sheffield was still a metanational stronghold, but Peter Clayborne was up
there, in command of all the insurgents on Pavonis, coordinating their
activities in a way that they had not been able to match around Burroughs.
Partly this was because many of the most radical elements of the resistance had
avoided Tharsis, and partly because the situation in Sheffield was extremely
difficult, with little room for maneuvering. The insurgents now controlled
Arsia and Ascraeus, and the little scientific station in Crater Zp on Olympus
Mons; and they even had control of most of Sheffield town. But the elevator
socket, and the whole quarter of the city surrounding it, were firmly in the
hands of the security police, and they were heavily armed. So Peter had his hands
full on Tharsis, and would not be able to help them around Burroughs. Nadia
talked to him briefly, describing the situation in Burroughs and begging him to
call Ann and ask her to get the Reds to show some restraint. He promised to do
what he could, but did not seem confident that he had his mother’s ear.
After that Nadia tried another call to Ann, but did not get
through. Then she tried to reach Hastings, and he took her call, but it was not
a productive exchange. Hastings was no longer anything like the complacent
disgusted figure she had talked to the night before. “This occupation of the
dike!” he exclaimed angrily. “What are they trying to prove? Do you think I
believe that they’ll cut the dike when there’s two hundred thousand people in
this city, most of them on your side? It’s absurd! But you listen to me, there
are people in this organization who don’t like the danger it puts the
population in! I tell you, I can’t be responsible for what’ happens if those
people don’t get the hell off that dike—off Isidis Planitia entirely! You get
them off there!”
And he cut the connection before Nadia could even reply,
distracted by someone off-screen who had come in during the middle of his
tirade. A frightened man, Nadia thought, feeling the iron walnut tugging inward
again. A man who no longer felt in control of the situation. An accurate
assessment, no doubt. But she had not liked that last look on his face. She
even tried to call back, but . no one in Table Mountain would answer anymore.
A couple of hours later Sax woke her up in her chair, and she
found out what Hastings had been so worried about. “The UNTA unit that burned
Sabishii went out in armored cars and tried to— to take the dike away from the
Reds,” Sax told her, looking grave.
“Apparently there’s been a fight over the section of the dike
nearest the city. And we’ve just heard from some Red units up there that the
dike has been broached.”
“What?”
“Blown up. They had drilled holes and set charges to use as a— as
a threat. And in the fighting they ended up setting them off. That’s what they
said.”
“Oh my God.” Her drowsiness was gone in a flash, blown away in her
own internal explosion, a great blast of adrenaline racing all through her.
“Have you got any confirmation?”
“We can see a dustcloud blocking the stars. A big one.”
“Oh my God.” She went to the nearest screen, her heart thudding in
her chest. It was three A.M. “Is there a chance ice will choke the gap, and
serve as a dam?”
Sax squinted. “I don’t think so. Depends on how big the gap is.”
“Can we set counterexplosions and close the gap?”
“I don’t think so. Look, here’s video sent from some Reds south of
the break on the dike.” He pointed at a screen, which displayed an IR image
with black to the left and blackish green to the right, and a forest-green
spill across the middle. “That’s the blast zone there in the middle, wanner
than the regolith. The explosion appears to have been set next to a pod of
liquid water. Or else there was an explosion set to liquefy the ice behind the
break. Anyway, that’s a lot of water coming through. And that will widen the
break. No, we’ve got a problem.”
“Sax,” she exclaimed, and held on to his shoulder as she stared at
the screen. “The people in Burroughs, what are they supposed to do? God damn
it, what could Ann be thinking!”
“It might not have been Ann.”
“Ann or any of the Reds!”
“They were attacked. It could have been an accident. Or someone on
the dike must have thought they were going to get forced away from the
explosives. In which case it was a use-it-or-lose-it situation.” He shook his
head. “Those are always bad.”
“Damn them.” Nadia shook her head hard, trying to clear it. “We
have to do something!” She thought frantically. “Are the mesa tops high enough
to stay above the flood?”
“For a while. But Burroughs is at about the lowest point in that
little depression. That’s why it was sited there. Because the sides of the bowl
gave it long horizons. No. The mesa tops will get covered too. I can’t be sure
how long it will take, because I’m not sure of the flow rate. But let’s see,
the volume to be filled is about ...” He tapped away madly, but his eyes were
blank, and suddenly Nadia saw that there was another part of his mind doing the
calculation faster than the AI, a gestalt envisioning of the situation, staring
at infinity, shaking his head back and forth like a blind man. “It could be
pretty fast,” he whispered before he was done typing. “If the melt pod is big
enough.”
“We have to assume it is.”
He nodded.
They sat there beside each other, staring at Sax’s AI.
Sax said hesitantly, “When I was working in Da Vinci, I tried to
think out the possible scenarios. The shapes of things to come. You know? And I
worried that something like this might happen. Broken cities. Tents, I thought
it would be. Or fires.”
“Yes?” Nadia said, looking at him.
“I thought of an experiment—a plan.”
“Tell me,” Nadia said evenly.
But Sax was reading what looked like a weather update, which had
just appeared over the figures scrolling on his screen. Nadia patiently waited
him out, and when he looked up from his AI again, she said, “Well?”
“There’s a high-pressure cell, coming down Syrtis from Xanthe. It
should be here today. Tomorrow. On Isidis Planitia the air pressure will be
about three hundred and forty millibars, with roughly forty-five percent
nitrogen, forty percent oxygen, and fifteen percent carbon diox—”
“Sax, I don’t care about the weather!”
“It’s breathable,” he said. He eyed her with that reptile
expression of his, like a lizard or a dragon, or some cold posthuman creature,
fit to inhabit the vacuum. “Almost breathable. If you filter the CO2. And we
can do that. We manufactured face-masks in Da Vinci. They’re made from a
zirconium alloy lattice. It’s simple. CO2 molecules are bigger than oxygen or
nitrogen molecules, so we made a molecular sieve filter. It’s an active filter
too, in that there’s a piezoelectric layer, and the charge generated when the
material bends during inhalation and exhalation—powers an active transfer of
oxygen through the filter.”
“What about dust?” Nadia said.
“It’s a set of filters, graded by size. First it stops dust, then
fines, then CO2.” He looked up at Nadia. “I just thought people might need to
get out of a city. So we made half a million of them. Strap the masks on. The
edges are sticky polymer, they stick to skin. Then breathe the open air. Very
simple.”
“So we evacuate Burroughs.”
“I don’t see any alternative. We can’t get that many people out by
train or air fast enough. But we can walk.”
“But walk to where?”
“To Libya Station.”
“Sax, it’s about seventy k from Burroughs to Libya Station, isn’t
it?”
“Seventy-three kilometers.”
“That’s a hell of a long way to walk!”
“I think most people could manage it if they had to,” he said.
“And those who can’t could be picked up by rovers or dirigibles. Then as people
get to Libya Station, they can leave by train. Or dirigible. And the station
will hold maybe twenty thousand at a time. If you jam them in.”
Nadia thought about it, looking down at Sax’s expressionless face.
“Where are these masks?”
“They’re back at Da Vinci. But they’re already stowed in fast
planes, and we could get them here in a couple hours.”
“Are you sure they work?”
Sax nodded. “We tried them. And I brought a few along. I can show
you.” He got up and went to his old black bag, opened it, pulled out a stack of
white facemasks. He gave Nadia one. It was a mouth-and-nose mask, and looked
very much like a conventional dust mask used in construction, only thicker, and
with a rim that was sticky to the touch.
Nadia inspected it, put it over her head, tightened the thin
strap. She could breathe through it as easily as through a dust mask. No
sensation of obstruction at all. The seal seemed good.
“I want to try it outside,” she said.
First Sax sent word to Da Vinci to fly the masks over, and then
they went down to the refuge lock. Word of the plan and the trial had gotten
around, and all the masks Sax had brought were quickly spoken for. Going out
along with Nadia and Sax were about ten other people, including Zeyk, and
Nazik, and Spencer Jackson, who had arrived at Du Martheray about an hour
before.
They all wore the current styles of surface walker, which were
jumpsuits made of layered insulated fabrics, including heating filaments, but
without any of the old constrictive material that had been needed in the early
low-pressure years. “Try leaving your walker heaters off,” Nadia told the
others. “That way we can see what the cold feels like if you’re wearing city
clothes.”
They put the masks over their faces, and went into the garage
lock. The air in it got very cold very fast. And then the outer door opened.
They walked out onto the surface.
It was cold. The shock of it hit Nadia in the forehead, and the
eyes. It was hard not to gasp a little. Going from 500 millibars to 340 would
no doubt account-for that. Her eyes were running, her nose as well. She
breathed out, breathed in. Her lungs ached with the cold. Her eyes were right
out in the wind—that was the sensation that most struck her, the exposure of
her eyes. She shivered as the cold penetrated her walker’s fabrics, and the
inside of her chest. The chill had a Siberian edge to it, she thought. 260°K,
—13° Centigrade—not that bad, really. She just wasn’t used to it. Her hands and
feet had gotten chilled many a time on Mars, but it had been years and years—over
a century in fact!—since her head and lungs had felt the cold like this.
The others were talking loudly to each other, their voices
sounding funny in the open air. No helmet intercoms! Her walker’s neckring,
where the helmet ought to have rested, was extremely cold on her collarbones
and the back of her neck. The ancient broken black rock of the Great Escarpment
was covered with a thin night frost. She had peripheral vision such as she
never had in a helmet—wind—tears running down her cheeks from the cold. She
felt no particular emotion. She was surprised by how things looked unobstructed
by a faceplate or any other window; they had a sharp-edged hallucinatory
clarity, even in starlight. The sky in the east was a rich predawn Prussian
blue, with high cirrus clouds already catching the light, like pink mares’
tails. The ragged corrugations of the Great Escarpment were gray-on-black in
the starlight, lined with black shadows. The wind in her eyes!
People were talking without intercoms, their voices thin and
disembodied, their mouths hidden by the masks. There was no mechanical hum,
buzz, hiss, or whoosh; after over a century of such noise, the windy silence of
the outdoors was strange, a kind of aural hollowness. Nazik looked like she was
wearing a Bedouin veil.
“It’s cold,” she said to Nadia. “My ears are burning. I can feel
the wind on my eyes. On my face.”
“How long will the niters last?” Nadia said to Sax, speaking
loudly to be sure she was heard.
“A hundred hours.”
“Too bad people have to breath out through them.” That would add a
lot more CO2 to the filter.
“Yes. But I couldn’t see a simple way around it.”
They were standing on the surface of Mars, bareheaded. Breathing
the air with the aid of nothing more than a filter mask. The air was thin,
Nadia judged, but she did not feel lightheaded. The high percentage of oxygen
was making up for the low atmospheric pressure. It was the partial pressure of
oxygen that counted, and so with the percentage of oxygen in the atmosphere so
high... .
Zeyk said, “Is this is the first time anyone’s done this?”
“No,” Sax said. “We did it a lot in Da Vinci.”
“It feels good! It’s not as cold as I thought it would be!”
“And if you walk hard,” Sax said, “you’ll warm up.”
They walked around a bit, careful of their footing in the dark. It
was quite cold, no matter what Zeyk said. “We should go back in,” Nadia said.
“You should stay out and see the dawn,” Sax said. “It’s nice
without helmets.”
Nadia, surprised to hear such a sentiment coming from him, said,
“We can see other dawns. Right now we have a lot to talk about. Besides, it’s
cold.”
“It feels good,” Sax said. “Look, there’s Kerguelen cabbage. And
sandwort.” He kneeled, brushed a hairy leaf aside to show them a hidden white
flower, barely visible in, the predawn light.
Nadia stared at him.
“Come on in,” she said.
So they went back.
They took their masks off inside the lock, and then they were back
in the refuge’s changing room, rubbing their eyes and blowing into their gloved
hands. “It wasn’t so cold!” “The air tasted sweet!”
Nadia pulled off her gloves and felt her nose. The flesh was
chilled, but it was not the white cold of incipient frostbite. She looked at
Sax, whose eyes were gleaming with a wild expression, very unlike him—a strange
and somehow moving sight. They all looked excited for that matter, stuffed to
the edge of laughter with a peculiar exhilaration, edged by the dangerous”
situation down the slope in Burroughs. “I’ve been trying to get the oxygen
levels up for years,” Sax was saying to Nazik and Spencer and Steve.
Spencer said, “I thought that was to get your fire in Kasei Vallis
to burn hard.”
“Oh no. As far as fire goes, once you’ve got a certain amount of
oxygen, it’s more a matter of aridity and what materials there are to burn. No,
this was to get the partial pressure of oxygen up, so that people and animals
could breathe it. If only the carbon dioxide were reduced.”
“So have you made animal masks?”
They laughed and went up to the refuge commons, and Zeyk set about
making coffee while they talked over the walk, and touched each other on the
cheek to compare coldnesses.
“What about getting people out of the city?” Nadia said to Sax
suddenly. “What if security keeps the gates closed?”
“Cut the tent,” he said. “We should anyway, to get people out
faster. But I don’t think they’ll keep the gates closed.”
“They’re going out to the spaceport,” someone shouted from the
comm room. “The security forces are taking the subway out to the spaceport.
They’re abandoning ship, the bastards. And Michel says the train station—South
Station has been wrecked!”
This caused a clamor. Through it Nadia said to Sax, “Let’s tell
Hunt Mesa the plan, and get down there and meet the masks.”
Sax nodded.
Between
Mangalavid and the
wristpads they were able to make a very rapid dispersal of the plan to the
population of Burroughs, while driving down in a big caravan from Du Martheray
to a low line of hillocks just southwest of the city. Soon after their arrival,
the two planes bringing the CO2 masks from Da Vinci swooped down over Syrtis,
and landed on a swept area of the plains just outside the western apron, of the
tent wall. On the other side of the city observers on top of Double Decker
Butte had already reported sighting the flood, coming in from a bit north of
east: dark brown ice-flecked water, pouring down the low crease that inside the
city wall was occupied by Canal Park. And the news about South Station had
proved true; the piste equipment had been wrecked, by an explosion in the
linear induction generator. No one knew for sure who had done it, but it was
done, the trains immobilized.
So as Zeyk’s Arabs drove the boxes of masks to West, Southwest,
and South gates, there were huge crowds already congregating inside each of
them, everyone dressed either in walkers with heating filaments, or in the
heaviest clothes they had—none too heavy for the job at hand, Nadia judged as
she went in Southwest Gate, and passed out facemasks from boxes. These days
many people in Burroughs went out on the surface so seldom that they rented
walkers to do so. But there were not enough walkers to dress everyone, and they
had to go with people’s interior coats, which were fairly lightweight, and
usually deficient in headgear. The message about the evacuation had been sent
out with a warning to dress for 255°K, however, and so most people were layered
in several garments, appearing thick-limbed and thick-torsoed.
Each gate lock could pass five hundred people every five
minutes—they were big locks—but with thousands of people waiting inside, and
the crowds growing as Saturday morning wore on, it was not anywhere near fast
enough. The masks had been distributed through the crowds, and it seemed
certain to Nadia that at this point everyone had one. It was unlikely that
anyone in the city was unaware of the emergency. And so she went around to
Zeyk, and Sax, and Maya and Michel, and all the other people she knew that she
saw, saying, “We should cut the tent wall and just walk out. I’m going to cut
the tent wall now.” And no one disagreed.
Finally Nirgal showed up, gliding through the crowd like Mercury
on an urgent errand, smiling hugely and greeting acquaintance after
acquaintance, people who wanted to hug him or shake his hand or just touch him.
“I’m going to cut the tent wall now,” Nadia told him. “Everyone has masks, and
we need to get out of here faster than the gates will let us.”
“Good idea,” he said. “Let mejust announce what’s happening.”
And he jumped three meters into the ajr, grabbing a coping on the
gate’s concrete arch and hauling himself up so that he was balanced on it, both
feet on the same three-centimeter strip. He turned on a small shoulder
loudspeaker he was wearing, and said, “Attention, please!—We’re going to start
cutting the tent wall, right above the coping—there should be a breeze outward,
not very strong—after that, people nearest the wall out first, of course— there
will be no need to hurry at that point—we’ll cut extensively, and everyone
should be out of the city in the following half hour. Be ready for the cold—it
will be very invigorating. Please get your masks on, and check your seal, and
the seal of the people around you.”
He looked down at Nadia, who had gotten a little laser welder out
of her black backpack, and now showed it to Nirgalrholding it overhead so that
much of the crowd could see it.
“Is everyone ready?” Nirgal asked over his loudspeaker. Everyone
visible in the crowd had a white mask over their lower faces. “You look like
bandits,” Nirgal told them, and laughed. “Okay!” he said, looking down at
Nadia.
And she cut the tent.
Sensible survival behavior is almost as contagious as panic, and
the evacuation was quick and orderly. Nadia cut about two hundred meters of
tenting, right above the concrete coping, and the higher air pressure inside
caused an outflowing wind that held the transparent layers of the tent fabric
up and out from the coping, so that people could climb over the waist-high wall
without having to deal with it. Others cut the tent near West and South gates,
and in about the time it takes to empty a big stadium, the population of
Burroughs was out of the city, and into the cold fresh air of an Isidis
morning: pressure 350 millibars, temperature 261K°, or -12° Celsius.
Zeyk’s Arabs stayed in their rovers and served as escorts, rolling
back and forth and guiding people up to the line of hillocks a few kilometers
to the southwest of the city, called the Moeris Hills. Floodwater reached the
eastern side of the city as the last part of the crowd made it onto this line
of low bumps in the plain, and Red observers, ranging wide in rovers of their
own, reported that the flood was now running north and south around the foot of
the city wall, in a surge that at this point was less than a meter deep.
So it had been a very, very close thing; close enough to make
Nadia shudder. She stood on the top of one of the Moeris hillocks, looking
about trying to gauge the situation. People had done their best, but were
insufficiently dressed, she thought; not everyone had insulated boots, and very
few people had much in the way of headgear. The Arabs were leaning out of their
rovers to show people how to wrap scarves or towels or extra jackets over their
heads in improvised burnoose hoods, and that would have to do. But it was cold
out, very cold despite the sun and the lack of wind, and the citizens of
Burroughs who did not work on the surface were looking shocked. Although some
were in better shape than others; Nadia could spot Russian newcomers by their
warm hats, brought from home; she greeted these people in Russian, and almost
always they grinned—”This is nothing,” they shouted, “this is good ice-skating
weather, da?” “Keep moving,” Nadia said to them and to everyone else. “Keep
moving.” It was supposed to warm up in the afternoon, perhaps up to freezing.
Inside the doomed city the mesas stood stark and dramatic in the
morning light, like a titanic museum of cathedrals, the banks of windows inlaid
in them like jewels, the foliage on the mesa tops little green gardens capping
the redrock. The city’s population stood on the plain, masked like bandits or
hay fever victims, bundled thickly in clothes, some in slim heated walkers, a
few carrying helmets for use later if needed; the whole pilgrimage standing and
looking back at the city: people on the surface of Mars, their-faces exposed to
the frigid thin air, standing hands in their pockets, above them high cirrus
clouds like metal shavings plastered against the -dark pink sky. The
strangeness of the sight was both exhilarating and terrifying, and Nadia walked
up and down the line of knobs talking with Zeyk, Sax, Nirgal, Jackie, Art. She
even sent another message to Ann, hoping that Ann was receiving them, even
though she never answered: “Make sure the security troops have no trouble at
the spaceport,” she said, unable to keep the anger out of her voice. “Keep out
of their way.”
About ten minutes later her wrist beeped. “I know,” Ann’s voice
said curtly. And that was all.
Now that they were out of the city, Maya was feeling buoyant.
“Let’s start walking,” she cried. “It’s a long way to Libya Station, and half
the day is almost gone already!”
“True,” Nadia said. And many people had already started, heading
over to the piste that ran out of Burroughs South Station, and following it
south, up the slope of the Great Escarpment.
So they walked away from the city. Nadia often stopped to
encourage people, and so quite often she was looking back at Burroughs, at the
rooftops and gardens under the transparent bubble of the tent, in the midday
sunlight—down into that green meso-cosm that for so long had been the capital
of their world. Now rusty black ice-flecked water had run almost all the way
around the city wall, and a thick flow of dirty icebergs was coming down from
the low crease to the northeast, pouring toward the city in a broadening
torrent, filling the air with a roar that raised the hair on the back of her
neck, a Marineris rumbling... .
The land they walked over was dotted by scattered low plants,
mostly tundra moss and alpine flowers, with occasional stands of ice cactus
like spiky black fire hydrants. Midges and flies, disturbed by the strange
invasion, whirred around in the air overhead. It was noticeably warmer than it
had been in the morning, the temperatures rising fast; it felt a little above
zero. “Two seventy-two!” Nirgal cried when Nadia asked him in passing. He was
passing by every few minutes, running up and down the crowd from one end of the
line to the other and back again. Nadia checked her wrist: 272°K. The wind was
very slight, and from the southwest. The weather reports indicated the
high-pressure zone would stay over Isidis for another day at least.
People were walking in small knots, in the process of finding
other small knots, so that friends and work groups and acquaintances were
greeting each other as they moved along, surprised often by familiar voices
under masks, familiar eyes between mask and hood or hat. A diffuse frost cloud
rose from the crowd, a mass exhalation, burning off quickly in the sun. Rovers
from the Red army had driven up from both sides of the city, hurrying to get
away from the flood; now they moved along slowly, their outriders passing out
flasks of hot drinks. Nadia glared at them, mouthing silent curses inside the
privacy of her mask, but one of the Reds saw the curse in her eyes, and said to
her irritably, “It wasn’t us broke the dike, you know, it was the Marsfirst
guerrillas. It was Kasei!”
And he drove on.
A convention was being established whereby ravines to the east of
the piste were being used as latrines. They were getting far enough upslope that
people often stopped to look back down into the strangely empty city, with its
new moat of dark rusty ice-choked water. Groups of natives were chanting bits
of the aer-ophany as they walked, and hearing it, Nadia’s heart squeezed inside
her; she muttered, “Come back out, damn you, Hiroko, please—come back out
today.”
She spotted Art, and walked over to his side. He was making a
running commentary over the wrist, apparently sending it to a news consortium
on Earth. “Oh yes,” he said in a quick aside when Nadia asked him about it.
“We’re live. Real good vid too, I’m sure. And they can relate to the flood
scenario.”
No doubt. The city with its mesas, surrounded now by black
ice-choked water, which was steaming faintly, its surface turbulent, its edges
bubbling madly with carbonation, as waves surged down from the north, the noise
like waves in a high storm... . The air temperature was now just above
freezing, and the surging water was staying liquid even when it pooled and went
still, even when it was covered with floating brash ice. Nadia had never seen
anything that brought home to her more strongly the fact that they had
transformed the atmosphere—not the plants, nor the bluing of the sky color, nor
even their ability to expose their eyes, and breathe through thin masks. The
sight of water freezing during the Marineris deluge—going from black to white
in twenty seconds or less—had marked her more deeply than she knew. Now they
had open water. The low broad crease holding Burroughs looked like a gargantuan
Bay of Fundy, with the tide racing up it.
People were exclaiming, their voices filling the thin air like
bird-song, over the low continuo of the flood. Nadia didn’t know why; then she
saw—there was movement at the spaceport.
The spaceport was located on a broad plateau to the northwest of
the city, and at their height on the slope, the population of Burroughs could
stand there and watch while the great doors of the spaceport’s largest hangar
opened, and five giant space planes rolled out one after another: an ominous,
somehow military sight. The planes taxied up to the spaceport’s main terminal,
and jetways extended and latched on to their sides. Again nothing happened, and
the refugees walked up toward the first real hills of the Great Escarpment for
the better part of an hour, until, despite their increase in elevation, the
spaceport runways and the lower halves of the hangars were under the watery
horizon. The sun was well in the west now.
Attention turned to the city itself, as the water broached the
tent wall on the east side of Burroughs, and ran in over the coping by
Southwest Gate, where they had cut the tent. Soon thereafter it was flooding
Princess Park and Canal Park and the Niederdorf, dividing the city in two and
then slowly rising up the side boulevards, covering the roofs in the lower part
of town.
In the midst of this spectacle one of the big jets appeared in the
sky over the plateau, looking much too slow to fly, as big planes low to the
ground always do. It had taken off southward, so for the spectators on the
ground it grew larger and larger without ever seeming to gain speed, until the
low rumble of its eight engines reached them, and it plowed overhead with the
slow impossible awkwardness of a bumblebee. As it lumbered off to the west the next
one appeared over the spaceport, and headed past the water-floored city and
over them, off to the west. And so it went for all five planes, each one
looking as unaerodynamic as the last, until the last one had trolled past them
and disappeared over the western horizon.
Now they began to walk in earnest. The fastest walkers took off,
making no attempt to stay back with the slower ones; it was important to begin
to train people away from Libya Station as soon as possible, and this was
understood by all. Trains were on their way to Libya from all over, but Libya
Station was small and had only a few sidings, so the choreography of the
evacuation was going to be complex.
It was now five in the afternoon, the sun low over the rise of
Syrtis, the temperature plummeting past zero, on its way far down. As the
faster walkers, mostly natives and the latest immigrants, pressed on ahead, the
crowd became a long column. The people in rovers reported that it was several
kilometers long now, and getting longer all the time. These rovers drove up and
down the line, picking people up and sometimes letting others out. All
available walkers and helmets were being used. Coyote had appeared on the
scene, driving up from the direction of the dike, and seeing his boulder car, Nadia
instantly suspected he was behind the broaching of the dike; but after greeting
her cheerily over the wrist, and asking how things were going, he drove back
toward the city. “Get South Fossa to send a dirigible over the city,” he
suggested, “in case anyone was left behind, and is up on the mesa tops. There
must be some people in there who slept through the day, and when they wake up
they are in for one very big surprise.”
He laughed wildly, but it was a good point, and Art made the call.
Nadia walked along at the back of the column with Maya and Sax and
Art, listening to reports as they came in. She got the rovers to drive on the
dead piste, to avoid kicking dust into the air. She tried to ignore the fact
that she was tired already. It was mostly lack of sleep, rather than muscular
exhaustion. But it was going to be a long night. And not only for her. Many
people on Mars were entirely city dwellers now, and unused to walking very far
at a time. She herself seldom did, though she was often on her feet around
construction sites, and did not have a desk job like many of these people.
Luckily they were following a piste, and could even walk on its smooth surface
if they cared to, between the suspension rails on the edges and the reaction
rail running down the middle. Most preferred to stay on the concrete or gravel
roads running alongside the piste, however.
Unfortunately, walking out of Isidis Planitia in any direction but
north meant walking uphill. Libya Station was about seven hundred meters higher
than Burroughs, not an inconsiderable height; but the grade was almost
continuous over the seventy kilometers, and there were no steep sections
anywhere along the way. “It will help keep us warm,” Sax muttered when Nadia
mentioned it.
It got later and later, until their shadows were cast far to the
east, as if they were giants. Behind them the drowning city, lightless and
empty, black-floored, disappeared over their horizon mesa by mesa, until
finally Double Decker Butte and Moeris Mesa were submerged by the skysill. The
dusky burnt umbers of Isidis took on more and more color, and the sky darkened
and darkened, until the fat sun lay burning on the western horizon, and they
walked slowly through a ruddy world, strung out like a ragtag army in retreat.
Nadia checked Mangalavid from time to time, and found the news
from the rest of the planet mostly comforting. All the major cities but
Sheffield had been secured by the independence movement. Sabishii’s mound maze
had provided refuge for the survivors of the fire, and though the fire was not
yet put out everywhere, the maze meant they would be okay. Nadia talked to
Nanao and Etsu for a while as she walked. The little wrist image of Nanao
revealed his exhaustion, and she said something about how bad she felt—
Sabishii burned, Burroughs drowned—the two greatest cities on Mars, destroyed.
“No no,” Nanao said. “We rebuild. Sabishii is in our mind.”
They were sending their few unburned trains to Libya Station, as
were many other cities. The nearest were also sending planes and dirigibles.
The dirigibles would be able to come to their aid during the night’s march,
which was useful. Especially important would be any water they could bring with
them, as dehydration in the cold and hyperarid night was going to be severe.
Nadia’s throat was already parched, and she happily took a cupful of warm water
from a passing rover handing them out. She lifted her mask and drank swiftly,
trying not to breathe as she did. “Last call!” the woman passing out the cups
called cheerily. “We’ll run out after the next hundred people.”
Another kind of call came in from South Fossa. They had heard from
several mining camps around Elysium, whose occupants had declared themselves
independent of both the metanationals and the Free Mars movement, and were warning
everyone to stay away. .Some stations occupied by Reds were doing much the
same. Nadia snorted. “Tell them fine,” she said to the people in South Fossa.
“Send them a copy of the Dorsa Brevia Declaration, and tell them to study it
for a while. If they’ll agree to uphold the human rights section, I don’t see
why we should bother with them.”
The sun set as they walked. The long twilight slowly ran its
course.
While there was still a dark purple twilight suffusing the hazy
air, a boulder car drove up from the east and stopped just ahead of Nadia’s
group, and figures got out and walked over to them, wearing white masks and
hoods. By silhouette alone Nadia recognized, all of a sudden, the one in the
lead: it was Ann, tall and spare, walking right up to her, picking her out of
the rabble at the tail end of the column without hesitation, despite the lack
of light. The way the First Hundred knew each other... .
Nadia stopped, stared up at her old friend. Ann was blinking at
the sudden cold.
“We didn’t do it,” Ann said brusquely. “The Armscor unit came out
in armored cars, and there was a real fight. Kasei was afraid that if they
retook the dike they would try to retake everything, everywhere. He was
probably right.”
“Is he okay?”
“I don’t know. A lot of people on the dike were killed. And a lot
had to escape the flood by going up onto Syrtis.”
She stood there before them, grim, unapologetic—Nadia marveled
that one could read so much from a silhouette, a black cutout against the
stars. Set of the shoulders, perhaps. Tilt of the head.
“Come on then,” Nadia said. There was nothing else she could think
to say, at this point. Going out onto the dike in the first place, setting the
explosive charges ... but there was no point, now. “Let’s keep walking.”
The light leaked away from the land, out of the air, out of the
sky. They hiked under the stars, through air as cold as Siberia. Nadia could
have gone faster, but she wanted to stay at the back with the slowest group, to
do what she could to help. People were giving piggyback rides to some of the
smaller children among them, but the fact was there weren’t very many children
at the end of the column; the smallest ones were already in rovers, and the
older ones were up front with the faster walkers. There hadn’t been that many
children in Burroughs to begin with.
Rover headlight beams cut through the dust they were throwing into
the air, and seeing it Nadia wondered if the CO2 filters would get clogged by
fines. She mentioned this aloud, and Ann said, “If you hold the mask to your
face and blow out hard, it helps. You can also hold your breath and take it
off, and blow compressed air through it, if you have a compressor.”
Sax nodded.
“You know these masks?” Nadia said to Ann.
Ann nodded. “I’ve spent many hours using ones like them.”
“Okay, good.” Nadia experimented with hers, holding the fabric
right against her mouth and blowing put hard. Quickly she felt short of breath.
“We still should Tfy^walking on the piste and the roads, and cutting down on
the dust. And tell the rovers to go slow.”
They walked on. Over the next couple of hours they fell into a
kind of rhythm. No one passed them, no one fell back. It got colder and colder.
Rover headlights partially illuminated the thousands of people ahead of them,
all the way up the long gradual slope to the high southern horizon, which was
perhaps twelve or fifteen kilometers ahead of them, it was hard to tell in the
dark. The column ran all the way to the horizon: a bobbing, fencing collection
of headlight beams, flashlight beams, the red glow of taillights ... a strange
sight. Occasionally there was a buzz overhead, as dirigibles from South Fossa
arrived, floating like gaudy UFOs with all their running lights on, their
engines humming as they wafted down to drop off loads of food and water for the
cars to retrieve, and pick up groups from the back of the column. Then they
hummed up into the air and away, until they were no more than colorful
constellations, disappearing over the horizon to the east.
During the timeslip a crowd of exuberant young natives tried to
sing, but it was too cold and dry, and they did not persist for long. Nadia
liked the idea, and in her mind she sang some of her old favorites many times:
“Hello Central Give Me’ Dr. Jazz,” “Bucket’s Got a Hole in It,” “On the Sunny
Side of the Street.” Over and over and over.
The longer the night went on, the better her mood became; it was
beginning to seem like the plan was going to work. They were not passing
hundreds of prostrate people^although the word from the cars was that a fair
number of the young natives appeared to have blown it and gone out too fast,
and were now requiring assistance. Everyone had gone from 500 millibars to 340,
which was the equivalent of going from 4,000 meters altitude on Earth to 6,500
meters, not an inconsiderable jump even with the higher percentage of oxygen in
the Martian air to mitigate the effects; thus people were coming down with
altitude sickness. Altitude sickness tended to strike the young a bit more than
the old anyway, and many of the natives had taken off very enthusiastically. So
some were paying for it now, with headaches and nausea felling quite a few. But
the cars reported success so far taking in the ones on the edge of vomiting,
and escorting the rest. And the rear of the column was keeping a steady pace.
So Nadia trudged on, sometimes hand in hand with Maya or Art,
sometimes in her own world, her mind wandering in the biting cold, remembering
odd shards of the past. She remembered some of the other dangerous cold walks
she had taken over the surface of this world of hers: out in the great storm
with John at Rabe Crater ... searching for the transponder with Arkady ...
following Frank down into Noctis Labyrinthus, on the night they escaped from
the assault on Cairo... . On that night too she had fallen into an odd bleak
cheerfulness—response to a freeing from responsibility, perhaps, to becoming no
more than a foot soldier, following someone else’s lead. Sixty-one had been
such a disaster. This revolution too could devolve into chaos—indeed it had. No
one in control. But there were still voices coming in over her wrist, from
everywhere. And no one was going to strafe them from space. The most
intransigent elements of the Transitional Authority had probably been killed
outright, in Kasei Vallis—an aspect of Art’s “integrated pest management” that
was no joke. And the rest of UNTA was being overwhelmed by sheer numbers. They
were incapable, as anyone would be, of controlling a whole planet of
dissidents. Or too intimidated to try.
So they had managed to do it differently this time. Or else
conditions on Earth had simply changed, and all the various phenomena of
Martian history were only distorted reflections of those changes. Quite
possible. A troubling thought, when considering the future. But that was for
later. They would face all that when they came to it. Now they only had to
worry about getting to Libya Station. The sheer physicality of the problem, and
of the solution to the problem, pleased her immensely. Finally something she could
get her hands on. Walk. Breathe the frigid air. Try’ to warm her lungs from the
rest of her, from the heart—something like Nirgal’s uncanny heat
redistribution, if only she could!
It began to seem like she could actually catch little bursts of
sleep while still walking. She worried it was CO2 poisoning, but continued to
blink out from time to time. Her throat was very sore. The tail end of the
column was slowing down, and rovers were now driving back to it and picking up
all the people who were exhausted, and driving them up the slope to Libya
Station, where they would drop them off, and return for another load. A lot
more people were beginning to suffer altitude sickness, and the Reds were
telling victims over the wrist how to pull off their masks and vomit, and then
get the masks back on before breathing again. A difficult unpleasant operation
at best, and many people were suffering CO2 poisoning as well as altitude
sickness. Still, they were closing on their destination. The wrist images from
Libya Station looked like the inside of a Tokyo subway station at rush hour,
but trains were arriving and departing on a regular basis, so it looked like
there was going to be room for the later arrivals.
A rover rolled up beside them, and asked them if they wanted a
lift. Maya said, “Get out of here! What’s the matter, can’t you see? Go help
those people u’p there, come on, stop wasting our time!”
The driver took off quickly to avoid more castigation. Maya said.
hoarsely, “To hell with that. I’m a hundred and forty-three years old, and I’ll
be damned if I don’t walk the whole way. Let’s pick up the pace a little.”
They kept the same pace. They kept at the back of the column,
watching the parade of lights bobbing in the haze ahead of them. Nadia’s eyes
had hurt for several hours, but now they were getting really painful, the
numbness of the cold no longer a help, apparently; they were very, very dry,
and sandy in their sockets. It stung to blink. Goggles with the masks would
have been a good idea.
She stumbled over an unseen rock, and a memory shot into her from
her youth: one time she and some coworkers had had their truck break down, in
the southern Urals in winter. They had had to walk from the outskirts of the
abandoned Chelyabinsk-65 to Chelyabinsk-40, over fifty frozen kilometers of
devastated Stalinist industrial wasteland—black abandoned factories, broken
smokestacks, downed fences, gutted trucks ... all in the snowy frigid winter
night, under low clouds. Like something out of a dream it had been, even at the
time. She told Maya and Art and Sax about it, her voice hoarse. Her throat
hurt, but not as badly as her eyes. They had gotten so used to intercoms, it
was funny to have to talk through the air separating them. But she wanted to
talk. “I don’t know how I ever could have forgotten that night. But I haven’t
thought of it in the longest time. I’d forgotten it. It must have happened,
what, a hundred and twenty years ago.”
“This is another one you’ll remember,” Maya said.
They shared brief stories about the coldest they had ever been.
The two Russian women could list ten incidents colder than the very coldest
experiences Sax or Art could come up with. “How about the hottest?” Art said.
“I can win that one. One time I was in a log-cutting contest, in the chainsaw
division, and that just conies down to who has the most powerful saw, so I
replaced my saw’s engine with one off a Harley-Davidson, and cut the log in
under ten seconds. But motorcycle engines are air-cooled, you know, and did my
hands get hot!”
They laughed. “Doesn’t count,” Maya declared. “It wasn’t your
whole body.”
Fewer stars were visible than before. At first Nadia put it down
to the fines in the air, or the trouble with her sanded eyes. But then she
looked at her wristpad, and saw it was almost five A.M. Dawn soon. And Libya
Station was only a few kilometers away. It was 256° Kelvin.
They came in at sunrise. People were passing around cups of hot
tea that smelled like ambrosia. The station was too crowded to enter, and there
were several thousand people waiting outside. But the evacuation had been
proceeding smoothly for several hours, organized and run by Vlad and Ursula and
a whole crowd of Bog-danovists. Trains were still coming in on all three
pistes, from east south and west, and loading up and leaving soon thereafter.
And dirigibles were floating in over the horizon. The population of Burroughs
was going to be split up immediately—some taken to Elysium, some to Hellas, and
farther south to Hiranyagarbha, and Christianopolis—others to the small towns on
the way to Sheffield, including Underbill.
So they waited their turn. In the dawn light they could see that
everyone’s eyes were extremely bloodshot, which, along with the dust-caked
masks still over their mouths, gave people a wild and bloody look. Clearly
goggles were in order for walks out.
Finally Zeyk and Marina escorted the last group into the station.
At this point quite a few of the First Hundred had found each other and
clustered against one wall, drawn by the magnetism that always pulled them together
in a crisis. Now, with the final group in, there were several of them: Maya and
Michel, Nadia and Sax and Ann, Vlad, Ursula, Marina, Spencer, Ivana, the
Coyote... .
Over by the pistes Jackie and Nirgal were directing people into
trains, waving their arms like symphony conductors, and steadying those whose
legs were giving out at the last minute. The First Hundred walked out to the
platform together. Maya ignored Jackie as she walked past her onto a train.
Nadia followed Maya on board, and then came the rest of them. They walked down
the central aisle, past all the happy two-toned faces^ brown with dust above,
clean around the mouth. There were some dirty facemasks on the floor, but most
people were holding theirs clutched in their hands.
Screens at the front of each car relayed film that a dirigible was
showing of Burroughs, which this morning was a sea of ice-coated water, the ice
predominant, although black polynyas were everywhere. Above this new sea stood
the nine mesas of the city, now nine cliff-walled islands, not very tall, their
top gardens and remaining rows of windows truly strange-looking above the dirty
brash ice.
Nadia and the rest of the First Hundred followed Maya through the
cars to the last one. Maya turned around and saw them all, filling the final
little compartment of the train, and said, “What, is this one going to
Underbill?”
“Odessa,” Sax told her.
She smiled.
People were getting up and moving forward, so that the old ones
could sit together in the final compartment, and they did not decline the
courtesy. They thanked them and sat. Soon after that, the compartments ahead of
them were full. The aisles began to fill.
Vlad said something about the captain being the last to leave a
sinking ship.
Nadia found the remark depressing. She was truly weary now, she
couldn’t remember when she had last slept. She had liked Burroughs, and a huge
number of construction hours had been poured into it. ... She remembered what
Nanao had said about Sabishii. Burroughs too was in their minds. Perhaps when
the shoreline of the new ocean stabilized, they could build another one,
somewhere else.
As for now, Ann was sitting on the other side of the car, and
Coyote was coming down the aisle to them, stopping to press his face to the
window glass, and give a thumbs-up to Nirgal and Jackie, still outside. Those
two got on board the train, several cars ahead of the last one. Michel was
laughing at something Maya had said, and Ursula, Marina, Vlad, Spencer—these
members of Na-dia’s family were around her and safe, at least for the moment.
And as the moment was all they ever had ... she felt herself melting into her
seat. She would be asleep in minutes, she could feel it in her dry burning
eyes. The train began to move.
Sax was inspecting his wristpad, and Nadia said to him drowsily,
“What’s happening on Earth?”
“Sea level is still rising. It’s gone up four meters. It looks
like the metanationals have stopped fighting, for the time being. The World
Court has brokered a cease-fire. Praxis has put all its resources into flood
relief. Some of the other metanats look like they might go the same way. The UN
General Assembly has convened in Mexico City. India has agreed that it has a
treaty with an independent Martian government.”
“That’s a devil’s bargain,” Coyote said from across the
compartment. “India and China, they’re too big for us to handle. You wait and
see.”
“So the fighting down there has ended?” Nadia said.
“It’s not clear if that’s permanent or not,” Sax said.
Maya snorted. “No way it’s permanent.”
Sax shrugged.
“We need to set up a government,” Maya said. “We have to set it up
fast, and present Earth with a united front. The more established we seem, the
less likely they’ll be to come hard to root us out.”
“They’ll come,” Coyote said from the window.
“Not if we prove to them that they’ll get everything from us they
would have gotten on their own,” May a said, irritated at Coyote. “That will
slow them down.”
“They’ll come anyway.”
Sax said, “We will never be out of danger until Earth is calm. Is
stabilized.”
“Earth will never be stabilized,” Coyote said.
Sax shrugged.
“It’s we who have to stabilize it!” Maya exclaimed, shaking a
finger at Coyote. “For our own sakes!”
“Areoforming Earth,” Michel said with his ironic smile.
“Sure, why not?” Maya said. “If that’s what it takes.”
Michel leaned over and gave Maya a kiss on her dusty cheek.
Coyote was shaking his head. “It’s moving the world without a
fulcrum,” he said.
“The fulcrum is in our minds,” Maya said, startling Nadia.
Marina also was watching her wrist, and now she said, “Security
still has Clarke, and the cable. Peter says they’ve left all of Sheffield but
the Socket. And someone—hey—someone has reported seeing Hiroko in
Hiranyagarbha.”
They went silent at this, thinking their own thoughts.
“I got into the UNTA records of that first takeover of Sabishii,”
Coyote said after a while, “and there was no mention at all of Hiroko, or any
of her group. I don’t think they got them.”
Maya said darkly, “What’s written down has nothing to do with what
happened.”
“In Sanskrit,” Marina said, “Hiranyagarbha means ‘The Golden
Embryo.’“
Nadia’s heart squeezed. Come out, Hiroko, she thought. Come out,
damn you, please, please, damn you, come out. The look on Michel’s face was
painful to see. His whole family, disappeared... .
“We can’t be sure we’ve got Mars together yet,” Nadia said, to
distract him. She caught his eye. “We couldn’t agree in Dorsa Brevia— why
should we now?”
“Because we are free,” Michel replied, rallying. “It’s real now.
We are free to try. And you only put your full effort into a thing when there
is no going back.”
The train slowed to cross the equatorial piste, and they rocked
back and forth with it.
“There are Reds blowing up all the pumping stations on Vastitas,”
Coyote said. “I don’t think you’re going to get any easy consensus on the
terraforming.”
“That’s for sure,” Ann said hoarsely. She cleared her throat. “We
want the soletta gone too.”
She glared at Sax, but he only shrugged.
“Ecopoesis,” he said. “We already have a biosphere. It’s all we
need. A beautiful world.”
Outside the broken landscape flashed by in the cool morning light.
The slopes of Tyrrhena were tinted khaki by the presence of millions of small
patches of grass and moss and lichen, tucked between the rocks. They looked out
at it silently. Nadia felt stunned, trying to think about all of it, trying to
keep it from all mixing together, blurring like the rust-and-khakiflow outside.
...
She looked at the people around her, and some key inside her
turned. Her eyes were still dry and raw, but she was no longer sleepy. The
tautness in her stomach eased, for the first time since the revolt had begun.
She breathed freely. She looked at the faces of her friends—Ann still angry at
her, Maya still angry at Coyote, all of them beat, dirty, as red-eyed as the
little red people, their irises like round chips of semiprecious stone, vivid
in their bloodshot settings. She heard herself say, “Arkady would be pleased.”
The others looked surprised. She never talked about him, she
realized.
“Simon too,” Ann said.
“And Alex.”
“And Sasha.” “And Tatiana—”
“And all our lost ones,” Michel said quickly, before the length of
the list grew too great.
“But not Frank,” Maya said. “Frank would be thoroughly pissed off
‘ at something.”
They laughed, and Coyote said, “And we have you to carry on the
tradition, eh?” And they laughed some more as she shook an angry finger at him.
“And John?” Michel asked, pulling Maya’s arm down, directing the
question at her.
Maya freed her arm, kept shaking a finger at Coyote. “John wouldn’t
be crying doom and gloom and kissing off Earth as if we could get by without
it! John Boone would be ecstatic at this moment!”
“We should remember that,” Michel said quickly. “We should think
what he would do.”
Coyote grinned. “He would be running up and down this train
getting high. Being high. It would be a party all the way to Odessa. Music and
dance and everything.” They looked at each other.
“Well?” Michel said.
Coyote gestured forward. “It does not sound as if they are
actually needing our help.”
“Nevertheless,” Michel said.
And they went forward up the train.
KIM STANLEY ROBINSON is the author of the Nebula and Hugo Award-winning Mars trilogy—Red Mars, Green Mars, and Blue Mars—as well as Antarctica, The Wild Shore, The Gold Coast, Pacific Edge, A Short, Sharp Shock, and other novels. He lives in Davis, California.